This is a modern-English version of The Condition of the Working-Class in England in 1844: with a Preface written in 1892, originally written by Engels, Friedrich. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


The Condition of the Working-Class in England in 1844
With a Preface written in 1892

by
FREDERICK ENGELS

by FREDERICK ENGELS

Translated by Florence Kelley Wischnewetzky

Translated by Florence Kelley Wischnewetzky

London

London

GEORGE ALLEN & UNWIN LTD

GEORGE ALLEN & UNWIN LTD

Museum Street

Museum Street

p. vPREFACE

The book, an English translation of which is here republished, was first issued in Germany in 1845.  The author, at that time, was young, twenty-four years of age, and his production bears the stamp of his youth with its good and its faulty features, of neither of which he feels ashamed.  It was translated into English, in 1885, by an American lady, Mrs. F. Kelley Wischnewetzky, and published in the following year in New York.  The American edition being as good as exhausted, and having never been extensively circulated on this side of the Atlantic, the present English copyright edition is brought out with the full consent of all parties interested.

The book, which is being republished here in English, was first released in Germany in 1845. At that time, the author was young, just twenty-four years old, and his work reflects his youth, showcasing both its strengths and weaknesses, of which he is not ashamed. It was translated into English in 1885 by an American woman, Mrs. F. Kelley Wischnewetzky, and published the following year in New York. Since the American edition is nearly sold out and has never been widely circulated on this side of the Atlantic, this new English copyright edition is being released with the full agreement of everyone involved.

For the American edition, a new Preface and an Appendix were written in English by the author.  The first had little to do with the book itself; it discussed the American Working-Class Movement of the day, and is, therefore, here omitted as irrelevant, the second—the original preface—is largely made use of in the present introductory remarks.

For the American edition, the author wrote a new Preface and an Appendix in English. The first one didn't relate much to the book itself; it talked about the American Working-Class Movement of the time and is therefore left out as it's not relevant. The second—the original preface—was mainly used in the current introductory remarks.

The state of things described in this book belongs to-day, in many respects, to the past, as far as England is concerned.  Though not expressly stated in our recognised treatises, it is still a law of modern Political Economy that the larger the scale on which Capitalistic Production is carried on, the less can it support the petty devices of swindling and pilfering which characterise its early stages.  The pettifogging business tricks of the Polish Jew, the representative in Europe of commerce in its lowest stage, those tricks that serve him so well in his own country, and are generally practised there, he finds to be out of date and out of place when he comes to Hamburg or Berlin; and, again, the commission p. viagent, who hails from Berlin or Hamburg, Jew or Christian, after frequenting the Manchester Exchange for a few months, finds out that, in order to buy cotton yarn or cloth cheap, he, too, had better drop those slightly more refined but still miserable wiles and subterfuges which are considered the acme of cleverness in his native country.  The fact is, those tricks do not pay any longer in a large market, where time is money, and where a certain standard of commercial morality is unavoidably developed, purely as a means of saving time and trouble.  And it is the same with the relation between the manufacturer and his “hands.”

The state of affairs described in this book today belongs, in many ways, to the past when it comes to England. Although it’s not explicitly mentioned in our established studies, it’s still a principle of modern Political Economy that the larger the scale of Capitalistic Production, the less it can tolerate the petty tactics of cheating and stealing that characterized its early stages. The small-time business tricks of the Polish Jew, who represents the lowest stage of commerce in Europe and thrives on them in his own country, find themselves outdated and unsuitable when he reaches Hamburg or Berlin. Similarly, a commission agent from Berlin or Hamburg, whether Jew or Christian, after spending a few months at the Manchester Exchange, realizes that to get cotton yarn or cloth at a better price, he should abandon those slightly more refined yet still pathetic schemes that are seen as the pinnacle of cleverness back home. The reality is, those tricks no longer work in a large market where time equals money, and where a certain level of commercial ethics naturally develops as a way to save time and hassle. The same holds true for the relationship between the manufacturer and their workers.

The revival of trade, after the crisis of 1847, was the dawn of a new industrial epoch.  The repeal of the Corn Laws and the financial reforms subsequent thereon gave to English industry and commerce all the elbow-room they had asked for.  The discovery of the Californian and Australian gold-fields followed in rapid succession.  The Colonial markets developed at an increasing rate their capacity for absorbing English manufactured goods.  In India millions of hand-weavers were finally crushed out by the Lancashire power-loom.  China was more and more being opened up.  Above all, the United States—then, commercially speaking, a mere colonial market, but by far the biggest of them all—underwent an economic development astounding even for that rapidly progressive country.  And, finally, the new means of communication introduced at the close of the preceding period—railways and ocean steamers—were now worked out on an international scale; they realised actually, what had hitherto existed only potentially, a world-market.  This world-market, at first, was composed of a number of chiefly or entirely agricultural countries grouped around one manufacturing centre—England—which consumed the greater part of their surplus raw produce, and supplied them in return with the greater part of their requirements in manufactured articles.  No wonder England’s industrial progress was colossal and unparalleled, and such that the status of 1844 now appears to us as comparatively primitive and insignificant.  And in proportion as this increase took place, in the same proportion did manufacturing industry become apparently p. viimoralised.  The competition of manufacturer against manufacturer by means of petty thefts upon the workpeople did no longer pay.  Trade had outgrown such low means of making money; they were not worth while practising for the manufacturing millionaire, and served merely to keep alive the competition of smaller traders, thankful to pick up a penny wherever they could.  Thus the truck system was suppressed, the Ten Hours’ Bill was enacted, and a number of other secondary reforms introduced—much against the spirit of Free Trade and unbridled competition, but quite as much in favour of the giant-capitalist in his competition with his less favoured brother.  Moreover, the larger the concern, and with it the number of hands, the greater the loss and inconvenience caused by every conflict between master and men; and thus a new spirit came over the masters, especially the large ones, which taught them to avoid unnecessary squabbles, to acquiesce in the existence and power of Trades’ Unions, and finally even to discover in strikes—at opportune times—a powerful means to serve their own ends.  The largest manufacturers, formerly the leaders of the war against the working-class, were now the foremost to preach peace and harmony.  And for a very good reason.  The fact is, that all these concessions to justice and philanthropy were nothing else but means to accelerate the concentration of capital in the hands of the few, for whom the niggardly extra extortions of former years had lost all importance and had become actual nuisances; and to crush all the quicker and all the safer their smaller competitors, who could not make both ends meet without such perquisites.  Thus the development of production on the basis of the capitalistic system has of itself sufficed—at least in the leading industries, for in the more unimportant branches this is far from being the case—to do away with all those minor grievances which aggravated the workman’s fate during its earlier stages.  And thus it renders more and more evident the great central fact, that the cause of the miserable condition of the working-class is to be sought, not in these minor grievances, but in the Capitalistic System itself.  The wage-worker sells to the capitalist his labour-force for a certain daily sum.  After a p. viiifew hours’ work he has reproduced the value of that sum; but the substance of his contract is, that he has to work another series of hours to complete his working-day; and the value he produces during these additional hours of surplus labour is surplus value, which cost the capitalist nothing, but yet goes into his pocket.  That is the basis of the system which tends more and more to split up civilised society into a few Rothschilds and Vanderbilts, the owners of all the means of production and subsistence, on the one hand, and an immense number of wage-workers, the owners of nothing but their labour-force, on the other.  And that this result is caused, not by this or that secondary grievance, but by the system itself—this fact has been brought out in bold relief by the development of Capitalism in England since 1847.

The revival of trade after the crisis of 1847 marked the beginning of a new industrial era. The repeal of the Corn Laws and the financial reforms that followed gave English industry and commerce all the space they needed. The discovery of gold in California and Australia came soon after. Colonial markets rapidly developed their capacity to absorb English manufactured goods. In India, millions of handweavers were finally displaced by the power loom from Lancashire. China was increasingly being opened up. Most importantly, the United States—at that time just a colonial market but the largest of all—experienced an economic development that was impressive even for such a quickly advancing country. Finally, the new means of communication introduced at the end of the previous period—railways and ocean steamers—were now functioning on an international scale; they actually created what had previously only existed as a potential: a world market. This world market initially consisted mostly of agricultural countries grouped around one manufacturing center—England—which consumed most of their surplus raw materials and supplied them with the bulk of their manufactured goods in return. It's no surprise that England's industrial growth was immense and unprecedented, making the status of 1844 seem rather primitive and insignificant now. As this growth occurred, manufacturing industry became more and more ethical. Simple tricks to exploit workers no longer paid off. Trade had moved beyond such low tactics; they weren't worth pursuing for the manufacturing millionaire, and only helped smaller traders who were eager to scrape together a little change. Consequently, the truck system was eliminated, the Ten Hours’ Bill was passed, and various other reforms were introduced—largely against the spirit of Free Trade and unrestrained competition, yet also very much in favor of the big capitalist in his rivalry with his less fortunate counterparts. Moreover, the larger the business and the more workers it had, the greater the losses and inconveniences caused by any conflict between employers and employees; thus, a new attitude appeared among the masters, especially the bigger ones, who learned to avoid unnecessary disputes, to accept the existence and power of Trades Unions, and eventually even to see strikes—as long as they were timed well—as a valuable way to achieve their own goals. The largest manufacturers, once the leaders in the fight against the working class, became the most vocal proponents of peace and harmony. And with good reason. In reality, all these concessions to fairness and charity were simply methods to speed up the concentration of capital in the hands of a few, for whom the greedy extra profits of earlier years had lost their importance and had become actual problems; and to more efficiently crush their smaller competitors, who couldn't survive without such benefits. Thus, the development of production under capitalism has been sufficient—at least in the major industries, as this is not true in the less significant ones—to eliminate those minor grievances that worsened workers' lives in earlier times. This increasingly highlights the fundamental fact that the root cause of the poor condition of the working class lies, not in these minor grievances, but in the Capitalistic System itself. The wage-worker sells their labor to the capitalist for a set daily wage. After a few hours of work, they've produced enough value to cover that wage; however, their contract requires them to work additional hours to complete their workday; the value they generate during these extra hours of labor is surplus value, which costs the capitalist nothing but goes directly into their pocket. This is the foundation of a system that increasingly divides civilized society into a few elite capitalists like the Rothschilds and Vanderbilts, who own all the means of production and subsistence, and a vast number of wage workers, who own nothing but their ability to work. And this outcome is not caused by minor issues, but by the system itself—a fact that has been starkly highlighted by the development of capitalism in England since 1847.

Again, the repeated visitations of cholera, typhus, smallpox, and other epidemics have shown the British bourgeois the urgent necessity of sanitation in his towns and cities, if he wishes to save himself and family from falling victims to such diseases.  Accordingly, the most crying abuses described in this book have either disappeared or have been made less conspicuous.  Drainage has been introduced or improved, wide avenues have been opened out athwart many of the worst “slums” I had to describe.  “Little Ireland” has disappeared, and the “Seven Dials” are next on the list for sweeping away.  But what of that?  Whole districts which in 1844 I could describe as almost idyllic, have now, with the growth of the towns, fallen into the same state of dilapidation, discomfort, and misery.  Only the pigs and the heaps of refuse are no longer tolerated.  The bourgeoisie have made further progress in the art of hiding the distress of the working-class.  But that, in regard to their dwellings, no substantial improvement has taken place, is amply proved by the Report of the Royal Commission “on the Housing of the Poor,” 1885.  And this is the case, too, in other respects.  Police regulations have been plentiful as blackberries; but they can only hedge in the distress of the workers, they cannot remove it.

Again, the repeated outbreaks of cholera, typhus, smallpox, and other epidemics have shown the British middle class the urgent need for better sanitation in their towns and cities if they want to protect themselves and their families from these diseases. As a result, many of the most pressing issues described in this book have either disappeared or become less visible. Drainage systems have been improved or introduced, and wide avenues have been created through many of the worst "slums" I described. "Little Ireland" has vanished, and the "Seven Dials" are next on the list for demolition. But what of that? Entire areas that I could describe as almost idyllic in 1844 have now fallen into the same state of disrepair, discomfort, and misery with the growth of the towns. Only the pigs and piles of garbage are no longer tolerated. The middle class has gotten better at hiding the struggles of the working class. However, the fact that there hasn't been any significant improvement in their living conditions is clearly shown in the Report of the Royal Commission "on the Housing of the Poor," 1885. This is also true in other areas. There have been plenty of police regulations, but they only serve to contain the workers' distress; they can't actually eliminate it.

But while England has thus outgrown the juvenile state of capitalist exploitation described by me, other countries have only p. ixjust attained it.  France, Germany, and especially America, are the formidable competitors who, at this moment—as foreseen by me in 1844—are more and more breaking up England’s industrial monopoly.  Their manufactures are young as compared with those of England, but increasing at a far more rapid rate than the latter; and, curious enough, they have at this moment arrived at about the same phase of development as English manufacture in 1844.  With regard to America, the parallel is indeed most striking.  True, the external surroundings in which the working-class is placed in America are very different, but the same economical laws are at work, and the results, if not identical in every respect, must still be of the same order.  Hence we find in America the same struggles for a shorter working-day, for a legal limitation of the working-time, especially of women and children in factories; we find the truck-system in full blossom, and the cottage-system, in rural districts, made use of by the “bosses” as a means of domination over the workers.  When I received, in 1886, the American papers with accounts of the great strike of 12,000 Pennsylvanian coal-miners in the Connellsville district, I seemed but to read my own description of the North of England colliers’ strike of 1844.  The same cheating of the workpeople by false measure; the same truck-system; the same attempt to break the miners’ resistance by the capitalists’ last, but crushing, resource,—the eviction of the men out of their dwellings, the cottages owned by the companies.

But while England has moved on from the early days of capitalist exploitation that I described, other countries have only just reached that stage. France, Germany, and especially America are the strong competitors that, as I predicted in 1844, are increasingly challenging England's industrial monopoly. Their manufacturing industries are relatively new compared to England's, but they are growing at a much faster rate; interestingly, they have reached a similar level of development as English manufacturing did back in 1844. The comparison with America is particularly striking. True, the circumstances for the working class in America are quite different, but the same economic laws are in play, and while the outcomes may not be identical in every detail, they are still of a similar nature. Thus, in America, we see the same fights for shorter workdays and legal limits on working hours, especially for women and children in factories; we observe the truck system thriving, and the cottage system in rural areas being used by "bosses" as a means to control the workers. When I got the American newspapers in 1886 that reported on the massive strike of 12,000 coal miners in the Connellsville area of Pennsylvania, it felt like I was reading my own account of the North of England miners' strike from 1844. The same deception of workers through false measures; the same truck system; the same desperate attempt by capitalists to crush miners' resistance through eviction from their homes in company-owned cottages.

I have not attempted, in this translation, to bring the book up to date, or to point out in detail all the changes that have taken place since 1844.  And for two reasons: Firstly, to do this properly, the size of the book must be about doubled; and, secondly, the first volume of “Das Kapital,” by Karl Marx, an English translation of which is before the public, contains a very ample description of the state of the British working-class, as it was about 1865, that is to say, at the time when British industrial prosperity reached its culminating point.  I should, then, have been obliged again to go over the ground already covered by Marx’s celebrated work.

I haven’t tried in this translation to update the book or to detail all the changes that have happened since 1844. There are two reasons for this: First, to do it properly would almost double the length of the book; and second, the first volume of “Das Kapital” by Karl Marx, which is currently available in English, provides a thorough description of the condition of the British working class around 1865, which was when British industrial prosperity peaked. Because of this, I would have had to redo work already done in Marx’s well-known book.

p. xIt will be hardly necessary to point out that the general theoretical standpoint of this book—philosophical, economical, political—does not exactly coincide with my standpoint of to-day.  Modern international Socialism, since fully developed as a science, chiefly and almost exclusively through the efforts of Marx, did not as yet exist in 1844.  My book represents one of the phases of its embryonic development; and as the human embryo, in its early stages, still reproduces the gill-arches of our fish-ancestors, so this book exhibits everywhere the traces of the descent of modern Socialism from one of its ancestors,—German philosophy.  Thus great stress is laid on the dictum that Communism is not a mere party doctrine of the working-class, but a theory compassing the emancipation of society at large, including the capitalist class, from its present narrow conditions.  This is true enough in the abstract, but absolutely useless, and sometimes worse, in practice.  So long as the wealthy classes not only do not feel the want of any emancipation, but strenuously oppose the self-emancipation of the working-class, so long the social revolution will have to be prepared and fought out by the working-class alone.  The French bourgeois of 1789, too, declared the emancipation of the bourgeoisie to be the emancipation of the whole human race; but the nobility and clergy would not see it; the proposition—though for the time being, with respect to feudalism, an abstract historical truth—soon became a mere sentimentalism, and disappeared from view altogether in the fire of the revolutionary struggle.  And to-day, the very people who, from the “impartiality” of their superior standpoint, preach to the workers a Socialism soaring high above their class interests and class struggles, and tending to reconcile in a higher humanity the interests of both the contending classes—these people are either neophytes, who have still to learn a great deal, or they are the worst enemies of the workers,—wolves in sheeps’ clothing.

p. xIt’s important to note that the overall theoretical perspective of this book—philosophical, economic, and political—does not exactly match my views today. Modern international Socialism, fully developed as a science and largely through Marx's efforts, didn’t exist in 1844. My book reflects one of the stages of its early development; just as a human embryo in its initial stages still shows features from our fish ancestors, this book shows how modern Socialism descended from its roots in German philosophy. Therefore, there’s a strong emphasis on the idea that Communism isn’t just a political doctrine for the working class but a theory aimed at freeing society as a whole, including the capitalist class, from its current limited conditions. This is certainly true in theory but is completely ineffective, and sometimes even harmful, in practice. As long as the wealthy classes not only don’t feel the need for any kind of emancipation but actively resist the self-emancipation of the working class, the social revolution will need to be organized and fought for solely by the working class. The French bourgeoisie of 1789 also claimed that the emancipation of the bourgeoisie meant the emancipation of all humanity; however, the nobility and clergy refused to acknowledge this. Although the notion—at least regarding feudalism—was an abstract historical truth at the time, it soon turned into mere sentimentalism and faded from view amid the chaos of revolution. Today, the very people who, from their supposedly “impartial” perspective, preach to the workers about a Socialism that rises above their class interests and struggles, and seeks to reconcile the needs of both contending classes—these individuals are either inexperienced newcomers who still have much to learn or the worst enemies of the workers—wolves in sheep's clothing.

The recurring period of the great industrial crisis is stated in the text as five years.  This was the period apparently indicated by the course of events from 1825 to 1842.  But the industrial history from 1842 to 1868 has shown that the real period is one p. xiof ten years; that the intermediate revulsions were secondary, and tended more and more to disappear.  Since 1868 the state of things has changed again, of which more anon.

The text mentions that the regular cycle of major industrial crises is five years. This timeframe seems to have been reflected in events from 1825 to 1842. However, industrial history between 1842 and 1868 has demonstrated that the actual cycle is ten years; the intermediate downturns were less significant and have gradually faded away. Since 1868, the situation has changed once more, which will be elaborated on later.

I have taken care not to strike out of the text the many prophecies, amongst others that of an imminent social revolution in England, which my youthful ardour induced me to venture upon.  The wonder is, not that a good many of them proved wrong, but that so many of them have proved right, and that the critical state of English trade, to be brought on by Continental and especially American competition, which I then foresaw—though in too short a period—has now actually come to pass.  In this respect I can, and am bound to, bring the book up to date, by placing here an article which I published in the London Commonweal of March 1, 1885, under the heading: “England in 1845 and in 1885.”  It gives at the same time a short outline of the history of the English working-class during these forty years, and is as follows:

I have been careful not to remove the many predictions, including one about an upcoming social revolution in England, that my youthful enthusiasm inspired me to make. The surprising part is not that many of them turned out to be wrong, but that so many were right, and that the critical condition of English trade, which I anticipated due to competition from the Continent and especially the United States—though I underestimated the timeframe—has actually happened. In this regard, I can and must update the book by including an article I published in the London Commonweal on March 1, 1885, titled: “England in 1845 and in 1885.” It also gives a brief overview of the history of the English working class over these forty years, and it is as follows:

“Forty years ago England stood face to face with a crisis, solvable to all appearances by force only.  The immense and rapid development of manufactures had outstripped the extension of foreign markets and the increase of demand.  Every ten years the march of industry was violently interrupted by a general commercial crash, followed, after a long period of chronic depression, by a few short years of prosperity, and always ending in feverish over-production and consequent renewed collapse.  The capitalist class clamoured for Free Trade in corn, and threatened to enforce it by sending the starving population of the towns back to the country districts whence they came, to invade them, as John Bright said, not as paupers begging for bread, but as an army quartered upon the enemy.  The working masses of the towns demanded their share of political power—the People’s Charter; they were supported by the majority of the small trading class, and the only difference between the two was whether the Charter should be carried by physical or by moral force.  Then came the commercial crash of 1847 and the Irish famine, and with both the prospect of revolution

“Forty years ago, England was in a crisis that seemed only solvable through force. The rapid growth of manufacturing outpaced the development of foreign markets and increasing demand. Every decade, industrial progress was violently interrupted by a major economic crash, followed by long periods of chronic depression, brief stretches of prosperity, and always ending with frantic over-production and another collapse. The capitalist class advocated for Free Trade in grain and threatened to enforce it by sending the starving urban population back to the rural areas they came from, invading them, as John Bright put it, not as beggars asking for food, but as an army attacking an enemy. The working masses in cities demanded their share of political power—the People’s Charter; backed by most of the small trading class, the only difference between the two groups was whether the Charter should be achieved through physical or moral force. Then came the economic crash of 1847 and the Irish famine, alongside the looming possibility of revolution.”

p. xii“The French Revolution of 1848 saved the English middle-class.  The Socialistic pronunciamentos of the victorious French workmen frightened the small middle-class of England and disorganised the narrower, but more matter-of-fact movement of the English working-class.  At the very moment when Chartism was bound to assert itself in its full strength, it collapsed internally, before even it collapsed externally on the 10th of April, 1848.  The action of the working-class was thrust into the background.  The capitalist class triumphed along the whole line.

p. xii“The French Revolution of 1848 saved the English middle class. The socialist messages from the victorious French workers frightened the small middle class in England and disrupted the more focused yet practical movement of the English working class. Just when Chartism was ready to fully emerge, it fell apart from within, even before facing external collapse on April 10, 1848. The activities of the working class were pushed aside. The capitalist class won decisively.

“The Reform Bill of 1831 had been the victory of the whole capitalist class over the landed aristocracy.  The repeal of the Corn Laws was the victory of the manufacturing capitalist not only over the landed aristocracy, but over those sections of capitalists, too, whose interests were more or less bound up with the landed interest,—bankers, stock-jobbers, fund-holders, etc.  Free Trade meant the re-adjustment of the whole home and foreign, commercial and financial policy of England in accordance with the interests of the manufacturing capitalists—the class which now represented the nation.  And they set about this task with a will.  Every obstacle to industrial production was mercilessly removed.  The tariff and the whole system of taxation were revolutionised.  Everything was made subordinate to one end, but that end of the utmost importance to the manufacturing capitalist: the cheapening of all raw produce, and especially of the means of living of the working-class; the reduction of the cost of raw material, and the keeping down—if not as yet the bringing down—of wages.  England was to become the ‘workshop of the world;’ all other countries were to become for England what Ireland already was,—markets for her manufactured goods, supplying her in return with raw materials and food.  England the great manufacturing centre of an agricultural world, with an ever-increasing number of corn and cotton-growing Irelands revolving around her, the industrial sun.  What a glorious prospect!

The Reform Bill of 1831 was a victory for the entire capitalist class over the landed aristocracy. The repeal of the Corn Laws marked a triumph not just for manufacturing capitalists over the landed aristocracy, but also against those capitalist factions whose interests were somewhat linked to the land, such as bankers, stockbrokers, and investors. Free Trade meant a complete overhaul of England's commercial and financial policies, both at home and abroad, to align with the interests of manufacturing capitalists—the class that now represented the nation. They approached this challenge with determination. Every barrier to industrial production was ruthlessly removed. Tariffs and the entire tax system were transformed. Everything was directed towards one crucial goal for manufacturing capitalists: lowering the costs of all raw materials, especially the cost of living for workers; cutting down the expense of raw materials; and keeping wages low, if not actually reducing them. England was set to become the "workshop of the world," with all other countries serving as markets for its manufactured goods, supplying raw materials and food in return. England would be the major manufacturing center of an agricultural world, with an increasing number of corn and cotton-producing regions revolving around it, like Irelands, as the industrial sun. What a promising future!

“The manufacturing capitalists set about the realisation of this their great object with that strong common sense and that contempt for traditional principles which has ever distinguished p. xiiithem from their more narrow-minded compeers on the Continent.  Chartism was dying out.  The revival of commercial prosperity, natural after the revulsion of 1847 had spent itself, was put down altogether to the credit of Free Trade.  Both these circumstances had turned the English working-class, politically, into the tail of the ‘great Liberal party,’ the party led by the manufacturers.  This advantage, once gained, had to be perpetuated.  And the manufacturing capitalists, from the Chartist opposition, not to Free Trade, but to the transformation of Free Trade into the one vital national question, had learnt, and were learning more and more, that the middle-class can never obtain full social and political power over the nation except by the help of the working-class.  Thus a gradual change came over the relations between both classes.  The Factory Acts, once the bugbear of all manufacturers, were not only willingly submitted to, but their expansion into acts regulating almost all trades, was tolerated.  Trades’ Unions, hitherto considered inventions of the devil himself, were now petted and patronised as perfectly legitimate institutions, and as useful means of spreading sound economical doctrines amongst the workers.  Even strikes, than which nothing had been more nefarious up to 1848, were now gradually found out to be occasionally very useful, especially when provoked by the masters themselves, at their own time.  Of the legal enactments, placing the workman at a lower level or at a disadvantage with regard to the master, at least the most revolting were repealed.  And, practically, that horrid ‘People’s Charter’ actually became the political programme of the very manufacturers who had opposed it to the last.  ‘The Abolition of the Property Qualification’ and ‘Vote by Ballot’ are now the law of the land.  The Reform Acts of 1867 and 1884 make a near approach to ‘universal suffrage,’ at least such as it now exists in Germany; the Redistribution Bill now before Parliament creates ‘equal electoral districts’—on the whole not more unequal than those of Germany; ‘payment of members,’ and shorter, if not actually ‘annual Parliaments,’ are visibly looming in the distance—and yet there are people who say that Chartism is dead.

The manufacturing capitalists set out to achieve their significant goal with the strong common sense and lack of regard for traditional principles that have always distinguished them from their more narrow-minded counterparts on the Continent. Chartism was fading. The resurgence of commercial prosperity, which naturally followed the downturn of 1847, was entirely attributed to Free Trade. Both these factors reshaped the English working class, politically, into supporters of the ‘great Liberal party,’ led by the manufacturers. This advantage, once gained, needed to be preserved. The manufacturing capitalists, from the Chartist opposition—not against Free Trade itself, but against the transformation of Free Trade into the key national issue—learned, and continued to learn, that the middle class can never gain full social and political power over the nation without the support of the working class. Thus, a gradual shift occurred in the relationship between both classes. The Factory Acts, once feared by all manufacturers, were not only accepted but their expansion into laws regulating nearly all trades was tolerated. Trade Unions, previously seen as the creation of the devil, were now embraced and supported as perfectly legitimate institutions and effective means of spreading sound economic knowledge among the workers. Even strikes, which had been viewed as extremely harmful until 1848, were gradually acknowledged as sometimes very useful, particularly when initiated by the employers themselves, on their own terms. Among the legal measures that had kept workers at a disadvantage compared to their employers, the most outrageous ones were repealed. And, in practice, that dreaded ‘People’s Charter’ actually became the political platform of the very manufacturers who had opposed it until the end. ‘The Abolition of the Property Qualification’ and ‘Vote by Ballot’ are now the law of the land. The Reform Acts of 1867 and 1884 bring us closer to ‘universal suffrage,’ at least as it currently exists in Germany; the Redistribution Bill now in Parliament establishes ‘equal electoral districts’—generally no more unequal than those in Germany; ‘payment of members,’ and shorter, if not actually ‘annual Parliaments,’ are clearly on the horizon—and yet some claim that Chartism is dead.

p. xiv“The Revolution of 1848, not less than many of its predecessors, has had strange bedfellows and successors.  The very people who put it down have become, as Karl Marx used to say, its testamentary executors.  Louis Napoleon had to create an independent and united Italy, Bismarck had to revolutionise Germany and to restore Hungarian independence, and the English manufacturers had to enact the People’s Charter.

p. xiv“The Revolution of 1848, like many that came before it, had some unexpected allies and outcomes. The very people who suppressed it became, as Karl Marx used to say, its final executors. Louis Napoleon needed to establish an independent and united Italy, Bismarck had to transform Germany and restore Hungarian independence, and English manufacturers needed to implement the People’s Charter.

“For England, the effects of this domination of the manufacturing capitalists were at first startling.  Trade revived and extended to a degree unheard of even in this cradle of modern industry; the previous astounding creations of steam and machinery dwindled into nothing compared with the immense mass of productions of the twenty years from 1850 to 1870, with the overwhelming figures of exports and imports, of wealth accumulated in the hands of capitalists and of human working power concentrated in the large towns.  The progress was indeed interrupted, as before, by a crisis every ten years, in 1857 as well as in 1866; but these revulsions were now considered as natural, inevitable events, which must be fatalistically submitted to, and which always set themselves right in the end.

For England, the impact of the manufacturing capitalists' dominance was initially shocking. Trade revived and expanded like never before, even in this birthplace of modern industry. The incredible advancements in steam and machinery from earlier times seemed insignificant compared to the vast amount of production that took place between 1850 and 1870, alongside the staggering figures for exports and imports, the wealth amassed by capitalists, and the concentration of labor in large cities. Although progress was frequently interrupted by a crisis every decade, like in 1857 and 1866, these downturns were now viewed as natural, unavoidable occurrences that had to be accepted and always eventually corrected themselves.

“And the condition of the working-class during this period?  There was temporary improvement even for the great mass.  But this improvement always was reduced to the old level by the influx of the great body of the unemployed reserve, by the constant superseding of bands by new machinery, by the immigration of the agricultural population, now, too, more and more superseded by machines.

“And the condition of the working class during this period? There was some temporary improvement even for the majority. However, that improvement usually ended up reverting to the old level due to the influx of a large number of unemployed, the constant replacement of workers by new machinery, and the immigration of the agricultural population, which was also increasingly being replaced by machines.”

“A permanent improvement can be recognised for two ‘protected’ sections only of the working-class.  Firstly, the factory hands.  The fixing by Act of Parliament of their working-day within relatively rational limits has restored their physical constitution and endowed them with a moral superiority, enhanced by their local concentration.  They are undoubtedly better off than before 1848.  The best proof is that, out of ten strikes they make, nine are provoked by the manufacturers in their own interests, as the only means of securing a reduced production.  p. xvYou can never get the masters to agree to work ‘short time,’ let manufactured goods be ever so unsaleable; but get the workpeople to strike, and the masters shut their factories to a man.

“A permanent improvement can be seen for only two ‘protected’ sections of the working class. First, the factory workers. The law has set their working hours within relatively reasonable limits, which has restored their physical health and given them a sense of moral superiority, boosted by their presence in the community. They are definitely better off than before 1848. The best proof is that out of ten strikes they initiate, nine are triggered by the manufacturers for their own advantage, as the only way to secure reduced production. p. xv The employers will never agree to reduce their working hours, no matter how unsellable the manufactured goods are; but when the workers go on strike, the employers shut down their factories immediately."

“Secondly, the great Trades’ Unions.  They are the organisations of those trades in which the labour of grown-up men predominates, or is alone applicable.  Here the competition neither of women and children nor of machinery has so far weakened their organised strength.  The engineers, the carpenters, and joiners, the bricklayers, are each of them a power, to that extent that, as in the case of the bricklayers and bricklayers’ labourers, they can even successfully resist the introduction of machinery.  That their condition has remarkably improved since 1848 there can be no doubt, and the best proof of this is in the fact, that for more than fifteen years not only have their employers been with them, but they with their employers, upon exceedingly good terms.  They form an aristocracy among the working-class; they have succeeded in enforcing for themselves a relatively comfortable position, and they accept it as final.  They are the model working-men of Messrs. Leone Levi & Giffen, and they are very nice people indeed nowadays to deal with, for any sensible capitalist in particular and for the whole capitalist class in general.

"Secondly, the major Trade Unions. They are organizations for those trades where adult men primarily work or where their labor is exclusively needed. Here, competition from women, children, or machines has not significantly weakened their numbers. Engineers, carpenters and joiners, and bricklayers each hold considerable power; for example, bricklayers and their laborers have even been successful in resisting the introduction of machinery. There is no doubt that their situation has greatly improved since 1848, and the best evidence of this is that for over fifteen years, they have had a strong relationship with their employers, enjoying very favorable terms. They are an elite group within the working class; they have managed to secure a relatively comfortable position for themselves and accept it as their permanent status. They are the model workers in the eyes of Messrs. Leone Levi & Giffen, and nowadays, they are indeed pleasant to deal with, especially for any reasonable capitalist and for the capitalist class as a whole."

“But as to the great mass of working-people, the state of misery and insecurity in which they live now is as low as ever, if not lower.  The East End of London is an everspreading pool of stagnant misery and desolation, of starvation when out of work, and degradation, physical and moral, when in work.  And so in all other large towns—abstraction made of the privileged minority of the workers; and so in the smaller towns and in the agricultural districts.  The law which reduces the value of labour-power to the value of the necessary means of subsistence, and the other law which reduces its average price, as a rule, to the minimum of those means of subsistence, these laws act upon them with the irresistible force of an automatic engine, which crushes them between its wheels.

"But for the vast majority of working people, the level of misery and insecurity in which they live now is just as low as ever, if not worse. The East End of London is a constantly growing pool of stagnant misery and desolation, filled with starvation when they're out of work, and degradation, both physical and moral, when they are employed. This is also true in other large cities—except for the privileged minority of workers; and in smaller towns and rural areas as well. The law that reduces the value of labor to the value of the basic means of survival, along with the other law that generally cuts its average price to the bare minimum of those means, acts on them with the unstoppable force of a machine that crushes them between its gears."

“This, then, was the position created by the Free Trade policy of 1847, and by twenty years of the rule of the manufacturing p. xvicapitalists.  But, then, a change came.  The crash of 1866 was, indeed, followed by a slight and short revival about 1873; but that did not last.  We did not, indeed, pass through the full crisis at the time it was due, in 1877 or 1878; but we have had, ever since 1876, a chronic state of stagnation in all dominant branches of industry.  Neither will the full crash come; nor will the period of longed-for prosperity to which we used to be entitled before and after it.  A dull depression, a chronic glut of all markets for all trades, that is what we have been living in for nearly ten years.  How is this?

“This was the situation created by the Free Trade policy of 1847 and by twenty years of the dominance of manufacturing capitalists. But then, a change occurred. The crash of 1866 was indeed followed by a brief revival around 1873, but that didn’t last. We didn’t face the full crisis when it was expected, in 1877 or 1878; however, since 1876, we have experienced a chronic state of stagnation in all major industries. The full crash will not happen, nor will the long-awaited prosperity we used to expect before and after it. We have been existing in a prolonged depression, with continuous oversupply in all markets for almost ten years. What is happening?”

“The Free Trade theory was based upon one assumption: that England was to be the one great manufacturing centre of an agricultural world.  And the actual fact is that this assumption has turned out to be a pure delusion.  The conditions of modern industry, steam-power and machinery, can be established wherever there is fuel, especially coals.  And other countries beside England,—France, Belgium, Germany, America, even Russia,—have coals.  And the people over there did not see the advantage of being turned into Irish pauper farmers merely for the greater wealth and glory of English capitalists.  They set resolutely about manufacturing, not only for themselves, but for the rest of the world; and the consequence is, that the manufacturing monopoly enjoyed by England for nearly a century is irretrievably broken up.

“The Free Trade theory was based on one premise: that England would be the main manufacturing center for an agricultural world. The truth is, this assumption has proven to be a complete illusion. The conditions for modern industry, steam power, and machinery can be established wherever there is fuel, especially coal. Other countries besides England—France, Belgium, Germany, America, even Russia—have coal. The people there didn’t see the advantage of being turned into impoverished Irish farmers just for the greater wealth and glory of English capitalists. They set out to manufacture, not just for themselves but for the entire world; as a result, England’s manufacturing monopoly, which lasted nearly a century, has been completely shattered.

“But the manufacturing monopoly of England is the pivot of the present social system of England.  Even while that monopoly lasted, the markets could not keep pace with the increasing productivity of English manufacturers; the decennial crises were the consequence.  And new markets are getting scarcer every day, so much so that even the negroes of the Congo are now to be forced into the civilisation attendant upon Manchester calicos, Staffordshire pottery, and Birmingham hardware.  How will it be when Continental, and especially American, goods flow in in ever-increasing quantities—when the predominating share, still held by British manufacturers, will become reduced from year to year?  Answer, Free Trade, thou universal panacea.

“But England's manufacturing monopoly is the center of today’s social system in England. Even while that monopoly existed, the markets couldn’t keep up with the rising productivity of English manufacturers, leading to recurring crises every decade. New markets are becoming harder to find every day, to the point where even people in the Congo are now being forced into the civilization that comes with Manchester textiles, Staffordshire pottery, and Birmingham hardware. What will happen when Continental, and especially American, goods start flooding in more and more—when the dominant share, still held by British manufacturers, continues to shrink year after year? The answer is Free Trade, your universal solution.”

“I am not the first to point this out.  Already, in 1883, at the p. xviiSouthport meeting of the British Association, Mr. Inglis Palgrave, the President of the Economic section, stated plainly that ‘the days of great trade profits in England were over, and there was a pause in the progress of several great branches of industrial labour.  The country might almost be said to be entering the non-progressive state.’

“I’m not the first to say this. Back in 1883, at the p. xviiSouthport meeting of the British Association, Mr. Inglis Palgrave, the President of the Economic section, clearly stated that ‘the days of high trade profits in England were over, and there was a slowdown in the advancement of several major sectors of industrial work. The country might almost be seen as entering a non-progressive state.’”

“But what is to be the consequence?  Capitalist production cannot stop.  It must go on increasing and expanding, or it must die.  Even now, the mere reduction of England’s lion’s share in the supply of the world’s markets means stagnation, distress, excess of capital here, excess of unemployed workpeople there.  What will it be when the increase of yearly production is brought to a complete stop?

“But what will happen as a result? Capitalist production cannot stop. It must keep increasing and expanding, or it will fail. Even now, just the reduction of England’s dominance in the world’s markets means stagnation, distress, excess capital here, and too many unemployed workers there. What will happen when the growth of annual production comes to a complete halt?

“Here is the vulnerable place, the heel of Achilles, for capitalistic production.  Its very basis is the necessity of constant expansion, and this constant expansion now becomes impossible.  It ends in a deadlock.  Every year England is brought nearer face to face with the question: either the country must go to pieces, or capitalist production must.  Which is it to be?

“Here is the weak spot, the Achilles' heel, for capitalist production. Its very foundation is the need for constant growth, and this ongoing growth is now becoming impossible. It leads to a deadlock. Every year, England faces the question: either the country must collapse, or capitalist production must. Which will it be?”

“And the working-class?  If even under the unparalleled commercial and industrial expansion, from 1848 to 1866, they have had to undergo such misery; if even then the great bulk of them experienced at best but a temporary improvement of their condition, while only a small, privileged, ‘protected’ minority was permanently benefited, what will it be when this dazzling period is brought finally to a close; when the present dreary stagnation shall not only become intensified, but this, its intensified condition, shall become the permanent and normal state of English trade?

“And what about the working class? If even during the incredible commercial and industrial growth from 1848 to 1866 they had to endure such suffering; if even then most of them saw at best just a temporary improvement in their situation, while only a small, privileged, ‘protected’ minority truly benefitted, what will happen when this dazzling period finally comes to an end; when the current dismal stagnation not only worsens but this worsened state becomes the permanent and normal condition of English trade?"

“The truth is this: during the period of England’s industrial monopoly the English working-class have, to a certain extent, shared in the benefits of the monopoly.  These benefits were very unequally parcelled out amongst them; the privileged minority pocketed most, but even the great mass had, at least, a temporary share now and then.  And that is the reason why, since the dying-out of Owenism, there has been no Socialism in England.  With the breakdown of that monopoly, the English working-class will p. xviiilose that privileged position; it will find itself generally—the privileged and leading minority not excepted—on a level with its fellow-workers abroad.  And that is the reason why there will be Socialism again in England.”

"The truth is this: during the time when England had an industrial monopoly, the English working class benefited from it to some degree. However, these benefits were distributed very unevenly among them; the privileged few took most of it, but even the majority experienced some temporary benefits now and then. That’s why, since the decline of Owenism, there has been no Socialism in England. With the end of that monopoly, the English working class will lose that privileged position; they will find themselves generally—privileged and leading minority included—on the same level as their fellow workers abroad. And that’s why there will be Socialism in England again."

To this statement of the case, as that case appeared to me in 1885, I have but little to add.  Needless to say that to-day there is indeed “Socialism again in England,” and plenty of it—Socialism of all shades: Socialism conscious and unconscious, Socialism prosaic and poetic, Socialism of the working-class and of the middle-class, for, verily, that abomination of abominations, Socialism, has not only become respectable, but has actually donned evening dress and lounges lazily on drawing-room causeuses.  That shows the incurable fickleness of that terrible despot of “society,” middle-class public opinion, and once more justifies the contempt in which we Socialists of a past generation always held that public opinion.  At the same time, we have no reason to grumble at the symptom itself.

To this account of the case, as I saw it in 1885, I don’t have much to add. It goes without saying that today there is indeed “Socialism again in England,” and it’s everywhere—Socialism in all its forms: conscious and unconscious, practical and poetic, Socialism from the working-class and the middle-class. Because, truly, that horror of horrors, Socialism, has not only become respectable, but has actually dressed up in formal wear and is lounging comfortably in drawing-room causeuses. This demonstrates the unchangeable fickleness of that terrible ruler of “society,” middle-class public opinion, and once again confirms the disdain we Socialists from a past generation always held for that public opinion. At the same time, we have no reason to complain about the symptom itself.

What I consider far more important than this momentary fashion among bourgeois circles of affecting a mild dilution of Socialism, and even more than the actual progress Socialism has made in England generally, that is the revival of the East End of London.  That immense haunt of misery is no longer the stagnant pool it was six years ago.  It has shaken off its torpid despair, has returned to life, and has become the home of what is called the “New Unionism;” that is to say, of the organisation of the great mass of “unskilled” workers.  This organisation may to a great extent adopt the form of the old Unions of “skilled” workers, but it is essentially different in character.  The old Unions preserve the traditions of the time when they were founded, and look upon the wages system as a once for all established, final fact, which they at best can modify in the interest of their members.  The new Unions were founded at a time when the faith in the eternity of the wages system was severely shaken; their founders and promoters were Socialists either consciously or by feeling; the masses, whose adhesion gave them strength, were rough, neglected, looked down upon by the working-class aristocracy; but p. xixthey had this immense advantage, that their minds were virgin soil, entirely free from the inherited “respectable” bourgeois prejudices which hampered the brains of the better situated “old” Unionists.  And thus we see now these new Unions taking the lead of the working-class movement generally, and more and more taking in tow the rich and proud “old” Unions.

What I think is way more important than this temporary trend in middle-class circles of adopting a watered-down version of Socialism, and even more than the actual progress Socialism has made in England overall, is the revival of the East End of London. That vast area of suffering is no longer the stagnant pool it was six years ago. It has shaken off its heavy despair, come back to life, and become the home of what’s called the “New Unionism;” that is, the organization of the large group of “unskilled” workers. This organization might largely take the form of the old Unions of “skilled” workers, but it is fundamentally different in nature. The old Unions maintain the traditions from when they were created and see the wages system as a permanent, established fact that they can only adjust for the benefit of their members. The new Unions were formed at a time when faith in the permanency of the wages system was seriously challenged; their founders and advocates were Socialists, either consciously or instinctively; the masses that supported them were rough, ignored, and looked down upon by the working-class elite; but they had this massive advantage: their minds were fresh ground, completely free from the inherited “respectable” middle-class biases that constrained the thinking of the more privileged “old” Unionists. And thus we now see these new Unions leading the overall working-class movement, increasingly drawing in the wealthy and proud “old” Unions.

Undoubtedly, the East Enders have committed colossal blunders; so have their predecessors, and so do the doctrinaire Socialists who pooh-pooh them.  A large class, like a great nation, never learns better or quicker than by undergoing the consequences of its own mistakes.  And for all the faults committed in past, present, and future, the revival of the East End of London remains one of the greatest and most fruitful facts of this fin de siècle, and glad and proud I am to have lived to see it.

Undoubtedly, the East Enders have made huge mistakes; so have their predecessors, and so do the rigid Socialists who dismiss them. A large group, like a great nation, never learns better or faster than by facing the consequences of its own errors. And despite all the faults made in the past, present, and future, the revival of the East End of London stands out as one of the greatest and most rewarding developments of this fin de siècle, and I'm glad and proud to have lived to see it.

F. Engels.
January 11th, 1892.

F. Engels. January 11th, 1892.

p. 1 INTRODUCTION

The history of the proletariat in England begins with the second half of the last century, with the invention of the steam-engine and of machinery for working cotton.  These inventions gave rise, as is well known, to an industrial revolution, a revolution which altered the whole civil society; one, the historical importance of which is only now beginning to be recognised.  England is the classic soil of this transformation, which was all the mightier, the more silently it proceeded; and England is, therefore, the classic land of its chief product also, the proletariat.  Only in England can the proletariat be studied in all its relations and from all sides.

The history of the working class in England starts in the second half of the last century, with the invention of the steam engine and machinery for processing cotton. These inventions led to an industrial revolution, a transformation that changed society as a whole; its historical significance is only just starting to be acknowledged. England is the original setting for this change, which was even more powerful because it happened quietly; thus, England is also the primary land for its main product, the working class. Only in England can the working class be examined in all its aspects and from every angle.

We have not, here and now, to deal with the history of this revolution, nor with its vast importance for the present and the future.  Such a delineation must be reserved for a future, more comprehensive work.  For the moment, we must limit ourselves to the little that is necessary for understanding the facts that follow, for comprehending the present state of the English proletariat.

We don't need to focus on the history of this revolution right now, nor its significant impact on both the present and the future. That discussion will be saved for a more in-depth work later on. For now, we should stick to just what’s necessary to understand the facts that follow and to grasp the current situation of the English working class.

Before the introduction of machinery, the spinning and weaving of raw materials was carried on in the working-man’s home.  Wife and daughter spun the yarn that the father wove or that they sold, if he did not work it up himself.  These weaver families lived in the country in the neighbourhood of the towns, and could get on fairly well with their wages, because the home market was almost the only one, and the crushing power of competition that p. 2came later, with the conquest of foreign markets and the extension of trade, did not yet press upon wages.  There was, further, a constant increase in the demand for the home market, keeping pace with the slow increase in population and employing all the workers; and there was also the impossibility of vigorous competition of the workers among themselves, consequent upon the rural dispersion of their homes.  So it was that the weaver was usually in a position to lay by something, and rent a little piece of land, that he cultivated in his leisure hours, of which he had as many as he chose to take, since he could weave whenever and as long as he pleased.  True, he was a bad farmer and managed his land inefficiently, often obtaining but poor crops; nevertheless, he was no proletarian, he had a stake in the country, he was permanently settled, and stood one step higher in society than the English workman of to-day.

Before machines were introduced, spinning and weaving raw materials happened in the homes of working families. Wives and daughters spun the yarn that the fathers wove or sold if he didn’t work on it himself. These families of weavers lived in the countryside near towns and managed to get by on their wages because the local market was almost the only one they relied on. The overwhelming competition that came later, with the expansion of foreign markets and trade, hadn’t yet impacted wages. Additionally, there was a steady increase in demand in the local market, keeping pace with the slow growth of the population and employing all the workers. The rural spread of their homes also made it impossible for the workers to compete vigorously against each other. As a result, the weaver was usually able to save some money and rent a small piece of land that he farmed in his spare time, which he could take whenever he wanted, since he could weave whenever and as long as he pleased. True, he wasn’t a great farmer and often managed his land poorly, yielding low crops; however, he wasn’t part of the proletariat, had a stake in the country, was permanently settled, and was one step above the English worker of today.

So the workers vegetated throughout a passably comfortable existence, leading a righteous and peaceful life in all piety and probity; and their material position was far better than that of their successors.  They did not need to overwork; they did no more than they chose to do, and yet earned what they needed.  They had leisure for healthful work in garden or field, work which, in itself, was recreation for them, and they could take part besides in the recreations and games of their neighbours, and all these games—bowling, cricket, football, etc., contributed to their physical health and vigour.  They were, for the most part, strong, well-built people, in whose physique little or no difference from that of their peasant neighbours was discoverable.  Their children grew up in the fresh country air, and, if they could help their parents at work, it was only occasionally; while of eight or twelve hours work for them there was no question.

So the workers lived a fairly comfortable life, leading a good and peaceful existence with integrity and honesty; their situation was much better than that of those who came after them. They didn’t have to overwork; they did only what they wanted to do and still earned what they needed. They had time for healthy activities in the garden or field, which were enjoyable for them, and they could also join in the games and fun with their neighbors. All of these games—bowling, cricket, football, etc.—helped maintain their physical health and fitness. For the most part, they were strong, well-built individuals, and there was little to no difference in their physical appearance compared to their peasant neighbors. Their children grew up in the fresh country air, and if they helped their parents with work, it was only now and then; there was no question of them working eight to twelve hours.

What the moral and intellectual character of this class was may be guessed.  Shut off from the towns, which they never entered, their yarn and woven stuff being delivered to travelling agents for payment of wages—so shut off that old people who lived quite in the neighbourhood of the town never went thither until they were robbed of their trade by the introduction of machinery and obliged to look about them in the towns for work—the weavers stood upon p. 3the moral and intellectual plane of the yeomen with whom they were usually immediately connected through their little holdings.  They regarded their squire, the greatest landholder of the region, as their natural superior; they asked advice of him, laid their small disputes before him for settlement, and gave him all honour, as this patriarchal relation involved.  They were “respectable” people, good husbands and fathers, led moral lives because they had no temptation to be immoral, there being no groggeries or low houses in their vicinity, and because the host, at whose inn they now and then quenched their thirst, was also a respectable man, usually a large tenant farmer who took pride in his good order, good beer, and early hours.  They had their children the whole day at home, and brought them up in obedience and the fear of God; the patriarchal relationship remained undisturbed so long as the children were unmarried.  The young people grew up in idyllic simplicity and intimacy with their playmates until they married; and even though sexual intercourse before marriage almost unfailingly took place, this happened only when the moral obligation of marriage was recognised on both sides, and a subsequent wedding made everything good.  In short, the English industrial workers of those days lived and thought after the fashion still to be found here and there in Germany, in retirement and seclusion, without mental activity and without violent fluctuations in their position in life.  They could rarely read and far more rarely write; went regularly to church, never talked politics, never conspired, never thought, delighted in physical exercises, listened with inherited reverence when the Bible was read, and were, in their unquestioning humility, exceedingly well-disposed towards the “superior” classes.  But intellectually, they were dead; lived only for their petty, private interest, for their looms and gardens, and knew nothing of the mighty movement which, beyond their horizon, was sweeping through mankind.  They were comfortable in their silent vegetation, and but for the industrial revolution they would never have emerged from this existence, which, cosily romantic as it was, was nevertheless not worthy of human beings.  In truth, they were not human beings; they were p. 4merely toiling machines in the service of the few aristocrats who had guided history down to that time.  The industrial revolution has simply carried this out to its logical end by making the workers machines pure and simple, taking from them the last trace of independent activity, and so forcing them to think and demand a position worthy of men.  As in France politics, so in England manufacture, and the movement of civil society in general drew into the whirl of history the last classes which had remained sunk in apathetic indifference to the universal interests of mankind.

The moral and intellectual character of this class can be imagined. Cut off from the towns, which they never visited, their yarn and woven goods were sent to traveling agents for payment of wages—so isolated that elderly residents living nearby the town only ventured there when they lost their trade to machinery and had to look for work in town—the weavers shared the moral and intellectual level of the yeomen they were closely connected to through their small holdings. They viewed their squire, the largest landowner in the area, as their natural superior; they sought his advice, brought their minor disputes to him for resolution, and honored him as was customary in this patriarchal relationship. They were “respectable” individuals, good husbands and fathers, lived moral lives because there were no temptations to be immoral, as there were no bars or low establishments nearby, and the innkeeper they occasionally visited was also a respectable man, often a large tenant farmer who took pride in his establishment’s good order, quality beer, and early hours. They kept their children at home all day, raising them in obedience and the fear of God; the patriarchal dynamic remained stable as long as the children were unmarried. The young ones grew up in a peaceful simplicity and close bonds with their playmates until they married; and although premarital sexual relations were common, this only occurred when both parties acknowledged the moral duty of marriage, and a subsequent wedding corrected everything. In short, the English industrial workers of that time lived and thought in a manner still found in some places in Germany, in quietness and isolation, without mental stimulation and without significant changes in their life circumstances. They rarely read, and even less often wrote; attended church regularly, never discussed politics, never conspired, never contemplated deeply, enjoyed physical activities, listened with inherited respect when the Bible was read, and were, in their unquestioning humility, very supportive of the “superior” classes. Yet intellectually, they were stagnant; they lived solely for their small, private interests, for their looms and gardens, and were unaware of the great movements occurring beyond their view that were affecting humanity. They were comfortable in their passive existence, and without the industrial revolution, they would likely never have left this life, which, while charmingly romantic, was ultimately unworthy of human beings. In reality, they were not truly human; they were merely laboring machines serving the few aristocrats who had steered history up to that point. The industrial revolution simply escalated this situation by turning workers into pure machines, stripping away the last remnants of their independence, and compelling them to think and demand a position worthy of men. Just as in France with politics, in England with industry, the movement of civil society as a whole pulled into the currents of history the last classes that had remained mired in indifferent apathy toward the universal interests of humanity.

The first invention which gave rise to a radical change in the state of the English workers was the jenny, invented in the year 1764 by a weaver, James Hargreaves, of Standhill, near Blackburn, in North Lancashire.  This machine was the rough beginning of the later invented mule, and was moved by hand.  Instead of one spindle like the ordinary spinning-wheel, it carried sixteen or eighteen manipulated by a single workman.  This invention made it possible to deliver more yarn than heretofore.  Whereas, though one weaver had employed three spinners, there had never been enough yarn, and the weaver had often been obliged to wait for it, there was now more yarn to be had than could be woven by the available workers.  The demand for woven goods, already increasing, rose yet more in consequence of the cheapness of these goods, which cheapness, in turn, was the outcome of the diminished cost of producing the yarn.  More weavers were needed, and weavers’ wages rose.  Now that the weaver could earn more at his loom, he gradually abandoned his farming, and gave his whole time to weaving.  At that time a family of four grown persons and two children (who were set to spooling) could earn, with eight hours’ daily work, four pounds sterling in a week, and often more if trade was good and work pressed.  It happened often enough that a single weaver earned two pounds a week at his loom.  By degrees the class of farming weavers wholly disappeared, and was merged in the newly arising class of weavers who lived wholly upon wages, had no property whatever, not even the pretended property of a holding, and so became working-men, proletarians.  p. 5Moreover, the old relation between spinner and weaver was destroyed.  Hitherto, so far as this had been possible, yarn had been spun and woven under one roof.  Now that the jenny as well as the loom required a strong hand, men began to spin, and whole families lived by spinning, while others laid the antiquated, superseded spinning-wheel aside; and, if they had not means of purchasing a jenny, were forced to live upon the wages of the father alone.  Thus began with spinning and weaving that division of labour which has since been so infinitely perfected.

The first invention that led to a major change for English workers was the jenny, created in 1764 by a weaver named James Hargreaves from Standhill, near Blackburn in North Lancashire. This machine was the rough precursor to the later-developed mule and was operated by hand. Instead of having just one spindle like a regular spinning wheel, it had sixteen or eighteen spindles managed by a single worker. This invention allowed for the production of more yarn than ever before. Previously, a weaver needed three spinners, but there had never been enough yarn, forcing weavers to wait for it. Now, there was more yarn available than could be woven by the existing workers. The already increasing demand for woven goods surged even more due to the lower prices of these products, which resulted from the reduced cost of yarn production. This created a need for more weavers, and wages for weavers increased. As weavers could now earn more at their looms, many gradually left farming to focus entirely on weaving. At that time, a family of four adults and two children (who helped with spooling) could make around four pounds sterling a week with eight hours of daily work, and often even more if business was booming. It wasn't uncommon for a single weaver to earn two pounds a week. Over time, the class of farming weavers disappeared entirely and merged into the newly emerging class of weavers who depended solely on wages, owned no property at all— not even the so-called property of landholding— and thus became working-class individuals, or wage laborers. p. 5Additionally, the traditional relationship between spinners and weavers was disrupted. Previously, whenever possible, yarn was both spun and woven in the same location. Now that both the jenny and the loom required considerable strength, men began to spin, and entire families relied on spinning for their livelihood, while others set aside the outdated spinning wheel; those without the means to buy a jenny were forced to rely solely on the father's wages. This marked the beginning of the division of labor in spinning and weaving, which has since been refined many times over.

While the industrial proletariat was thus developing with the first still very imperfect machine, the same machine gave rise to the agricultural proletariat.  There had, hitherto, been a vast number of small landowners, yeomen, who had vegetated in the same unthinking quiet as their neighbours, the farming weavers.  They cultivated their scraps of land quite after the ancient and inefficient fashion of their ancestors, and opposed every change with the obstinacy peculiar to such creatures of habit, after remaining stationary from generation to generation.  Among them were many small holders also, not tenants in the present sense of the word, but people who had their land handed down from their fathers, either by hereditary lease, or by force of ancient custom, and had hitherto held it as securely as if it had actually been their own property.  When the industrial workers withdrew from agriculture, a great number of small holdings fell idle, and upon these the new class of large tenants established themselves, tenants-at-will, holding fifty, one hundred, two hundred or more acres, liable to be turned out at the end of the year, but able by improved tillage and larger farming to increase the yield of the land.  They could sell their produce more cheaply than the yeomen, for whom nothing remained when his farm no longer supported him but to sell it, procure a jenny or a loom, or take service as an agricultural labourer in the employ of a large farmer.  His inherited slowness and the inefficient methods of cultivation bequeathed by his ancestors, and above which he could not rise, left him no alternative when forced to compete with men who managed their holdings on sounder principles and with all the advantages bestowed by farming p. 6on a large scale and the investment of capital for the improvement of the soil.

While the industrial working class was developing with the first still very basic machine, that same machine also led to the rise of the agricultural working class. Until then, there had been a large number of small landowners, farmers, who lived in the same unthinking way as their neighbors, the farming weavers. They worked their small pieces of land using outdated and ineffective methods just like their ancestors, resisting any change with the stubbornness that comes from being creatures of habit, remaining unchanged from generation to generation. Among them were also many small holders, not tenants in the modern sense, but people who inherited their land from their fathers, either through hereditary lease or long-standing custom, and had held it as securely as if it were actually their own property. When the industrial workers moved away from agriculture, many small plots of land became unused, and a new class of large tenants moved in, tenants-at-will, managing fifty, one hundred, two hundred acres, who could be evicted at the end of the year. However, by using better farming techniques and larger operations, they were able to increase the yield of the land. They could sell their crops at lower prices than the small landowners, who, when their farms no longer supported them, had no choice but to either sell their land, get a jenny or a loom, or work as agricultural laborers for a large farmer. Their inherited slow pace and the ineffective farming methods passed down from their ancestors, which held them back, left them no option when competing with people who ran their farms on better principles and with all the advantages of large-scale farming and the investment in soil improvement.

Meanwhile, the industrial movement did not stop here.  Single capitalists began to set up spinning jennies in great buildings and to use water-power for driving them, so placing themselves in a position to diminish the number of workers, and sell their yarn more cheaply than single spinners could do who moved their own machines by hand.  There were constant improvements in the jenny, so that machines continually became antiquated, and must be altered or even laid aside; and though the capitalists could hold out by the application of water-power even with the old machinery, for the single spinner this was impossible.  And the factory system, the beginning of which was thus made, received a fresh extension in 1767, through the spinning throstle invented by Richard Arkwright, a barber, in Preston, in North Lancashire.  After the steam-engine, this is the most important mechanical invention of the 18th century.  It was calculated from the beginning for mechanical motive power, and was based upon wholly new principles.  By the combination of the peculiarities of the jenny and throstle, Samuel Crompton, of Firwood, Lancashire, contrived the mule in 1785, and as Arkwright invented the carding engine, and preparatory (“slubbing and roving”) frames about the same time, the factory system became the prevailing one for the spinning of cotton.  By means of trifling modifications these machines were gradually adapted to the spinning of flax, and so to the superseding of hand-work here, too.  But even then, the end was not yet.  In the closing years of the last century, Dr. Cartwright, a country parson, had invented the power-loom, and about 1804 had so far perfected it, that it could successfully compete with the hand-weaver; and all this machinery was made doubly important by James Watt’s steam-engine, invented in 1764, and used for supplying motive power for spinning since 1785.

Meanwhile, the industrial movement didn’t stop there. Individual capitalists started setting up spinning jennies in large buildings and using water power to operate them, allowing them to reduce the workforce and sell their yarn at lower prices than single spinners who operated their machines by hand. There were constant improvements in the jenny, making machines quickly outdated, requiring modifications or even abandonment; while capitalists could still manage with water power even with older machinery, this was impossible for individual spinners. The factory system, which began during this time, was expanded in 1767 with the invention of the spinning throstle by Richard Arkwright, a barber from Preston, North Lancashire. After the steam engine, this was the most significant mechanical invention of the 18th century. It was designed from the start for mechanical power and was based on completely new principles. By combining features of the jenny and the throstle, Samuel Crompton from Firwood, Lancashire, created the mule in 1785, and as Arkwright invented the carding engine and the preparatory (“slubbing and roving”) frames around the same time, the factory system became the dominant method for spinning cotton. With minor adjustments, these machines were gradually modified for spinning flax, thus replacing handwork in that area as well. But even then, that wasn’t the end. In the late 18th century, Dr. Cartwright, a country parson, invented the power loom and by around 1804 had refined it enough to successfully compete with hand-weavers; all this machinery became even more crucial with James Watt’s steam engine, invented in 1764, which had been used to provide power for spinning since 1785.

With these inventions, since improved from year to year, the victory of machine-work over hand-work in the chief branches of English industry was won; and the history of the latter from that time forward simply relates how the hand-workers have been p. 7driven by machinery from one position after another.  The consequences of this were, on the one hand, a rapid fall in price of all manufactured commodities, prosperity of commerce and manufacture, the conquest of nearly all the unprotected foreign markets, the sudden multiplication of capital and national wealth; on the other hand, a still more rapid multiplication of the proletariat, the destruction of all property-holding and of all security of employment for the working-class, demoralisation, political excitement, and all those facts so highly repugnant to Englishmen in comfortable circumstances, which we shall have to consider in the following pages.  Having already seen what a transformation in the social condition of the lower classes a single such clumsy machine as the jenny had wrought, there is no cause for surprise as to that which a complete and interdependent system of finely adjusted machinery has brought about, machinery which receives raw material and turns out woven goods.

With these inventions, which improved year after year, the triumph of machine work over hand work in the main sectors of English industry was achieved. The history of hand work from then on simply shows how hand workers have been driven from one position to another by machinery. The results of this were, on one hand, a sharp drop in the prices of all manufactured goods, the thriving of commerce and industry, the capture of nearly all unprotected foreign markets, and a sudden increase in capital and national wealth; on the other hand, a much faster growth of the working class, the loss of property ownership and job security for workers, demoralization, political unrest, and all those issues that are deeply troubling to well-off English people, which we will discuss in the following pages. Having already observed the dramatic change in the social conditions of the lower classes caused by a simple clumsy machine like the jenny, there is no reason to be surprised by the effects that a complete and interconnected system of finely tuned machinery has created, machinery that takes raw materials and produces woven goods.

Meanwhile, let us trace the development of English manufacture {7} somewhat more minutely, beginning with the cotton industry.  In the years 1771-1775, there were annually imported into England rather less than 5,000,000 pounds of raw cotton; in the year 1841 there were imported 528,000,000 pounds, and the import for 1844 will reach at least 600,000,000 pounds.  In 1834 England exported 556,000,000 yards of woven cotton goods, 76,500,000 pounds of cotton yarn, and cotton hosiery of the value of £1,200,000.  In the same year over 8,000,000 mule spindles were at work, 110,000 power and 250,000 hand-looms, throstle spindles not included, in the service of the cotton industry; and, according to MacCulloch’s reckoning, nearly a million and a half human beings were supported by this branch, of whom but 220,000 worked in the mills; the power used in these mills was steam, equivalent to 33,000 horse-power, and water, equivalent to 11,000 horse-power.  At present these figures are far from adequate, and it may be safely assumed that, in the year 1845, p. 8the power and number of the machines and the number of the workers is greater by one-half than it was in 1834.  The chief centre of this industry is Lancashire, where it originated; it has thoroughly revolutionised this county, converting it from an obscure, ill-cultivated swamp into a busy, lively region, multiplying its population tenfold in eighty years, and causing giant cities such as Liverpool and Manchester, containing together 700,000 inhabitants, and their neighbouring towns, Bolton with 60,000, Rochdale with 75,000, Oldham with 50,000, Preston with 60,000, Ashton and Stalybridge with 40,000, and a whole list of other manufacturing towns to spring up as if by a magic touch.  The history of South Lancashire contains some of the greatest marvels of modern times, yet no one ever mentions them, and all these miracles are the product of the cotton industry.  Glasgow, too, the centre for the cotton district of Scotland, for Lanarkshire and Renfrewshire, has increased in population from 30,000 to 300,000 since the introduction of the industry.  The hosiery manufacture of Nottingham and Derby also received one fresh impulse from the lower price of yarn, and a second one from an improvement of the stocking loom, by means of which two stockings could be woven at once.  The manufacture of lace, too, became an important branch of industry after the invention of the lace machine in 1777; soon after that date Lindley invented the point-net machine, and in 1809 Heathcote invented the bobbin-net machine, in consequence of which the production of lace was greatly simplified, and the demand increased proportionately in consequence of the diminished cost, so that now, at least 200,000 persons are supported by this industry.  Its chief centres are Nottingham, Leicester, and the West of England, Wiltshire, Devonshire, etc.  A corresponding extension has taken place in the branches dependent upon the cotton industry, in dyeing, bleaching, and printing.  Bleaching by the application of chlorine in place of the oxygen of the atmosphere; dyeing and printing by the rapid development of chemistry, and printing by a series of most brilliant mechanical inventions, a yet greater advance which, with the extension of these branches caused by the p. 9growth of the cotton industry, raised them to a previously unknown degree of prosperity.

Meanwhile, let’s take a closer look at how English manufacturing has developed {7} starting with the cotton industry. Between 1771 and 1775, England imported just under 5,000,000 pounds of raw cotton each year; by 1841, that number had soared to 528,000,000 pounds, and by 1844 it was expected to reach at least 600,000,000 pounds. In 1834, England exported 556,000,000 yards of woven cotton goods, 76,500,000 pounds of cotton yarn, and cotton hosiery worth £1,200,000. That same year, over 8,000,000 mule spindles were in operation, along with 110,000 power looms and 250,000 hand looms (not counting throstle spindles) dedicated to the cotton industry. According to MacCulloch’s estimates, nearly one and a half million people were supported by this sector, of which only 220,000 worked in the mills. The power used in those mills was steam, equivalent to 33,000 horsepower, plus water power equivalent to 11,000 horsepower. Today, these numbers are outdated, and it can be safely assumed that by 1845, p. 8 the power, the number of machines, and the workforce have increased by fifty percent compared to 1834. The heart of this industry is Lancashire, where it began; it has completely transformed this county, turning it from a poor, uncultivated swamp into a bustling, vibrant area, increasing its population tenfold in eighty years and giving rise to major cities like Liverpool and Manchester, which together have 700,000 residents, alongside nearby towns like Bolton with 60,000, Rochdale with 75,000, Oldham with 50,000, Preston with 60,000, Ashton and Stalybridge with 40,000, and many more manufacturing towns that sprang up almost magically. The history of South Lancashire includes some of the most remarkable achievements of modern times, yet no one ever talks about them, all of which are products of the cotton industry. Glasgow, the center for Scotland's cotton district in Lanarkshire and Renfrewshire, has seen its population grow from 30,000 to 300,000 since the industry was introduced. The hosiery industry in Nottingham and Derby also got a boost from lower yarn prices and an innovation with the stocking loom that allowed two stockings to be woven at once. The lace manufacturing sector became significant after the lace machine was invented in 1777; shortly after that, Lindley created the point-net machine and in 1809, Heathcote introduced the bobbin-net machine, greatly simplifying lace production and consequently increasing demand due to lower costs, supporting at least 200,000 people in that industry today. Its main centers are Nottingham, Leicester, and the West of England, including Wiltshire and Devonshire. A parallel growth has occurred in sectors related to the cotton industry, such as dyeing, bleaching, and printing. Bleaching now uses chlorine instead of atmospheric oxygen; dyeing and printing have advanced rapidly thanks to developments in chemistry, and printing has benefited from a series of remarkable mechanical inventions. Overall, these improvements, along with the growth of the cotton industry, have elevated these related sectors to unprecedented levels of success.

The same activity manifested itself in the manufacture of wool.  This had hitherto been the leading department of English industry, but the quantities formerly produced are as nothing in comparison with that which is now manufactured.  In 1782 the whole wool crop of the preceding three years lay unused for want of workers, and would have continued so to lie if the newly invented machinery had not come to its assistance and spun it.  The adaptation of this machinery to the spinning of wool was most successfully accomplished.  Then began the same sudden development in the wool district, which we have already seen in the cotton districts.  In 1738 there were 75,000 pieces of woollen cloth produced in the West Riding of Yorkshire; in 1817 there were 490,000 pieces, and so rapid was the extension of the industry that in 1834, 450,000 more pieces were produced than in 1825.  In 1801, 101,000,000 pounds of wool (7,000,000 pounds of it imported) were worked up; in 1835, 180,000,000 pounds were worked up; of which 42,000,000 pounds were imported.  The principal centre of this industry is the West Riding of Yorkshire, where, especially at Bradford, long English wool is converted into worsted yarns, etc.; while in the other cities, Leeds, Halifax, Huddersfield, etc., short wool is converted into hard-spun yarn and cloth.  Then come the adjacent part of Lancashire, the region of Rochdale, where in addition to the cotton industry much flannel is produced, and the West of England which supplies the finest cloths.  Here also the growth of population is worthy of observation:

The same trend appeared in wool production. This had previously been the main area of English industry, but the amounts produced back then are tiny compared to what is made now. In 1782, the entire wool crop from the previous three years sat unused due to a lack of workers, and it would have stayed that way if newly invented machinery hadn't spun it. The adaptation of this machinery for wool spinning was very successful. This led to the same rapid growth in the wool area that we’ve already seen in the cotton regions. In 1738, 75,000 pieces of woolen cloth were produced in the West Riding of Yorkshire; by 1817, that number jumped to 490,000 pieces. The industry expanded so quickly that by 1834, 450,000 more pieces were produced than in 1825. In 1801, 101 million pounds of wool (7 million pounds of which were imported) were processed; by 1835, that number rose to 180 million pounds, with 42 million pounds imported. The main hub of this industry is the West Riding of Yorkshire, particularly in Bradford, where long English wool is turned into worsted yarns, while other cities like Leeds, Halifax, and Huddersfield turn short wool into hard-spun yarn and cloth. The nearby region of Lancashire, specifically Rochdale, also produces a lot of flannel in addition to cotton, and the West of England supplies the finest cloths. The population growth here is notable:

Bradford contained in 1801 29,000, and in 1831 77,000 inhabitants.

Bradford had a population of 29,000 in 1801 and 77,000 in 1831.

Halifax ,, ,, 68,000, ,, ,, 110,000 ,,

Halifax, 68K, 110K

Huddersfield ,, ,, 15,000, ,, ,, 34,000 ,,

Huddersfield 15k, 34k

Leeds,, ,, 53,000, ,, ,, 123,000 ,,

Leeds, 53k, 123k

And the whole West Riding 564,000, ,, ,, 980,000 ,,

And the entire West Riding 564,000, ,, ,, 980,000 ,,

A population which, since 1831, must have increased at least 20 to 25 per cent. further.  In 1835 the spinning of wool employed in the United Kingdom 1,313 mills, with 71,300 workers, these last being but a small portion of the multitude who are supported p. 10directly or indirectly by the manufacture of wool, and excluding nearly all weavers.

A population that, since 1831, must have grown by at least 20 to 25 percent more. In 1835, the wool spinning industry in the United Kingdom had 1,313 mills, employing 71,300 workers, who are just a small part of the many people supported p. 10directly or indirectly by wool manufacturing, not counting almost all weavers.

Progress in the linen trade developed later, because the nature of the raw material made the application of spinning machinery very difficult.  Attempts had been made in the last years of the last century in Scotland, but the Frenchman, Girard, who introduced flax spinning in 1810, was the first who succeeded practically, and even Girard’s machines first attained on British soil the importance they deserved by means of improvements which they underwent in England, and of their universal application in Leeds, Dundee, and Belfast.  From this time the British linen trade rapidly extended.  In 1814, 3,000 tons of flax were imported; in 1833, nearly 19,000 tons of flax and 3,400 tons of hemp.  The export of Irish linen to Great Britain rose from 32,000,000 yards in 1800 to 53,000,000 in 1825, of which a large part was re-exported.  The export of English and Scotch woven linen goods rose from 24,000,000 yards in 1820 to 51,000,000 yards in 1833.  The number of flax spinning establishments in 1835 was 347, employing 33,000 workers, of which one-half were in the South of Scotland, more than 60 in the West Riding of Yorkshire, Leeds, and its environs, 25 in Belfast, Ireland, and the rest in Dorset and Lancashire.  Weaving is carried on in the South of Scotland, here and there in England, but principally in Ireland.

Progress in the linen trade came later because the nature of the raw material made using spinning machines very challenging. Attempts were made in the last years of the previous century in Scotland, but the Frenchman, Girard, who introduced flax spinning in 1810, was the first to achieve practical success. Even Girard's machines only gained the recognition they deserved on British soil through improvements made in England and their widespread use in Leeds, Dundee, and Belfast. From this point on, the British linen trade grew rapidly. In 1814, 3,000 tons of flax were imported; by 1833, this number had nearly reached 19,000 tons of flax and 3,400 tons of hemp. The export of Irish linen to Great Britain increased from 32 million yards in 1800 to 53 million yards in 1825, a significant portion of which was re-exported. The export of English and Scottish woven linen goods rose from 24 million yards in 1820 to 51 million yards in 1833. In 1835, there were 347 flax spinning establishments that employed 33,000 workers, half of whom were in the South of Scotland, more than 60 in the West Riding of Yorkshire, Leeds, and its surroundings, 25 in Belfast, Ireland, and the rest in Dorset and Lancashire. Weaving took place in the South of Scotland, sporadically in England, but mainly in Ireland.

With like success did the English turn their attention to the manufacture of silk.  Raw material was imported from Southern Europe and Asia ready spun, and the chief labour lay in the twisting of fine threads.  Until 1824 the heavy import duty, four shillings per pound on raw material, greatly retarded the development of the English silk industry, while only the markets of England and the Colonies were protected for it.  In that year the duty was reduced to one penny, and the number of mills at once largely increased.  In a single year the number of throwing spindles rose from 780,000 to 1,180,000; and, although the commercial crisis of 1825 crippled this branch of industry for the moment, yet in 1827 more was produced than ever, the mechanical skill and experience of the English having secured their twisting p. 11machinery the supremacy over the awkward devices of their competitors.  In 1835 the British Empire possessed 263 twisting mills, employing 30,000 workers, located chiefly in Cheshire, in Macclesfield, Congleton, and the surrounding districts, and in Manchester and Somersetshire.  Besides these, there are numerous mills for working up waste, from which a peculiar article known as spun silk is manufactured, with which the English supply even the Paris and Lyons weavers.  The weaving of the silk so twisted and spun is carried on in Paisley and elsewhere in Scotland, and in Spitalfields, London, but also in Manchester and elsewhere.  Nor is the gigantic advance achieved in English manufacture since 1760 restricted to the production of clothing materials.  The impulse, once given, was communicated to all branches of industrial activity, and a multitude of inventions wholly unrelated to those here cited, received double importance from the fact that they were made in the midst of the universal movement.  But as soon as the immeasurable importance of mechanical power was practically demonstrated, every energy was concentrated in the effort to exploit this power in all directions, and to exploit it in the interest of individual inventors and manufacturers; and the demand for machinery, fuel, and materials called a mass of workers and a number of trades into redoubled activity.  The steam-engine first gave importance to the broad coal-fields of England; the production of machinery began now for the first time, and with it arose a new interest in the iron mines which supplied raw material for it.  The increased consumption of wool stimulated English sheep breeding, and the growing importation of wool, flax, and silk called forth an extension of the British ocean carrying trade.  Greatest of all was the growth of production of iron.  The rich iron deposits of the English hills had hitherto been little developed; iron had always been smelted by means of charcoal, which became gradually more expensive as agriculture improved and forests were cut away.  The beginning of the use of coke in iron smelting had been made in the last century, and in 1780 a new method was invented of converting into available wrought-iron coke-smelted iron, which up to that time had been convertible into cast-iron p. 12only.  This process, known as “puddling,” consists in withdrawing the carbon which had mixed with the iron during the process of smelting, and opened a wholly new field for the production of English iron.  Smelting furnaces were built fifty times larger than before, the process of smelting was simplified by the introduction of hot blasts, and iron could thus be produced so cheaply that a multitude of objects which had before been made of stone or wood were now made of iron.

With similar success, the English focused on silk production. Raw materials were imported from Southern Europe and Asia, pre-spun, and the main work involved twisting fine threads. Until 1824, a heavy import duty of four shillings per pound on raw materials significantly slowed the growth of the English silk industry, with only the markets in England and the Colonies protected for it. In that year, the duty was lowered to one penny, leading to a substantial increase in the number of mills. In just one year, the number of throwing spindles rose from 780,000 to 1,180,000. Although the commercial crisis of 1825 temporarily crippled this industry, by 1827 production exceeded previous levels, as the mechanical skill and experience of the English ensured that their twisting machinery remained superior to the awkward tools used by competitors. By 1835, the British Empire had 263 twisting mills employing 30,000 workers, primarily located in Cheshire, Macclesfield, Congleton, and the surrounding areas, as well as in Manchester and Somersetshire. Additionally, there were many mills processing waste, producing a unique item known as spun silk, which the English even supplied to weavers in Paris and Lyons. The weaving of this twisted and spun silk took place in Paisley and other parts of Scotland, as well as in Spitalfields, London, and Manchester. Moreover, the significant advancements made in English manufacturing since 1760 were not limited to clothing materials. The momentum initiated had a ripple effect across all industrial sectors, resulting in numerous inventions unrelated to those mentioned here, gaining additional significance from occurring within this broad movement. Once the immense importance of mechanical power was practically demonstrated, all energy was directed toward harnessing this power in every possible way, benefiting individual inventors and manufacturers; the demand for machinery, fuel, and materials led to an increase in worker activity and stimulated various trades. The steam engine highlighted the importance of England's vast coalfields; machinery production began for the first time, sparking new interest in the iron mines that supplied raw materials for it. The growing demand for wool increased English sheep farming, while the rising importation of wool, flax, and silk prompted the expansion of Britain's ocean trading routes. The most significant growth was in iron production. The plentiful iron deposits in the English hills had previously seen little development; iron had always been smelted using charcoal, which gradually became more expensive as agriculture advanced and forests were depleted. The use of coke in iron smelting had begun in the previous century, and in 1780 a new method was invented to transform coke-smelted iron, which until then had only been convertible into cast iron, into workable wrought iron. This process, known as “puddling,” involves eliminating the carbon that had mixed with the iron during smelting, thereby opening a completely new area for English iron production. Smelting furnaces were constructed fifty times larger than before, the smelting process was simplified with the introduction of hot blasts, and iron could then be produced so economically that many items previously made of stone or wood were now made of iron.

In 1788, Thomas Paine, the famous democrat, built in Yorkshire the first iron bridge, which was followed by a great number of others, so that now nearly all bridges, especially for railroad traffic, are built of cast-iron, while in London itself a bridge across the Thames, the Southwark bridge, has been built of this material.  Iron pillars, supports for machinery, etc., are universally used, and since the introduction of gas-lighting and railroads, new outlets for English iron products are opened.  Nails and screws gradually came to be made by machinery.  Huntsman, a Sheffielder, discovered in 1790 a method for casting steel, by which much labour was saved, and the production of wholly new cheap goods rendered practicable; and through the greater purity of the material placed at its disposal, and the more perfect tools, new machinery and minute division of labour, the metal trade of England now first attained importance.  The population of Birmingham grew from 73,000 in 1801 to 200,000 in 1844; that of Sheffield from 46,000 in 1801 to 110,000 in 1844, and the consumption of coal in the latter city alone reached in 1836, 515,000 tons.  In 1805 there were exported 4,300 tons of iron products and 4,600 tons of pig-iron; in 1834, 16,200 tons of iron products and 107,000 tons of pig-iron, while the whole iron product reaching in 1740 but 17,000 tons, had risen in 1834 to nearly 700,000 tons.  The smelting of pig-iron alone consumes yearly more than 3,000,000 tons of coal, and the importance which coal mining has attained in the course of the last 60 years can scarcely be conceived.  All the English and Scotch deposits are now worked, and the mines of Northumberland and Durham alone yield annually more than 5,000,000 tons for shipping, and employ from 40 to 50,000 men.  According p. 13to the Durham Chronicle, there were worked in these two counties: In 1753, 14 mines; in 1800, 40 mines; in 1836, 76 mines; in 1843, 130 mines.  Moreover, all mines are now much more energetically worked than formerly.  A similarly increased activity was applied to the working of tin, copper, and lead, and alongside of the extension of glass manufacture arose a new branch of industry in the production of pottery, rendered important by the efforts of Josiah Wedgewood, about 1763.  This inventor placed the whole manufacture of stoneware on a scientific basis, introduced better taste, and founded the potteries of North Staffordshire, a district of eight English miles square, which, formerly a desert waste, is now sown with works and dwellings, and supports more than 60,000 people.

In 1788, Thomas Paine, the well-known democrat, built the first iron bridge in Yorkshire, leading to many more being constructed. Now, nearly all bridges, especially those for train traffic, are made of cast iron, including the Southwark Bridge across the Thames in London. Iron pillars and machinery supports are widely used, and with the advent of gas lighting and railroads, new markets for English iron products emerged. Nails and screws gradually started being manufactured by machines. Huntsman, from Sheffield, discovered a method for casting steel in 1790, saving a lot of labor and making it possible to produce completely new, affordable goods. With higher-quality materials and improved tools, along with new machinery and specialized labor, England's metal industry grew significantly. Birmingham's population increased from 73,000 in 1801 to 200,000 in 1844, while Sheffield's grew from 46,000 to 110,000 in the same period, with coal consumption in Sheffield alone reaching 515,000 tons by 1836. In 1805, 4,300 tons of iron products and 4,600 tons of pig iron were exported; by 1834, those numbers rose to 16,200 tons of iron products and 107,000 tons of pig iron. Overall iron production jumped from just 17,000 tons in 1740 to nearly 700,000 tons by 1834. The production of pig iron alone requires over 3,000,000 tons of coal each year, highlighting the massive growth of coal mining over the last 60 years. All English and Scottish deposits are now being mined, with the Northumberland and Durham mines alone producing over 5,000,000 tons for export annually, employing between 40,000 to 50,000 workers. According to the Durham Chronicle, the number of mines in these two counties grew from 14 in 1753 to 40 in 1800, 76 in 1836, and 130 in 1843. Additionally, all mines are now worked much more vigorously than before. Similar increased activity was seen in the extraction of tin, copper, and lead, and alongside the growth of glass manufacturing, a new industry in pottery emerged, notably advanced by Josiah Wedgewood around 1763. This inventor established a scientific approach to stoneware production, improved aesthetics, and founded the potteries of North Staffordshire, an area of eight square miles that was once desolate but is now filled with factories and homes, supporting over 60,000 people.

Into this universal whirl of activity everything was drawn.  Agriculture made a corresponding advance.  Not only did landed property pass, as we have already seen, into the hands of new owners and cultivators, agriculture was affected in still another way.  The great holders applied capital to the improvement of the soil, tore down needless fences, drained, manured, employed better tools, and applied a rotation of crops.  The progress of science came to their assistance also; Sir Humphrey Davy applied chemistry to agriculture with success, and the development of mechanical science bestowed a multitude of advantages upon the large farmer.  Further, in consequence of the increase of population, the demand for agricultural products increased in such measure that from 1760 to 1834, 6,840,540 acres of waste land were reclaimed; and, in spite of this, England was transformed from a grain exporting to a grain importing country.

Everything was swept up in this universal flurry of activity. Agriculture advanced accordingly. Not only did landownership shift, as we've already noted, to new owners and farmers, but agriculture changed in other ways too. The large landowners invested money to improve the soil, removed unnecessary fences, drained and fertilized the land, used better tools, and practiced crop rotation. The progress of science also helped them; Sir Humphrey Davy successfully applied chemistry to farming, and advancements in mechanical science provided numerous benefits to large-scale farmers. Additionally, due to the rising population, the demand for agricultural products grew so much that from 1760 to 1834, 6,840,540 acres of wasteland were reclaimed; yet despite this, England transformed from a grain-exporting to a grain-importing nation.

The same activity was developed in the establishment of communication.  From 1818 to 1829, there were built in England and Wales, 1,000 English miles of roadway of the width prescribed by law, 60 feet, and nearly all the old roads were reconstructed on the new system of M’Adam.  In Scotland, the Department of Public Works built since 1803 nearly 900 miles of roadway and more than 1,000 bridges, by which the population of the Highlands was suddenly placed within reach of civilisation.  The p. 14Highlanders had hitherto been chiefly poachers and smugglers; they now became farmers and hand-workers.  And, though Gaelic schools were organised for the purpose of maintaining the Gaelic language, yet Gaelic-Celtic customs and speech are rapidly vanishing before the approach of English civilisation.  So, too, in Ireland; between the counties of Cork, Limerick, and Kerry, lay hitherto a wilderness wholly without passable roads, and serving, by reason of its inaccessibility, as the refuge of all criminals and the chief protection of the Celtic Irish nationality in the South of Ireland.  It has now been cut through by public roads, and civilisation has thus gained admission even to this savage region.  The whole British Empire, and especially England, which, sixty years ago, had as bad roads as Germany or France then had, is now covered by a network of the finest roadways; and these, too, like almost everything else in England, are the work of private enterprise, the State having done very little in this direction.

The same effort was made in establishing communication. From 1818 to 1829, around 1,000 English miles of roads were built in England and Wales, all 60 feet wide as required by law, and nearly all the old roads were rebuilt following the new M’Adam system. In Scotland, since 1803, the Department of Public Works constructed nearly 900 miles of roadways and over 1,000 bridges, which suddenly connected the Highland population with civilization. The Highlanders, who had mostly been poachers and smugglers, now became farmers and artisans. While Gaelic schools were set up to preserve the Gaelic language, traditional Gaelic-Celtic customs and speech are quickly disappearing due to the rise of English civilization. Similarly, in Ireland, an area between the counties of Cork, Limerick, and Kerry was previously a wilderness with no accessible roads, acting as a refuge for criminals and preserving the Celtic Irish identity in Southern Ireland. Now, public roads have been built through it, allowing civilization to penetrate this wild region. The entire British Empire, especially England, which sixty years ago had roads as poor as Germany or France at that time, is now covered by an extensive network of excellent roads; and like almost everything else in England, these roads are largely the result of private initiative, with the government playing a minimal role in this area.

Before 1755 England possessed almost no canals.  In that year a canal was built in Lancashire from Sankey Brook to St Helen’s; and in 1759, James Brindley built the first important one, the Duke of Bridgewater’s canal from Manchester, and the coal mines of the district to the mouth of the Mersey passing, near Barton, by aqueduct, over the river Irwell.  From this achievement dates the canal building of England, to which Brindley first gave importance.  Canals were now built, and rivers made navigable in all directions.  In England alone, there are 2,200 miles of canals and 1,800 miles of navigable river.  In Scotland, the Caledonian Canal was cut directly across the country, and in Ireland several canals were built.  These improvements, too, like the railroads and roadways, are nearly all the work of private individuals and companies.

Before 1755, England had very few canals. That year, a canal was constructed in Lancashire, running from Sankey Brook to St Helen’s. In 1759, James Brindley built the first significant one—the Duke of Bridgewater's canal—connecting Manchester and the coal mines in the area to the mouth of the Mersey, which included an aqueduct that crossed over the Irwell River near Barton. This marked the beginning of canal construction in England, a process that Brindley significantly advanced. Canals began to be built, and rivers were made navigable in all directions. In England alone, there are 2,200 miles of canals and 1,800 miles of navigable rivers. In Scotland, the Caledonian Canal was cut straight across the country, and several canals were built in Ireland. These improvements, much like the railroads and roadways, were primarily the work of private individuals and companies.

The railroads have been only recently built.  The first great one was opened from Liverpool to Manchester in 1830, since which all the great cities have been connected by rail.  London with Southampton, Brighton, Dover, Colchester, Exeter, and Birmingham; Birmingham with Gloucester, Liverpool, Lancaster (via Newton and Wigan, and via Manchester and Bolton); also with Leeds (via Manchester and Halifax, and via Leicester, Derby, and p. 15Sheffield); Leeds with Hull and Newcastle (via York).  There are also many minor lines building or projected, which will soon make it possible to travel from Edinburgh to London in one day.

The railroads have only recently been built. The first major one opened from Liverpool to Manchester in 1830, and since then, all the major cities have been connected by rail. London connects to Southampton, Brighton, Dover, Colchester, Exeter, and Birmingham; Birmingham connects to Gloucester, Liverpool, and Lancaster (via Newton and Wigan, and via Manchester and Bolton); it also connects to Leeds (via Manchester and Halifax, and via Leicester, Derby, and p. 15Sheffield); Leeds connects to Hull and Newcastle (via York). There are also many smaller lines being built or planned, which will soon allow travel from Edinburgh to London in one day.

As it had transformed the means of communication by land, so did the introduction of steam revolutionise travel by sea.  The first steamboat was launched in 1807, in the Hudson, in North America; the first in the British empire, in 1811, on the Clyde.  Since then, more than 600 have been built in England; and in 1836 more than 500 were plying to and from British ports.

As it changed how people communicated on land, the introduction of steam also revolutionized travel by sea. The first steamboat was launched in 1807 on the Hudson River in North America; the first in the British empire was launched in 1811 on the Clyde. Since then, more than 600 have been built in England, and by 1836, more than 500 were operating between British ports.

Such, in brief, is the history of English industrial development in the past sixty years, a history which has no counterpart in the annals of humanity.  Sixty, eighty years ago, England was a country like every other, with small towns, few and simple industries, and a thin but proportionally large agricultural population.  To-day it is a country like no other, with a capital of two and a half million inhabitants; with vast manufacturing cities; with an industry that supplies the world, and produces almost everything by means of the most complex machinery; with an industrious, intelligent, dense population, of which two-thirds are employed in trade and commerce, and composed of classes wholly different; forming, in fact, with other customs and other needs, a different nation from the England of those days.  The industrial revolution is of the same importance for England as the political revolution for France, and the philosophical revolution for Germany; and the difference between England in 1760 and in 1844 is at least as great as that between France, under the ancien régime and during the revolution of July.  But the mightiest result of this industrial transformation is the English proletariat.

This is a brief overview of the history of English industrial development over the past sixty years—a history unmatched in human history. Sixty or eighty years ago, England was just like any other country, with small towns, a few simple industries, and a relatively large agricultural population. Today, it stands out as a unique country, with a capital city of two and a half million residents; vast manufacturing cities; an industry that supplies the entire world and produces just about everything using highly complex machinery; and a hardworking, intelligent, dense population, two-thirds of whom are engaged in trade and commerce. This population is made up of entirely different classes, effectively forming a nation with different customs and needs compared to the England of that time. The industrial revolution is as significant for England as the political revolution was for France and the philosophical revolution for Germany; the difference between England in 1760 and 1844 is at least as striking as that between France under the ancien régime and during the July revolution. But the most powerful outcome of this industrial transformation is the English working class.

We have already seen how the proletariat was called into existence by the introduction of machinery.  The rapid extension of manufacture demanded hands, wages rose, and troops of workmen migrated from the agricultural districts to the towns.  Population multiplied enormously, and nearly all the increase took place in the proletariat.  Further, Ireland had entered upon an orderly development only since the beginning of the eighteenth century.  There, too, the population, more than decimated by English p. 16cruelty in earlier disturbances, now rapidly multiplied, especially after the advance in manufacture began to draw masses of Irishmen towards England.  Thus arose the great manufacturing and commercial cities of the British Empire, in which at least three-fourths of the population belong to the working-class, while the lower middle-class consists only of small shopkeepers, and very very few handicraftsmen.  For, though the rising manufacture first attained importance by transforming tools into machines, workrooms into factories, and consequently, the toiling lower middle-class into the toiling proletariat, and the former large merchants into manufacturers, though the lower middle-class was thus early crushed out, and the population reduced to the two opposing elements, workers and capitalists, this happened outside of the domain of manufacture proper, in the province of handicraft and retail trade as well.  In the place of the former masters and apprentices, came great capitalists and working-men who had no prospect of rising above their class.  Hand-work was carried on after the fashion of factory work, the division of labour was strictly applied, and small employers who could not compete with great establishments were forced down into the proletariat.  At the same time the destruction of the former organisation of hand-work, and the disappearance of the lower middle-class deprived the working-man of all possibility of rising into the middle-class himself.  Hitherto he had always had the prospect of establishing himself somewhere as master artificer, perhaps employing journeymen and apprentices; but now, when master artificers were crowded out by manufacturers, when large capital had become necessary for carrying on work independently, the working-class became, for the first time, an integral, permanent class of the population, whereas it had formerly often been merely a transition leading to the bourgeoisie.  Now, he who was born to toil had no other prospect than that of remaining a toiler all his life.  Now, for the first time, therefore, the proletariat was in a position to undertake an independent movement.

We’ve already seen how the working class came into being with the introduction of machinery. The rapid growth of manufacturing created a demand for labor, wages went up, and groups of workers moved from rural areas to the cities. The population surged dramatically, with almost all the increase occurring within the working class. Additionally, Ireland had only started to develop in an organized way since the early eighteenth century. There, too, the population, which had been greatly reduced by English cruelty during earlier conflicts, began to grow rapidly, especially after manufacturing started attracting large numbers of Irish people to England. This led to the rise of major manufacturing and commercial cities in the British Empire, where at least three-fourths of the population belonged to the working class, while the lower middle class was made up mostly of small shopkeepers and very few craftsmen. Although early manufacturing became significant by changing tools into machines and workspaces into factories, which turned the struggling lower middle class into the working class and large merchants into manufacturers, the lower middle class was severely diminished. The population was reduced to two opposing groups: workers and capitalists. This shift occurred not just within manufacturing, but also in crafts and retail. Instead of the former masters and apprentices, there were now wealthy capitalists and workers who had no hope of rising above their social class. Handicrafts became more like factory work, with a strict division of labor, and small business owners unable to compete with large companies were pushed down into the working class. At the same time, the dismantling of the old system of handicrafts and the decline of the lower middle class stripped workers of any chance to move up into the middle class. Previously, they could aspire to become skilled craftsmen and possibly hire journeymen and apprentices; now, as skilled artisans were squeezed out by manufacturers and large capital became essential for independent work, the working class became, for the first time, a permanent and integral part of the population, rather than just a transitional group leading to the bourgeoisie. Now, those born into labor had no other expectation than to remain workers for their entire lives. Thus, for the first time, the working class was positioned to pursue an independent movement.

In this way were brought together those vast masses of working-men who now fill the whole British Empire, whose social condition p. 17forces itself every day more and more upon the attention of the civilised world.  The condition of the working-class is the condition of the vast majority of the English people.  The question: What is to become of those destitute millions, who consume to-day what they earned yesterday; who have created the greatness of England by their inventions and their toil; who become with every passing day more conscious of their might, and demand, with daily increasing urgency, their share of the advantages of society?—This, since the Reform Bill, has become the national question.  All Parliamentary debates, of any importance, may be reduced to this; and, though the English middle-class will not as yet admit it, though they try to evade this great question, and to represent their own particular interests as the truly national ones, their action is utterly useless.  With every session of Parliament the working-class gains ground, the interests of the middle-class diminish in importance; and, in spite of the fact that the middle-class is the chief, in fact, the only power in Parliament, the last session of 1844 was a continuous debate upon subjects affecting the working-class, the Poor Relief Bill, the Factory Act, the Masters’ and Servants’ Act; and Thomas Duncombe, the representative of the working-men in the House of Commons, was the great man of the session; while the Liberal middle-class with its motion for repealing the Corn Laws, and the Radical middle-class with its resolution for refusing the taxes, played pitiable roles.  Even the debates about Ireland were at bottom debates about the Irish proletariat, and the means of coming to its assistance.  It is high time, too, for the English middle-class to make some concessions to the working-men who no longer plead but threaten; for in a short time it may be too late.

In this way, the large groups of workers who now populate the entire British Empire were brought together, and their social condition is becoming increasingly impossible to ignore for the civilized world. The state of the working class reflects the situation of the vast majority of the English people. The question is: What will happen to those struggling millions, who live on what they earned yesterday; who have built England's greatness through their creativity and hard work; who are becoming more aware of their power with each passing day and are increasingly demanding their fair share of society's benefits? Since the Reform Bill, this has become the national issue. All significant Parliamentary debates can be boiled down to this point, and even though the English middle class won’t admit it yet, trying to sidestep this critical issue and framing their own interests as national concerns is completely ineffective. With every parliamentary session, the working class is gaining influence while the middle class's interests are declining in importance; despite the middle class being the primary, in fact, the only real power in Parliament, the last session of 1844 was filled with discussions on topics impacting the working class, like the Poor Relief Bill, the Factory Act, and the Masters’ and Servants’ Act. Thomas Duncombe, representing the workers in the House of Commons, was the standout figure of the session, while the Liberal middle class’s push to repeal the Corn Laws and the Radical middle class’s call to refuse taxes were quite pathetic. Even the discussions about Ireland fundamentally revolved around the Irish working class and how to aid them. It’s high time for the English middle class to make some concessions to the workers who are no longer pleading but starting to threaten; soon it might be too late.

In spite of all this, the English middle-class, especially the manufacturing class, which is enriched directly by means of the poverty of the workers, persists in ignoring this poverty.  This class, feeling itself the mighty representative class of the nation, is ashamed to lay the sore spot of England bare before the eyes of the world; will not confess, even to itself, that the workers are in distress, because it, the property-holding, manufacturing class, p. 18must bear the moral responsibility for this distress.  Hence the scornful smile which intelligent Englishmen (and they, the middle-class, alone are known on the Continent) assume when any one begins to speak of the condition of the working-class; hence the utter ignorance on the part of the whole middle-class of everything which concerns the workers; hence the ridiculous blunders which men of this class, in and out of Parliament, make when the position of the proletariat comes under discussion; hence the absurd freedom from anxiety, with which the middle-class dwells upon a soil that is honeycombed, and may any day collapse, the speedy collapse of which is as certain as a mathematical or mechanical demonstration; hence the miracle that the English have as yet no single book upon the condition of their workers, although they have been examining and mending the old state of things no one knows how many years.  Hence also the deep wrath of the whole working-class, from Glasgow to London, against the rich, by whom they are systematically plundered and mercilessly left to their fate, a wrath which before too long a time goes by, a time almost within the power of man to predict, must break out into a Revolution in comparison with which the French Revolution, and the year 1794, will prove to have been child’s play.

Despite all this, the English middle class, especially those in manufacturing who profit directly from the workers' poverty, continues to ignore this issue. This class, seeing itself as the powerful representative of the nation, is ashamed to expose England's problems to the world; they won't admit, even to themselves, that workers are struggling because the property-owning manufacturing class must take moral responsibility for that struggle. This explains the condescending smile that educated English people (and they, the middle class, are the only ones known on the Continent) adopt when someone raises the topic of the working class's conditions; it also accounts for the complete ignorance among the middle class about anything related to workers. This ignorance leads to the ridiculous mistakes made by men from this class, both in and out of Parliament, when discussing the proletariat's situation. Additionally, it highlights the absurd sense of security with which the middle-class lives on a foundation that is unstable and could collapse at any moment, a collapse that is as inevitable as a mathematical or mechanical certainty. It’s also remarkable that the English have yet to produce a single book about their workers' conditions, despite years of attempts to analyze and fix the old system. Furthermore, the deep anger of the entire working class, from Glasgow to London, against the wealthy, who systematically exploit them and leave them to fend for themselves, is mounting. This anger is likely to explode into a revolution that will make the French Revolution of 1794 seem minor in comparison.

p. 19THE INDUSTRIAL PROLETARIAT.

The order of our investigation of the different sections of the proletariat follows naturally from the foregoing history of its rise.  The first proletarians were connected with manufacture, were engendered by it, and accordingly, those employed in manufacture, in the working up of raw materials, will first claim our attention.  The production of raw materials and of fuel for manufacture attained importance only in consequence of the industrial change, and engendered a new proletariat, the coal and metal miners.  Then, in the third place, manufacture influenced agriculture, and in the fourth, the condition of Ireland; and the fractions of the proletariat belonging to each, will find their place accordingly.  We shall find, too, that with the possible exception of the Irish, the degree of intelligence of the various workers is in direct proportion to their relation to manufacture; and that the factory hands are most enlightened as to their own interests, the miners somewhat less so, the agricultural labourers scarcely at all.  We shall find the same order again among the industrial workers, and shall see how the factory hands, eldest children of the industrial revolution, have from the beginning to the present day formed the nucleus of the Labour Movement, and how the others have joined this movement just in proportion as their handicraft has been invaded by the progress of machinery.  We shall thus learn from the example which England offers, from the equal pace which the Labour Movement has kept with the movement of industrial development, the historical significance of manufacture.

The order of our investigation into the different sections of the working class naturally follows the history of its emergence. The first workers came from manufacturing, shaped by it, so we will first focus on those employed in manufacturing and processing raw materials. The production of raw materials and fuel for manufacturing gained importance only due to industrial changes, creating a new group of workers: coal and metal miners. Next, manufacturing impacted agriculture, followed by the situation in Ireland; the different segments of the working class will be discussed accordingly. We will also see that, with the possible exception of the Irish, the level of intelligence among various workers directly relates to their connection to manufacturing. Factory workers are the most aware of their own interests, miners are somewhat less so, and agricultural laborers are hardly aware at all. We will observe the same trend among industrial workers, noting how factory workers, as the primary products of the industrial revolution, have historically been the core of the Labor Movement, with others joining this movement as their trades were affected by machinery advancements. From England's example, we can learn about the historical significance of manufacturing, as the Labor Movement has progressed alongside industrial development.

Since, however, at the present moment, pretty much the whole industrial proletariat is involved in the movement, and the condition of the separate sections has much in common, because they all are industrial, we shall have first to examine the condition p. 20of the industrial proletariat as a whole, in order later to notice more particularly each separate division with its own peculiarities.

Since right now, nearly all of the industrial workforce is participating in the movement, and the circumstances of the different groups share a lot in common since they are all part of industry, we will first need to look at the situation p. 20 of the industrial workforce as a whole. Later, we can explore each individual group and its unique characteristics.

It has been already suggested that manufacture centralises property in the hands of the few.  It requires large capital with which to erect the colossal establishments that ruin the petty trading bourgeoisie and with which to press into its service the forces of Nature, so driving the hand labour of the independent workman out of the market.  The division of labour, the application of water and especially steam, and the application of machinery, are the three great levers with which manufacture, since the middle of the last century, has been busy putting the world out of joint.  Manufacture, on a small scale, created the middle-class; on a large scale, it created the working-class, and raised the elect of the middle-class to the throne, but only to overthrow them the more surely when the time comes.  Meanwhile, it is an undenied and easily explained fact that the numerous, petty middle-class of the “good old times” has been annihilated by manufacture, and resolved into rich capitalists on the one hand and poor workers on the other. {20}

It has already been pointed out that manufacturing concentrates property in the hands of a few. It requires a lot of capital to build the massive facilities that put small traders out of business and to harness the forces of nature, effectively pushing the independent worker's manual labor out of the market. The division of labor, the use of water and especially steam, and the implementation of machinery are the three main drivers that manufacturing has used, since the mid-19th century, to disrupt the world. Small-scale manufacturing created the middle class; large-scale manufacturing, in turn, created the working class and elevated some in the middle class to power but only to ultimately overthrow them when the time is right. In the meantime, it is an undeniable and easily understood fact that the numerous small middle class of the “good old days” has been wiped out by manufacturing, resulting in a divide between wealthy capitalists on one side and impoverished workers on the other. {20}

The centralising tendency of manufacture does not, however, stop here.  Population becomes centralised just as capital does; and, very naturally, since the human being, the worker, is regarded in manufacture simply as a piece of capital for the use of which the manufacturer pays interest under the name of wages.  A manufacturing establishment requires many workers employed together in a single building, living near each other and forming a village of themselves in the case of a good-sized factory.  They have needs for satisfying which other people are necessary; handicraftsmen, shoemakers, tailors, bakers, carpenters, stonemasons, settle at hand.  The inhabitants of the village, especially the younger generation, accustom themselves to factory work, grow skilful in it, and when the first mill can no longer employ them all, wages fall, and the immigration of fresh manufacturers is the p. 21consequence.  So the village grows into a small town, and the small town into a large one.  The greater the town, the greater its advantages.  It offers roads, railroads, canals; the choice of skilled labour increases constantly, new establishments can be built more cheaply because of the competition among builders and machinists who are at hand, than in remote country districts, whither timber, machinery, builders, and operatives must be brought; it offers a market to which buyers crowd, and direct communication with the markets supplying raw material or demanding finished goods.  Hence the marvellously rapid growth of the great manufacturing towns.  The country, on the other hand, has the advantage that wages are usually lower than in town, and so town and country are in constant competition; and, if the advantage is on the side of the town to-day, wages sink so low in the country to-morrow, that new investments are most profitably made there.  But the centralising tendency of manufacture continues in full force, and every new factory built in the country bears in it the germ of a manufacturing town.  If it were possible for this mad rush of manufacture to go on at this rate for another century, every manufacturing district of England would be one great manufacturing town, and Manchester and Liverpool would meet at Warrington or Newton; for in commerce, too, this centralisation of the population works in precisely the same way, and hence it is that one or two great harbours, such as Hull and Liverpool, Bristol, and London, monopolise almost the whole maritime commerce of Great Britain.

The tendency to centralize manufacturing doesn't stop here. Population gets centralized just like capital does; and, naturally, since the worker is seen in manufacturing as just another form of capital for which the manufacturer pays interest, known as wages. A manufacturing business needs many workers in a single building, who live close to each other and create a sort of village around a decent-sized factory. They have needs that require other people, so craftsmen, shoemakers, tailors, bakers, carpenters, and stonemasons settle nearby. The residents of the village, especially the younger generation, get used to factory work and become skilled at it, and when the first mill can no longer employ everyone, wages drop, leading to new manufacturers moving in. So, the village turns into a small town, and that small town grows into a larger one. The bigger the town, the more advantages it offers. It has roads, railroads, canals; the availability of skilled labor keeps increasing, and it’s cheaper to build new facilities due to competition among local builders and machinists than in distant rural areas, where timber, machinery, builders, and workers have to be transported; it provides a market that attracts buyers, along with direct access to markets supplying raw materials or needing finished products. This explains the incredibly rapid growth of large manufacturing towns. Meanwhile, rural areas have the benefit of usually lower wages than those in town, leading to constant competition between rural and urban areas; if the town has the upper hand today, wages might drop so low in the countryside tomorrow that new investments are more lucrative there. But the centralizing trend of manufacturing remains strong, and every new factory set up in the countryside carries the potential to evolve into a manufacturing town. If this fevered pace of manufacturing continued for another century, every manufacturing area in England would become one enormous manufacturing town, and Manchester and Liverpool would eventually merge at Warrington or Newton; because in commerce, this centralization of population operates in exactly the same way, which is why just a few major ports like Hull, Liverpool, Bristol, and London dominate almost all of Great Britain's maritime trade.

Since commerce and manufacture attain their most complete development in these great towns, their influence upon the proletariat is also most clearly observable here.  Here the centralisation of property has reached the highest point; here the morals and customs of the good old times are most completely obliterated; here it has gone so far that the name Merry Old England conveys no meaning, for Old England itself is unknown to memory and to the tales of our grandfathers.  Hence, too, there exist here only a rich and a poor class, for the lower middle-class vanishes more completely with every passing day.  Thus the class formerly most p. 22stable has become the most restless one.  It consists to-day of a few remnants of a past time, and a number of people eager to make fortunes, industrial Micawbers and speculators of whom one may amass a fortune, while ninety-nine become insolvent, and more than half of the ninety-nine live by perpetually repeated failure.

Since commerce and manufacturing have developed most fully in these big cities, their impact on the working class is also most evident here. The centralization of property has reached its peak; here, the morals and customs of the good old days are completely erased; it has gone so far that the term Merry Old England means nothing, as Old England itself is forgotten, lost to the memories and stories of our grandparents. As a result, there are only a rich class and a poor class here, with the lower middle class disappearing more and more each day. Thus, the class that used to be the most stable has become the most restless. Today, it consists of just a few remnants of the past and a group of people eager to get rich—industrial Micawbers and speculators, where one might strike it rich, while ninety-nine end up bankrupt, and more than half of those ninety-nine survive through repeated failures.

But in these towns the proletarians are the infinite majority, and how they fare, what influence the great town exercises upon them, we have now to investigate.

But in these towns, the working class makes up the vast majority, and now we need to explore how they are doing and what impact the big city has on them.

p. 23THE GREAT TOWNS.

A town, such as London, where a man may wander for hours together without reaching the beginning of the end, without meeting the slightest hint which could lead to the inference that there is open country within reach, is a strange thing.  This colossal centralisation, this heaping together of two and a half millions of human beings at one point, has multiplied the power of this two and a half millions a hundredfold; has raised London to the commercial capital of the world, created the giant docks and assembled the thousand vessels that continually cover the Thames.  I know nothing more imposing than the view which the Thames offers during the ascent from the sea to London Bridge.  The masses of buildings, the wharves on both sides, especially from Woolwich upwards, the countless ships along both shores, crowding ever closer and closer together, until, at last, only a narrow passage remains in the middle of the river, a passage through which hundreds of steamers shoot by one another; all this is so vast, so impressive, that a man cannot collect himself, but is lost in the marvel of England’s greatness before he sets foot upon English soil. {23}

A city like London, where someone can stroll for hours without reaching any conclusion, without encountering the slightest indication that open countryside is nearby, is quite a strange phenomenon. This massive concentration, this gathering of two and a half million people in one place, has amplified the influence of these two and a half million a hundred times; it has established London as the commercial capital of the world, built giant docks, and brought together thousands of ships that constantly fill the Thames. I can’t think of anything more impressive than the view the Thames provides as you travel from the sea to London Bridge. The clusters of buildings, the wharves lining both sides, especially from Woolwich upward, and the countless vessels along both banks, squeezing ever closer together until only a narrow channel remains in the middle, through which hundreds of steamers rush past each other; all of this is so massive, so awe-inspiring, that a person can’t gather their thoughts and is overwhelmed by the wonder of England’s greatness before even setting foot on English soil. {23}

But the sacrifices which all this has cost become apparent later.  After roaming the streets of the capital a day or two, making headway with difficulty through the human turmoil and the endless lines of vehicles, after visiting the slums of the metropolis, one realises for the first time that these Londoners have been forced to sacrifice the best qualities of their human nature, to bring to pass all the marvels of civilisation which crowd their city; that a hundred powers which slumbered within them have remained p. 24inactive, have been suppressed in order that a few might be developed more fully and multiply through union with those of others.  The very turmoil of the streets has something repulsive, something against which human nature rebels.  The hundreds of thousands of all classes and ranks crowding past each other, are they not all human beings with the same qualities and powers, and with the same interest in being happy?  And have they not, in the end, to seek happiness in the same way, by the same means?  And still they crowd by one another as though they had nothing in common, nothing to do with one another, and their only agreement is the tacit one, that each keep to his own side of the pavement, so as not to delay the opposing streams of the crowd, while it occurs to no man to honour another with so much as a glance.  The brutal indifference, the unfeeling isolation of each in his private interest becomes the more repellant and offensive, the more these individuals are crowded together, within a limited space.  And, however much one may be aware that this isolation of the individual, this narrow self-seeking is the fundamental principle of our society everywhere, it is nowhere so shamelessly barefaced, so self-conscious as just here in the crowding of the great city.  The dissolution of mankind into monads, of which each one has a separate principle, the world of atoms, is here carried out to its utmost extreme.

But the sacrifices that all of this has cost become clear over time. After wandering the streets of the capital for a day or two, struggling to make headway through the chaos and endless lines of cars, and after visiting the slums of the city, one realizes for the first time that these Londoners have been forced to give up the best parts of their humanity to enable all the wonders of civilization that fill their city; that countless potentials lying dormant within them have remained inactive, suppressed so that a few can be more fully developed and combined with others. The very chaos of the streets has something off-putting, something that goes against human nature. The hundreds of thousands from all walks of life jostling past each other—aren't they all human beings with the same qualities and desires, all seeking happiness? Don't they ultimately have to pursue happiness in the same way, using the same means? And still, they brush past one another as if they share nothing in common, nothing to do with each other, with their only unspoken agreement being to stick to their own side of the pavement to avoid slowing down the opposing streams of people, while no one even thinks to acknowledge another with so much as a glance. The harsh indifference and unfeeling isolation of each individual in their own personal interests becomes even more repulsive as these individuals are packed tightly together in a small space. And no matter how much one might recognize that this isolation of the individual and this narrow self-interest is the basic principle of our society everywhere, it is nowhere so shamelessly blatant, so self-aware, as in the crowding of the big city. The breaking down of humanity into isolated units, each with its own agenda, the world of atoms, is pushed to its extreme here.

Hence it comes, too, that the social war, the war of each against all, is here openly declared.  Just as in Stirner’s recent book, people regard each other only as useful objects; each exploits the other, and the end of it all is, that the stronger treads the weaker under foot, and that the powerful few, the capitalists, seize everything for themselves, while to the weak many, the poor, scarcely a bare existence remains.

Hence it follows that the social war, the conflict of everyone against everyone, is now openly declared. Just like in Stirner's recent book, people see each other only as useful objects; everyone takes advantage of the other, and in the end, the stronger tramples the weaker, while the powerful few, the capitalists, take everything for themselves, leaving the weak many, the poor, with barely a subsistence.

What is true of London, is true of Manchester, Birmingham, Leeds, is true of all great towns.  Everywhere barbarous indifference, hard egotism on one hand, and nameless misery on the other, everywhere social warfare, every man’s house in a state of siege, everywhere reciprocal plundering under the protection of the law, and all so shameless, so openly avowed that one shrinks p. 25before the consequences of our social state as they manifest themselves here undisguised, and can only wonder that the whole crazy fabric still hangs together.

What’s true for London is also true for Manchester, Birmingham, Leeds, and all major cities. Everywhere there’s brutal indifference and selfishness on one side, and unnamed suffering on the other. There’s social conflict everywhere; every man’s home feels like it’s under siege. There’s mutual exploitation happening with legal protection, and it’s all so blatant and acknowledged that one can only recoil at the visible consequences of our social condition and wonder how this chaotic system still holds together. p. 25

Since capital, the direct or indirect control of the means of subsistence and production, is the weapon with which this social warfare is carried on, it is clear that all the disadvantages of such a state must fall upon the poor.  For him no man has the slightest concern.  Cast into the whirlpool, he must struggle through as well as he can.  If he is so happy as to find work, i.e., if the bourgeoisie does him the favour to enrich itself by means of him, wages await him which scarcely suffice to keep body and soul together; if he can get no work he may steal, if he is not afraid of the police, or starve, in which case the police will take care that he does so in a quiet and inoffensive manner.  During my residence in England, at least twenty or thirty persons have died of simple starvation under the most revolting circumstances, and a jury has rarely been found possessed of the courage to speak the plain truth in the matter.  Let the testimony of the witnesses be never so clear and unequivocal, the bourgeoisie, from which the jury is selected, always finds some backdoor through which to escape the frightful verdict, death from starvation.  The bourgeoisie dare not speak the truth in these cases, for it would speak its own condemnation.  But indirectly, far more than directly, many have died of starvation, where long continued want of proper nourishment has called forth fatal illness, when it has produced such debility that causes which might otherwise have remained inoperative, brought on severe illness and death.  The English working-men call this “social murder,” and accuse our whole society of perpetrating this crime perpetually.  Are they wrong?

Since capital, the direct or indirect control of the means of subsistence and production, is the weapon used in this social conflict, it’s obvious that all the disadvantages of this situation fall on the poor. No one cares about him at all. Thrown into the chaos, he has to manage as best he can. If he’s lucky enough to find work, that is, if the bourgeoisie does him the favor of profiting off him, he’ll get wages that barely keep him alive; if he can’t find work, he might steal if he’s not afraid of the police, or he could starve, in which case the police will ensure he does so quietly and without causing trouble. During my time in England, at least twenty or thirty people have died from simple starvation under the most horrific conditions, and a jury has rarely shown the courage to state the obvious. Even if the witnesses' accounts are clear and straightforward, the bourgeoisie, from whom the jury is drawn, always finds a way to avoid the harsh truth of the verdict: death by starvation. The bourgeoisie can’t admit the truth in these cases, as it would condemn themselves. However, many have died from starvation indirectly, where prolonged lack of proper nourishment has led to fatal illnesses, causing such weakness that issues which might otherwise have remained dormant became severe health problems resulting in death. The English working-class refers to this as “social murder,” blaming our entire society for constantly committing this crime. Are they wrong?

True, it is only individuals who starve, but what security has the working-man that it may not be his turn to-morrow?  Who assures him employment, who vouches for it that, if for any reason or no reason his lord and master discharges him to-morrow, he can struggle along with those dependent upon him, until he may find some one else “to give him bread?”  Who guarantees that willingness to work shall suffice to obtain work, that uprightness, p. 26industry, thrift, and the rest of the virtues recommended by the bourgeoisie, are really his road to happiness?  No one.  He knows that he has something to-day, and that it does not depend upon himself whether he shall have something to-morrow.  He knows that every breeze that blows, every whim of his employer, every bad turn of trade may hurl him back into the fierce whirlpool from which he has temporarily saved himself, and in which it is hard and often impossible to keep his head above water.  He knows that, though he may have the means of living to-day, it is very uncertain whether he shall to-morrow.

Sure, people may only starve individually, but what security does the working man have that he won't be next? Who guarantees him a job? Who can promise that if his boss decides to let him go tomorrow, he can manage to support those who rely on him until he finds someone else to "give him bread?" Who ensures that simply wanting to work will actually lead to work, that being honest, hardworking, thrifty, and all the other virtues praised by the wealthy will truly lead him to happiness? No one. He knows he has something today, but whether he will have anything tomorrow is out of his control. He understands that every breeze that blows, every whim of his employer, and every downturn in the economy could toss him back into the daunting struggle from which he's temporarily escaped, where it’s tough—and often impossible—to keep his head above water. He realizes that although he can make a living today, it's highly uncertain whether he will be able to tomorrow.

Meanwhile, let us proceed to a more detailed investigation of the position, in which the social war has placed the non-possessing class.  Let us see what pay for his work society does give the working-man in the form of dwelling, clothing, food, what sort of subsistence it grants those who contribute most to the maintenance of society; and, first, let us consider the dwellings.

Meanwhile, let's take a closer look at the situation that the social war has created for the working class. Let's examine what compensation society provides to workers in terms of housing, clothing, and food, and what kind of support it offers to those who contribute the most to society's upkeep. First, let's focus on the housing.

Every great city has one or more slums, where the working-class is crowded together.  True, poverty often dwells in hidden alleys close to the palaces of the rich; but, in general, a separate territory has been assigned to it, where, removed from the sight of the happier classes, it may struggle along as it can.  These slums are pretty equally arranged in all the great towns of England, the worst houses in the worst quarters of the towns; usually one or two-storied cottages in long rows, perhaps with cellars used as dwellings, almost always irregularly built.  These houses of three or four rooms and a kitchen form, throughout England, some parts of London excepted, the general dwellings of the working-class.  The streets are generally unpaved, rough, dirty, filled with vegetable and animal refuse, without sewers or gutters, but supplied with foul, stagnant pools instead.  Moreover, ventilation is impeded by the bad, confused method of building of the whole quarter, and since many human beings here live crowded into a small space, the atmosphere that prevails in these working-men’s quarters may readily be imagined.  Further, the streets serve as drying grounds in fine weather; lines are stretched across from house to house, and hung with wet clothing.

Every major city has slums where the working class is crammed together. Sure, poverty often hides in narrow alleys next to the homes of the wealthy, but generally, there's a designated area for it, where it can try to survive out of sight of the more fortunate. These slums are fairly similar in all of England's large towns, with the worst housing in the most rundown neighborhoods; typically, they consist of one or two-story cottages arranged in long rows, sometimes with cellars serving as living spaces, and are almost always built in a haphazard manner. These homes, with three or four rooms and a kitchen, represent the common living conditions of the working class across England, except for certain parts of London. The streets are usually unpaved, rough, dirty, cluttered with vegetable and animal waste, lacking sewers or drains, and are instead filled with foul, stagnant puddles. Additionally, ventilation is hindered by the chaotic building style throughout the area, and since many people live in cramped conditions, it's easy to imagine the kind of atmosphere in these working-class neighborhoods. Furthermore, the streets act as drying areas in nice weather; lines are strung up between houses to hang wet clothes.

p. 27Let us investigate some of the slums in their order.  London comes first, and in London the famous rookery of St. Giles which is now, at last, about to be penetrated by a couple of broad streets.  St. Giles is in the midst of the most populous part of the town, surrounded by broad, splendid avenues in which the gay world of London idles about, in the immediate neighbourhood of Oxford Street, Regent Street, of Trafalgar Square and the Strand.  It is a disorderly collection of tall, three or four-storied houses, with narrow, crooked, filthy streets, in which there is quite as much life as in the great thoroughfares of the town, except that, here, people of the working-class only are to be seen.  A vegetable market is held in the street, baskets with vegetables and fruits, naturally all bad and hardly fit to use, obstruct the sidewalk still further, and from these, as well as from the fish-dealers’ stalls, arises a horrible smell.  The houses are occupied from cellar to garret, filthy within and without, and their appearance is such that no human being could possibly wish to live in them.  But all this is nothing in comparison with the dwellings in the narrow courts and alleys between the streets, entered by covered passages between the houses, in which the filth and tottering ruin surpass all description.  Scarcely a whole window-pane can be found, the walls are crumbling, door-posts and window-frames loose and broken, doors of old boards nailed together, or altogether wanting in this thieves’ quarter, where no doors are needed, there being nothing to steal.  Heaps of garbage and ashes lie in all directions, and the foul liquids emptied before the doors gather in stinking pools.  Here live the poorest of the poor, the worst paid workers with thieves and the victims of prostitution indiscriminately huddled together, the majority Irish, or of Irish extraction, and those who have not yet sunk in the whirlpool of moral ruin which surrounds them, sinking daily deeper, losing daily more and more of their power to resist the demoralising influence of want, filth, and evil surroundings.

p. 27Let's explore some of the slums in order. London is first, particularly the notorious rookeries of St. Giles, which are finally about to be accessed by a couple of wide streets. St. Giles is located in the busiest part of the city, surrounded by broad, beautiful avenues where the vibrant London social scene unfolds, close to Oxford Street, Regent Street, Trafalgar Square, and the Strand. It’s a chaotic mix of tall, three or four-story buildings, with narrow, winding, filthy streets that are just as lively as the main roads, except that only working-class people can be seen here. A vegetable market operates in the streets, with baskets of poor-quality vegetables and fruits cluttering the sidewalks, and the stalls from fish vendors contribute a terrible odor. The houses are occupied from the basement to the attic, dirty inside and out, and their appearance is such that no one would want to live in them. However, this is nothing compared to the homes in the narrow courts and alleys between the streets, accessible by covered passages between the buildings, where the squalor and crumbling decay are beyond description. Almost no windows are intact, the walls are falling apart, doorframes are loose and broken, and doors made from old boards are nailed together or entirely missing in this area where theft is irrelevant due to a lack of valuables. Piles of garbage and ashes are scattered everywhere, and the foul liquids dumped outside gather into stinking puddles. Here live the poorest of the poor, the underpaid workers mixed in with thieves and victims of prostitution, most of whom are Irish or of Irish descent. Those who haven’t yet succumbed to the moral decay around them are sinking deeper every day, losing their ability to resist the demoralizing effects of poverty, filth, and their harsh environment.

Nor is St. Giles the only London slum.  In the immense tangle of streets, there are hundreds and thousands of alleys and courts lined with houses too bad for anyone to live in, who can still spend p. 28anything whatsoever upon a dwelling fit for human beings.  Close to the splendid houses of the rich such a lurking-place of the bitterest poverty may often be found.  So, a short time ago, on the occasion of a coroner’s inquest, a region close to Portman Square, one of the very respectable squares, was characterised as an abode “of a multitude of Irish demoralised by poverty and filth.”  So, too, may be found in streets, such as Long Acre and others, which, though not fashionable, are yet “respectable,” a great number of cellar dwellings out of which puny children and half-starved, ragged women emerge into the light of day.  In the immediate neighbourhood of Drury Lane Theatre, the second in London, are some of the worst streets of the whole metropolis, Charles, King, and Park Streets, in which the houses are inhabited from cellar to garret exclusively by poor families.  In the parishes of St. John and St. Margaret there lived in 1840, according to the Journal of the Statistical Society, 5,366 working-men’s families in 5,294 “dwellings” (if they deserve the name!), men, women, and children thrown together without distinction of age or sex, 26,830 persons all told; and of these families three-fourths possessed but one room.  In the aristocratic parish of St. George, Hanover Square, there lived, according to the same authority, 1,465 working-men’s families, nearly 6,000 persons, under similar conditions, and here, too, more than two-thirds of the whole number crowded together at the rate of one family in one room.  And how the poverty of these unfortunates, among whom even thieves find nothing to steal, is exploited by the property-holding class in lawful ways!  The abominable dwellings in Drury Lane, just mentioned, bring in the following rents: two cellar dwellings, 3s.; one room, ground-floor, 4s.; second-storey, 4s. 6d.; third-floor, 4s.; garret-room, 3s. weekly, so that the starving occupants of Charles Street alone, pay the house-owners a yearly tribute of £2,000, and the 5,336 families above mentioned in Westminster, a yearly rent of £40,000.

St. Giles isn't the only slum in London. In the vast maze of streets, there are countless alleys and courts filled with houses that are unlivable for anyone who can afford even a modest place for themselves. Close to the opulent homes of the wealthy, you can often find areas where the deepest poverty thrives. Recently, during a coroner’s inquest, a neighborhood near Portman Square, one of the more respectable squares, was described as a home "to a multitude of Irish people struggling with poverty and filth." Similarly, in streets like Long Acre and others that, while not trendy, are still considered "respectable," there are many basement homes where frail children and half-starved, ragged women come out into the daylight. Near Drury Lane Theatre, London's second-largest theater, you can find some of the worst streets in the whole city — Charles, King, and Park Streets — inhabited entirely by poor families from the basement to the attic. According to the *Journal of the Statistical Society*, in 1840, there were 5,366 working-class families living in 5,294 "dwellings" (if you can call them that!) in the parishes of St. John and St. Margaret, with men, women, and children mixed together without regard to age or gender, totaling 26,830 people; of these families, three-quarters lived in just one room. In the wealthy parish of St. George, Hanover Square, the same source reports that 1,465 working-class families, nearly 6,000 people, lived under similar conditions, with more than two-thirds of them crammed into one room per family. And how the poverty of these unfortunate souls, among whom even thieves find nothing to steal, is exploited by property owners in legal ways! The awful homes on Drury Lane mentioned earlier generate the following rents: two basement units for 3 shillings; a ground-floor room for 4 shillings; a second-floor room for 4 shillings and 6 pence; a third-floor room for 4 shillings; and an attic room for 3 shillings weekly. This means that the starving tenants of Charles Street alone pay the landlords a total of £2,000 a year, and the 5,336 families noted above in Westminster contribute a yearly rent of £40,000.

The most extensive working-people’s district lies east of the Tower in Whitechapel and Bethnal Green, where the greatest masses of London working-people live.  Let us hear Mr. G. Alston, p. 29preacher of St. Philip’s, Bethnal Green, on the condition of his parish.  He says:

The largest working-class neighborhood is located east of the Tower in Whitechapel and Bethnal Green, where the biggest population of workers in London resides. Let's hear from Mr. G. Alston, p. 29the preacher at St. Philip’s in Bethnal Green, about the situation in his parish. He says:

“It contains 1,400 houses, inhabited by 2,795 families, or about 12,000 persons.  The space upon which this large population dwells, is less than 400 yards (1,200 feet) square, and in this overcrowding it is nothing unusual to find a man, his wife, four or five children, and, sometimes, both grandparents, all in one single room, where they eat, sleep, and work.  I believe that before the Bishop of London called attention to this most poverty-stricken parish, people at the West End knew as little of it as of the savages of Australia or the South Sea Isles.  And if we make ourselves acquainted with these unfortunates, through personal observation, if we watch them at their scanty meal and see them bowed by illness and want of work, we shall find such a mass of helplessness and misery, that a nation like ours must blush that these things can be possible.  I was rector near Huddersfield during the three years in which the mills were at their worst, but I have never seen such complete helplessness of the poor as since then in Bethnal Green.  Not one father of a family in ten in the whole neighbourhood has other clothing than his working suit, and that is as bad and tattered as possible; many, indeed, have no other covering for the night than these rags, and no bed, save a sack of straw and shavings.”

“It has 1,400 houses, home to 2,795 families, which is about 12,000 people. The area where this large population lives is less than 400 yards (1,200 feet) square, and it’s common to find a man, his wife, four or five kids, and sometimes both grandparents all in one room, where they eat, sleep, and work. Before the Bishop of London called attention to this extremely poor parish, people in the West End knew as little about it as they did about the indigenous people of Australia or the South Sea Islands. If we take the time to learn about these unfortunate individuals through personal observation, watching them during their meager meals and seeing them burdened by illness and unemployment, we will confront such a level of helplessness and suffering that a nation like ours should feel ashamed that these conditions exist. I was the rector near Huddersfield during the three years when the mills were at their worst, but I have never seen such complete helplessness among the poor as I have since then in Bethnal Green. Not one in ten fathers in the entire neighborhood has anything to wear other than his work clothes, which are as worn and tattered as possible; many indeed have no other covering at night than these rags, and no bed except a sack of straw and shavings.”

The foregoing description furnishes an idea of the aspect of the interior of the dwellings.  But let us follow the English officials, who occasionally stray thither, into one or two of these working-men’s homes.

The previous description gives an idea of what the inside of the houses looks like. But let's accompany the English officials, who sometimes wander over there, into one or two of these working-class homes.

On the occasion of an inquest held Nov. 14th, 1843, by Mr. Carter, coroner for Surrey, upon the body of Ann Galway, aged 45 years, the newspapers related the following particulars concerning the deceased: She had lived at No. 3 White Lion Court, Bermondsey Street, London, with her husband and a nineteen-year-old son in a little room, in which neither a bedstead nor any other furniture was to be seen.  She lay dead beside her son upon a heap of feathers which were scattered over her almost naked body, there being neither sheet nor coverlet.  The feathers stuck so fast over the whole body that the physician could not examine the corpse until it was cleansed, and then found it starved and p. 30scarred from the bites of vermin.  Part of the floor of the room was torn up, and the hole used by the family as a privy.

On November 14th, 1843, during an inquest led by Mr. Carter, the coroner for Surrey, into the death of Ann Galway, who was 45 years old, the newspapers reported the following details about her: She lived with her husband and their 19-year-old son at No. 3 White Lion Court, Bermondsey Street, London, in a small room that had no bed or any other furniture. She was found dead next to her son on a pile of feathers scattered over her nearly naked body, with no sheets or blankets. The feathers were so embedded on her body that the doctor couldn't examine her until it was cleaned, and when he did, he discovered she had starved and had scars from insect bites. Part of the room's floor had been torn up and was used by the family as a toilet.p. 30

On Monday, Jan. 15th, 1844, two boys were brought before the police magistrate because, being in a starving condition, they had stolen and immediately devoured a half-cooked calf’s foot from a shop.  The magistrate felt called upon to investigate the case further, and received the following details from the policeman: The mother of the two boys was the widow of an ex-soldier, afterwards policeman, and had had a very hard time since the death of her husband, to provide for her nine children.  She lived at No. 2 Pool’s Place, Quaker Court, Spitalfields, in the utmost poverty.  When the policeman came to her, he found her with six of her children literally huddled together in a little back room, with no furniture but two old rush-bottomed chairs with the seats gone, a small table with two legs broken, a broken cup, and a small dish.  On the hearth was scarcely a spark of fire, and in one corner lay as many old rags as would fill a woman’s apron, which served the whole family as a bed.  For bed clothing they had only their scanty day clothing.  The poor woman told him that she had been forced to sell her bedstead the year before to buy food.  Her bedding she had pawned with the victualler for food.  In short, everything had gone for food.  The magistrate ordered the woman a considerable provision from the poor-box.

On Monday, January 15, 1844, two boys were brought before the police magistrate because, in a desperate state of hunger, they had stolen and quickly eaten a half-cooked calf's foot from a shop. The magistrate felt it was necessary to look into the case further and received the following information from the policeman: The boys' mother was the widow of a former soldier who later became a policeman, and since her husband's death, she had struggled greatly to provide for her nine children. She lived at No. 2 Pool’s Place, Quaker Court, Spitalfields, in extreme poverty. When the policeman visited her, he found her with six of her children crammed together in a small back room, with only two old rush-bottom chairs without seats, a small table with two broken legs, a damaged cup, and a small dish. There was barely a spark of fire on the hearth, and in one corner lay enough old rags to fill a woman's apron, which served as a bed for the whole family. They only had their meager daytime clothes for bedding. The poor woman told him that she had been forced to sell her bed frame the year before to buy food. She had pawned her bedding for meals with the local shopkeeper. In short, everything had been traded for food. The magistrate ordered a substantial amount of assistance from the poor-box for the woman.

In February, 1844, Theresa Bishop, a widow 60 years old, was recommended, with her sick daughter, aged 26, to the compassion of the police magistrate in Marlborough Street.  She lived at No. 5 Brown Street, Grosvenor Square, in a small back room no larger than a closet, in which there was not one single piece of furniture.  In one corner lay some rags upon which both slept; a chest served as table and chair.  The mother earned a little by charring.  The owner of the house said that they had lived in this way since May, 1843, had gradually sold or pawned everything that they had, and had still never paid any rent.  The magistrate assigned them £1 from the poor-box.

In February 1844, Theresa Bishop, a 60-year-old widow, was referred, along with her sick 26-year-old daughter, to the mercy of the police magistrate in Marlborough Street. They lived at No. 5 Brown Street, Grosvenor Square, in a small back room no bigger than a closet, which had no furniture at all. In one corner were some rags where they both slept; a chest served as both a table and a chair. The mother made a little money by doing cleaning jobs. The owner of the house stated that they had been living this way since May 1843, had gradually sold or pawned everything they owned, and still hadn’t paid any rent. The magistrate allocated them £1 from the poor-box.

I am far from asserting that all London working-people live in such want as the foregoing three families.  I know very well that p. 31ten are somewhat better off, where one is so totally trodden under foot by society; but I assert that thousands of industrious and worthy people—far worthier and more to be respected than all the rich of London—do find themselves in a condition unworthy of human beings; and that every proletarian, everyone, without exception, is exposed to a similar fate without any fault of his own and in spite of every possible effort.

I’m not saying that all working-class people in London live in the same poverty as the three families mentioned. I know that some are doing a little better, while others are completely crushed by society. However, I maintain that thousands of hardworking and deserving individuals—much more deserving and respectable than all the wealthy people in London—find themselves in conditions that are not suitable for human beings. Moreover, every working-class person, without exception, is at risk of facing a similar situation through no fault of their own, despite all their efforts.

But in spite of all this, they who have some kind of a shelter are fortunate, fortunate in comparison with the utterly homeless.  In London fifty thousand human beings get up every morning, not knowing where they are to lay their heads at night.  The luckiest of this multitude, those who succeed in keeping a penny or two until evening, enter a lodging-house, such as abound in every great city, where they find a bed.  But what a bed!  These houses are filled with beds from cellar to garret, four, five, six beds in a room; as many as can be crowded in.  Into every bed four, five, or six human beings are piled, as many as can be packed in, sick and well, young and old, drunk and sober, men and women, just as they come, indiscriminately.  Then come strife, blows, wounds, or, if these bedfellows agree, so much the worse; thefts are arranged and things done which our language, grown more humane than our deeds, refuses to record.  And those who cannot pay for such a refuge?  They sleep where they find a place, in passages, arcades, in corners where the police and the owners leave them undisturbed.  A few individuals find their way to the refuges which are managed, here and there, by private charity, others sleep on the benches in the parks close under the windows of Queen Victoria.  Let us hear the London Times:

But despite everything, those who have some sort of shelter are lucky, especially compared to the completely homeless. In London, fifty thousand people wake up every morning not knowing where they will sleep that night. The luckiest among them, those who manage to hold onto a penny or two until evening, go into a boarding house, which are plentiful in every big city, where they can find a bed. But what a bed! These houses are packed with beds from the basement to the top floor, with four, five, or six beds in a room; as many as can fit. Each bed holds four, five, or six people crammed together, sick and healthy, young and old, drunk and sober, men and women, all thrown together without distinction. This leads to fighting, injuries, or, if the roommates get along, even worse; stealing and things done that our more civilized language won’t even mention. And what about those who can’t pay for such a place? They sleep wherever they can find space, in hallways, arcades, or in corners where the police and property owners leave them alone. A few people find their way to the shelters run by private charity, while others sleep on benches in parks right under the windows of Queen Victoria. Let's hear from the London Times:

“It appears from the report of the proceedings at Marlborough Street Police Court in our columns of yesterday, that there is an average number of 50 human beings of all ages, who huddle together in the parks every night, having no other shelter than what is supplied by the trees and a few hollows of the embankment.  Of these, the majority are young girls who have been seduced from the country by the soldiers and turned loose on the world in all the destitution of friendless penury, and all the recklessness of early vice.

“According to the report from the proceedings at Marlborough Street Police Court we published yesterday, around 50 people of all ages gather in the parks every night, with no shelter except for trees and a few hollows in the embankment. Most of these individuals are young girls who have been lured from the countryside by soldiers and left to navigate the world in total poverty and the reckless lifestyle of early vice."

p. 32“This is truly horrible!  Poor there must be everywhere.  Indigence will find its way and set up its hideous state in the heart of a great and luxurious city.  Amid the thousand narrow lanes and by-streets of a populous metropolis there must always, we fear, be much suffering—much that offends the eye—much that lurks unseen.

p. 32“This is just terrible! Poor people must be everywhere. Poverty finds a way to show its ugly face in the heart of a wealthy city. Among the countless narrow streets and alleys of a bustling city, there will always be suffering—much of it hard to see—much that hides away from view.

“But that within the precincts of wealth, gaiety, and fashion, nigh the regal grandeur of St. James, close on the palatial splendour of Bayswater, on the confines of the old and new aristocratic quarters, in a district where the cautious refinement of modern design has refrained from creating one single tenement for poverty; which seems, as it were, dedicated to the exclusive enjoyment of wealth, that there want, and famine, and disease, and vice should stalk in all their kindred horrors, consuming body by body, soul, by soul!

“But within the wealthy, joyful, and fashionable areas, near the regal grandeur of St. James, close to the luxury of Bayswater, at the borders of both old and new aristocratic neighborhoods, in a place where the careful elegance of modern architecture has avoided building even a single home for the poor; which seems, in a way, dedicated entirely to the enjoyment of the rich, it's there that want, starvation, disease, and vice should roam with all their associated horrors, consuming one body at a time, one soul at a time!

“It is indeed a monstrous state of things!  Enjoyment the most absolute, that bodily ease, intellectual excitement, or the more innocent pleasures of sense can supply to man’s craving, brought in close contact with the most unmitigated misery!  Wealth, from its bright saloons, laughing—an insolently heedless laugh—at the unknown wounds of want!  Pleasure, cruelly but unconsciously mocking the pain that moans below!  All contrary things mocking one another—all contrary, save the vice which tempts and the vice which is tempted!

“It’s really a horrifying situation! The pure enjoyment that physical comfort, intellectual stimulation, or the more innocent pleasures can provide exists right alongside the most extreme misery! Wealth, from its lavish rooms, laughs—a callously indifferent laugh—at the hidden wounds of poverty! Pleasure, cruel yet unaware, mocks the suffering that groans beneath! All opposing forces ridiculing each other—all in conflict, except for the temptation of vice and the vice that is tempted!”

“But let all men remember this—that within the most courtly precincts of the richest city of God’s earth, there may be found, night after night, winter after winter, women—young in years—old in sin and suffering—outcasts from society—rotting from famine, filth, and disease.  Let them remember this, and learn not to theorise but to act.  God knows, there is much room for action nowadays.” {32}

“But let everyone remember this—that within the most elegant areas of the wealthiest city on Earth, there are women—young in age—old in sin and suffering—outcasts from society—rotting from hunger, filth, and disease. Let them remember this, and learn not to just theorize but to take action. God knows, there is plenty of room for action these days.” {32}

I have referred to the refuges for the homeless.  How greatly overcrowded these are, two examples may show.  A newly erected Refuge for the Houseless in Upper Ogle Street, that can shelter three hundred persons every night, has received since its opening, January 27th to March 17th, 1844, 2,740 persons for one or more nights; and, although the season was growing more favourable, the number of applicants in this, as well as in the asylums of Whitecross Street and Wapping, was strongly on the increase, p. 33and a crowd of the homeless had to be sent away every night for want of room.  In another refuge, the Central Asylum in Playhouse Yard, there were supplied on an average 460 beds nightly, during the first three months of the year 1844, 6,681 persons being sheltered, and 96,141 portions of bread were distributed.  Yet the committee of directors declare this institution began to meet the pressure of the needy to a limited extent only when the Eastern Asylum also was opened.

I have mentioned the shelters for the homeless. Just how overcrowded they are can be illustrated by two examples. A newly built shelter for the homeless on Upper Ogle Street, which can accommodate three hundred people each night, has taken in 2,740 individuals for one or more nights from its opening on January 27th to March 17th, 1844; and although the weather was getting better, the number of applicants at this shelter, as well as at the Whitecross Street and Wapping asylums, was definitely increasing, and a crowd of homeless individuals had to be turned away each night due to lack of space. In another shelter, the Central Asylum on Playhouse Yard, an average of 460 beds were provided each night during the first three months of 1844, with 6,681 individuals being sheltered, and 96,141 servings of bread were distributed. Yet the board of directors state that this institution only began to cope with the needs of the underprivileged to a limited extent when the Eastern Asylum was also opened.

Let us leave London and examine the other great cities of the three kingdoms in their order.  Let us take Dublin first, a city the approach to which from the sea is as charming as that of London is imposing.  The Bay of Dublin is the most beautiful of the whole British Island Kingdom, and is even compared by the Irish with the Bay of Naples.  The city, too, possesses great attractions, and its aristocratic districts are better and more tastefully laid out than those of any other British city.  By way of compensation, however, the poorer districts of Dublin are among the most hideous and repulsive to be seen in the world.  True, the Irish character, which, under some circumstances, is comfortable only in the dirt, has some share in this; but as we find thousands of Irish in every great city in England and Scotland, and as every poor population must gradually sink into the same uncleanliness, the wretchedness of Dublin is nothing specific, nothing peculiar to Dublin, but something common to all great towns.  The poor quarters of Dublin are extremely extensive, and the filth, the uninhabitableness of the houses and the neglect of the streets, surpass all description.  Some idea of the manner in which the poor are here crowded together may be formed from the fact that, in 1817, according to the report of the Inspector of Workhouses, {33} 1,318 persons lived in 52 houses with 390 rooms in Barral Street, and 1,997 persons in 71 houses with 393 rooms in and near Church Street; that:

Let’s leave London and check out the other major cities in the three kingdoms, starting with Dublin. The journey to Dublin from the sea is as delightful as the view of London is grand. Dublin Bay is the most beautiful in the entire British Isles and is even compared by the Irish to the Bay of Naples. The city has plenty to offer, and its upscale neighborhoods are better organized and more tastefully designed than those in any other British city. However, on the flip side, the poorer areas of Dublin are some of the ugliest and most unpleasant in the world. It's true that the Irish character, which can sometimes find comfort in messiness, plays a role in this; but considering the thousands of Irish living in every major city in England and Scotland, and given that every impoverished community tends to fall into similar levels of squalor, the misery in Dublin isn’t unique to the city—it's a common issue in all large towns. The impoverished neighborhoods in Dublin are incredibly widespread, and the filth, the unlivable conditions of the houses, and the poorly maintained streets are beyond description. To give you an idea of how cramped the poor are here, a 1817 report from the Workhouse Inspector noted that 1,318 people lived in 52 houses with 390 rooms on Barral Street, and 1,997 people lived in 71 houses with 393 rooms in and around Church Street; that:

p. 34“In this and the adjoining district there exists a multitude of foul courts and alleys; many cellars receive all their light through the door, while in not a few the inhabitants sleep upon the bare floor, though most of them possess bedsteads at least; Nicholson’s Court, for example, contains twenty-eight wretched little rooms with 151 human beings in the greatest want, there being but two bedsteads and two blankets to be found in the whole court.”

p. 34“In this area and the nearby neighborhoods, there are many dirty courts and alleys; a lot of cellars only get light from the door, and in several of them, the residents sleep on the bare floor, although most at least have bed frames. For example, Nicholson’s Court has twenty-eight small, miserable rooms housing 151 people in urgent need, and there are only two bed frames and two blankets available in the entire court.”

The poverty is so great in Dublin, that a single benevolent institution, the Mendicity Association, gives relief to 2,500 persons or one per cent. of the population daily, receiving and feeding them for the day and dismissing them at night.

The poverty in Dublin is so severe that a single charitable organization, the Mendicity Association, provides assistance to 2,500 people, or one percent of the population, every day, taking them in and giving them meals for the day before sending them away at night.

Dr. Alison describes a similar state of things in Edinburgh, whose superb situation, which has won it the title of the Modern Athens, and whose brilliant aristocratic quarter in the New Town, contrast strongly with the foul wretchedness of the poor in the Old Town.  Alison asserts that this extensive quarter is as filthy and horrible as the worst district of Dublin, while the Mendicity Association would have as great a proportion of needy persons to assist in Edinburgh as in the Irish capital.  He asserts, indeed, that the poor in Scotland, especially in Edinburgh and Glasgow, are worse off than in any other region of the three kingdoms, and that the poorest are not Irish, but Scotch.  The preacher of the Old Church of Edinburgh, Dr. Lee, testified in 1836, before the Commission of Religious Instruction, that:

Dr. Alison talks about similar issues in Edinburgh, which is beautifully located and often called the Modern Athens. The stunning aristocratic area of the New Town sharply contrasts with the terrible conditions faced by the poor in the Old Town. Alison claims that this large area is just as dirty and dreadful as the worst parts of Dublin, and the Mendicity Association would find just as many people in need in Edinburgh as in the Irish capital. He emphasizes that the poor in Scotland, especially in Edinburgh and Glasgow, are worse off than anywhere else in the three kingdoms, and that the most impoverished aren't Irish, but Scottish. The preacher of the Old Church of Edinburgh, Dr. Lee, testified in 1836 before the Commission of Religious Instruction that:

“He had never before seen such misery as in his parish, where the people were without furniture, without everything, two married couples often sharing one room.  In a single day he had visited seven houses in which there was not a bed, in some of them not even a heap of straw.  Old people of eighty years sleep on the board floor, nearly all slept in their day-clothes.  In one cellar room he found two families from a Scotch country district; soon after their removal to the city two of the children had died, and a third was dying at the time of his visit.  Each family had a filthy pile of straw lying in a corner; the cellar sheltered besides the two families a donkey, and was, moreover, so dark that it was impossible to distinguish one person from another by day.  Dr. Lee declared that it was enough to make a heart of adamant bleed to see such misery in a country like Scotland.”

“He had never witnessed such suffering in his parish, where people had no furniture at all and often two married couples shared a single room. In just one day, he visited seven homes that didn’t have a bed; in some, there wasn’t even a pile of straw. Elderly individuals in their eighties were sleeping on the bare floor, and nearly all of them were still in their daytime clothes. In one cellar, he found two families from a rural area in Scotland; soon after moving to the city, two of their children had died, and a third was dying during his visit. Each family had a dirty pile of straw in a corner, and the cellar also had a donkey, making it so dark that it was impossible to distinguish one person from another even during the day. Dr. Lee said it was enough to make even the hardest heart ache to see such misery in a country like Scotland.”

p. 35In the Edinburgh Medical and Surgical Journal, Dr. Hennan reports a similar state of things.  From a Parliamentary Report, {35a} it is evident that in the dwellings of the poor of Edinburgh a want of cleanliness reigns, such as must be expected under these conditions.  On the bed-posts chickens roost at night, dogs and horses share the dwellings of human beings, and the natural consequence is a shocking stench, with filth and swarms of vermin.  The prevailing construction of Edinburgh favours these atrocious conditions as far as possible.  The Old Town is built upon both slopes of a hill, along the crest of which runs the High Street.  Out of the High Street there open downwards multitudes of narrow, crooked alleys, called wynds from their many turnings, and these wynds form the proletarian district of the city.  The houses of the Scotch cities, in general, are five or six-storied buildings, like those of Paris, and in contrast with England where, so far as possible, each family has a separate house.  The crowding of human beings upon a limited area is thus intensified. {35b}

p. 35In the Edinburgh Medical and Surgical Journal, Dr. Hennan shares similar findings. From a Parliamentary Report, {35a} it's clear that the homes of the poor in Edinburgh are extremely dirty, which is to be expected given these conditions. Chickens roost on bedposts at night, dogs and horses share living spaces with people, and the result is a terrible stench, along with filth and swarms of pests. The layout of Edinburgh contributes to these dreadful conditions as much as possible. The Old Town is built on both sides of a hill, with the High Street running along the top. Numerous narrow, winding alleys, called wynds because of their many turns, run down from the High Street, forming the working-class area of the city. In general, the houses in Scottish cities are five or six stories tall, similar to those in Paris, whereas in England, families typically have their own separate houses. This intensifies the overcrowding of people in a limited space. {35b}

“These streets,” says an English journal in an article upon the sanitary condition of the working-people in cities, “are often so narrow that a person can step from the window of one house into that of its opposite neighbour, while the houses are piled so high, storey upon storey, that the light can scarcely penetrate into the court or alley that lies between.  In this part of the city there are neither sewers nor other drains, nor even privies belonging to the houses.  In consequence, all refuse, garbage, and excrements of at least 50,000 persons are thrown into the gutters every night, so that, in spite of all street sweeping, a mass of dried filth and foul vapours are created, which not only offend the sight and smell, but endanger the health of the inhabitants in the highest degree.  Is it to be wondered at, that in such localities all considerations of health, morals, and even the most ordinary decency are utterly neglected?  On the contrary, all who are more intimately acquainted with the condition of the inhabitants will testify to the high degree which disease, wretchedness, and demoralisation p. 36have here reached.  Society in such districts has sunk to a level indescribably low and hopeless.  The houses of the poor are generally filthy, and are evidently never cleansed.  They consist in most cases of a single room which, while subject to the worst ventilation, is yet usually kept cold by the broken and badly fitting windows, and is sometimes damp and partly below ground level, always badly furnished and thoroughly uncomfortable, a straw-heap often serving the whole family for a bed, upon which men and women, young and old, sleep in revolting confusion.  Water can be had only from the public pumps, and the difficulty of obtaining it naturally fosters all possible filth.”

“These streets,” an English magazine reports in an article about the living conditions of city workers, “are often so narrow that someone can step from the window of one house into the window of the house across the street. The buildings are stacked so high, one on top of the other, that light barely reaches the courtyard or alley between them. In this part of the city, there are no sewers or drains, nor even toilets for the houses. As a result, all the waste, garbage, and human waste from at least 50,000 people is thrown into the gutters every night, creating a buildup of dried filth and awful odors that not only offend the senses but also pose a serious health risk to the residents. Is it any wonder that in such areas, health, morality, and even basic decency are completely ignored? On the contrary, those who understand the living conditions of the people will confirm the extremely high levels of disease, poverty, and moral decline that have taken hold. Society in these neighborhoods has sunk to an indescribably low and desperate state. The homes of the poor are generally filthy and clearly never cleaned. They usually consist of a single room, are poorly ventilated, often kept cold by broken and ill-fitting windows, and sometimes damp and partially below ground level. They are always poorly furnished and thoroughly uncomfortable, with a pile of straw often serving as the entire family’s bed, where men and women, young and old, sleep in disgusting disorder. Water can only be obtained from public pumps, and the difficulty of accessing it naturally contributes to all kinds of filth.”

In the other great seaport towns the prospect is no better.  Liverpool, with all its commerce, wealth, and grandeur yet treats its workers with the same barbarity.  A full fifth of the population, more than 45,000 human beings, live in narrow, dark, damp, badly-ventilated cellar dwellings, of which there are 7,862 in the city.  Besides these cellar dwellings there are 2,270 courts, small spaces built up on all four sides and having but one entrance, a narrow, covered passage-way, the whole ordinarily very dirty and inhabited exclusively by proletarians.  Of such courts we shall have more to say when we come to Manchester.  In Bristol, on one occasion, 2,800 families were visited, of whom 46 per cent. occupied but one room each.

In the other major seaport cities, the situation isn’t any better. Liverpool, despite its commerce, wealth, and grandeur, still treats its workers with the same cruelty. A full fifth of the population, over 45,000 people, live in narrow, dark, damp, poorly-ventilated cellar homes, of which there are 7,862 in the city. In addition to these cellar homes, there are 2,270 courts—small areas enclosed on all four sides with only one entrance, a narrow, covered passageway; these areas are usually very dirty and inhabited solely by working-class families. We’ll discuss more about these courts when we get to Manchester. In Bristol, during one visit, 2,800 families were surveyed, and 46 percent of them lived in just one room each.

Precisely the same state of things prevails in the factory towns.  In Nottingham there are in all 11,000 houses, of which between 7,000 and 8,000 are built back to back with a rear parti-wall so that no through ventilation is possible, while a single privy usually serves for several houses.  During an investigation made a short time since, many rows of houses were found to have been built over shallow drains covered only by the boards of the ground floor.  In Leicester, Derby, and Sheffield, it is no better.  Of Birmingham, the article above cited from the Artisan states:

The same situation exists in the factory towns. In Nottingham, there are a total of 11,000 houses, with between 7,000 and 8,000 built back to back with a shared wall, making proper ventilation impossible. Usually, a single toilet serves several houses. In a recent investigation, many rows of houses were found to be built over shallow drains that were only covered by the floorboards. It’s just as bad in Leicester, Derby, and Sheffield. Regarding Birmingham, the previously mentioned article from the Artisan states:

“In the older quarters of the city there are many bad districts, filthy and neglected, full of stagnant pools and heaps of refuse.  Courts are very numerous in Birmingham, reaching two thousand, and containing the greater number of the working-people of the city.  These courts are usually narrow, muddy, badly ventilated, p. 37ill-drained, and lined with eight to twenty houses, which, by reason of having their rear walls in common, can usually be ventilated from one side only.  In the background, within the court, there is usually an ash heap or something of the kind, the filth of which cannot be described.  It must, however, be observed that the newer courts are more sensibly built and more decently kept, and that even in the old ones, the cottages are much less crowded than in Manchester and Liverpool, wherefore Birmingham shows even during the reign of an epidemic a far smaller mortality than, for instance, Wolverhampton, Dudley, and Bilston, only a few miles distant.  Cellar dwellings are unknown, too, in Birmingham, though a few cellars are misused as workrooms.  The lodging-houses for proletarians are rather numerous (over four hundred), chiefly in courts in the heart of the town.  They are nearly all disgustingly filthy and ill-smelling, the refuge of beggars, thieves, tramps, and prostitutes, who eat, drink, smoke, and sleep here without the slightest regard to comfort or decency in an atmosphere endurable to these degraded beings only.”

"In the older parts of the city, there are many poor neighborhoods that are dirty and neglected, filled with stagnant water and heaps of garbage. Birmingham has a lot of courts, about two thousand, which house most of the city's working-class people. These courts are usually narrow, muddy, poorly ventilated, poorly drained, and lined with eight to twenty houses that share their back walls, meaning they're only ventilated from one side. Typically, at the back of the court, there's a trash pile or something similar, the filth of which is hard to describe. However, it's worth mentioning that newer courts are built more sensibly and are kept in better condition, and even in the old ones, the cottages are less crowded than those in Manchester and Liverpool. As a result, Birmingham has a much lower mortality rate during epidemics compared to nearby places like Wolverhampton, Dudley, and Bilston. Also, cellar dwellings are not found in Birmingham, although some cellars are misused as workspaces. There are quite a few lodging houses for the working class (over four hundred), mainly located in courts in the city's center. Most of these places are filthy and have a terrible smell, serving as shelters for beggars, thieves, tramps, and prostitutes, who eat, drink, smoke, and sleep there with no regard for comfort or decency, in an atmosphere that only these downtrodden individuals can tolerate."

Glasgow is in many respects similar to Edinburgh, possessing the same wynds, the same tall houses.  Of this city the Artisan observes:

Glasgow is, in many ways, similar to Edinburgh, with the same winding streets and tall buildings. Of this city, the Artisan notes:

“The working-class forms here some 78% of the whole population (about 300,000), and lives in parts of the city which exceed in wretchedness and squalor the lowest nooks of St. Giles and Whitechapel, the Liberties of Dublin, the Wynds of Edinburgh.  There are numbers of such localities in the heart of the city, south of the Trongate, westward from the Saltmarket, in Calton and off the High Street, endless labyrinths of lanes or wynds into which open at almost every step, courts or blind alleys, formed by ill-ventilated, high-piled, waterless, and dilapidated houses.  These are literally swarming with inhabitants.  They contain three or four families upon each floor, perhaps twenty persons.  In some cases each storey is let out in sleeping places, so that fifteen to twenty persons are packed, one on top of the other, I cannot say accommodated, in a single room.  These districts shelter the poorest, most depraved, and worthless members of the community, and may be regarded as the sources of those frightful epidemics which, beginning here, spread desolation over Glasgow.”

The working class makes up about 78% of the total population (around 300,000) and lives in parts of the city that are even worse than the toughest areas of St. Giles and Whitechapel, the Liberties of Dublin, and the Wynds of Edinburgh. There are many such areas in the city's heart, south of the Trongate, west of the Saltmarket, in Calton, and off the High Street, filled with a confusing network of lanes and alleys that lead to numerous courtyards or dead-end streets, all lined with poorly ventilated, overcrowded, and crumbling buildings. These neighborhoods are literally packed with people. Each floor often has three or four families, totaling around twenty individuals. In some cases, each story is divided into sleeping areas, cramming fifteen to twenty people into a single room. These neighborhoods are home to the poorest, most troubled, and least productive members of society and can be seen as the breeding grounds for terrible epidemics that start here and spread devastation throughout Glasgow.

Let us hear how J. C. Symonds, Government Commissioner for p. 38the investigation of the condition of the hand-weavers, describes these portions of the city: {38}

Let’s listen to how J. C. Symonds, the Government Commissioner for p. 38the investigation into the state of hand-weavers, describes these areas of the city: {38}

“I have seen wretchedness in some of its worse phases both here and upon the Continent, but until I visited the wynds of Glasgow I did not believe that so much crime, misery, and disease could exist in any civilised country.  In the lower lodging-houses ten, twelve, sometimes twenty persons of both sexes, all ages and various degrees of nakedness, sleep indiscriminately huddled together upon the floor.  These dwellings are usually so damp, filthy, and ruinous, that no one could wish to keep his horse in one of them.”

“I have seen extreme suffering in some of its worst forms both here and on the Continent, but until I visited the alleys of Glasgow, I didn't think that so much crime, misery, and disease could exist in any civilized country. In the cheaper lodging houses, ten, twelve, sometimes even twenty people of all ages and genders sleep piled together on the floor, regardless of how they are dressed. These places are usually so damp, dirty, and run-down that no one would want to keep a horse in one of them.”

And in another place:

And elsewhere:

“The wynds of Glasgow contain a fluctuating population of fifteen to thirty thousand human beings.  This quarter consists wholly of narrow alleys and square courts, in the middle of every one of which there lies a dung heap.  Revolting as was the outward appearance of these courts, I was yet not prepared for the filth and wretchedness within.  In some of the sleeping-places which we visited at night (the Superintendent of Police, Captain Miller, and Symonds) we found a complete layer of human beings stretched upon the floor, often fifteen to twenty, some clad, others naked, men and women indiscriminately.  Their bed was a litter of mouldy straw, mixed with rags.  There was little or no furniture, and the only thing which gave these dens any shimmer of habitableness was a fire upon the hearth.  Theft and prostitution form the chief means of subsistence of this population.  No one seemed to take the trouble to cleanse this Augean stable, this Pandemonium, this tangle of crime, filth, and pestilence in the centre of the second city of the kingdom.  An extended examination of the lowest districts of other cities never revealed anything half so bad, either in intensity of moral and physical infection, nor in comparative density of population.  In this quarter most of the houses have been declared by the Court of Guild ruinous and unfit for habitation, but precisely these are the most densely populated, because, according to the law, no rent can be demanded for them.”

“The alleyways of Glasgow have a changing population of fifteen to thirty thousand people. This area is made up entirely of narrow lanes and small courtyards, each featuring a dung heap in the center. As repulsive as the outside of these courtyards appeared, I was still stunned by the dirt and despair inside. In some of the sleeping areas we visited at night (with the Superintendent of Police, Captain Miller, and Symonds), we found a complete layer of people lying on the floor, often fifteen to twenty individuals, some clothed, others naked, men and women together. Their beds were made of rotten straw mixed with rags. There was little to no furniture, and the only thing that made these places somewhat livable was a fire in the hearth. Theft and prostitution are the primary ways this population survives. No one seemed interested in cleaning up this filthy mess, this hellish place, this web of crime, dirt, and disease in the middle of the second-largest city in the kingdom. A thorough examination of the poorest areas in other cities never revealed anything nearly as bad, in terms of moral and physical decay or population density. In this neighborhood, most of the houses have been deemed by the Court of Guild as unsafe and unfit for living, yet these are exactly the ones that are the most crowded, because, according to the law, no rent can be charged for them.”

p. 39The great manufacturing district in the centre of the British Islands, the thickly peopled stretch of West Yorkshire and South Lancashire, with its numerous factory towns, yields nothing to the other great manufacturing centres.  The woollen district of the West Riding of Yorkshire is a charming region, a beautiful green hill country, whose elevations grow more rugged towards the West until they reach their highest point in the bold ridge of Blackstone Edge, the watershed between the Irish Sea and the German Ocean.  The valleys of the Aire, along which stretches Leeds, and of the Calder, through which the Manchester-Leeds railway runs, are among the most attractive in England, and are strewn in all directions with the factories, villages, and towns.  The houses of rough grey stone look so neat and clean in comparison with the blackened brick buildings of Lancashire, that it is a pleasure to look at them.  But on coming into the towns themselves, one finds little to rejoice over.  Leeds lies as the Artisan describes it, and as I found confirmed upon examination: “on a gentle slope that descends into the valley of the Aire.  This stream flows through the city for about a mile-and-a-half and is exposed to violent floods during thaws or heavy rain.  The higher western portions of the city are clean, for such a large town.  But the low-lying districts along the river and its tributary becks are narrow, dirty, and enough in themselves to shorten the lives of the inhabitants, especially of little children.  Added to this, the disgusting state of the working-men’s districts about Kirkgate, Marsh Lane, Cross Street and Richmond Road, which is chiefly attributable to their unpaved, drainless streets, irregular architecture, numerous courts and alleys, and total lack of the most ordinary means of cleanliness, all this taken together is explanation enough of the excessive mortality in these unhappy abodes of filthy misery.  In consequence of the overflows of the Aire” (which, it must be added, like all other rivers in the service of manufacture, flows into the city at one end clear and transparent, and flows out at the other end thick, black, and foul, smelling of all possible refuse), “the houses and cellars are often so full of water that they have to be pumped out.  And at such times the water rises, even p. 40where there are sewers, out of them into cellars, {40a} engenders miasmatic vapours strongly impregnated with sulphuretted hydrogen, and leaves a disgusting residuum highly injurious to health.  During the spring-floods of 1839 the action of such a choking of the sewers was so injurious, that, according to the report of the Registrar of Births and Deaths for this part of the town, there were three deaths to two births, whereas in the same three months, in every other part of the town, there were three births to two deaths.  Other thickly populated districts are without any sewers whatsoever, or so badly provided as to derive no benefit from them.  In some rows of houses the cellars are seldom dry; in certain districts there are several streets covered with soft mud a foot deep.  The inhabitants have made vain attempts from time to time to repair these streets with shovelfuls of cinders, but in spite of all such attempts, dung-heaps, and pools of dirty water emptied from the houses, fill all the holes until wind and sun dry them up. {40b}  An ordinary cottage in Leeds occupies not more than five yards square of land, and usually consists of a cellar, a living room, and one sleeping-room.  These contracted dwellings, filled day and night with human beings, are another point dangerous alike to the morals and the health of the inhabitants.”  And how greatly these cottages are crowded, the Report on the Health of the Working-Classes, quoted above, bears testimony: “In Leeds we found brothers and sisters, and lodgers of both sexes, sharing the parents’ sleeping-room, whence arise consequences at the contemplation of which human feeling shudders.”

p. 39The main manufacturing area in the heart of the British Isles, the densely populated regions of West Yorkshire and South Lancashire, with its many factory towns, is just as significant as any other major manufacturing hub. The wool-producing area of the West Riding of Yorkshire is a lovely place, a picturesque green hilly region where the terrain becomes more rugged to the west, culminating at the impressive Blackstone Edge, which acts as the divide between the Irish Sea and the North Sea. The valleys of the Aire, where Leeds is located, and the Calder, along which the Manchester-Leeds railway travels, are among the most appealing in England, dotted with factories, small towns, and villages. The homes built from rough grey stone stand out as tidy and clean compared to the grimy brick structures of Lancashire, making them a pleasure to behold. However, entering the towns reveals little joy. Leeds is located on a gentle slope descending into the Aire valley. This river flows through the city for about a mile and a half and is frequently subjected to severe flooding during thaws or heavy rains. The higher areas of the city are surprisingly clean for such a large urban center. But the low-lying sections along the river and its smaller streams are narrow, filthy, and detrimental to the health of residents, particularly small children. Moreover, the unpleasant conditions in the working-class areas surrounding Kirkgate, Marsh Lane, Cross Street, and Richmond Road are mainly due to their unpaved, non-drainable streets, haphazard architecture, multiple courts and alleys, and a complete lack of basic sanitation. All these factors combined explain the high death rates in these miserable locations. Due to the flooding of the Aire (which, like other rivers tied to manufacturing, enters the city clear and transparent, but leaves thick, black, and foul-smelling with all sorts of waste), homes and basements often fill with water that has to be pumped out. During such events, even where sewers exist, the water can back up into basements, creating miasmic vapors heavily laced with hydrogen sulfide, and leaving behind a filthy residue that is very harmful to health. During the spring floods of 1839, the blockage of sewers had such a negative impact that, according to the Registrar of Births and Deaths for that part of town, there were three deaths for every two births, while in other areas of town during the same three months, there were three births for every two deaths. Other densely populated regions have little to no sewer systems or are so poorly set up that they provide no real benefit. In some rows of houses, the basements are rarely dry; in certain areas, streets are covered in a foot of soft mud. Residents have made futile attempts to repair these streets with shovels of cinders, but even with those efforts, piles of dung and pools of dirty water from homes fill the holes until wind and sun eventually dry them up. {40b} An average cottage in Leeds occupies no more than five square yards of land and typically consists of a cellar, a living room, and one bedroom. These cramped homes, filled day and night with people, present yet another danger to both the morals and health of the residents. And the overcrowding in these cottages is highlighted by the Report on the Health of the Working-Classes, which states: “In Leeds, we found brothers and sisters, and lodgers of both sexes, sharing the parents’ bedroom, leading to situations that make one shudder at their implications.”

So, too, Bradford, which, but seven miles from Leeds at the junction of several valleys, lies upon the banks of a small, coal-black, foul-smelling stream.  On week-days the town is enveloped in a grey cloud of coal smoke, but on a fine Sunday it offers a superb picture, when viewed from the surrounding heights.  Yet within reigns the same filth and discomfort as in Leeds.  The p. 41older portions of the town are built upon steep hillsides, and are narrow and irregular.  In the lanes, alleys, and courts lie filth and debris in heaps; the houses are ruinous, dirty, and miserable, and in the immediate vicinity of the river and the valley bottom I found many a one, whose ground-floor, half-buried in the hillside, was totally abandoned.  In general, the portions of the valley bottom in which working-men’s cottages have crowded between the tall factories, are among the worst built and dirtiest districts of the whole town.  In the newer portions of this, as of every other factory town, the cottages are more regular, being built in rows, but they share here, too, all the evils incident to the customary method of providing working-men’s dwellings, evils of which we shall have occasions to speak more particularly in discussing Manchester.  The same is true of the remaining towns of the West Riding, especially of Barnsley, Halifax and Huddersfield.  The last named, the handsomest by far of all the factory towns of Yorkshire and Lancashire, by reason of its charming situation and modern architecture, has yet its bad quarter; for a committee appointed by a meeting of citizens to survey the town, reported August 5th, 1844: “It is notorious that in Huddersfield whole streets and many lanes and courts are neither paved nor supplied with sewers nor other drains; that in them refuse, debris, and filth of every sort lies accumulating, festers and rots, and that, nearly everywhere, stagnant water accumulates in pools, in consequence of which the adjoining dwellings must inevitably be bad and filthy, so that in such places diseases arise and threaten the health of the whole town.”

So, too, Bradford, which is just seven miles from Leeds at the intersection of several valleys, sits along a small, coal-black, foul-smelling stream. During the weekdays, the town is shrouded in a gray cloud of coal smoke, but on a nice Sunday, it presents a stunning view when seen from the surrounding hills. However, inside, the same dirt and discomfort prevail as in Leeds. The older parts of the town are built on steep hillsides, and are narrow and irregular. In the lanes, alleys, and courtyards, piles of filth and debris accumulate; the houses are dilapidated, dirty, and miserable, and near the river and valley bottom, I found many that were half-buried in the hillside and completely abandoned. Generally, the areas of the valley bottom where workers' cottages crowd between the tall factories are among the worst built and dirtiest neighborhoods in the entire town. In the newer parts, like in every other factory town, the cottages are more organized, built in rows, but they also suffer from all the issues typical of the way workers' housing is typically provided, issues we will discuss in more detail when looking at Manchester. The same conditions apply to the other towns in the West Riding, especially Barnsley, Halifax, and Huddersfield. Huddersfield, the most attractive of all the factory towns in Yorkshire and Lancashire due to its lovely setting and modern architecture, still has its neglected areas; a committee appointed by a citizens' meeting to survey the town reported on August 5th, 1844: “It is well-known that in Huddersfield, entire streets, many lanes, and courts are neither paved nor equipped with sewers or other drains; refuse, debris, and filth of all kinds accumulate there, festering and rotting, and stagnant water collects in pools everywhere, causing the nearby homes to be inevitably unsanitary and filthy, leading to the emergence of diseases that threaten the health of the entire town.”

If we cross Blackstone Edge or penetrate it with the railroad, we enter upon that classic soil on which English manufacture has achieved its masterwork and from which all labour movements emanate, namely, South Lancashire with its central city Manchester.  Again we have beautiful hill country, sloping gently from the watershed westwards towards the Irish Sea, with the charming green valleys of the Ribble, the Irwell, the Mersey, and their tributaries, a country which, a hundred years ago chiefly swamp land, thinly populated, is now sown with towns and villages, p. 42and is the most densely populated strip of country in England.  In Lancashire, and especially in Manchester, English manufacture finds at once its starting point and its centre.  The Manchester Exchange is the thermometer for all the fluctuations of trade.  The modern art of manufacture has reached its perfection in Manchester.  In the cotton industry of South Lancashire, the application of the forces of Nature, the superseding of hand labour by machinery (especially by the power-loom and the self-acting mule), and the division of labour, are seen at the highest point; and, if we recognise in these three elements that which is characteristic of modern manufacture, we must confess that the cotton industry has remained in advance of all other branches of industry from the beginning down to the present day.  The effects of modern manufacture upon the working-class must necessarily develop here most freely and perfectly, and the manufacturing proletariat present itself in its fullest classic perfection.  The degradation to which the application of steam-power, machinery and the division of labour reduce the working-man, and the attempts of the proletariat to rise above this abasement, must likewise be carried to the highest point and with the fullest consciousness.  Hence because Manchester is the classic type of a modern manufacturing town, and because I know it as intimately as my own native town, more intimately than most of its residents know it, we shall make a longer stay here.

If we cross Blackstone Edge or connect it with the railroad, we step onto the iconic land where English manufacturing has achieved its greatest success and from which all labor movements originate, specifically South Lancashire, with its main city, Manchester. Once again, we find beautiful hilly landscapes gently sloping from the watershed westward toward the Irish Sea, adorned with the lovely green valleys of the Ribble, the Irwell, the Mersey, and their tributaries. This region, a hundred years ago primarily wetland and sparsely populated, is now filled with towns and villages, p. 42making it the most densely populated area in England. In Lancashire, particularly in Manchester, English manufacturing finds both its starting point and its hub. The Manchester Exchange serves as the barometer for all trade fluctuations. The modern art of manufacturing has reached its peak here in Manchester. In the cotton industry of South Lancashire, the use of natural forces, the replacement of manual labor with machinery (especially through the power loom and the self-acting mule), and the division of labor are showcased at their highest level. If we recognize these three aspects as characteristic of modern manufacturing, we must admit that the cotton industry has consistently stayed ahead of all other industries from its inception to the present day. The impact of modern manufacturing on the working class here naturally unfolds most freely and perfectly, and the manufacturing proletariat presents itself in its most complete form. The degradation caused by the use of steam power, machinery, and the division of labor that affects workers, along with their efforts to rise above this condition, must also be addressed at the highest level and with full awareness. Therefore, because Manchester is the quintessential example of a modern manufacturing town and because I know it as well as my own hometown, even better than many of its residents do, we will be staying here longer.

The towns surrounding Manchester vary little from the central city, so far as the working-people’s quarters are concerned, except that the working-class forms, if possible, a larger proportion of their population.  These towns are purely industrial and conduct all their business through Manchester upon which they are in every respect dependent, whence they are inhabited only by working-men and petty tradesmen, while Manchester has a very considerable commercial population, especially of commission and “respectable” retail dealers.  Hence Bolton, Preston, Wigan, Bury, Rochdale, Middleton, Heywood, Oldham, Ashton, Stalybridge, Stockport, etc., though nearly all towns of thirty, fifty, seventy to ninety thousand inhabitants, are almost wholly working-people’s p. 43districts, interspersed only with factories, a few thoroughfares lined with shops, and a few lanes along which the gardens and houses of the manufacturers are scattered like villas.  The towns themselves are badly and irregularly built with foul courts, lanes, and back alleys, reeking of coal smoke, and especially dingy from the originally bright red brick, turned black with time, which is here the universal building material.  Cellar dwellings are general here; wherever it is in any way possible, these subterranean dens are constructed, and a very considerable portion of the population dwells in them.

The towns around Manchester are pretty similar to the city itself when it comes to areas where working-class people live, except that the working class makes up an even larger part of the population, if possible. These towns are strictly industrial and do all their business through Manchester, which they are completely reliant on. As a result, they are mainly home to working men and small tradespeople, while Manchester has a significant commercial population, especially of commission agents and "respectable" retail shops. Therefore, places like Bolton, Preston, Wigan, Bury, Rochdale, Middleton, Heywood, Oldham, Ashton, Stalybridge, Stockport, etc., even though they're all towns with populations ranging from thirty to ninety thousand, are almost entirely working-class districts, dotted only with factories, a few main roads lined with shops, and a few narrow streets where the gardens and houses of the manufacturers resemble villas. The towns themselves are poorly and irregularly constructed, with dirty courts, alleys, and backstreets that smell of coal smoke, and especially grim due to the originally bright red bricks, which have turned black over time and are the standard building material here. Cellar homes are common; wherever it’s feasible, these underground spaces are built, and a significant part of the population lives in them.

Among the worst of these towns after Preston and Oldham is Bolton, eleven miles north-west of Manchester.  It has, so far as I have been able to observe in my repeated visits, but one main street, a very dirty one, Deansgate, which serves as a market, and is even in the finest weather a dark, unattractive hole in spite of the fact that, except for the factories, its sides are formed by low one and two-storied houses.  Here, as everywhere, the older part of the town is especially ruinous and miserable.  A dark-coloured body of water, which leaves the beholder in doubt whether it is a brook or a long string of stagnant puddles, flows through the town and contributes its share to the total pollution of the air, by no means pure without it.

Among the worst of these towns, after Preston and Oldham, is Bolton, eleven miles northwest of Manchester. From what I've seen in my many visits, it has just one main street, a very dirty one, Deansgate, which serves as a market and is a dark, unattractive place even in the best weather, despite the fact that, apart from the factories, its sides are lined with low one- and two-story houses. Here, as in other places, the older part of town is particularly dilapidated and miserable. A dark body of water flows through the town, leaving people unsure whether it's a stream or a long string of stagnant puddles, adding to the overall pollution of the air, which isn't clean even without it.

There is Stockport, too, which lies on the Cheshire side of the Mersey, but belongs nevertheless to the manufacturing district of Manchester.  It lies in a narrow valley along the Mersey, so that the streets slope down a steep hill on one side and up an equally steep one on the other, while the railway from Manchester to Birmingham passes over a high viaduct above the city and the whole valley.  Stockport is renowned throughout the entire district as one of the duskiest, smokiest holes, and looks, indeed, especially when viewed from the viaduct, excessively repellent.  But far more repulsive are the cottages and cellar dwellings of the working-class, which stretch in long rows through all parts of the town from the valley bottom to the crest of the hill.  I do not remember to have seen so many cellars used as dwellings in any other town of this district.

There’s Stockport, too, located on the Cheshire side of the Mersey, but it’s still part of the manufacturing area of Manchester. It sits in a narrow valley along the Mersey, with streets that steeply slope down on one side and up on the other. The railway from Manchester to Birmingham runs over a high viaduct that overlooks the city and the entire valley. Stockport is known throughout the region as one of the darkest, smokiest places, and honestly, it looks rather unappealing, especially from the viaduct. However, what’s even more unpleasant are the cottages and cellar homes of the working class, which line the town in long rows from the valley floor to the top of the hill. I don’t recall seeing so many cellars used as homes in any other town in this area.

p. 44A few miles north-east of Stockport is Ashton-under-Lyne, one of the newest factory towns of this region.  It stands on the slope of a hill at the foot of which are the canal and the river Tame, and is, in general, built on the newer, more regular plan.  Five or six parallel streets stretch along the hill intersected at right angles by others leading down into the valley.  By this method, the factories would be excluded from the town proper, even if the proximity of the river and the canal-way did not draw them all into the valley where they stand thickly crowded, belching forth black smoke from their chimneys.  To this arrangement Ashton owes a much more attractive appearance than that of most factory towns; the streets are broad and cleaner, the cottages look new, bright red, and comfortable.  But the modern system of building cottages for working-men has its own disadvantages; every street has its concealed back lane to which a narrow paved path leads, and which is all the dirtier.  And, although I saw no buildings, except a few on entering, which could have been more than fifty years old, there are even in Ashton streets in which the cottages are getting bad, where the bricks in the house-corners are no longer firm but shift about, in which the walls have cracks and will not hold the chalk whitewash inside; streets, whose dirty, smoke-begrimed aspect is nowise different from that of the other towns of the district, except that in Ashton, this is the exception, not the rule.

p. 44A few miles northeast of Stockport is Ashton-under-Lyne, one of the newer factory towns in the area. It sits on the slope of a hill, at the bottom of which are the canal and the river Tame, and is generally designed in a more modern, organized way. Five or six parallel streets run along the hill, crossed at right angles by others leading down into the valley. This layout helps keep the factories out of the town center, even though the river and canal attract them all into the valley, where they are tightly packed, emitting black smoke from their chimneys. Because of this design, Ashton looks much more appealing than most factory towns; the streets are wider and cleaner, and the cottages appear new, bright red, and cozy. However, the modern approach to building cottages for workers has its downsides; every street has a hidden back lane accessed by a narrow paved path that is much dirtier. While I saw very few buildings—only a couple upon entering—that were more than fifty years old, there are parts of Ashton where the cottages are deteriorating. The bricks in the corners of the houses are loose, the walls have cracks, and they no longer hold the white chalk paint inside; the streets, with their dirty, soot-covered look, are no different from those in other towns in the region, except that this situation in Ashton is the exception rather than the norm.

A mile eastward lies Stalybridge, also on the Tame.  In coming over the hill from Ashton, the traveller has, at the top, both right and left, fine large gardens with superb villa-like houses in their midst, built usually in the Elizabethan style, which is to the Gothic precisely what the Anglican Church is to the Apostolic Roman Catholic.  A hundred paces farther and Stalybridge shows itself in the valley, in sharp contrast with the beautiful country seats, in sharp contrast even with the modest cottages of Ashton!  Stalybridge lies in a narrow, crooked ravine, much narrower even than the valley at Stockport, and both sides of this ravine are occupied by an irregular group of cottages, houses, and mills.  On entering, the very first cottages are narrow, smoke-begrimed, old and ruinous; and as the first houses, so the whole town.  A few streets p. 45lie in the narrow valley bottom, most of them run criss-cross, pell-mell, up hill and down, and in nearly all the houses, by reason of this sloping situation, the ground floor is half-buried in the earth; and what multitudes of courts, back lanes, and remote nooks arise out of this confused way of building may be seen from the hills, whence one has the town, here and there, in a bird’s-eye view almost at one’s feet.  Add to this the shocking filth, and the repulsive effect of Stalybridge, in spite of its pretty surroundings, may be readily imagined.

A mile to the east is Stalybridge, also along the Tame River. As you come over the hill from Ashton, at the top, you'll see large gardens on both sides with beautiful villa-like houses in them, usually built in the Elizabethan style, which is exactly what the Anglican Church is to the Apostolic Roman Catholic Church. A hundred paces further and Stalybridge appears in the valley, standing in sharp contrast to the lovely country homes, and even to the simple cottages of Ashton! Stalybridge is situated in a narrow, winding ravine, even narrower than the valley at Stockport, with the sides filled with a mix of cottages, houses, and mills. As you enter, the first cottages you see are narrow, covered in soot, old, and falling apart; and just like those first houses, the entire town reflects that state. A few streets p. 45 lie at the bottom of this narrow valley, most of them zigzagging up and down the hills, and due to this sloping layout, the ground floors of nearly all the houses are half-buried underground. From the hills, you can see how many courtyards, back lanes, and hidden spots have emerged from this chaotic building style, giving you a bird’s-eye view of the town almost right below you. Adding to this is the awful filth, and you can easily imagine the unpleasant impact of Stalybridge, despite its pretty surroundings.

But enough of these little towns.  Each has its own peculiarities, but in general, the working-people live in them just as in Manchester.  Hence I have especially sketched only their peculiar construction, and would observe, that all more general observations as to the condition of the labouring population in Manchester are fully applicable to these surrounding towns as well.

But let's move on from these small towns. Each has its own quirks, but overall, the working people live there just like they do in Manchester. That's why I've focused specifically on their unique structures and want to point out that the broader observations about the working class in Manchester apply equally to these nearby towns.

Manchester lies at the foot of the southern slope of a range of hills, which stretch hither from Oldham, their last peak, Kersallmoor, being at once the racecourse and the Mons Sacer of Manchester.  Manchester proper lies on the left bank of the Irwell, between that stream and the two smaller ones, the Irk and the Medlock, which here empty into the Irwell.  On the left bank of the Irwell, bounded by a sharp curve of the river, lies Salford, and farther westward Pendleton; northward from the Irwell lie Upper and Lower Broughton; northward of the Irk, Cheetham Hill; south of the Medlock lies Hulme; farther east Chorlton on Medlock; still farther, pretty well to the east of Manchester, Ardwick.  The whole assemblage of buildings is commonly called Manchester, and contains about four hundred thousand inhabitants, rather more than less.  The town itself is peculiarly built, so that a person may live in it for years, and go in and out daily without coming into contact with a working-people’s quarter or even with workers, that is, so long as he confines himself to his business or to pleasure walks.  This arises chiefly from the fact, that by unconscious tacit agreement, as well as with outspoken conscious determination, the working-people’s quarters are sharply separated from the sections of the city reserved for the middle-class; or, if p. 46this does not succeed, they are concealed with the cloak of charity.  Manchester contains, at its heart, a rather extended commercial district, perhaps half a mile long and about as broad, and consisting almost wholly of offices and warehouses.  Nearly the whole district is abandoned by dwellers, and is lonely and deserted at night; only watchmen and policemen traverse its narrow lanes with their dark lanterns.  This district is cut through by certain main thoroughfares upon which the vast traffic concentrates, and in which the ground level is lined with brilliant shops.  In these streets the upper floors are occupied, here and there, and there is a good deal of life upon them until late at night.  With the exception of this commercial district, all Manchester proper, all Salford and Hulme, a great part of Pendleton and Chorlton, two-thirds of Ardwick, and single stretches of Cheetham Hill and Broughton are all unmixed working-people’s quarters, stretching like a girdle, averaging a mile and a half in breadth, around the commercial district.  Outside, beyond this girdle, lives the upper and middle bourgeoisie, the middle bourgeoisie in regularly laid out streets in the vicinity of the working quarters, especially in Chorlton and the lower lying portions of Cheetham Hill; the upper bourgeoisie in remoter villas with gardens in Chorlton and Ardwick, or on the breezy heights of Cheetham Hill, Broughton, and Pendleton, in free, wholesome country air, in fine, comfortable homes, passed once every half or quarter hour by omnibuses going into the city.  And the finest part of the arrangement is this, that the members of this money aristocracy can take the shortest road through the middle of all the labouring districts to their places of business, without ever seeing that they are in the midst of the grimy misery that lurks to the right and the left.  For the thoroughfares leading from the Exchange in all directions out of the city are lined, on both sides, with an almost unbroken series of shops, and are so kept in the hands of the middle and lower bourgeoisie, which, out of self-interest, cares for a decent and cleanly external appearance and can care for it.  True, these shops bear some relation to the districts which lie behind them, and are more elegant in the commercial and residential quarters than when they p. 47hide grimy working-men’s dwellings; but they suffice to conceal from the eyes of the wealthy men and women of strong stomachs and weak nerves the misery and grime which form the complement of their wealth.  So, for instance, Deansgate, which leads from the Old Church directly southward, is lined first with mills and warehouses, then with second-rate shops and alehouses; farther south, when it leaves the commercial district, with less inviting shops, which grow dirtier and more interrupted by beerhouses and gin palaces the farther one goes, until at the southern end the appearance of the shops leaves no doubt that workers and workers only are their customers.  So Market Street running south-east from the Exchange; at first brilliant shops of the best sort, with counting-houses or warehouses above; in the continuation, Piccadilly, immense hotels and warehouses; in the farther continuation, London Road, in the neighbourhood of the Medlock, factories, beerhouses, shops for the humbler bourgeoisie and the working population; and from this point onward, large gardens and villas of the wealthier merchants and manufacturers.  In this way any one who knows Manchester can infer the adjoining districts, from the appearance of the thoroughfare, but one is seldom in a position to catch from the street a glimpse of the real labouring districts.  I know very well that this hypocritical plan is more or less common to all great cities; I know, too, that the retail dealers are forced by the nature of their business to take possession of the great highways; I know that there are more good buildings than bad ones upon such streets everywhere, and that the value of land is greater near them than in remoter districts; but at the same time I have never seen so systematic a shutting out of the working-class from the thoroughfares, so tender a concealment of everything which might affront the eye and the nerves of the bourgeoisie, as in Manchester.  And yet, in other respects, Manchester is less built according to a plan, after official regulations, is more an outgrowth of accident, than any other city; and when I consider in this connection the eager assurances of the middle-class, that the working-class is doing famously, I cannot help feeling that the liberal manufacturers, the “Big Wigs” of Manchester, p. 48are not so innocent after all, in the matter of this sensitive method of construction.

Manchester sits at the base of a range of hills that extend here from Oldham, with its highest point, Kersallmoor, serving as both the racetrack and the sacred site of Manchester. The city itself is located on the left bank of the Irwell River, nestled between that river and two smaller ones, the Irk and the Medlock, which flow into the Irwell. On the left bank of the Irwell, there’s Salford, with Pendleton further west; to the north of the Irwell are Upper and Lower Broughton; north of the Irk lies Cheetham Hill; south of the Medlock is Hulme; further east is Chorlton on Medlock; and to the far east of Manchester is Ardwick. The entire collection of buildings is commonly referred to as Manchester, housing about four hundred thousand residents, give or take. The town itself is uniquely designed, allowing someone to live there for years and come and go daily without encountering a working-class area or even workers, as long as they stick to their business or leisurely strolls. This separation is mainly due to an unspoken consensus, as well as a clear intention, to keep the working-class neighborhoods distinctly separate from the middle-class sections of the city; or, if that doesn’t work, they are hidden behind a façade of charity. At its core, Manchester has a somewhat large commercial area, maybe half a mile in length and similar in width, filled almost entirely with offices and warehouses. Most of this area is deserted and silent at night, with only watchmen and police navigating its narrow streets with their dim lanterns. This district is intersected by key roads that accommodate the vast traffic, where the ground level features vibrant shops. These streets do have some upper floors occupied here and there, bustling with life until late at night. Besides this commercial district, all of Manchester proper, along with Salford and Hulme, a significant portion of Pendleton and Chorlton, two-thirds of Ardwick, and some sections of Cheetham Hill and Broughton are exclusively working-class neighborhoods, forming a belt that averages a mile and a half wide around the commercial area. Outside this belt, the upper and middle classes reside, with the middle class living in neatly organized streets near the working areas, especially in Chorlton and the lower parts of Cheetham Hill; the upper class lives in more distant villas with gardens in Chorlton and Ardwick, or on the breezy heights of Cheetham Hill, Broughton, and Pendleton, enjoying the fresh country air in comfortable homes, all of which are easily accessible by buses going into the city every half hour or so. The most impressive aspect of this setup is that those in this moneyed class can take the quickest route through the heart of the laboring areas to their workplaces without ever realizing they are surrounded by the gritty hardship just to their sides. The main roads leading from the Exchange in all directions out of the city are lined on both sides with an almost uninterrupted series of shops, generally owned by middle and lower-class retailers, who, out of self-interest, maintain a tidy and presentable exterior. While these shops do have some connection to the neighborhoods behind them and are more refined in commercial and residential areas than when they obscure shabby workers’ homes, they effectively shield the wealthy individuals with delicate sensibilities from the poverty and filth that accompany their affluence. For example, Deansgate, which runs straight south from the Old Church, initially features mills and warehouses, then second-rate shops and bars; further south, as it leaves the commercial area, it becomes less appealing, growing dirtier and interrupted by pubs and gin joints the farther you go, until at the southern end, the shops clearly cater only to workers. Similarly, Market Street, heading southeast from the Exchange, starts with upscale shops of the highest quality, with offices or warehouses above; moving further, Piccadilly showcases enormous hotels and warehouses; and then, in London Road near the Medlock, you find factories, drinking establishments, and shops for the lower middle class and the working population; past that point, there are large gardens and villas of richer merchants and manufacturers. In this way, anyone familiar with Manchester can infer the nearby areas from the appearance of the road, but it's rare to catch a glimpse of the real working-class neighborhoods from the street. I realize that this deceptive arrangement is somewhat typical of all major cities; I’m also aware that retailers are compelled by their business nature to occupy the main thoroughfares; I understand that there are more good buildings than bad on such streets everywhere, and land values tend to be higher near them than in more distant areas; but at the same time, I have never witnessed such a systematic exclusion of the working class from the main roads, nor such a tender concealment of all that might offend the eye or nerves of the bourgeoisie, as is found in Manchester. Yet, in other aspects, Manchester is less organized according to a plan, governed by official regulations, and more a product of chance than any other city; and when I think about the eager assurances from the middle class that the working class is thriving, I can't help but feel that the well-off manufacturers, the "Big Wigs" of Manchester, are not as innocent as they seem when it comes to this delicate method of urban planning.

I may mention just here that the mills almost all adjoin the rivers or the different canals that ramify throughout the city, before I proceed at once to describe the labouring quarters.  First of all, there is the old town of Manchester, which lies between the northern boundary of the commercial district and the Irk.  Here the streets, even the better ones, are narrow and winding, as Todd Street, Long Millgate, Withy Grove, and Shude Hill, the houses dirty, old, and tumble-down, and the construction of the side streets utterly horrible.  Going from the Old Church to Long Millgate, the stroller has at once a row of old-fashioned houses at the right, of which not one has kept its original level; these are remnants of the old pre-manufacturing Manchester, whose former inhabitants have removed with their descendants into better-built districts, and have left the houses, which were not good enough for them, to a population strongly mixed with Irish blood.  Here one is in an almost undisguised working-men’s quarter, for even the shops and beerhouses hardly take the trouble to exhibit a trifling degree of cleanliness.  But all this is nothing in comparison with the courts and lanes which lie behind, to which access can be gained only through covered passages, in which no two human beings can pass at the same time.  Of the irregular cramming together of dwellings in ways which defy all rational plan, of the tangle in which they are crowded literally one upon the other, it is impossible to convey an idea.  And it is not the buildings surviving from the old times of Manchester which are to blame for this; the confusion has only recently reached its height when every scrap of space left by the old way of building has been filled up and patched over until not a foot of land is left to be further occupied.

I should mention that almost all the mills are situated next to the rivers or the various canals that run throughout the city before I move on to describing the working-class areas. First, there’s the old town of Manchester, which sits between the northern edge of the commercial district and the Irk River. Here, the streets, even the nicer ones, are narrow and winding, like Todd Street, Long Millgate, Withy Grove, and Shude Hill. The houses are dirty, old, and falling apart, and the side streets are in terrible condition. Walking from the Old Church to Long Millgate, you immediately see a row of old-fashioned houses on the right, none of which are level anymore; these are remnants of pre-industrial Manchester, where former residents have moved, along with their descendants, to better neighborhoods, leaving these houses for a population mostly of Irish descent. This is clearly a working-class area, as even the shops and pubs hardly bother to maintain any cleanliness. However, this is nothing compared to the courts and alleys that lie behind, which can only be accessed through covered passages that are too narrow for two people to pass at once. It’s impossible to express the chaotic way the buildings are crammed together, piled literally one on top of the other, in a way that defies any logical layout. And it’s not the old buildings from Manchester’s history that are to blame; the disarray reached its peak recently, as every leftover bit of space from the old construction methods has been filled in and built over until there’s hardly any land left to be used.

The south bank of the Irk is here very steep and between fifteen and thirty feet high.  On this declivitous hillside there are planted three rows of houses, of which the lowest rise directly out of the river, while the front walls of the highest stand on the crest of the hill in Long Millgate.  Among them are mills on the river, p. 49in short, the method of construction is as crowded and disorderly here as in the lower part of Long Millgate.  Right and left a multitude of covered passages lead from the main street into numerous courts, and he who turns in thither gets into a filth and disgusting grime, the equal of which is not to be found—especially in the courts which lead down to the Irk, and which contain unqualifiedly the most horrible dwellings which I have yet beheld.  In one of these courts there stands directly at the entrance, at the end of the covered passage, a privy without a door, so dirty that the inhabitants can pass into and out of the court only by passing through foul pools of stagnant urine and excrement.  This is the first court on the Irk above Ducie Bridge—in case any one should care to look into it.  Below it on the river there are several tanneries which fill the whole neighbourhood with the stench of animal putrefaction.  Below Ducie Bridge the only entrance to most of the houses is by means of narrow, dirty stairs and over heaps of refuse and filth.  The first court below Ducie Bridge, known as Allen’s Court, was in such a state at the time of the cholera that the sanitary police ordered it evacuated, swept, and disinfected with chloride of lime.  Dr. Kay gives a terrible description of the state of this court at that time. {49}  Since then, it seems to have been partially torn away and rebuilt; at least looking down from Ducie Bridge, the passer-by sees several ruined walls and heaps of débris with some newer houses.  The view from this bridge, mercifully concealed from mortals of small stature by a parapet as high as a man, is characteristic for the whole district.  At the bottom flows, or rather stagnates, the Irk, a narrow, coal-black, foul-smelling stream, full of débris and refuse, which it deposits on the shallower right bank.  In dry weather, a long string of the most disgusting, blackish-green, slime pools are left standing on this bank, from the depths of which bubbles of miasmatic gas constantly p. 50arise and give forth a stench unendurable even on the bridge forty or fifty feet above the surface of the stream.  But besides this, the stream itself is checked every few paces by high weirs, behind which slime and refuse accumulate and rot in thick masses.  Above the bridge are tanneries, bonemills, and gasworks, from which all drains and refuse find their way into the Irk, which receives further the contents of all the neighbouring sewers and privies.  It may be easily imagined, therefore, what sort of residue the stream deposits.  Below the bridge you look upon the piles of débris, the refuse, filth, and offal from the courts on the steep left bank; here each house is packed close behind its neighbour and a piece of each is visible, all black, smoky, crumbling, ancient, with broken panes and window frames.  The background is furnished by old barrack-like factory buildings.  On the lower right bank stands a long row of houses and mills; the second house being a ruin without a roof, piled with débris; the third stands so low that the lowest floor is uninhabitable, and therefore without windows or doors.  Here the background embraces the pauper burial-ground, the station of the Liverpool and Leeds railway, and, in the rear of this, the Workhouse, the “Poor-Law Bastille” of Manchester, which, like a citadel, looks threateningly down from behind its high walls and parapets on the hilltop, upon the working-people’s quarter below.

The south bank of the Irk is pretty steep here, ranging from fifteen to thirty feet high. On this sloping hillside, there are three rows of houses, with the lowest row sitting right above the river, while the front walls of the highest houses are at the top of the hill in Long Millgate. There are mills along the river, and overall, the way the buildings are crammed together here is as chaotic as in the lower part of Long Millgate. On both sides, numerous covered passages lead from the main street into various courts, and anyone who ventures in will find themselves in filth and grime like you've never seen—especially in the courts leading down to the Irk, which contain some of the most horrendous homes I have ever encountered. As you enter one of these courts, right at the entrance after the covered passage, there's a privy with no door, so filthy that locals can only get in and out of the court by stepping through pools of stagnant urine and waste. This is the first court on the Irk above Ducie Bridge, in case anyone is curious enough to check it out. Below it, the river has several tanneries that fill the entire area with the smell of decaying animals. Just below Ducie Bridge, the only access to most houses is via narrow, filthy stairs and over piles of garbage. The first court below Ducie Bridge, known as Allen’s Court, was in such bad shape during the cholera outbreak that the sanitary police mandated it be evacuated, cleaned, and disinfected with chloride of lime. Dr. Kay provides a horrifying account of the condition of this court at that time. Since then, it appears to have been partly demolished and rebuilt; at least from the view down Ducie Bridge, passersby can see various crumbling walls and piles of debris alongside some newer homes. The view from this bridge, thankfully blocked from the sight of shorter individuals by a parapet that's as high as a man, is typical for the entire area. Down below, the Irk flows—or rather, sits stagnant—a narrow, coal-black, foul-smelling stream, filled with debris and waste, which it dumps on the shallow right bank. During dry weather, a long stretch of the most disgusting, blackish-green slime pools sits on this bank, from which bubbles of toxic gas continuously rise, emitting a stench that's unbearable even from the bridge, forty or fifty feet above the water. Moreover, the stream is frequently obstructed by high weirs, behind which sludge and waste collect and rot in thick piles. Above the bridge, there are tanneries, bonemills, and gasworks, all of which drain their waste into the Irk, which also receives the sewage from all the nearby toilets. It's easy to imagine what kind of residue the stream leaves behind. Below the bridge, you see piles of debris, garbage, filth, and offal from the courts on the steep left bank; here, each house is crammed closely together, with a piece of each visible, all blackened, smoky, crumbling, old, with broken windows and frames. In the background, there are old factory buildings that resemble barracks. On the lower right bank, there's a long line of houses and mills; the second house is a roofless ruin piled with debris; the third is so low that its ground floor is unlivable, and hence it has no windows or doors. Here, the background includes the pauper burial ground, the Liverpool and Leeds railway station, and behind that, the Workhouse, the “Poor-Law Bastille” of Manchester, which, like a fortress, looms threateningly from behind its high walls and parapets over the working-class area below.

Above Ducie Bridge, the left bank grows more flat and the right bank steeper, but the condition of the dwellings on both banks grows worse rather than better.  He who turns to the left here from the main street, Long Millgate, is lost; he wanders from one court to another, turns countless corners, passes nothing but narrow, filthy nooks and alleys, until after a few minutes he has lost all clue, and knows not whither to turn.  Everywhere half or wholly ruined buildings, some of them actually uninhabited, which means a great deal here; rarely a wooden or stone floor to be seen in the houses, almost uniformly broken, ill-fitting windows and doors, and a state of filth!  Everywhere heaps of débris, refuse, and offal; standing pools for gutters, and a stench which alone would make it impossible for a human being in any degree p. 51civilised to live in such a district.  The newly-built extension of the Leeds railway, which crosses the Irk here, has swept away some of these courts and lanes, laying others completely open to view.  Immediately under the railway bridge there stands a court, the filth and horrors of which surpass all the others by far, just because it was hitherto so shut off, so secluded that the way to it could not be found without a good deal of trouble.  I should never have discovered it myself, without the breaks made by the railway, though I thought I knew this whole region thoroughly.  Passing along a rough bank, among stakes and washing-lines, one penetrates into this chaos of small one-storied, one-roomed huts, in most of which there is no artificial floor; kitchen, living and sleeping-room all in one.  In such a hole, scarcely five feet long by six broad, I found two beds—and such bedsteads and beds!—which, with a staircase and chimney-place, exactly filled the room.  In several others I found absolutely nothing, while the door stood open, and the inhabitants leaned against it.  Everywhere before the doors refuse and offal; that any sort of pavement lay underneath could not be seen but only felt, here and there, with the feet.  This whole collection of cattle-sheds for human beings was surrounded on two sides by houses and a factory, and on the third by the river, and besides the narrow stair up the bank, a narrow doorway alone led out into another almost equally ill-built, ill-kept labyrinth of dwellings.

Above Ducie Bridge, the left bank flattens out while the right bank becomes steeper, but the condition of the homes on both sides only gets worse. If someone turns left here from the main street, Long Millgate, they're lost; they wander from one court to another, turn countless corners, and pass nothing but narrow, filthy nooks and alleys until, after a few minutes, they have no idea where to go. Everywhere there are half or completely ruined buildings, some of which are actually uninhabited, which is significant here; rarely is there a wooden or stone floor in the houses, almost all have broken and poorly fitting windows and doors, and the level of filth is appalling! There are heaps of debris, waste, and offal everywhere; standing pools serve as gutters, and the stench alone would make it impossible for anyone to live in such a place in any sort of civilized way. The newly-built extension of the Leeds railway, which crosses the Irk here, has destroyed some of these courts and lanes, exposing others completely. Right under the railway bridge, there’s a court whose filth and horrors far surpass all the others because it was previously so shut off and secluded that finding the way to it required a lot of effort. I never would have discovered it myself without the breaks created by the railway, even though I thought I knew this whole area well. As one moves along a rough bank, amidst stakes and washing-lines, they enter this chaos of small one-story, one-room huts, most of which don’t have any proper floor; kitchens, living rooms, and bedrooms all combined into one. In one cramped space, no more than five feet long and six feet wide, I found two beds—and what a state the bedsteads and beds were in!—which, along with a staircase and a chimney, took up the entire room. In several others, I found absolutely nothing, while the door stood open, and the occupants leaned against it. Everywhere in front of the doors, there was refuse and offal; any sort of pavement underneath was only felt with the feet here and there. This whole cluster of sheds for human beings was bordered on two sides by houses and a factory, and on the third by the river, with just a narrow stair leading up the bank and one narrow doorway providing access to another equally poorly constructed and maintained maze of homes.

Enough!  The whole side of the Irk is built in this way, a planless, knotted chaos of houses, more or less on the verge of uninhabitableness, whose unclean interiors fully correspond with their filthy external surroundings.  And how could the people be clean with no proper opportunity for satisfying the most natural and ordinary wants?  Privies are so rare here that they are either filled up every day, or are too remote for most of the inhabitants to use.  How can people wash when they have only the dirty Irk water at hand, while pumps and water pipes can be found in decent parts of the city alone?  In truth, it cannot be charged to the account of these helots of modern society if their dwellings are not more cleanly than the pig-sties which are here and there p. 52to be seen among them.  The landlords are not ashamed to let dwellings like the six or seven cellars on the quay directly below Scotland Bridge, the floors of which stand at least two feet below the low-water level of the Irk that flows not six feet away from them; or like the upper floor of the corner-house on the opposite shore directly above the bridge, where the ground floor, utterly uninhabitable, stands deprived of all fittings for doors and windows, a case by no means rare in this region, when this open ground floor is used as a privy by the whole neighbourhood for want of other facilities!

Enough! The entire side of the Irk is built like this, a chaotic mess of houses with no real plan, teetering on the edge of being unlivable. The filthy interiors match their disgusting outside surroundings. How can the people keep clean when they don’t have a proper way to meet even the most basic needs? Privies are so scarce that they’re either filled up every day or too far away for most residents to use. How can people wash themselves when the only water available is the dirty Irk water, while pumps and water pipes are found only in the nicer parts of the city? Honestly, it's not their fault if their homes are not cleaner than the pigsties scattered among them. The landlords aren’t embarrassed to rent out places like the six or seven cellars on the quay just below Scotland Bridge, with floors that sit at least two feet below the low-water level of the Irk, which flows just six feet away; or the upper floor of the corner house on the opposite shore right above the bridge, where the ground floor is completely unlivable, lacking doors and windows. It's not uncommon in this area for the open ground floor to be used as a toilet by the whole neighborhood because there are no other options!

If we leave the Irk and penetrate once more on the opposite side from Long Millgate into the midst of the working-men’s dwellings, we shall come into a somewhat newer quarter, which stretches from St. Michael’s Church to Withy Grove and Shude Hill.  Here there is somewhat better order.  In place of the chaos of buildings, we find at least long straight lanes and alleys or courts, built according to a plan and usually square.  But if, in the former case, every house was built according to caprice, here each lane and court is so built, without reference to the situation of the adjoining ones.  The lanes run now in this direction, now in that, while every two minutes the wanderer gets into a blind alley, or, on turning a corner, finds himself back where he started from; certainly no one who has not lived a considerable time in this labyrinth can find his way through it.

If we cross the Irk and move to the other side from Long Millgate into the heart of the working-class neighborhoods, we'll enter a somewhat newer area that stretches from St. Michael’s Church to Withy Grove and Shude Hill. Here, things are a bit more organized. Instead of the chaotic mix of buildings, we find longer, straight streets and alleys or courts that are laid out in a plan and usually squared off. However, unlike the previous area where every house was built randomly, here each street and court is designed without considering how it connects to the neighboring ones. The streets twist and turn in different directions, and every couple of minutes, someone wandering around might end up in a dead end, or turn a corner and find themselves back where they began; definitely, no one who hasn’t spent a good amount of time in this maze can navigate through it.

If I may use the word at all in speaking of this district, the ventilation of these streets and courts is, in consequence of this confusion, quite as imperfect as in the Irk region; and if this quarter may, nevertheless, be said to have some advantage over that of the Irk, the houses being newer and the streets occasionally having gutters, nearly every house has, on the other hand, a cellar dwelling, which is rarely found in the Irk district, by reason of the greater age and more careless construction of the houses.  As for the rest, the filth, débris, and offal heaps, and the pools in the streets are common to both quarters, and in the district now under discussion, another feature most injurious to the cleanliness of the inhabitants, is the multitude of pigs walking about in all p. 53the alleys, rooting into the offal heaps, or kept imprisoned in small pens.  Here, as in most of the working-men’s quarters of Manchester, the pork-raisers rent the courts and build pig-pens in them.  In almost every court one or even several such pens may be found, into which the inhabitants of the court throw all refuse and offal, whence the swine grow fat; and the atmosphere, confined on all four sides, is utterly corrupted by putrefying animal and vegetable substances.  Through this quarter, a broad and measurably decent street has been cut, Millers Street, and the background has been pretty successfully concealed.  But if any one should be led by curiosity to pass through one of the numerous passages which lead into the courts, he will find this piggery repeated at every twenty paces.

If I can use the term at all when talking about this area, the airflow in these streets and alleys is just as poor as in the Irk region. However, if this neighborhood can be said to have any advantage over the Irk area, it’s that the houses are newer and the streets sometimes have gutters. On the downside, almost every house has a basement dwelling, which is rare in the Irk district due to the older and more poorly constructed homes there. Besides that, the garbage, debris, and mounds of waste, as well as the puddles in the streets, are common to both areas. In the neighborhood we’re discussing now, another factor that seriously harms the cleanliness of the residents is the number of pigs wandering around the alleys, digging through the trash or kept inside small pens. Here, like in most of the working-class neighborhoods in Manchester, the pig farmers rent the alleys and build pig pens in them. In nearly every alley, there’s at least one, if not several, of these pens where the residents dump all their scraps and waste, allowing the pigs to fatten up. The air, trapped on all sides, is completely spoiled by rotting animal and vegetable matter. A wide and somewhat decent street, Millers Street, has been constructed through this area, and efforts have been made to hide the background. But if anyone decides to follow their curiosity and walks through one of the many passages leading into the alleys, they will find this piggery repeated every twenty steps.

Such is the Old Town of Manchester, and on re-reading my description, I am forced to admit that instead of being exaggerated, it is far from black enough to convey a true impression of the filth, ruin, and uninhabitableness, the defiance of all considerations of cleanliness, ventilation, and health which characterise the construction of this single district, containing at least twenty to thirty thousand inhabitants.  And such a district exists in the heart of the second city of England, the first manufacturing city of the world.  If any one wishes to see in how little space a human being can move, how little air—and such air!—he can breathe, how little of civilisation he may share and yet live, it is only necessary to travel hither.  True, this is the Old Town, and the people of Manchester emphasise the fact whenever any one mentions to them the frightful condition of this Hell upon Earth; but what does that prove?  Everything which here arouses horror and indignation is of recent origin, belongs to the industrial epoch.  The couple of hundred houses, which belong to old Manchester, have been long since abandoned by their original inhabitants; the industrial epoch alone has crammed into them the swarms of workers whom they now shelter; the industrial epoch alone has built up every spot between these old houses to win a covering for the masses whom it has conjured hither from the agricultural districts and from Ireland; the industrial epoch alone enables the owners of p. 54these cattle-sheds to rent them for high prices to human beings, to plunder the poverty of the workers, to undermine the health of thousands, in order that they alone, the owners, may grow rich.  In the industrial epoch alone has it become possible that the worker scarcely freed from feudal servitude could be used as mere material, a mere chattel; that he must let himself be crowded into a dwelling too bad for every other, which he for his hard-earned wages buys the right to let go utterly to ruin.  This manufacture has achieved, which, without these workers, this poverty, this slavery could not have lived.  True, the original construction of this quarter was bad, little good could have been made out of it; but, have the landowners, has the municipality done anything to improve it when rebuilding?  On the contrary, wherever a nook or corner was free, a house has been run up; where a superfluous passage remained, it has been built up; the value of land rose with the blossoming out of manufacture, and the more it rose, the more madly was the work of building up carried on, without reference to the health or comfort of the inhabitants, with sole reference to the highest possible profit on the principle that no hole is so bad but that some poor creature must take it who can pay for nothing better.  However, it is the Old Town, and with this reflection the bourgeoisie is comforted.  Let us see, therefore, how much better it is in the New Town.

This is the Old Town of Manchester, and after rereading my description, I have to admit that instead of being exaggerated, it actually doesn’t capture the true extent of the filth, decay, and unlivability, the complete disregard for cleanliness, ventilation, and health that define this single area, which houses at least twenty to thirty thousand people. Yet, this area exists in the heart of England’s second city, the world’s leading industrial city. If anyone wants to see how little space a person can occupy, how little air—and such air!—they can breathe, and how little civilization they can partake in and still survive, they only need to come here. Yes, this is the Old Town, and the people of Manchester stress this fact whenever someone brings up the terrible state of this Hell on Earth; but what does that really prove? Everything that sparks horror and outrage here is of recent origin, part of the industrial era. The couple of hundred houses that belong to old Manchester have long been abandoned by their original residents; it is the industrial age that has packed in the throngs of workers they now house. The industrial age is solely responsible for filling every space between these old buildings to create shelter for the masses drawn here from the farmlands and from Ireland. The industrial age has allowed the owners of these cattle-sheds to rent them out at high prices to people, to exploit the poverty of the workers, to jeopardize the health of thousands, so that they alone, the landlords, can get rich. In the industrial age, it has become possible for a worker just freed from feudal servitude to be treated as mere material, a mere commodity; he has to cram himself into a dwelling so unfit for anyone else that he spends his hard-earned wages just to let it decay completely. This manufacturing system has thrived, one that, without these workers, this poverty, this slavery, could not have survived. True, the original construction of this area was poor, and not much good could have come from it; but have the landlords or the city government done anything to improve it during rebuilding? Quite the opposite; wherever there was a vacant nook or cranny, a house went up; wherever there was an unnecessary passage, it was filled; land values skyrocketed with the growth of manufacturing, and the higher they rose, the more frantically construction continued, without regard for the health or comfort of the residents, solely focused on maximizing profit under the belief that no space is too bad if some poor person is willing to pay for it. Yet it’s called the Old Town, and with this thought, the bourgeoisie feels reassured. So, let’s see how much better it is in the New Town.

The New Town, known also as Irish Town, stretches up a hill of clay, beyond the Old Town, between the Irk and St. George’s Road.  Here all the features of a city are lost.  Single rows of houses or groups of streets stand, here and there, like little villages on the naked, not even grass-grown clay soil; the houses, or rather cottages, are in bad order, never repaired, filthy, with damp, unclean, cellar dwellings; the lanes are neither paved nor supplied with sewers, but harbour numerous colonies of swine penned in small sties or yards, or wandering unrestrained through the neighbourhood.  The mud in the streets is so deep that there is never a chance, except in the dryest weather, of walking without sinking into it ankle deep at every step.  In the vicinity of St. George’s Road, the separate groups of buildings approach each p. 55other more closely, ending in a continuation of lanes, blind alleys, back lanes and courts, which grow more and more crowded and irregular the nearer they approach the heart of the town.  True, they are here oftener paved or supplied with paved sidewalks and gutters; but the filth, the bad order of the houses, and especially of the cellars, remains the same.

The New Town, also called Irish Town, rises up a clay hill beyond the Old Town, situated between the Irk and St. George’s Road. Here, all the characteristics of a city disappear. Rows of houses or clusters of streets are scattered around like small villages on the bare, not even grass-covered clay soil; the houses, or rather cottages, are in terrible shape, never maintained, filthy, with damp, unclean cellar homes; the lanes are neither paved nor have sewer systems, but are filled with many groups of pigs kept in small pens or yards, or roaming freely around the area. The mud in the streets is so deep that there is rarely a chance, except during the driest weather, to walk without sinking into it up to your ankles with each step. Near St. George’s Road, the different clusters of buildings come closer together, leading to a maze of lanes, dead ends, back streets, and courts, which become more cramped and chaotic the closer they get to the town center. True, these areas are more often paved or have paved sidewalks and gutters; however, the dirt, the poor condition of the houses, and especially the cellars, remains unchanged.

It may not be out of place to make some general observations just here as to the customary construction of working-men’s quarters in Manchester.  We have seen how in the Old Town pure accident determined the grouping of the houses in general.  Every house is built without reference to any other, and the scraps of space between them are called courts for want of another name.  In the somewhat newer portions of the same quarter, and in other working-men’s quarters, dating from the early days of industrial activity, a somewhat more orderly arrangement may be found.  The space between two streets is divided into more regular, usually square courts.

It might be helpful to share some general observations about how working-class neighborhoods in Manchester are typically set up. We've seen that in the Old Town, the layout of the houses was mostly random. Each house stands alone, and the small areas in between them are referred to as courts simply because there's no better name for them. In the slightly newer parts of the same area, as well as in other working-class neighborhoods that emerged during the early days of industrialization, there’s a somewhat more organized layout. The spaces between two streets are divided into more regular, usually square-shaped courts.

These courts were built in this way from the beginning, and communicate with the streets by means of covered passages.  If the totally planless construction is injurious to the health of the workers by preventing ventilation, this method of shutting them up in courts surrounded on all sides by buildings is far more so.  The air simply cannot escape; the chimneys of the houses are the sole drains for the imprisoned atmosphere of the courts, and they serve the purpose only so long as fire is kept burning. {55}  Moreover, the houses surrounding such courts are usually built back to back, having the rear wall in common; and this alone suffices to prevent any sufficient through ventilation.  And, as the police charged with care of the streets, does not trouble itself about the condition of these courts, as everything quietly lies where it is thrown, there is no cause for wonder at the filth and heaps of ashes and offal to be p. 56found here.  I have been in courts, in Millers Street, at least half a foot below the level of the thoroughfares, and without the slightest drainage for the water that accumulates in them in rainy weather!  More recently another different method of building was adopted, and has now become general.  Working-men’s cottages are almost never built singly, but always by the dozen or score; a single contractor building up one or two streets at a time.  These are then arranged as follows: One front is formed of cottages of the best class, so fortunate as to possess a back door and small court, and these command the highest rent.  In the rear of these cottages runs a narrow alley, the back street, built up at both ends, into which either a narrow roadway or a covered passage leads from one side.  The cottages which face this back street command least rent, and are most neglected.  These have their rear walls in common with the third row of cottages which face a second street, and command less rent than the first row and more than the second.

These courts have been built this way from the start and connect to the streets through covered walkways. If the completely unplanned design harms the health of the workers by blocking ventilation, this method of trapping them in courts surrounded on all sides by buildings is even worse. The air simply can't escape; the chimneys of the houses are the only outlets for the trapped air in the courts, and they only work as long as there’s a fire burning. {55} Moreover, the houses around these courts are usually built back to back, sharing a rear wall, which is enough to stop any decent airflow. And since the police responsible for the streets don't pay any attention to the condition of these courts and everything is left where it lands, it’s no surprise that filth and piles of ashes and waste can be found here. I've been in courts on Millers Street that are at least half a foot below the level of the main streets, with no drainage for the water that collects in them during rainy weather! Recently, a different method of building has been adopted, and it’s now common. Working-class cottages are rarely built individually but are usually constructed in groups of a dozen or more; a single contractor typically builds one or two streets at a time. These are arranged like this: the front consists of the best quality cottages, fortunate enough to have a back door and small courtyard, which charge the highest rent. Behind these cottages is a narrow alley called the back street, blocked at both ends, into which either a narrow road or a covered passage leads from one side. The cottages facing this back street charge the lowest rent and are the most neglected. These share their rear walls with the third row of cottages that face a second street, which charge less rent than the first row and more than the second.

By this method of construction, comparatively good ventilation can be obtained for the first row of cottages, and the third row is no worse off than in the former method.  The middle row, on the other hand, is at least as badly ventilated as the houses in the courts, and the back street is always in the same filthy, disgusting condition as they.  The contractors prefer this method because it saves them space, and furnishes the means of fleecing better paid workers through the higher rents of the cottages in the first and third rows.  These three different forms of cottage building are found all over Manchester and throughout Lancashire and Yorkshire, often mixed up together, but usually separate enough to indicate the relative age of parts of towns.  The third system, that of the back alleys, prevails largely in the great working-men’s district east of St. George’s Road and Ancoats Street, and is the one most often found in the other working-men’s quarters of Manchester and its suburbs.

By using this construction method, fairly good ventilation can be achieved for the first row of cottages, and the third row is just as well off as in the previous method. However, the middle row is at least as poorly ventilated as the houses in the courts, and the back street remains in the same filthy, disgusting condition as those houses. The contractors prefer this method because it saves space and allows them to exploit better-paid workers through the higher rents of the cottages in the first and third rows. These three different types of cottage building can be found all over Manchester and throughout Lancashire and Yorkshire, often mixed together, but usually distinct enough to show the relative age of different parts of the town. The third system, that of the back alleys, is especially common in the large working-class district to the east of St. George’s Road and Ancoats Street, and it is the one most frequently seen in other working-class neighborhoods of Manchester and its suburbs.

In the last-mentioned broad district included under the name Ancoats, stand the largest mills of Manchester lining the canals, colossal six and seven-storied buildings towering with their slender p. 57chimneys far above the low cottages of the workers.  The population of the district consists, therefore, chiefly of mill hands, and in the worst streets, of hand-weavers.  The streets nearest the heart of the town are the oldest, and consequently the worst; they are, however, paved, and supplied with drains.  Among them I include those nearest to and parallel with Oldham Road and Great Ancoats Street.  Farther to the north-east lie many newly-built-up streets; here the cottages look neat and cleanly, doors and windows are new and freshly painted, the rooms within newly whitewashed; the streets themselves are better aired, the vacant building lots between them larger and more numerous.  But this can be said of a minority of the houses only, while cellar dwellings are to be found under almost every cottage; many streets are unpaved and without sewers; and, worse than all, this neat appearance is all pretence, a pretence which vanishes within the first ten years.  For the construction of the cottages individually is no less to be condemned than the plan of the streets.  All such cottages look neat and substantial at first; their massive brick walls deceive the eye, and, on passing through a newly-built working-men’s street, without remembering the back alleys and the construction of the houses themselves, one is inclined to agree with the assertion of the Liberal manufacturers that the working population is nowhere so well housed as in England.  But on closer examination, it becomes evident that the walls of these cottages are as thin as it is possible to make them.  The outer walls, those of the cellar, which bear the weight of the ground floor and roof, are one whole brick thick at most, the bricks lying with their long sides touching; but I have seen many a cottage of the same height, some in process of building, whose outer walls were but one-half brick thick, the bricks lying not sidewise but lengthwise, their narrow ends touching.  The object of this is to spare material, but there is also another reason for it; namely, the fact that the contractors never own the land but lease it, according to the English custom, for twenty, thirty, forty, fifty, or ninety-nine years, at the expiration of which time it falls, with everything upon it, back into the possession of the original holder, p. 58who pays nothing in return for improvements upon it.  The improvements are therefore so calculated by the lessee as to be worth as little as possible at the expiration of the stipulated term.  And as such cottages are often built but twenty or thirty years before the expiration of the term, it may easily be imagined that the contractors make no unnecessary expenditures upon them.  Moreover, these contractors, usually carpenters and builders, or manufacturers, spend little or nothing in repairs, partly to avoid diminishing their rent receipts, and partly in view of the approaching surrender of the improvement to the landowner; while in consequence of commercial crises and the loss of work that follows them, whole streets often stand empty, the cottages falling rapidly into ruin and uninhabitableness.  It is calculated in general that working-men’s cottages last only forty years on the average.  This sounds strangely enough when one sees the beautiful, massive walls of newly-built ones, which seem to give promise of lasting a couple of centuries; but the fact remains that the niggardliness of the original expenditure, the neglect of all repairs, the frequent periods of emptiness, the constant change of inhabitants, and the destruction carried on by the dwellers during the final ten years, usually Irish families, who do not hesitate to use the wooden portions for fire-wood—all this, taken together, accomplishes the complete ruin of the cottages by the end of forty years.  Hence it comes that Ancoats, built chiefly since the sudden growth of manufacture, chiefly indeed within the present century, contains a vast number of ruinous houses, most of them being, in fact, in the last stages of inhabitableness.  I will not dwell upon the amount of capital thus wasted, the small additional expenditure upon the original improvement and upon repairs which would suffice to keep this whole district clean, decent, and inhabitable for years together.  I have to deal here with the state of the houses and their inhabitants, and it must be admitted that no more injurious and demoralising method of housing the workers has yet been discovered than precisely this.  The working-man is constrained to occupy such ruinous dwellings because he cannot pay for others, and because there are no others in the vicinity of p. 59his mill; perhaps, too, because they belong to the employer, who engages him only on condition of his taking such a cottage.  The calculation with reference to the forty years’ duration of the cottage is, of course, not always perfectly strict; for, if the dwellings are in a thickly-built-up portion of the town, and there is a good prospect of finding steady occupants for them, while the ground rent is high, the contractors do a little something to keep the cottages inhabitable after the expiration of the forty years.  They never do anything more, however, than is absolutely unavoidable, and the dwellings so repaired are the worst of all.  Occasionally when an epidemic threatens, the otherwise sleepy conscience of the sanitary police is a little stirred, raids are made into the working-men’s districts, whole rows of cellars and cottages are closed, as happened in the case of several lanes near Oldham Road; but this does not last long: the condemned cottages soon find occupants again, the owners are much better off by letting them, and the sanitary police won’t come again so soon.  These east and north-east sides of Manchester are the only ones on which the bourgeoisie has not built, because ten or eleven months of the year the west and south-west wind drives the smoke of all the factories hither, and that the working-people alone may breathe.

In the broad area known as Ancoats, you’ll find Manchester’s largest mills along the canals, massive six- and seven-story buildings with tall, slender chimneys soaring above the workers' small cottages. This area is primarily populated by mill workers, and in the poorer streets, hand-weavers. The oldest and most rundown streets are closest to the city center; however, they're paved and have drainage systems. I’m referring to those streets near and parallel to Oldham Road and Great Ancoats Street. Further northeast, many new streets have been built; here, the cottages look tidy and well-kept, with new doors and windows, freshly painted, and interiors that are recently whitewashed. These streets have better ventilation, with larger and more numerous empty lots between them. But this is true for only a small portion of the houses, as most cottages have cellars, many streets remain unpaved without sewage systems, and, worse, this neat appearance is just a facade that wears off in the first ten years. The quality of the cottages’ construction itself is as questionable as the street layout. Initially, these cottages look sturdy and substantial; their thick brick walls create an illusion, and if you stroll through a newly constructed working-class street without considering the back alleys and the quality of the houses, you might be tempted to agree with the claim of Liberal manufacturers that workers in England live in the best housing. But if you take a closer look, it becomes clear that these cottages’ walls are as thin as possible. The outer walls, including those of the cellar that support the ground floor and roof, are at most a full brick thick, laid with their long sides touching; however, I’ve seen many cottages of similar height, some under construction, whose outer walls are just half a brick thick, with the bricks placed lengthwise and their narrow ends touching. This is done to save materials, but there’s another reason: contractors typically do not own the land but lease it, by English law, for twenty, thirty, forty, fifty, or ninety-nine years, after which it returns, along with everything on it, to the original owner, who pays nothing for the improvements. Thus, the lessee designs improvements to be worth as little as possible by the time the lease ends. Since these cottages are often built just twenty or thirty years before the lease is up, it’s easy to see that contractors don’t spend much money on them. Furthermore, these contractors, often carpenters, builders, or manufacturers, invest little or nothing in repairs, partly to maintain their rental income and partly because they’re about to hand over the improvements to the landowner; as a result of business downturns and subsequent job losses, entire streets often become vacant, leading to rapid deterioration and making the cottages unlivable. Generally, it’s estimated that working-class cottages last only about forty years on average. This might sound strange when you see the beautiful, sturdy walls of newly built ones, which seem capable of lasting a couple of centuries; but the reality is that the stinginess of initial investment, neglect of repairs, frequent vacancies, constant turnover of tenants, and damage inflicted by residents during the last ten years—often Irish families who don’t hesitate to use the wooden parts for firewood—all contribute to the cottages’ complete collapse by the end of forty years. This is why Ancoats, mostly constructed during the significant industrial boom, especially this century, has a vast number of dilapidated houses, many of which are on the brink of being uninhabitable. I won’t focus on the waste of capital involved, as the minimal extra spending on the original improvements and repairs would be enough to keep this entire area clean, decent, and livable for many years. My concern here is the condition of the houses and their residents, and it must be recognized that there's no more destructive and demoralizing way to house workers than this. The working class is forced to live in such dilapidated buildings because they can’t afford better options, and because there aren’t any alternatives close to his mill; it might also be because these homes are owned by the employer, who only hires him on the condition that he lives in such a cottage. While the forty-year lifespan of the cottages isn’t always perfectly accurate, if the buildings are in a densely populated part of town with a good chance of finding reliable tenants, and the ground rent is high, contractors will do a bit to keep the cottages livable after the forty years are up. However, they only do the bare minimum, and those repaired units are usually the worst of all. Occasionally, when there’s an outbreak, the usually indifferent sanitary inspectors stir into action, conducting inspections in working-class neighborhoods, closing down rows of cellars and cottages, as happened with several alleys near Oldham Road; but this doesn’t last long—those condemned cottages quickly get tenants again, the owners benefit more from renting them, and the sanitary inspectors won't return for a while. The east and northeast sides of Manchester are the only places where the middle class hasn’t built, as the west and southwest winds blow smoke from all the factories into this area for ten or eleven months of the year, leaving only the working people to breathe it in.

Southward from Great Ancoats Street, lies a great, straggling, working-men’s quarter, a hilly, barren stretch of land, occupied by detached, irregularly built rows of houses or squares, between these, empty building lots, uneven, clayey, without grass and scarcely passable in wet weather.  The cottages are all filthy and old, and recall the New Town to mind.  The stretch cut through by the Birmingham railway is the most thickly built-up and the worst.  Here flows the Medlock with countless windings through a valley, which is, in places, on a level with the valley of the Irk.  Along both sides of the stream, which is coal black, stagnant and foul, stretches a broad belt of factories and working-men’s dwellings, the latter all in the worst condition.  The bank is chiefly declivitous and is built over to the water’s edge, just as we saw along the Irk; while the houses are equally bad, whether built on the Manchester side or in Ardwick, Chorlton, or Hulme.  But the p. 60most horrible spot (if I should describe all the separate spots in detail I should never come to the end) lies on the Manchester side, immediately south-west of Oxford Road, and is known as Little Ireland.  In a rather deep hole, in a curve of the Medlock and surrounded on all four sides by tall factories and high embankments, covered with buildings, stand two groups of about two hundred cottages, built chiefly back to back, in which live about four thousand human beings, most of them Irish.  The cottages are old, dirty, and of the smallest sort, the streets uneven, fallen into ruts and in part without drains or pavement; masses of refuse, offal and sickening filth lie among standing pools in all directions; the atmosphere is poisoned by the effluvia from these, and laden and darkened by the smoke of a dozen tall factory chimneys.  A horde of ragged women and children swarm about here, as filthy as the swine that thrive upon the garbage heaps and in the puddles.  In short, the whole rookery furnishes such a hateful and repulsive spectacle as can hardly be equalled in the worst court on the Irk.  The race that lives in these ruinous cottages, behind broken windows, mended with oilskin, sprung doors, and rotten door-posts, or in dark, wet cellars, in measureless filth and stench, in this atmosphere penned in as if with a purpose, this race must really have reached the lowest stage of humanity.  This is the impression and the line of thought which the exterior of this district forces upon the beholder.  But what must one think when he hears that in each of these pens, containing at most two rooms, a garret and perhaps a cellar, on the average twenty human beings live; that in the whole region, for each one hundred and twenty persons, one usually inaccessible privy is provided; and that in spite of all the preachings of the physicians, in spite of the excitement into which the cholera epidemic plunged the sanitary police by reason of the condition of Little Ireland, in spite of everything, in this year of grace 1844, it is in almost the same state as in 1831!  Dr. Kay asserts that not only the cellars but the first floors of all the houses in this district are damp; that a number of cellars once filled up with earth have now been emptied and are occupied p. 61once more by Irish people; that in one cellar the water constantly wells up through a hole stopped with clay, the cellar lying below the river level, so that its occupant, a hand-loom weaver, had to bale out the water from his dwelling every morning and pour it into the street!

South of Great Ancoats Street, there’s a large, sprawling area for working-class people, a hilly, barren stretch of land filled with unevenly constructed rows of houses or squares. In between them are empty lots, muddy and nearly impassable in wet weather. The cottages are all dirty and old, reminding one of the New Town. The area cut through by the Birmingham railway is the most densely packed and in the worst condition. Here, the Medlock River winds through a valley that, in some places, is level with the Irk Valley. Along both sides of this coal-black, stagnant, and foul river runs a wide stretch of factories and workers' homes, all in dire shape. The riverbanks are mostly steep and built up to the water's edge, just like we saw along the Irk, and the houses are equally poor, whether they’re on the Manchester side or in Ardwick, Chorlton, or Hulme. But the most horrendous area (if I were to describe all the different locations in detail I would never finish) is on the Manchester side, just southwest of Oxford Road, known as Little Ireland. In a deep basin, at a bend in the Medlock and surrounded on all sides by tall factories and high embankments covered with buildings, are two clusters of about two hundred cottages, mostly built back to back. These houses are home to around four thousand people, most of them Irish. The cottages are old, dirty, and very small, the streets are uneven, filled with ruts, and in places lack drainage or pavement; heaps of trash, offal, and disgusting filth lie among standing puddles everywhere. The air is tainted by fumes from this waste and heavy with smoke from a dozen tall factory chimneys. A crowd of ragged women and children swarm here, just as filthy as the pigs that thrive on the garbage heaps and in the puddles. In short, the whole area presents such a horrible and repulsive sight that it's hard to find anything worse in the most rundown courts along the Irk. The people living in these dilapidated cottages, with broken windows patched with oilskin, doors that barely hang on, and rotten door frames, or in dark, damp cellars, surrounded by immense filth and stench, seem to have reached the lowest point of humanity. This is the impression that the exterior of this district imposes on anyone who witnesses it. But what can one think when realizing that in each of these cramped spaces, containing at most two rooms, an attic, and sometimes a cellar, an average of twenty people live? That across the entire area, for every one hundred and twenty people, there is usually only one inaccessible toilet available? And that despite all the warnings from doctors, despite the panic caused by the cholera outbreak that got the sanitary police involved due to the conditions in Little Ireland, despite everything, in this year of 1844, it remains almost exactly as it was in 1831! Dr. Kay claims that not only are the basements damp, but that the first floors of all the houses in this area are too; that many basements that were previously filled in have been emptied and are now once again occupied by Irish families; that in one basement, water constantly seeps in through a clay-stopped hole, leaving the basement below river level, forcing its occupant, a hand-loom weaver, to bail out water from his home every morning and dump it into the street!

Farther down, on the left side of the Medlock, lies Hulme, which, properly speaking, is one great working-people’s district, the condition of which coincides almost exactly with that of Ancoats; the more thickly built-up regions chiefly bad and approaching ruin, the less populous of more modern structure, but generally sunk in filth.  On the other side of the Medlock, in Manchester proper, lies a second great working-men’s district which stretches on both sides of Deansgate as far as the business quarter, and in certain parts rivals the Old Town.  Especially in the immediate vicinity of the business quarter, between Bridge and Quay Streets, Princess and Peter Streets, the crowded construction exceeds in places the narrowest courts of the Old Town.  Here are long, narrow lanes between which run contracted, crooked courts and passages, the entrances to which are so irregular that the explorer is caught in a blind alley at every few steps, or comes out where he least expects to, unless he knows every court and every alley exactly and separately.  According to Dr. Kay, the most demoralised class of all Manchester lived in these ruinous and filthy districts, people whose occupations are thieving and prostitution; and, to all appearance, his assertion is still true at the present moment.  When the sanitary police made its expedition hither in 1831, it found the uncleanness as great as in Little Ireland or along the Irk (that it is not much better to-day, I can testify); and among other items, they found in Parliament Street for three hundred and eighty persons, and in Parliament Passage for thirty thickly populated houses, but a single privy.

Further down the left side of the Medlock is Hulme, which is essentially a large working-class neighborhood. Its condition is almost identical to that of Ancoats; the more densely populated areas are mostly run-down and on the verge of collapse, while the less populated, more modern buildings are generally filthy. On the opposite side of the Medlock, in the heart of Manchester, there's another major working-class district that stretches along both sides of Deansgate all the way to the business area and, in some places, rivals the Old Town. Particularly around the business district, between Bridge and Quay Streets, and Princess and Peter Streets, the dense construction sometimes surpasses the narrowest alleys in the Old Town. There are long, narrow lanes with twisted, cramped courts and passageways, whose entrances are so irregular that anyone exploring can easily end up in a dead end or find themselves in unexpected places unless they know every alley and court intimately. Dr. Kay noted that the most demoralized group in Manchester lived in these dilapidated and filthy areas—people engaged in theft and prostitution; and, by all appearances, his claim still holds true today. When the sanitary police came through in 1831, they discovered the unsanitary conditions were as bad as those in Little Ireland or along the Irk (I can personally attest that it hasn’t improved much since then); amongst other things, they found in Parliament Street for three hundred and eighty people and in Parliament Passage for thirty densely populated houses, there was just one toilet.

If we cross the Irwell to Salford, we find on a peninsula formed by the river, a town of eighty thousand inhabitants, which, properly speaking, is one large working-men’s quarter, penetrated by a single wide avenue.  Salford, once more important than Manchester, was then the leading town of the surrounding district to p. 62which it still gives its name, Salford Hundred.  Hence it is that an old and therefore very unwholesome, dirty, and ruinous locality is to be found here, lying opposite the Old Church of Manchester, and in as bad a condition as the Old Town on the other side of the Irwell.  Farther away from the river lies the newer portion, which is, however, already beyond the limit of its forty years of cottage life, and therefore ruinous enough.  All Salford is built in courts or narrow lanes, so narrow, that they remind me of the narrowest I have ever seen, the little lanes of Genoa.  The average construction of Salford is in this respect much worse than that of Manchester, and so, too, in respect to cleanliness.  If, in Manchester, the police, from time to time, every six or ten years, makes a raid upon the working-people’s districts, closes the worst dwellings, and causes the filthiest spots in these Augean stables to be cleansed, in Salford it seems to have done absolutely nothing.  The narrow side lanes and courts of Chapel Street, Greengate, and Gravel Lane have certainly never been cleansed since they were built.  Of late, the Liverpool railway has been carried through the middle of them, over a high viaduct, and has abolished many of the filthiest nooks; but what does that avail?  Whoever passes over this viaduct and looks down, sees filth and wretchedness enough; and, if any one takes the trouble to pass through these lanes, and glance through the open doors and windows into the houses and cellars, he can convince himself afresh with every step that the workers of Salford live in dwellings in which cleanliness and comfort are impossible.  Exactly the same state of affairs is found in the more distant regions of Salford, in Islington, along Regent Road, and back of the Bolton railway.  The working-men’s dwellings between Oldfield Road and Cross Lane, where a mass of courts and alleys are to be found in the worst possible state, vie with the dwellings of the Old Town in filth and overcrowding.  In this district I found a man, apparently about sixty years old, living in a cow stable.  He had constructed a sort of chimney for his square pen, which had neither windows, floor, nor ceiling, had obtained a bedstead and lived there, though the rain dripped through his rotten roof.  This man was too old and weak for regular p. 63work, and supported himself by removing manure with a hand-cart; the dung-heaps lay next door to his palace!

If we cross the Irwell into Salford, we find a town of eighty thousand people on a peninsula formed by the river, which is mainly a large working-class area, marked by a single wide avenue. Salford, once more significant than Manchester, used to be the leading town of the surrounding area, known as Salford Hundred. Because of this, there’s an old, unhealthy, dirty, and run-down area here, situated across from the Old Church of Manchester, which is just as bad as the Old Town on the opposite side of the Irwell. Further from the river lies the newer part, but it's already past its forty years of cottage living and is quite dilapidated. Salford is built mainly in courts or narrow streets that are so tight they remind me of the narrowest lanes I've seen in Genoa. Overall, Salford's construction is in worse shape than Manchester's, and it’s also less clean. In Manchester, the police occasionally make sweeps every six to ten years in working-class neighborhoods, shutting down the worst homes and cleaning the dirtiest spots, but in Salford, it seems they haven’t done anything at all. The narrow side streets and courts of Chapel Street, Greengate, and Gravel Lane clearly have never been cleaned since they were built. Recently, the Liverpool railway was built through the middle of them on a high viaduct, which got rid of some of the filthiest corners, but that hardly helps. Anyone who crosses this viaduct and looks down sees plenty of dirt and misery; and if someone takes the time to walk through these lanes and look through open doors and windows into the homes and cellars, they will quickly realize that the workers in Salford live in conditions where cleanliness and comfort are impossible. The same issues are apparent in the more distant parts of Salford, in Islington, along Regent Road, and behind the Bolton railway. The working-class homes between Oldfield Road and Cross Lane, where many courts and alleys exist in deplorable condition, are just as filthy and overcrowded as the Old Town. In this area, I found a man, seemingly about sixty years old, living in a cow stable. He had built a sort of chimney for his square pen, which had no windows, floor, or ceiling, and he had managed to get a bed frame and was living there, even though rain dripped through his rotting roof. This man was too old and weak for regular work and made a living by hauling away manure with a hand cart; the dung piles were right next to his home!

Such are the various working-people’s quarters of Manchester as I had occasion to observe them personally during twenty months.  If we briefly formulate the result of our wanderings, we must admit that 350,000 working-people of Manchester and its environs live, almost all of them, in wretched, damp, filthy cottages, that the streets which surround them are usually in the most miserable and filthy condition, laid out without the slightest reference to ventilation, with reference solely to the profit secured by the contractor.  In a word, we must confess that in the working-men’s dwellings of Manchester, no cleanliness, no convenience, and consequently no comfortable family life is possible; that in such dwellings only a physically degenerate race, robbed of all humanity, degraded, reduced morally and physically to bestiality, could feel comfortable and at home.  And I am not alone in making this assertion.  We have seen that Dr. Kay gives precisely the same description; and, though it is superfluous, I quote further the words of a Liberal, {63} recognised and highly valued as an authority by the manufacturers, and a fanatical opponent of all independent movements of the workers:

These are the various working-class neighborhoods of Manchester that I had the chance to see firsthand during twenty months. If we summarize the outcome of our explorations, we have to acknowledge that 350,000 workers in Manchester and the surrounding areas live, almost exclusively, in miserable, damp, filthy cottages. The streets around them are usually in the most distressed and filthy state, designed without any regard for ventilation, focusing only on the profit made by the contractor. In short, we must admit that in the workers' homes of Manchester, there is no cleanliness, no comfort, and therefore no possibility of a decent family life; only a physically degraded population, stripped of all humanity and reduced morally and physically to bestiality, could feel comfortable and at home in such conditions. I am not the only one making this claim. We've seen that Dr. Kay gives exactly the same account; and although it may be unnecessary, I will also quote the words of a Liberal, {63} recognized and highly regarded as an authority by the manufacturers and a staunch opponent of all independent movements of the workers:

“As I passed through the dwellings of the mill hands in Irish Town, Ancoats, and Little Ireland, I was only amazed that it is possible to maintain a reasonable state of health in such homes.  These towns, for in extent and number of inhabitants they are towns, have been erected with the utmost disregard of everything except the immediate advantage of the speculating builder.  A carpenter and builder unite to buy a series of building sites (i.e., they lease them for a number of years), and cover them with so-called houses.  In one place we found a whole street following the course of a ditch, because in this way deeper cellars could be secured without the cost of digging, cellars not for storing wares or rubbish, but for dwellings for human beings.  Not one house of this street escaped the cholera.  In general, the streets of these p. 64suburbs are unpaved, with a dung-heap or ditch in the middle; the houses are built back to back, without ventilation or drainage, and whole families are limited to a corner of a cellar or a garret.”  I have already referred to the unusual activity which the sanitary police manifested during the cholera visitation.  When the epidemic was approaching, a universal terror seized the bourgeoisie of the city.  People remembered the unwholesome dwellings of the poor, and trembled before the certainty that each of these slums would become a centre for the plague, whence it would spread desolation in all directions through the houses of the propertied class.  A Health Commission was appointed at once to investigate these districts, and report upon their condition to the Town Council.  Dr. Kay, himself a member of this Commission, who visited in person every separate police district except one, the eleventh, quotes extracts from their reports: There were inspected, in all, 6,951 houses—naturally in Manchester proper alone, Salford and the other suburbs being excluded.  Of these, 6,565 urgently needed whitewashing within; 960 were out of repair; 939 had insufficient drains; 1,435 were damp; 452 were badly ventilated; 2,221 were without privies.  Of the 687 streets inspected, 248 were unpaved, 53 but partially paved, 112 ill-ventilated, 352 containing standing pools, heaps of débris, refuse, etc.  To cleanse such an Augean stable before the arrival of the cholera was, of course, out of the question.  A few of the worst nooks were therefore cleansed, and everything else left as before.  In the cleansed spots, as Little Ireland proves, the old filthy condition was naturally restored in a couple of months.  As to the internal condition of these houses, the same Commission reports a state of things similar to that which we have already met with in London, Edinburgh, and other cities. {64}

“As I walked through the homes of the mill workers in Irish Town, Ancoats, and Little Ireland, I was shocked that anyone could stay healthy in such conditions. These areas, which are more like towns in size and population, were built with total disregard for anything except the immediate profit of the speculative builders. A carpenter and builder team up to buy a series of building lots (i.e., they lease them for several years) and then throw up what they call houses. One street even followed the line of a ditch, allowing for deeper cellars without the expense of digging; these cellars aren't for storing goods or junk, but for people to live in. Not a single house on that street was spared from the cholera. Generally, the streets in these suburbs are unpaved, with a pile of manure or a ditch running through the middle; the houses are built back-to-back, with no ventilation or drainage, and entire families are crammed into a corner of a cellar or an attic. I’ve already mentioned how active the sanitary police were during the cholera outbreak. As the epidemic loomed, a wave of panic swept through the city’s middle class. People remembered the unhealthy conditions of the poorer neighborhoods and feared that each of these slums would become a breeding ground for the plague, spreading disaster to the homes of wealthier citizens. Immediately, a Health Commission was put together to investigate these areas and report on their conditions to the Town Council. Dr. Kay, a member of this Commission, personally visited almost every police district except one, the eleventh, and cited findings from their reports: They inspected a total of 6,951 houses—this was only in Manchester itself, excluding Salford and other suburbs. Of these, 6,565 desperately needed whitewashing inside; 960 were in disrepair; 939 had inadequate drainage; 1,435 were damp; 452 had poor ventilation; and 2,221 had no toilets. Among the 687 streets examined, 248 were unpaved, 53 were only partially paved, 112 were poorly ventilated, and 352 had standing water, piles of debris, refuse, and so on. Cleaning up such a mess before cholera arrived was completely impossible. So, they cleaned a few of the worst spots and left everything else as it was. In the cleaned areas, as shown in Little Ireland, the filthy conditions returned within just a couple of months. Regarding the internal conditions of these houses, the Commission reported a state of affairs similar to what we’ve already seen in London, Edinburgh, and other cities."

It often happens that a whole Irish family is crowded into one bed; often a heap of filthy straw or quilts of old sacking cover all in an indiscriminate heap, where all alike are degraded by want, stolidity, and wretchedness.  Often the inspectors found, in a single house, two families in two rooms.  All slept in one, and p. 65used the other as a kitchen and dining-room in common.  Often more than one family lived in a single damp cellar, in whose pestilent atmosphere twelve to sixteen persons were crowded together.  To these and other sources of disease must be added that pigs were kept, and other disgusting things of the most revolting kind were found.

It’s common for an entire Irish family to be squeezed into one bed; often a pile of dirty straw or old sackcloth covers everyone in a messy heap, where they are all brought low by poverty, ignorance, and misery. Inspectors often discovered, in a single house, two families living in two rooms. Everyone slept in one room, and p. 65the other was used as a shared kitchen and dining room. Many times, more than one family lived in a single damp basement, where twelve to sixteen people were crammed into a toxic environment. To these sources of illness, we must add that pigs were kept, along with other disgusting and revolting things found.

We must add that many families, who had but one room for themselves, receive boarders and lodgers in it, that such lodgers of both sexes by no means rarely sleep in the same bed with the married couple; and that the single case of a man and his wife and his adult sister-in-law sleeping in one bed was found, according to the “Report concerning the sanitary condition of the working-class,” six times repeated in Manchester.  Common lodging-houses, too, are very numerous; Dr. Kay gives their number in 1831 at 267 in Manchester proper, and they must have increased greatly since then.  Each of these receives from twenty to thirty guests, so that they shelter all told, nightly, from five to seven thousand human beings.  The character of the houses and their guests is the same as in other cities.  Five to seven beds in each room lie on the floor—without bedsteads, and on these sleep, mixed indiscriminately, as many persons as apply.  What physical and moral atmosphere reigns in these holes I need not state.  Each of these houses is a focus of crime, the scene of deeds against which human nature revolts, which would perhaps never have been executed but for this forced centralisation of vice. {65}  Gaskell gives the number p. 66of persons living in cellars in Manchester proper as 20,000.  The Weekly Dispatch gives the number, “according to official reports,” as twelve per cent. of the working-class, which agrees with Gaskell’s number; the workers being estimated at 175,000, 21,000 would form twelve per cent. of it.  The cellar dwellings in the suburbs are at least as numerous, so that the number of persons living in cellars in Manchester—using its name in the broader sense—is not less than forty to fifty thousand.  So much for the dwellings of the workers in the largest cities and towns.  The manner in which the need of a shelter is satisfied furnishes a standard for the manner in which all other necessities are supplied.  That in these filthy holes a ragged, ill-fed population alone can dwell is a safe conclusion, and such is the fact.  The clothing of the working-people, in the majority of cases, is in a very bad condition.  The material used for it is not of the best adapted.  Wool and linen have almost vanished from the wardrobe of both sexes, and cotton has taken their place.  Shirts are made of bleached or coloured cotton goods; the dresses of the women are chiefly of cotton print goods, and woollen petticoats are rarely to be seen on the washline.  The men wear chiefly trousers of fustian or other heavy cotton goods, and jackets or coats of the same.  Fustian has become the proverbial costume of the working-men, who are called “fustian jackets,” and call themselves so in contrast to the gentlemen who wear broadcloth, which latter words are used as characteristic for the middle-class.  When Feargus O’Connor, the Chartist leader, came to Manchester during the insurrection of 1842, he appeared, amidst the deafening applause of the working-men, in a fustian suit of clothing.  Hats are the universal head-covering in England, even for working-men, hats of the most diverse forms, round, high, broad-brimmed, narrow-brimmed, or without brims—only the younger men in factory towns wearing caps.  Any one who does not own a hat folds himself a low, square paper cap.

We should note that many families, who have only one room for themselves, take in boarders and lodgers. It's not uncommon for both male and female lodgers to share a bed with the married couple; in fact, a report on the sanitary conditions of the working class found that there were six cases in Manchester of a man, his wife, and his adult sister-in-law sleeping in the same bed. Common lodging houses are also very common; Dr. Kay reported that in 1831, there were 267 of them in Manchester alone, and that number has likely increased significantly since then. Each of these houses usually hosts twenty to thirty guests, collectively accommodating five to seven thousand people every night. The quality of these houses and their guests is similar to that found in other cities. In each room, there are five to seven beds on the floor—without bed frames—whereas many people as want to can sleep together. I don’t need to explain what kind of physical and moral environment exists in these places. Each of these houses is a hotspot for crime, the site of actions that go against human nature, possibly carried out only because of this forced centralization of vice. Gaskell reports that there are about 20,000 people living in cellars in Manchester. The *Weekly Dispatch* states, “according to official reports,” that this number is twelve percent of the working class, which aligns with Gaskell’s findings; the total number of workers is estimated at 175,000, meaning that 21,000 would represent twelve percent. The number of cellar dwellers in the suburbs is at least as high, so overall, the total number of people living in cellars in Manchester—considering the broader area—is likely not less than forty to fifty thousand. This gives us an idea of the living conditions of workers in the largest cities and towns. The way in which they find shelter reflects how all other needs are met. The conclusion that only a ragged, poorly fed population can live in these filthy places is accurate, and that is indeed the reality. The clothing of the working class is generally in very poor condition. The materials used for their clothes are far from ideal. Wool and linen have almost disappeared from the wardrobes of both genders, with cotton taking over. Shirts are mostly made from bleached or colored cotton; women's dresses are primarily cotton prints, and wool petticoats are rarely seen hanging out to dry. Men typically wear trousers made of fustian or other heavy cotton fabrics, along with jackets or coats made from the same materials. Fustian has become the typical outfit for workers, who are referred to as “fustian jackets,” a term they embrace to distinguish themselves from the gentlemen who wear broadcloth, which is a term associated with the middle class. When Feargus O’Connor, the Chartist leader, visited Manchester during the insurrection in 1842, he received raucous applause from workers for wearing a fustian suit. Hats are the universal headwear in England, even for working-class men, and they come in many styles—round, high, broad-brimmed, narrow-brimmed, or brimless—while only younger men in factory towns tend to wear caps. Anyone without a hat usually improvises with a low, square paper cap.

The whole clothing of the working-class, even assuming it to be in good condition, is little adapted to the climate.  The damp air of England, with its sudden changes of temperature, more calculated than any other to give rise to colds, obliges almost the whole p. 67middle-class to wear flannel next the skin, about the body, and flannel scarfs and shirts are in almost universal use.  Not only is the working-class deprived of this precaution, it is scarcely ever in a position to use a thread of woollen clothing; and the heavy cotton goods, though thicker, stiffer, and heavier than woollen clothes, afford much less protection against cold and wet, remain damp much longer because of their thickness and the nature of the stuff, and have nothing of the compact density of fulled woollen cloths.  And, if a working-man once buys himself a woollen coat for Sunday, he must get it from one of the cheap shops where he finds bad, so-called “Devil’s-dust” cloth, manufactured for sale and not for use, and liable to tear or grow threadbare in a fortnight, or he must buy of an old clothes’-dealer a half-worn coat which has seen its best days, and lasts but a few weeks.  Moreover, the working-man’s clothing is, in most cases, in bad condition, and there is the oft-recurring necessity for placing the best pieces in the pawnbroker’s shop.  But among very large numbers, especially among the Irish, the prevailing clothing consists of perfect rags often beyond all mending, or so patched that the original colour can no longer be detected.  Yet the English and Anglo-Irish go on patching, and have carried this art to a remarkable pitch, putting wool or bagging on fustian, or the reverse—it’s all the same to them.  But the true, transplanted Irish hardly ever patch except in the extremest necessity, when the garment would otherwise fall apart.  Ordinarily the rags of the shirt protrude through the rents in the coat or trousers.  They wear, as Thomas Carlyle says,—{67}

The entire outfit of the working class, even if it’s in decent shape, isn’t really suited for the weather. The damp air of England, with its sudden temperature changes, is more likely than anything else to cause colds and forces almost all of the middle class to wear flannel next to their skin and use flannel scarves and shirts, which are almost universally worn. Not only are the working-class people missing out on this precaution, but they also rarely have the option to wear even a single piece of wool clothing. The heavy cotton fabrics, while thicker, stiffer, and heavier than wool, offer much less protection from the cold and wet, stay damp much longer due to their thickness and material, and lack the compact density of felted wool fabrics. And if a working man manages to buy himself a wool coat for Sunday, he must get it from a discount store where he’ll find poorly made, so-called “Devil’s-dust” cloth, designed for sale and not for actual use, likely to tear or wear out in two weeks, or he has to buy a second-hand coat from a thrift shop that’s already past its prime and will only last a few more weeks. Furthermore, the working man’s clothes are usually in bad shape, and there’s often the recurring need to pawn the best pieces. Among many, especially the Irish, the typical clothing consists of tattered rags that are often beyond repair, or are so patched that the original color can no longer be made out. Yet the English and Anglo-Irish keep patching and have really mastered this skill, mixing wool or bagging with fustian fabric—it's all the same to them. However, the truly transplanted Irish hardly ever patch unless it’s absolutely necessary, when the garment is about to fall apart. Usually, the rags from the shirt stick out through the holes in the coat or pants. They wear, as Thomas Carlyle says,—

“A suit of tatters, the getting on or off which is said to be a difficult operation, transacted only in festivals and the high tides of the calendar.”

“A suit made of ripped pieces, known to be difficult to put on or take off, is only worn during festivals and significant dates on the calendar.”

The Irish have introduced, too, the custom previously unknown in England, of going barefoot.  In every manufacturing town there is now to be seen a multitude of people, especially women and children, going about barefoot, and their example is gradually being adopted by the poorer English.

The Irish have also brought in the practice that was previously unknown in England, of going barefoot. In every manufacturing town, there are now many people, especially women and children, walking around without shoes, and more and more of the poorer English are starting to follow their lead.

p. 68As with clothing, so with food.  The workers get what is too bad for the property-holding class.  In the great towns of England everything may be had of the best, but it costs money; and the workman, who must keep house on a couple of pence, cannot afford much expense.  Moreover, he usually receives his wages on Saturday evening, for, although a beginning has been made in the payment of wages on Friday, this excellent arrangement is by no means universal; and so he comes to market at five or even seven o’clock, while the buyers of the middle-class have had the first choice during the morning, when the market teems with the best of everything.  But when the workers reach it, the best has vanished, and, if it was still there, they would probably not be able to buy it.  The potatoes which the workers buy are usually poor, the vegetables wilted, the cheese old and of poor quality, the bacon rancid, the meat lean, tough, taken from old, often diseased, cattle, or such as have died a natural death, and not fresh even then, often half decayed.  The sellers are usually small hucksters who buy up inferior goods, and can sell them cheaply by reason of their badness.  The poorest workers are forced to use still another device to get together the things they need with their few pence.  As nothing can be sold on Sunday, and all shops must be closed at twelve o’clock on Saturday night, such things as would not keep until Monday are sold at any price between ten o’clock and midnight.  But nine-tenths of what is sold at ten o’clock is past using by Sunday morning, yet these are precisely the provisions which make up the Sunday dinner of the poorest class.  The meat which the workers buy is very often past using; but having bought it, they must eat it.  On the 6th of January, 1844 (if I am not greatly mistaken), a court leet was held in Manchester, when eleven meat-sellers were fined for having sold tainted meat.  Each of them had a whole ox or pig, or several sheep, or from fifty to sixty pounds of meat, which were all confiscated in a tainted condition.  In one case, sixty-four stuffed Christmas geese were seized which had proved unsaleable in Liverpool, and had been forwarded to Manchester, where they were brought to market foul and rotten.  All the particulars, with names and fines, were published at the p. 69time in the Manchester Guardian.  In the six weeks, from July 1st to August 14th, the same sheet reported three similar cases.  According to the Guardian for August 3rd, a pig, weighing 200 pounds, which had been found dead and decayed, was cut up and exposed for sale by a butcher at Heywood, and was then seized.  According to the number for July 31st, two butchers at Wigan, of whom one had previously been convicted of the same offence, were fined £2 and £4 respectively, for exposing tainted meat for sale; and, according to the number for August 10th, twenty-six tainted hams seized at a dealer’s in Bolton, were publicly burnt, and the dealer fined twenty shillings.  But these are by no means all the cases; they do not even form a fair average for a period of six weeks, according to which to form an average for the year.  There are often seasons in which every number of the semi-weekly Guardian mentions a similar case found in Manchester or its vicinity.  And when one reflects upon the many cases which must escape detection in the extensive markets that stretch along the front of every main street, under the slender supervision of the market inspectors—and how else can one explain the boldness with which whole animals are exposed for sale?—when one considers how great the temptation must be, in view of the incomprehensibly small fines mentioned in the foregoing cases; when one reflects what condition a piece of meat must have reached to be seized by the inspectors, it is impossible to believe that the workers obtain good and nourishing meat as a usual thing.  But they are victimised in yet another way by the money-greed of the middle-class.  Dealers and manufacturers adulterate all kinds of provisions in an atrocious manner, and without the slightest regard to the health of the consumers.  We have heard the Manchester Guardian upon this subject, let us hear another organ of the middle-class—I delight in the testimony of my opponents—let us hear the Liverpool Mercury: “Salted butter is sold for fresh, the lumps being covered with a coating of fresh butter, or a pound of fresh being laid on top to taste, while the salted article is sold after this test, or the whole mass is washed and then sold as fresh.  With sugar, pounded rice and other cheap adulterating materials p. 70are mixed, and the whole sold at full price.  The refuse of soap-boiling establishments also is mixed with other things and sold as sugar.  Chicory and other cheap stuff is mixed with ground coffee, and artificial coffee beans with the unground article.  Cocoa is often adulterated with fine brown earth, treated with fat to render it more easily mistakable for real cocoa.  Tea is mixed with the leaves of the sloe and with other refuse, or dry tea-leaves are roasted on hot copper plates, so returning to the proper colour and being sold as fresh.  Pepper is mixed with pounded nutshells; port wine is manufactured outright (out of alcohol, dye-stuffs, etc.), while it is notorious that more of it is consumed in England alone than is grown in Portugal; and tobacco is mixed with disgusting substances of all sorts and in all possible forms in which the article is produced.”  I can add that several of the most respected tobacco dealers in Manchester announced publicly last summer, that, by reason of the universal adulteration of tobacco, no firm could carry on business without adulteration, and that no cigar costing less than threepence is made wholly from tobacco.  These frauds are naturally not restricted to articles of food, though I could mention a dozen more, the villainy of mixing gypsum or chalk with flour among them.  Fraud is practiced in the sale of articles of every sort: flannel, stockings, etc., are stretched, and shrink after the first washing; narrow cloth is sold as being from one and a half to three inches broader than it actually is; stoneware is so thinly glazed that the glazing is good for nothing, and cracks at once, and a hundred other rascalities, tout comme chez nous.  But the lion’s share of the evil results of these frauds falls to the workers.  The rich are less deceived, because they can pay the high prices of the large shops which have a reputation to lose, and would injure themselves more than their customers if they kept poor or adulterated wares; the rich are spoiled, too, by habitual good eating, and detect adulteration more easily with their sensitive palates.  But the poor, the working-people, to whom a couple of farthings are important, who must buy many things with little money, who cannot afford to inquire too closely into the quality of their purchases, p. 71and cannot do so in any case because they have had no opportunity of cultivating their taste—to their share fall all the adulterated, poisoned provisions.  They must deal with the small retailers, must buy perhaps on credit, and these small retail dealers who cannot sell even the same quality of goods so cheaply as the largest retailers, because of their small capital and the large proportional expenses of their business, must knowingly or unknowingly buy adulterated goods in order to sell at the lower prices required, and to meet the competition of the others.  Further, a large retail dealer who has extensive capital invested in his business is ruined with his ruined credit if detected in a fraudulent practice; but what harm does it do a small grocer, who has customers in a single street only, if frauds are proved against him?  If no one trusts him in Ancoats, he moves to Chorlton or Hulme, where no one knows him, and where he continues to defraud as before; while legal penalties attach to very few adulterations unless they involve revenue frauds.  Not in the quality alone, but in the quantity of his goods as well, is the English working-man defrauded.  The small dealers usually have false weights and measures, and an incredible number of convictions for such offences may be read in the police reports.  How universal this form of fraud is in the manufacturing districts, a couple of extracts from the Manchester Guardian may serve to show.  They cover only a short period, and, even here, I have not all the numbers at hand:

p. 68Just like clothes, food is different for workers compared to those who own property. In big cities in England, you can find the best of everything, but it comes at a cost. Workers, who have to manage on just a couple of pennies, can’t afford much. Typically, they get paid on Saturday evenings, and while some businesses are paying wages on Fridays, it’s not yet common practice. So, they end up at the market around five or even seven o'clock, while middle-class buyers have already picked the best items in the morning when the market is filled with top-quality goods. By the time workers arrive, the best options are gone. If they are still available, they likely can’t afford them. The potatoes you see workers buying are usually poor quality, the vegetables wilted, the cheese stale and low-grade, the bacon rancid, and the meat is often lean and tough, coming from old or sick animals, sometimes even from those that died naturally, and often it’s not even fresh, being half-decayed. The sellers are usually small vendors who buy subpar goods and can sell them cheaply because of their poor condition. The poorest workers have to find yet another way to gather the necessities with their limited coins. Since nothing can be sold on Sundays and all shops must close by midnight on Saturday, items that won't last until Monday are sold for any price between ten o'clock and midnight. However, most of what’s sold by ten is already spoiled by Sunday morning, yet these are exactly the items that make up the Sunday dinner for the poorest folks. The meat they buy is often already bad, but once they buy it, they have to eat it. On January 6, 1844 (if I'm remembering right), a court meeting in Manchester fined eleven meat vendors for selling spoiled meat. Each of them had a whole ox, pig, or several sheep, or about fifty to sixty pounds of meat that were all confiscated because they were spoiled. One case involved sixty-four Christmas geese that had gone unsold in Liverpool, sent to Manchester, where they were found foul and rotten when brought to market. All details, including names and fines, were published at the time in the Manchester Guardian. In just six weeks, from July 1 to August 14, the same paper reported three similar cases. According to the Guardian on August 3, a butcher in Heywood cut up a pig weighing 200 pounds that had been found dead and decayed, and it was seized. The edition from July 31 reported two butchers in Wigan, one of whom had already been convicted for the same thing, were fined £2 and £4 for selling spoiled meat; and in the August 10 issue, twenty-six spoiled hams taken from a dealer in Bolton were publicly burned, and the dealer was fined twenty shillings. But these are just a few examples; they don’t even serve as a fair average for a six-week period, let alone for a full year. Often, every issue of the semi-weekly Guardian mentions similar cases happening in Manchester or nearby. When you think about the many instances that must go unnoticed in the vast markets lining every major street, with only minimal oversight from market inspectors—how else do you explain the audacity with which whole animals are sold?—and when you consider the enormous temptation, given the ridiculously low fines reported in the previous cases; when you think about the condition a piece of meat must reach to be seized by inspectors, it's hard to believe that workers regularly receive good and nourishing meat. But they are also exploited in another way by the money-driven middle class. Dealers and manufacturers adulterate all kinds of food products outrageously, with no consideration for consumers' health. We’ve heard about this from the Manchester Guardian; now let’s hear from another middle-class voice—I appreciate the testimony from my opponents—let’s listen to the Liverpool Mercury: “Salted butter is sold as fresh, with a layer of fresh butter covering it, or a pound of fresh is placed on top for flavor, while the salted product is sold under this ruse, or the entire batch is washed and then sold as fresh. Sugar, ground rice, and other cheap materials are mixed in and sold at full price. Waste from soap-making is blended with other materials and sold as sugar. Chicory and other inexpensive items are mixed with ground coffee, and fake coffee beans are added to the real stuff. Cocoa is often mixed with fine brown dirt, treated with fat to make it resemble real cocoa. Tea can be mixed with sloe leaves and other waste, or dry tea leaves are roasted on hot copper plates to regain their color and are sold as fresh. Pepper is mixed with ground nutshells; port wine is outright manufactured (from alcohol, dye-stuffs, etc.), and it’s well-known that more of it is consumed in England than is produced in Portugal; tobacco is mixed with disgusting substances of all kinds in various forms as it’s produced.” I can add that several respected tobacco sellers in Manchester publicly declared last summer that, due to widespread tobacco adulteration, no business could operate without mixing in other substances, and that no cigar costing less than threepence is made entirely from tobacco. These scams aren’t just restricted to food items—though I could list many more, including the disgusting practice of mixing gypsum or chalk with flour. Fraud happens in the sale of all kinds of goods: flannel, stockings, etc., are stretched out and shrink after the first wash; narrow cloth is sold as being up to three inches wider than it actually is; stoneware is glazed so poorly that the glazing is worthless and cracks immediately, along with a hundred other tricks, tout comme chez nous. But workers bear the brunt of these fraudulent practices. The rich are affected less, as they can afford to pay higher prices in well-known shops that have reputations to uphold and would hurt themselves more than their customers if they sold low-quality or adulterated goods; the rich are also spoiled by good food and can more easily spot adulteration with their discerning palates. Yet the poor, the working class, for whom a couple of pennies matter, who have to buy many items with little, cannot afford to scrutinize the quality of their purchases, and can't do so because their taste hasn’t been developed—they are the ones who get stuck with spoiled, adulterated food. They have to rely on small retailers, might have to buy on credit, and these small retailers, who cannot match the low prices of larger shops due to their limited resources and higher operational costs, must knowingly or unknowingly buy inferior goods to sell at lower prices and compete. Also, a larger retailer with significant capital invested would be ruined if found guilty of fraudulent practices; however, what happens to a small grocer who only has customers in one street if frauds are proven against him? If he loses trust in Ancoats, he can just move to Chorlton or Hulme, where no one knows him, and continue his scamming as before; legal consequences are often minimal unless the fraud involves tax evasion. Not just in quality but also in quantity, the English working man is cheated. Smaller shops usually use false weights and measurements, and there are many recent convictions for such offenses listed in police reports. To show how widespread this type of fraud is in industrial areas, a few quotes from the Manchester Guardian can illustrate. They cover just a short timeframe, and I don’t even have all the editions available:

Guardian, June 16, 1844, Rochdale Sessions.—Four dealers fined five to ten shillings for using light weights.  Stockport Sessions.—Two dealers fined one shilling, one of them having seven light weights and a false scale, and both having been warned.

Guardian, June 16, 1844, Rochdale Sessions.—Four vendors fined between five and ten shillings for using misleading weights. Stockport Sessions.—Two vendors fined one shilling each, one of them having seven false weights and a fake scale, and both had been previously warned.

Guardian, June 19, Rochdale Sessions.—One dealer fined five, and two farmers ten shillings.

Guardian, June 19, Rochdale Sessions.—One dealer was fined five shillings, and two farmers were fined ten shillings each.

Guardian, June 22, Manchester Justices of the Peace.—Nineteen dealers fined two shillings and sixpence to two pounds.

Guardian, June 22, Manchester Justices of the Peace.—Nineteen dealers fined between two shillings and sixpence and two pounds.

Guardian, June 26, Ashton Sessions.—Fourteen dealers and farmers fined two shillings and sixpence to one pound.  Hyde p. 72Petty Sessions.—Nine farmers and dealers condemned to pay costs and five shillings fines.

Guardian, June 26, Ashton Sessions.—Fourteen dealers and farmers fined two shillings and sixpence to one pound. Hyde p. 72Petty Sessions.—Nine farmers and dealers ordered to pay court costs and five shillings in fines.

Guardian, July 9, Manchester—Sixteen dealers condemned to pay costs and fines not exceeding ten shillings.

Guardian, July 9, Manchester—Sixteen dealers ordered to pay costs and fines of no more than ten shillings.

Guardian, July 13, Manchester.—Nine dealers fined from two shillings and sixpence to twenty shillings.

Guardian, July 13, Manchester.—Nine dealers fined from 12.5 pence to £1.

Guardian, July 24, Rochdale.—Four dealers fined ten to twenty shillings.

Guardian, July 24, Rochdale.—Four dealers fined ten to twenty shillings.

Guardian, July 27, Bolton.—Twelve dealers and innkeepers condemned to pay costs.

Guardian, July 27, Bolton.—Twelve dealers and innkeepers fined for costs.

Guardian, August 3, Bolton.—Three dealers fined two shillings and sixpence, and five shillings.

Guardian, August 3, Bolton.—Three dealers were fined two shillings and sixpence and five shillings.

Guardian, August 10, Bolton.—One dealer fined five shillings.

Guardian, August 10, Bolton.—One dealer was fined five shillings.

And the same causes which make the working-class the chief sufferers from frauds in the quality of goods make them the usual victims of frauds in the question of quantity too.

And the same reasons that make the working class the main victims of fraud in the quality of goods also make them the typical targets of fraud in terms of quantity as well.

The habitual food of the individual working-man naturally varies according to his wages.  The better paid workers, especially those in whose families every member is able to earn something, have good food as long as this state of things lasts; meat daily, and bacon and cheese for supper.  Where wages are less, meat is used only two or three times a week, and the proportion of bread and potatoes increases.  Descending gradually, we find the animal food reduced to a small piece of bacon cut up with the potatoes; lower still, even this disappears, and there remain only bread, cheese, porridge, and potatoes, until on the lowest round of the ladder, among the Irish, potatoes form the sole food.  As an accompaniment, weak tea, with perhaps a little sugar, milk, or spirits, is universally drunk.  Tea is regarded in England, and even in Ireland, as quite as indispensable as coffee in Germany, and where no tea is used, the bitterest poverty reigns.  But all this pre-supposes that the workman has work.  When he has none, he is wholly at the mercy of accident, and eats what is given him, what he can beg or steal.  And, if he gets nothing, he simply starves, as we have seen.  The quantity of food varies, of course, like its quality, according to the rate of wages, so that p. 73among ill-paid workers, even if they have no large families, hunger prevails in spite of full and regular work; and the number of the ill-paid is very large.  Especially in London, where the competition of the workers rises with the increase of population, this class is very numerous, but it is to be found in other towns as well.  In these cases all sorts of devices are used; potato parings, vegetable refuse, and rotten vegetables are eaten for want of other food, and everything greedily gathered up which may possibly contain an atom of nourishment.  And, if the week’s wages are used up before the end of the week, it often enough happens that in the closing days the family gets only as much food, if any, as is barely sufficient to keep off starvation.  Of course such a way of living unavoidably engenders a multitude of diseases, and when these appear, when the father from whose work the family is chiefly supported, whose physical exertion most demands nourishment, and who therefore first succumbs—when the father is utterly disabled, then misery reaches its height, and then the brutality with which society abandons its members, just when their need is greatest, comes out fully into the light of day.

The typical diet of a working man naturally changes depending on his wages. Better-paid workers, especially those in families where everyone can earn something, enjoy good food as long as this situation lasts; they have meat every day, and bacon and cheese for dinner. When wages are lower, meat is eaten only two or three times a week, and the amount of bread and potatoes increases. Gradually, we see the meat reduced to a small piece of bacon mixed with the potatoes; even that disappears at lower wage levels, leaving just bread, cheese, porridge, and potatoes. At the very bottom, among the Irish, potatoes become the only food. Weak tea, possibly with a bit of sugar, milk, or spirits, is commonly consumed alongside it. Tea is considered in England, and even in Ireland, as essential as coffee is in Germany; when there's no tea, it signals extreme poverty. However, all of this assumes the worker has a job. When he doesn't, he's completely at the mercy of chance, picking up whatever food he can beg or steal. If he gets nothing, he simply starves, as we have seen. The amount of food varies, like its quality, depending on wage rates, so among underpaid workers, even without large families, hunger is common despite having steady work, and the number of underpaid workers is significant. Especially in London, where competition among workers increases with the rising population, this group is quite large, but they can also be found in other cities. In these situations, all sorts of strategies are employed; potato peels, vegetable scraps, and rotten vegetables are consumed out of necessity, and anything that might contain even a small bit of nourishment is eagerly collected. If the week's pay runs out before the week ends, it often happens that in the last days, the family has only just enough food, if any, to stave off starvation. Of course, this lifestyle inevitably leads to various diseases, and when these diseases show up, particularly when the father—who is the primary breadwinner and whose labor requires the most nutrition—becomes incapacitated, the family's suffering peaks. At this point, the cruelty with which society neglects its members at their most desperate time becomes glaringly obvious.

To sum up briefly the facts thus far cited.  The great towns are chiefly inhabited by working-people, since in the best case there is one bourgeois for two workers, often for three, here and there for four; these workers have no property whatsoever of their own, and live wholly upon wages, which usually go from hand to mouth.  Society, composed wholly of atoms, does not trouble itself about them; leaves them to care for themselves and their families, yet supplies them no means of doing this in an efficient and permanent manner.  Every working-man, even the best, is therefore constantly exposed to loss of work and food, that is to death by starvation, and many perish in this way.  The dwellings of the workers are everywhere badly planned, badly built, and kept in the worst condition, badly ventilated, damp, and unwholesome.  The inhabitants are confined to the smallest possible space, and at least one family usually sleeps in each room.  The interior arrangement of the dwellings is poverty-stricken in various degrees, down to the utter absence of even the most p. 74necessary furniture.  The clothing of the workers, too, is generally scanty, and that of great multitudes is in rags.  The food is, in general, bad; often almost unfit for use, and in many cases, at least at times, insufficient in quantity, so that, in extreme cases, death by starvation results.  Thus the working-class of the great cities offers a graduated scale of conditions in life, in the best cases a temporarily endurable existence for hard work and good wages, good and endurable, that is, from the worker’s standpoint; in the worst cases, bitter want, reaching even homelessness and death by starvation.  The average is much nearer the worst case than the best.  And this series does not fall into fixed classes, so that one can say, this fraction of the working-class is well off, has always been so, and remains so.  If that is the case here and there, if single branches of work have in general an advantage over others, yet the condition of the workers in each branch is subject to such great fluctuations that a single working-man may be so placed as to pass through the whole range from comparative comfort to the extremest need, even to death by starvation, while almost every English working-man can tell a tale of marked changes of fortune.  Let us examine the causes of this somewhat more closely.

To briefly summarize the facts presented so far: The large cities are mainly populated by working-class people, as there's typically one middle-class person for every two workers, sometimes three, and occasionally four. These workers own no property and rely entirely on their wages, which often just cover their daily needs. Society, made up solely of individuals, ignores them, leaving them to fend for themselves and their families without providing effective and lasting support. As a result, every worker, even the most skilled, faces constant threats of job loss and food insecurity, leading to starvation, and many die as a result. The workers’ homes are poorly designed, badly constructed, and kept in terrible condition—ill-ventilated, damp, and unhealthy. Families are crammed into minimal space, with at least one family usually sharing a single room. The living conditions vary from very poor to the complete absence of even basic furniture. Workers' clothing is generally inadequate, with many resorting to rags. The food is mostly poor quality, often nearly inedible, and at times insufficient in quantity, resulting in starvation in extreme situations. Thus, the working class in large cities experiences a wide range of living conditions—from a barely sustainable life for hard work with decent pay to severe poverty, homelessness, and starvation. The average situation is much closer to the worst conditions rather than the best. This spectrum doesn’t fit into fixed categories, so it's inaccurate to claim that a specific group within the working class is well-off permanently. While some job sectors may have advantages, the conditions for workers in every field fluctuate so much that an individual worker can experience a range from relative comfort to dire need, even starvation. Almost every English worker has a story of significant ups and downs in their circumstances. Let’s take a closer look at the causes of this situation.

p. 75COMPETITION.

We have seen in the introduction how competition created the proletariat at the very beginning of the industrial movement, by increasing the wages of weavers in consequence of the increased demand for woven goods, so inducing the weaving peasants to abandon their farms and earn more money by devoting themselves to their looms.  We have seen how it crowded out the small farmers by means of the large farm system, reduced them to the rank of proletarians, and attracted them in part into the towns; how it further ruined the small bourgeoisie in great measure and reduced its members also to the ranks of the proletariat; how it centralised capital in the hands of the few, and population in the great towns.  Such are the various ways and means by which competition, as it reached its full manifestation and free development in modern industry, created and extended the proletariat.  We shall now have to observe its influence on the working-class already created.  And here we must begin by tracing the results of competition of single workers with one another.

We have seen in the introduction how competition created the working class at the very beginning of the industrial movement by increasing the wages of weavers due to the rising demand for woven goods. This led weaving peasants to leave their farms and earn more money by focusing on their looms. We have observed how it pushed out small farmers through large agricultural systems, reducing them to the status of workers and driving some into the cities; how it largely dismantled the small bourgeoisie, forcing its members into the ranks of the working class; and how it centralized wealth in the hands of a few and populations in the large cities. These are the various ways that competition, in its full form and growth in modern industry, created and expanded the working class. Now we need to examine its impact on the already existing working class. To start, we must look at the results of competition among individual workers.

Competition is the completest expression of the battle of all against all which rules in modern civil society.  This battle, a battle for life, for existence, for everything, in case of need a battle of life and death, is fought not between the different classes of society only, but also between the individual members of these classes.  Each is in the way of the other, and each seeks to crowd out all who are in his way, and to put himself in their place.  The workers are in constant competition among themselves as the members of the bourgeoisie among themselves.  The power-loom weaver is in competition with the hand-loom weaver, the unemployed or ill-paid hand-loom weaver with him who has work or p. 76is better paid, each trying to supplant the other.  But this competition of the workers among themselves is the worst side of the present state of things in its effect upon the worker, the sharpest weapon against the proletariat in the hands of the bourgeoisie.  Hence the effort of the workers to nullify this competition by associations, hence the hatred of the bourgeoisie towards these associations, and its triumph in every defeat which befalls them.

Competition is the ultimate expression of the struggle of everyone against everyone that dominates modern society. This struggle, a fight for survival, existence, and everything essential, can be a matter of life and death. It takes place not just between different social classes but also among individual members of those classes. Each person is an obstacle to others, trying to push aside anyone in their way to take their place. Workers are constantly competing with one another, just as members of the bourgeoisie compete among themselves. A power-loom weaver competes with a hand-loom weaver; an unemployed or poorly paid hand-loom weaver competes with one who has a job or earns more, with each trying to replace the other. However, this internal competition among workers is the most detrimental aspect of the current situation for workers and is the sharpest tool the bourgeoisie wields against the proletariat. This is why workers strive to eliminate this competition through associations, which is why the bourgeoisie despises these groups and celebrates every setback they encounter.

The proletarian is helpless; left to himself, he cannot live a single day.  The bourgeoisie has gained a monopoly of all means of existence in the broadest sense of the word.  What the proletarian needs, he can obtain only from this bourgeoisie, which is protected in its monopoly by the power of the State.  The proletarian is, therefore, in law and in fact, the slave of the bourgeoisie, which can decree his life or death.  It offers him the means of living, but only for an “equivalent” for his work.  It even lets him have the appearance of acting from a free choice, of making a contract with free, unconstrained consent, as a responsible agent who has attained his majority.

The worker is powerless; on his own, he can't survive even a single day. The wealthy have a monopoly on all means of living in the broadest sense. What the worker needs can only be obtained from this wealthy class, which is protected in its monopoly by the government. Therefore, the worker is, both legally and practically, a slave to the bourgeoisie, which can decide his fate. It provides him with the means to live, but only in exchange for his labor. It even allows him to seem like he's making a free choice, signing a contract with full consent, as a responsible adult who has reached maturity.

Fine freedom, where the proletarian has no other choice than that of either accepting the conditions which the bourgeoisie offers him, or of starving, of freezing to death, of sleeping naked among the beasts of the forests!  A fine “equivalent” valued at pleasure by the bourgeoisie!  And if one proletarian is such a fool as to starve rather than agree to the equitable propositions of the bourgeoisie, his “natural superiors,” another is easily found in his place; there are proletarians enough in the world, and not all so insane as to prefer dying to living.

Great freedom, where the working class has no choice but to either accept the terms offered by the wealthy or face starvation, freezing, or sleeping exposed among wild animals! A great “trade-off” that the wealthy value as they please! And if one worker is foolish enough to starve rather than accept the fair offers of their “natural betters,” another will quickly take their place; there are plenty of workers in the world, and not all of them are so crazy as to choose death over life.

Here we have the competition of the workers among themselves.  If all the proletarians announced their determination to starve rather than work for the bourgeoisie, the latter would have to surrender its monopoly.  But this is not the case—is, indeed, a rather impossible case—so that the bourgeoisie still thrives.  To this competition of the worker there is but one limit; no worker will work for less than he needs to subsist.  If he must starve, he will prefer to starve in idleness rather than in toil.  True, this limit is relative; one needs more than another, one is accustomed p. 77to more comfort than another; the Englishman who is still somewhat civilised, needs more than the Irishman who goes in rags, eats potatoes, and sleeps in a pig-sty.  But that does not hinder the Irishman’s competing with the Englishman, and gradually forcing the rate of wages, and with it the Englishman’s level of civilisation, down to the Irishman’s level.  Certain kinds of work require a certain grade of civilisation, and to these belong almost all forms of industrial occupation; hence the interest of the bourgeoisie requires in this case that wages should be high enough to enable the workman to keep himself upon the required plane.

Here, we see workers competing against each other. If all the proletarians declared they would rather starve than work for the bourgeoisie, the latter would have to give up its monopoly. But that’s not the case—it’s actually a pretty impossible situation—so the bourgeoisie continues to thrive. The only limit to this competition among workers is that no worker will accept less than what they need to survive. If they must starve, they would rather do so in idleness than through hard work. True, this limit is relative; some need more than others, and some are used to more comfort than others. The Englishman, who is somewhat civilized, needs more than the Irishman, who is in rags, eats potatoes, and sleeps in a pigsty. But that doesn’t stop the Irishman from competing with the Englishman, gradually forcing down wages and, along with that, the Englishman’s level of civilization to match that of the Irishman. Certain types of work require a certain level of civilization, and most industrial jobs fall into this category; therefore, it’s in the interest of the bourgeoisie to ensure wages are high enough for workers to maintain the required standard.

The newly immigrated Irishman, encamped in the first stable that offers, or turned out in the street after a week because he spends everything upon drink and cannot pay rent, would be a poor mill-hand.  The mill-hand must, therefore, have wages enough to enable him to bring up his children to regular work; but no more, lest he should be able to get on without the wages of his children, and so make something else of them than mere working-men.  Here, too, the limit, the minimum wage, is relative.  When every member of the family works, the individual worker can get on with proportionately less, and the bourgeoisie has made the most of the opportunity of employing and making profitable the labour of women and children afforded by machine-work.  Of course it is not in every family that every member can be set to work, and those in which the case is otherwise would be in a bad way if obliged to exist upon the minimum wage possible to a wholly employed family.  Hence the usual wages form an average according to which a fully employed family gets on pretty well, and one which embraces few members able to work, pretty badly.  But in the worst case, every working-man prefers surrendering the trifling luxury to which he was accustomed to not living at all; prefers a pig-pen to no roof, wears rags in preference to going naked, confines himself to a potato diet in preference to starvation.  He contents himself with half-pay and the hope of better times rather than be driven into the street to perish before the eyes of the world, as so many have done who had no work whatever.  This trifle, therefore, this something more than nothing, is the p. 78minimum of wages.  And if there are more workers at hand than the bourgeoisie thinks well to employ—if at the end of the battle of competition there yet remain workers who find nothing to do, they must simply starve; for the bourgeois will hardly give them work if he cannot sell the produce of their labour at a profit.

The newly arrived Irishman, who finds shelter in the first stable he can, or ends up on the street after a week because he spends all his money on alcohol and can't pay rent, would be a poor mill worker. The mill worker, therefore, needs to earn enough to provide for his children and train them for regular jobs; however, it must not be too much, or else he might manage without his children's wages and turn them into something other than just laborers. Here, too, the limit, the minimum wage, is relative. When everyone in the family works, each individual can get by with less, and the bourgeoisie has taken full advantage of the chance to profit from the labor of women and children offered by machine work. Of course, not every family can have all its members working, and those that can't would struggle if they had to survive on the minimum wage meant for a fully employed family. Therefore, the usual wages create an average in which a fully employed family does quite well, while one with few working members does poorly. But even in the worst situation, every worker would rather give up the small luxuries they’re used to than not have a roof over their head at all; they would choose to live in a pigsty rather than be homeless, wear rags instead of going naked, and settle for a potato diet rather than starve. They accept half-pay and cling to the hope of better days instead of being forced into the street to die in front of everyone, as so many have who found themselves without work. This small bit, then, this something more than nothing, is the p. 78minimum wage. And if there are more workers available than the bourgeoisie is willing to hire—if, at the end of the competition, there are still workers left with nothing to do, they will simply starve; because the bourgeois will hardly employ them if he can't make a profit from the goods produced by their labor.

From this it is evident what the minimum of wages is.  The maximum is determined by the competition of the bourgeoisie among themselves; for we have seen how they, too, must compete with each other.  The bourgeois can increase his capital only in commerce and manufacture, and in both cases he needs workers.  Even if he invests his capital at interest, he needs them indirectly; for without commerce and manufacture, no one would pay him interest upon his capital, no one could use it.  So the bourgeois certainly needs workers, not indeed for his immediate living, for at need he could consume his capital, but as we need an article of trade or a beast of burden,—as a means of profit.  The proletarian produces the goods which the bourgeois sells with advantage.  When, therefore, the demand for these goods increases so that all the competing working-men are employed, and a few more might perhaps be useful, the competition among the workers falls away, and the bourgeoisie begin to compete among themselves.  The capitalist in search of workmen knows very well that his profits increase as prices rise in consequence of the increased demand for his goods, and pays a trifle higher wages rather than let the whole profit escape him.  He sends the butter to fetch the cheese, and getting the latter, leaves the butter ungrudgingly to the workers.  So one capitalist after another goes in chase of workers, and wages rise; but only as high as the increasing demand permits.  If the capitalist, who willingly sacrificed a part of his extraordinary profit, runs into danger of sacrificing any part of his ordinary average profit, he takes very good care not to pay more than average wages.

From this, it's clear what the minimum wage is. The maximum wage is dictated by the competition among the bourgeoisie; as we've seen, they must compete with each other too. A bourgeois can only grow his capital through trade and manufacturing, and in both instances, he needs workers. Even if he invests his capital for interest, he still needs them indirectly; without trade and manufacturing, no one would pay him interest on his capital, and no one could use it. So the bourgeois definitely needs workers, not so much for his immediate living, since he could consume his capital if needed, but like we need a trade item or a work animal—as a means to profit. The proletarian produces the goods that the bourgeois sells profitably. Thus, when the demand for these goods rises to the point where all the competing workers are employed, and perhaps a few more are needed, the competition among the workers decreases, and the bourgeoisie start to compete with each other. The capitalist, in search of workers, knows that his profits increase as prices rise due to the increased demand for his goods, and he pays slightly higher wages rather than let the entire profit slip away. He sends the butter to get the cheese and, upon securing the latter, generously leaves the butter for the workers. So one capitalist after another goes after workers, and wages rise, but only as high as the growing demand allows. If a capitalist, who willingly gives up part of his extraordinary profit, risks sacrificing any portion of his ordinary average profit, he makes sure not to pay more than average wages.

From this we can determine the average rate of wages.  Under average circumstances, when neither workers nor capitalists have reason to compete, especially among themselves, when there are just as many workers at hand as can be employed in producing p. 79precisely the goods that are demanded, wages stand a little above the minimum.  How far they rise above the minimum will depend upon the average needs and the grade of civilisation of the workers.  If the workers are accustomed to eat meat several times in the week, the capitalists must reconcile themselves to paying wages enough to make this food attainable, not less, because the workers are not competing among themselves and have no occasion to content themselves with less; not more, because the capitalists, in the absence of competition among themselves, have no occasion to attract working-men by extraordinary favours.  This standard of the average needs and the average civilisation of the workers has become very complicated by reason of the complications of English industry, and is different for different sorts of workers, as has been pointed out.  Most industrial occupations demand a certain skill and regularity, and for these qualities which involve a certain grade of civilisation, the rate of wages must be such as to induce the worker to acquire such skill and subject himself to such regularity.  Hence it is that the average wages of industrial workers are higher than those of mere porters, day labourers, etc., higher especially than those of agricultural labourers, a fact to which the additional cost of the necessities of life in cities contributes somewhat.  In other words, the worker is, in law and in fact, the slave of the property-holding class, so effectually a slave that he is sold like a piece of goods, rises and falls in value like a commodity.  If the demand for workers increases, the price of workers rises; if it falls, their price falls.  If it falls so greatly that a number of them become unsaleable, if they are left in stock, they are simply left idle; and as they cannot live upon that, they die of starvation.  For, to speak in the words of the economists, the expense incurred in maintaining them would not be reproduced, would be money thrown away, and to this end no man advances capital; and, so far, Malthus was perfectly right in his theory of population.  The only difference as compared with the old, outspoken slavery is this, that the worker of to-day seems to be free because he is not sold once for all, but piecemeal by the day, the week, the year, and because no p. 80one owner sells him to another, but he is forced to sell himself in this way instead, being the slave of no particular person, but of the whole property-holding class.  For him the matter is unchanged at bottom, and if this semblance of liberty necessarily gives him some real freedom on the one hand, it entails on the other the disadvantage that no one guarantees him a subsistence, he is in danger of being repudiated at any moment by his master, the bourgeoisie, and left to die of starvation, if the bourgeoisie ceases to have an interest in his employment, his existence.  The bourgeoisie, on the other hand, is far better off under the present arrangement than under the old slave system; it can dismiss its employees at discretion without sacrificing invested capital, and gets its work done much more cheaply than is possible with slave labour, as Adam Smith comfortingly pointed out. {80}

From this, we can figure out the average wage rate. Generally, when neither workers nor capitalists have a reason to compete with each other, and there are just as many workers available as needed to produce exactly the goods demanded, wages tend to be slightly above the minimum. How much they exceed the minimum depends on the average needs and the level of civilization of the workers. If the workers are used to eating meat several times a week, capitalists need to pay enough in wages to make that food accessible—not less, since the workers aren't competing among themselves and have no reason to settle for less; not more, because the capitalists, without competition among themselves, have no need to attract workers with special perks. This standard for the workers' average needs and civilization has become quite complex due to the intricacies of English industry and varies among different types of workers, as noted. Most industrial jobs require a certain skill and stability, and for these qualities, which involve a certain level of civilization, the wage rate must be sufficient to motivate the worker to develop such skills and maintain that stability. This is why the average wages for industrial workers are higher than those for simple porters, day laborers, and especially higher than for agricultural workers—a fact influenced by the additional cost of living in cities. In other words, the worker is legally and practically enslaved to the property-owning class, so much so that they are treated like a commodity, with their value rising and falling like any other good. If demand for workers increases, their wages go up; if it decreases, their wages go down. If demand drops so low that some become unsellable and are left without work, they’re simply left idle; since they can't survive on that, they starve. To put it in economic terms, the cost of maintaining them wouldn’t be recouped—it would be wasted money, and therefore, no one invests capital for that. In this aspect, Malthus was spot on in his population theory. The only difference from the old, explicit slavery is that today’s worker appears to be free because they aren’t sold for life but rather by the day, week, or year. No single owner sells them to another; instead, they are compelled to sell themselves in this way, being the slave of the entire property-holding class rather than of just one person. For the worker, fundamentally, nothing has changed. While this illusion of freedom gives them some real freedom on one side, it also means that no one guarantees their basic needs, and they face the risk of being discarded at any moment by their employer, the bourgeoisie, leading them to die from starvation if the bourgeoisie loses interest in their employment and existence. Conversely, the bourgeoisie benefits significantly under the current system compared to the old slave system; they can dismiss employees at will without losing invested capital and can get their work done much cheaper than with slave labor, as Adam Smith reassuringly noted.

Hence it follows, too, that Adam Smith was perfectly right in making the assertion: “That the demand for men, like that for any other commodity, necessarily regulates the production of men, quickens it when it goes on too slowly, and stops it when it advances too fast.”  Just as in the case of any other commodity!  If there are too few labourers at hand, prices, i.e. wages, rise, the workers are more prosperous, marriages multiply, more children are born and more live to grow up, until a sufficient number of labourers has been secured.  If there are too many on hand, prices fall, want of work, poverty, and starvation, and consequent diseases arise, and the “surplus population” is put out of the way.  And Malthus, who carried the foregoing proposition of Smith farther, was also right, in his way, in asserting that there are always more p. 81people on hand than can be maintained from the available means of subsistence.  Surplus population is engendered rather by the competition of the workers among themselves, which forces each separate worker to labour as much each day as his strength can possibly admit.  If a manufacturer can employ ten hands nine hours daily, he can employ nine if each works ten hours, and the tenth goes hungry.  And if a manufacturer can force the nine hands to work an extra hour daily for the same wages by threatening to discharge them at a time when the demand for hands is not very great, he discharges the tenth and saves so much wages.  This is the process on a small scale, which goes on in a nation on a large one.  The productiveness of each hand raised to the highest pitch by the competition of the workers among themselves, the division of labour, the introduction of machinery, the subjugation of the forces of nature, deprive a multitude of workers of bread.  These starving workers are then removed from the market, they can buy nothing, and the quantity of articles of consumption previously required by them is no longer in demand, need no longer be produced; the workers previously employed in producing them are therefore driven out of work, and are also removed from the market, and so it goes on, always the same old round, or rather, so it would go if other circumstances did not intervene.  The introduction of the industrial forces already referred to for increasing production leads, in the course of time, to a reduction of prices of the articles produced and to consequent increased consumption, so that a large part of the displaced workers finally, after long suffering, find work again.  If, in addition to this, the conquest of foreign markets constantly and rapidly increases the demand for manufactured goods, as has been the case in England during the past sixty years, the demand for hands increases, and, in proportion to it, the population.  Thus, instead of diminishing, the population of the British Empire has increased with extraordinary rapidity, and is still increasing.  Yet, in spite of the extension of industry, in spite of the demand for working-men which, in general, has increased, there is, according to the confession of all the official political parties (Tory, Whig, p. 82and Radical), permanent surplus, superfluous population; the competition among the workers is constantly greater than the competition to secure workers.

Therefore, it follows that Adam Smith was entirely correct when he stated: “The demand for workers, like the demand for any other product, regulates the production of workers, speeds it up when it slows down, and halts it when it accelerates too quickly.” Just like with any other product! If there aren't enough workers available, wages rise, workers become more prosperous, marriages increase, more children are born, and more survive to adulthood until there's a sufficient number of laborers. If there are too many workers available, wages decrease, leading to job shortages, poverty, starvation, and related diseases, causing the “surplus population” to be eliminated. Malthus, who took Smith's idea further, was also right in asserting that there are always more p. 81people than can be supported by the available means of subsistence. Surplus population is mainly caused by competition among workers, which forces each one to work as much as they can each day. If a manufacturer can employ ten workers for nine hours a day, he can hire nine if each person works ten hours, leaving one without work. If he can push the nine to work an extra hour each day for the same pay by threatening to fire them when there isn’t much demand, he lets the tenth go and saves on wages. This is the small-scale process that occurs within a nation on a larger scale. The productivity of each worker, driven to the highest level by competition, the division of labor, the use of machines, and the harnessing of nature leads to many workers being left without jobs. These starving workers are then excluded from the market, they can’t buy anything, and the goods they previously needed stop being required, so they don’t get produced anymore; thus, the workers who were making them are also put out of work, and the cycle continues, always repeating itself, unless other factors come into play. The introduction of the industrial forces mentioned earlier to boost production eventually results in lower prices for the produced goods and, subsequently, higher consumption, allowing many of the displaced workers to find jobs again after a long struggle. Additionally, if the conquest of foreign markets consistently boosts the demand for manufactured goods, as it has in England over the past sixty years, the demand for labor increases, and the population grows accordingly. So, instead of decreasing, the population of the British Empire has rapidly increased and continues to grow. Yet, despite the expansion of industry and the overall rise in demand for workers, there is, according to all political parties (Tory, Whig, p. 82and Radical), a permanent surplus, an excess population; the competition among workers is constantly greater than the competition to hire them.

Whence comes this incongruity?  It lies in the nature of industrial competition and the commercial crises which arise from them.  In the present unregulated production and distribution of the means of subsistence, which is carried on not directly for the sake of supplying needs, but for profit, in the system under which every one works for himself to enrich himself, disturbances inevitably arise at every moment.  For example, England supplies a number of countries with most diverse goods.  Now, although the manufacturer may know how much of each article is consumed in each country annually, he cannot know how much is on hand at every given moment, much less can he know how much his competitors export thither.  He can only draw most uncertain inferences from the perpetual fluctuations in prices, as to the quantities on hand and the needs of the moment.  He must trust to luck in exporting his goods.  Everything is done blindly, as guess-work, more or less at the mercy of accident.  Upon the slightest favourable report, each one exports what he can, and before long such a market is glutted, sales stop, capital remains inactive, prices fall, and English manufacture has no further employment for its hands.  In the beginning of the development of manufacture, these checks were limited to single branches and single markets; but the centralising tendency of competition which drives the hands thrown out of one branch into such other branches as are most easily accessible, and transfers the goods which cannot be disposed of in one market to other markets, has gradually brought the single minor crises nearer together and united them into one periodically recurring crisis.  Such a crisis usually recurs once in five years after a brief period of activity and general prosperity; the home market, like all foreign ones, is glutted with English goods, which it can only slowly absorb, the industrial movement comes to a standstill in almost every branch, the small manufacturers and merchants who cannot survive a prolonged inactivity of their invested capital fail, the larger ones suspend business during the p. 83worst season, close their mills or work short time, perhaps half the day; wages fall by reason of the competition of the unemployed, the diminution of working-time and the lack of profitable sales; want becomes universal among the workers, the small savings, which individuals may have made, are rapidly consumed, the philanthropic institutions are overburdened, the poor-rates are doubled, trebled, and still insufficient, the number of the starving increases, and the whole multitude of “surplus” population presses in terrific numbers into the foreground.  This continues for a time; the “surplus” exist as best they may, or perish; philanthropy and the Poor Law help many of them to a painful prolongation of their existence.  Others find scant means of subsistence here and there in such kinds of work as have been least open to competition, are most remote from manufacture.  And with how little can a human being keep body and soul together for a time!  Gradually the state of things improve; the accumulations of goods are consumed, the general depression among the men of commerce and manufacture prevents a too hasty replenishing of the markets, and at last rising prices and favourable reports from all directions restore activity.  Most of the markets are distant ones; demand increases and prices rise constantly while the first exports are arriving; people struggle for the first goods, the first sales enliven trade still more, the prospective ones promise still higher prices; expecting a further rise, merchants begin to buy upon speculation, and so to withdraw from consumption the articles intended for it, just when they are most needed.  Speculation forces prices still higher, by inspiring others to purchase, and appropriating new importations at once.  All this is reported to England, manufacturers begin to produce with a will, new mills are built, every means is employed to make the most of the favourable moment.  Speculation arises here, too, exerting the same influence as upon foreign markets, raising prices, withdrawing goods from consumption, spurring manufacture in both ways to the highest pitch of effort.  Then come the daring speculators working with fictitious capital, living upon credit, ruined if they cannot speedily sell; they hurl themselves into this p. 84universal, disorderly race for profits, multiply the disorder and haste by their unbridled passion, which drives prices and production to madness.  It is a frantic struggle, which carries away even the most experienced and phlegmatic; goods are spun, woven, hammered, as if all mankind were to be newly equipped, as though two thousand million new consumers had been discovered in the moon.  All at once the shaky speculators abroad, who must have money, begin to sell, below market price, of course, for their need is urgent; one sale is followed by others, prices fluctuate, speculators throw their goods upon the market in terror, the market is disordered, credit shaken, one house after another stops payments, bankruptcy follows bankruptcy, and the discovery is made that three times more goods are on hand or under way than can be consumed.  The news reaches England, where production has been going on at full speed meanwhile, panic seizes all hands, failures abroad cause others in England, the panic crushes a number of firms, all reserves are thrown upon the market here, too, in the moment of anxiety, and the alarm is still further exaggerated.  This is the beginning of the crisis, which then takes precisely the same course as its predecessor, and gives place in turn to a season of prosperity.  So it goes on perpetually,—prosperity, crisis, prosperity, crisis, and this perennial round in which English industry moves is, as has been before observed, usually completed once in five or six years.

Where does this mismatch come from? It stems from the nature of industrial competition and the commercial crises that arise from it. In today’s unregulated production and distribution of basic necessities, which is driven not by the goal of meeting needs but by profit, and in a system where everyone works for themselves to get richer, disruptions are bound to happen constantly. For example, England supplies various countries with a wide range of goods. Now, even though a manufacturer might know the annual consumption of each item in each country, they can't keep track of how much inventory is available at any given moment, nor can they know how much their competitors are exporting there. They can only make the most uncertain guesses about stock levels and current needs based on the constant fluctuations in prices. They have to rely on luck when exporting their products. Everything is done blindly, like guesswork, vulnerable to chance. With the slightest good news, everyone exports what they can, and soon enough, the market becomes oversaturated, sales halt, capital sits idle, prices drop, and English manufacturing has no more work for its laborers. Early in the development of manufacturing, these bottlenecks were limited to specific sectors and markets; however, the centralizing trend of competition, which forces workers displaced from one sector into the most accessible alternative ones and shifts unsold goods from one market to other markets, has gradually brought these minor crises closer together and fused them into a single, recurring crisis. Such a crisis typically happens every five years after a brief period of activity and general prosperity; the domestic market, like all foreign ones, is flooded with English goods, which it can only absorb slowly, leading to a near standstill in industrial activity across almost all sectors. Small manufacturers and merchants who can't survive a long period of inactivity with their capital go bankrupt, while larger companies suspend operations during the worst season, close their factories or reduce working hours, maybe working just half the day; wages decrease due to the competition among the unemployed, reduced working hours, and lack of profitable sales; want becomes widespread among workers, individuals' small savings get quickly depleted, charitable organizations are overwhelmed, poor relief funds are doubled, tripled, and still inadequate, the number of starving people rises, and the whole mass of “surplus” population comes to the forefront. This situation carries on for a while; the “surplus” manage as best they can, or they die; philanthropy and the Poor Law help many of them endure a painful extension of their lives. Others scrape by here and there in jobs that are least subject to competition and are far removed from manufacturing. And how little does one need to keep body and soul together for a while! Gradually, the situation improves; the stockpile of goods gets consumed, the general depression among merchants and manufacturers prevents a hasty restocking of the markets, and finally rising prices and positive reports from various sources renew activity. Most of the markets are distant; demand increases, and prices continuously rise as the first exports arrive; people compete for the first goods, the initial sales further energize trade, and anticipated future sales promise even higher prices; expecting a further price increase, merchants start buying with speculation, withdrawing goods from consumption just when they're most needed. Speculation drives prices even higher by encouraging others to buy and snapping up new imports on the spot. All this gets reported back to England, and manufacturers ramp up production, new factories are built, and every effort is made to capitalize on the favorable moment. Speculation sets in here too, having the same impact on domestic markets as it does on foreign ones, driving prices up, pulling goods out of consumption, and pushing manufacturing to its utmost limit. Then come the bold speculators, using phantom capital, living on credit, who face ruin if they can't sell quickly; they dive into this chaotic and frantic race for profits, exacerbating the disorder and haste with their unchecked ambition, which sends prices and production spiraling out of control. It’s a wild scramble that sweeps up even the most seasoned and calm individuals; goods are produced as if all humanity were going to be newly outfitted, as if two billion new consumers had suddenly appeared on the scene. Suddenly, the shaky overseas speculators, who are desperate for cash, begin to sell off their goods at below market prices, driven by urgency; one sale leads to another, prices swing wildly, speculators hastily unload their products, the market becomes tumultuous, credit is shaken, one firm after another can no longer meet its obligations, and bankruptcies cascade. The realization hits that there are three times more goods available or in production than can be consumed. News reaches England, where production has been running full throttle, and panic sets in; failures abroad trigger failures at home, the panic crushes many businesses, and all reserves flood the market in a moment of fear, exacerbating the alarm. This marks the onset of the crisis, which then follows a path identical to its predecessor and eventually yields to a period of prosperity. And so the cycle continues endlessly—prosperity, crisis, prosperity, crisis—an ongoing cycle in which English industry typically completes a full turn every five or six years.

From this it is clear that English manufacture must have, at all times save the brief periods of highest prosperity, an unemployed reserve army of workers, in order to be able to produce the masses of goods required by the market in the liveliest months.  This reserve army is larger or smaller, according as the state of the market occasions the employment of a larger or smaller proportion of its members.  And if at the moment of highest activity of the market the agricultural districts and the branches least affected by the general prosperity temporarily supply to manufacture a number of workers, these are a mere minority, and these too belong to the reserve army, with the single difference that the prosperity of the moment was required to reveal their connection p. 85with it.  When they enter upon the more active branches of work, their former employers draw in somewhat, in order to feel the loss less, work longer hours, employ women and younger workers, and when the wanderers discharged at the beginning of the crisis return, they find their places filled and themselves superfluous—at least in the majority of cases.  This reserve army, which embraces an immense multitude during the crisis and a large number during the period which may be regarded as the average between the highest prosperity and the crisis, is the “surplus population” of England, which keeps body and soul together by begging, stealing, street-sweeping, collecting manure, pushing handcarts, driving donkeys, peddling, or performing occasional small jobs.  In every great town a multitude of such people may be found.  It is astonishing in what devices this “surplus population” takes refuge.  The London crossing-sweepers are known all over the world; but hitherto the principal streets in all the great cities, as well as the crossings, have been swept by people out of other work, and employed by the Poor Law guardians or the municipal authorities for the purpose.  Now, however, a machine has been invented which rattles through the streets daily, and has spoiled this source of income for the unemployed.  Along the great highways leading into the cities, on which there is a great deal of waggon traffic, a large number of people may be seen with small carts, gathering fresh horse-dung at the risk of their lives among the passing coaches and omnibuses, often paying a couple of shillings a week to the authorities for the privilege.  But this occupation is forbidden in many places, because the ordinary street-sweepings thus impoverished cannot be sold as manure.  Happy are such of the “surplus” as can obtain a push-cart and go about with it.  Happier still those to whom it is vouchsafed to possess an ass in addition to the cart.  The ass must get his own food or is given a little gathered refuse, and can yet bring in a trifle of money.  Most of the “surplus” betake themselves to huckstering.  On Saturday afternoons, especially, when the whole working population is on the streets, the crowd who live from huckstering and peddling may be seen.  Shoe and corset laces, braces, twine, cakes, p. 86oranges, every kind of small articles are offered by men, women, and children; and at other times also, such peddlers are always to be seen standing at the street corners, or going about with cakes and ginger-beer or nettle-beer.  Matches and such things, sealing-wax, and patent mixtures for lighting fires are further resources of such venders.  Others, so-called jobbers, go about the streets seeking small jobs.  Many of these succeed in getting a day’s work, many are not so fortunate.

From this, it's clear that English manufacturing always needs to have an unemployed reserve of workers, except during brief periods of peak prosperity, so it can produce the large amounts of goods the market requires during its busiest times. This reserve varies in size depending on how many workers are needed in the market. If, at the peak of market activity, agricultural areas and sectors less influenced by overall prosperity temporarily supply workers to manufacturing, these workers are just a small group, and they too are part of the reserve army. The only difference is that the current prosperity showed their connection to it. When they move into more active jobs, their former employers may cut back somewhat to lessen the impact of losing them, working longer hours, hiring women and younger workers, and when the laid-off workers from the beginning of a crisis return, they find their jobs filled and themselves unnecessary—in most cases. This reserve army, which includes a huge number during a crisis and a significant amount during the more stable periods between peak prosperity and crisis, is the “surplus population” of England, who get by through begging, stealing, cleaning streets, collecting manure, pushing handcarts, driving donkeys, selling goods, or doing occasional small jobs. In every large city, you can find a multitude of such individuals. It’s surprising how inventive this “surplus population” can be. The street cleaners in London are famous worldwide; however, until now, the main streets in all major cities have been cleaned by individuals who were out of work and hired by local authorities for that purpose. Now, though, a machine has been invented that rattles through the streets daily, eliminating this source of income for the unemployed. Along the main roads leading into the cities, where there’s a lot of wagon traffic, many people can be seen with small carts, collecting fresh horse manure at great risk among passing carriages and buses, often paying a couple of shillings a week to the authorities for that right. However, this work is banned in many places because the regular street sweepings, now lessened, can't be sold as manure. Those in the “surplus” who can get a push-cart and use it are fortunate. Even luckier are those who also have a donkey alongside the cart. The donkey must find its own food or get a bit of gathered scraps, and can still bring in a little extra cash. Most of the “surplus” turn to street vending. Particularly on Saturday afternoons, when the entire working population is out, you can see large crowds of people living by selling goods. Shoe and corset laces, belts, twine, cakes, oranges, and all kinds of small items are offered by men, women, and children; and at other times, these sellers can always be seen at street corners or wandering around with cakes and flavored drinks. Matches, sealing wax, and special mixtures for starting fires are other products these vendors sell. Others, known as jobbers, roam the streets looking for small jobs. Many of them manage to find a day's work, while many are not as lucky.

“At the gates of all the London docks,” says the Rev. W. Champney, preacher of the East End, “hundreds of the poor appear every morning in winter before daybreak, in the hope of getting a day’s work.  They await the opening of the gates; and, when the youngest and strongest and best known have been engaged, hundreds cast down by disappointed hope, go back to their wretched homes.”

"At the entrance to all the London docks," says Rev. W. Champney, a preacher from the East End, "hundreds of poor people gather every morning in the winter before dawn, hoping to find a day's work. They wait for the gates to open, and when the youngest, strongest, and most recognized among them get hired, hundreds of others, overwhelmed by disappointment, head back to their bleak homes."

When these people find no work and will not rebel against society, what remains for them but to beg?  And surely no one can wonder at the great army of beggars, most of them able-bodied men, with whom the police carries on perpetual war.  But the beggary of these men has a peculiar character.  Such a man usually goes about with his family singing a pleading song in the streets or appealing, in a speech, to the benevolence of the passers-by.  And it is a striking fact that these beggars are seen almost exclusively in the working-people’s districts, that it is almost exclusively the gifts of the poor from which they live.  Or the family takes up its position in a busy street, and without uttering a word, lets the mere sight of its helplessness plead for it.  In this case, too, they reckon upon the sympathy of the workers alone, who know from experience how it feels to be hungry, and are liable to find themselves in the same situation at any moment; for this dumb, yet most moving appeal, is met with almost solely in such streets as are frequented by working-men, and at such hours as working-men pass by; but especially on summer evenings, when the “secrets” of the working-people’s quarters are generally revealed, and the middle-class withdraws p. 87as far as possible from the district thus polluted.  And he among the “surplus” who has courage and passion enough openly to resist society, to reply with declared war upon the bourgeoisie to the disguised war which the bourgeoisie wages upon him, goes forth to rob, plunder, murder, and burn!

When these people can’t find work and won’t stand up against society, what else can they do but beg? And it’s no surprise that there’s a large number of beggars, most of them fit men, with whom the police are constantly at odds. But the begging of these men has a unique nature. They usually walk around with their families, singing a sorrowful song in the streets or appealing to the kindness of those passing by. It’s notable that these beggars are almost entirely found in working-class neighborhoods, relying almost solely on the generosity of the poor for their survival. Sometimes, the family sets up in a busy street and, without saying a word, lets their visible helplessness do the talking. In this case too, they depend on the sympathy of fellow workers, who know firsthand what it feels like to be hungry and could find themselves in the same position at any moment. This silent yet powerful plea is mainly encountered in areas frequented by laborers and during times when workers are passing through; especially on summer evenings, when the realities of working-class life are usually exposed, and the middle class stays away as much as possible from these “tainted” areas. And among the “surplus,” those who have the bravery and passion to openly oppose society, to wage a declared war on the bourgeoisie in response to the hidden war that the bourgeoisie fights against them, resort to robbing, plundering, killing, and burning!

Of this surplus population there are, according to the reports of the Poor Law commissioners, on an average, a million and a half in England and Wales; in Scotland the number cannot be ascertained for want of Poor Law regulations, and with Ireland we shall deal separately.  Moreover, this million and a half includes only those who actually apply to the parish for relief; the great multitude who struggle on without recourse to this most hated expedient, it does not embrace.  On the other hand, a good part of the number belongs to the agricultural districts, and does not enter into the present discussion.  During a crisis this number naturally increases markedly, and want reaches its highest pitch.  Take, for instance, the crisis of 1842, which, being the latest, was the most violent; for the intensity of the crisis increases with each repetition, and the next, which may be expected not later than 1847, {87} will probably be still more violent and lasting.  During this crisis the poor-rates rose in every town to a hitherto unknown height.  In Stockport, among other towns, for every pound paid in house-rent, eight shillings of poor-rate had to be paid, so that the rate alone formed forty per cent. of the house-rent.  Moreover, whole streets stood vacant, so that there were at least twenty thousand fewer inhabitants than usual, and on the doors of the empty houses might be read: “Stockport to let.”  In Bolton, where, in ordinary years, the rents from which rates are paid average £86,000, they sank to £36,000.  The number of the poor to be supported rose, on the other hand, to 14,000, or more than twenty per cent. of the whole number of inhabitants.  In Leeds, the Poor Law guardians had a reserve fund of £10,000.  This, with a contribution of £7,000, was wholly exhausted before the crisis reached its height.  So it was everywhere.  A report drawn up in January, 1843, by a committee of the Anti-Corn Law p. 88League, on the condition of the industrial districts in 1842, which was based upon detailed statements of the manufacturers, asserts that the poor-rate was, taking the average, twice as high as in 1839, and that the number of persons requiring relief has trebled, even quintupled, since that time; that a multitude of applicants belong to a class which had never before solicited relief; that the working-class commands more than two-thirds less of the means of subsistence than from 1834-1836; that the consumption of meat had been decidedly less, in some places twenty per cent., in others reaching sixty per cent. less; that even handicraftsmen, smiths, bricklayers, and others, who usually have full employment in the most depressed periods, now suffered greatly from want of work and reduction of wages; and that, even now, in January, 1843, wages are still steadily falling.  And these are the reports of manufacturers!  The starving workmen, whose mills were idle, whose employers could give them no work, stood in the streets in all directions, begged singly or in crowds, besieged the sidewalks in armies, and appealed to the passers-by for help; they begged, not cringing like ordinary beggars, but threatening by their numbers, their gestures, and their words.  Such was the state of things in all the industrial districts, from Leicester to Leeds, and from Manchester to Birmingham.  Here and there disturbances arose, as in the Staffordshire potteries, in July.  The most frightful excitement prevailed among the workers until the general insurrection broke out throughout the manufacturing districts in August.  When I came to Manchester in November, 1842, there were crowds of unemployed working-men at every street corner, and many mills were still standing idle.  In the following months these unwilling corner loafers gradually vanished, and the factories came into activity once more.

Of this surplus population, there are, according to the Poor Law commissioners' reports, on average, about one and a half million in England and Wales; in Scotland, the number can't be determined due to the lack of Poor Law regulations, and we'll address Ireland separately. Moreover, this figure includes only those who actually apply to the parish for help; it doesn't account for the many who struggle on their own without resorting to this most despised option. Additionally, a significant portion of this number comes from rural areas, which isn't part of the current discussion. During a crisis, this number naturally rises sharply, and hardship peaks. For instance, the crisis of 1842, the most recent and severe, was marked by increasing intensity with each occurrence, and the next one, expected by 1847, will likely be even worse and more prolonged. During this crisis, poor rates spiked in every town to unprecedented levels. In Stockport, for example, for every pound paid in rent, eight shillings in poor rates had to be paid, making the rate alone account for forty percent of the rent. Entire streets were empty, resulting in at least twenty thousand fewer residents than normal, and on the doors of the vacant houses could be seen: “Stockport to let.” In Bolton, where rent typically generates £86,000, it dropped to £36,000. Meanwhile, the number of people needing support increased to 14,000, which is more than twenty percent of the total population. In Leeds, the Poor Law guardians had a reserve fund of £10,000, which, along with a £7,000 contribution, was completely used up before the crisis peaked. This situation was consistent everywhere. A report prepared in January 1843 by a committee of the Anti-Corn Law League regarding the conditions in the industrial districts of 1842, based on detailed statements from manufacturers, claimed that poor rates were, on average, twice as high as in 1839, and the number of people needing help had tripled, even quintupled, in that time; that many applicants came from a class that had never sought relief before; that the working class now had more than two-thirds less means of living compared to 1834-1836; that meat consumption had significantly decreased, in some cases by twenty percent, and in others by as much as sixty percent; that even skilled workers like blacksmiths and bricklayers, who usually have steady work during tough times, were now suffering greatly from lack of jobs and wage cuts; and that, as of January 1843, wages were still steadily decreasing. And these are the remarks of manufacturers! The starving workers, whose mills were not in operation and whose employers had no work for them, filled the streets everywhere, begging individually or in groups, crowding the sidewalks, and appealing to passersby for help; they begged not in a typical needy manner, but rather aggressively through their sheer numbers, gestures, and words. This was the situation in all the industrial districts, from Leicester to Leeds and from Manchester to Birmingham. Disturbances occurred here and there, like in the Staffordshire potteries in July. A sense of dreadful unrest swept among the workers until a general uprising erupted in the manufacturing areas in August. When I arrived in Manchester in November 1842, there were crowds of unemployed workers at every street corner, and many mills were still empty. In the months that followed, these reluctant loafers gradually disappeared, and the factories began operating once again.

To what extent want and suffering prevail among these unemployed during such a crisis, I need not describe.  The poor-rates are insufficient, vastly insufficient; the philanthropy of the rich is a rain-drop in the ocean, lost in the moment of falling, beggary can support but few among the crowds.  If the small dealers did not sell to the working-people on credit at such times as long as p. 89possible—paying themselves liberally afterwards, it must be confessed—and if the working-people did not help each other, every crisis would remove a multitude of the surplus through death by starvation.  Since, however, the most depressed period is brief, lasting, at worst, but one, two, or two and a half years, most of them emerge from it with their lives after dire privations.  But indirectly by disease, etc., every crisis finds a multitude of victims, as we shall see.  First, however, let us turn to another cause of abasement to which the English worker is exposed, a cause permanently active in forcing the whole class downwards.

I don't need to explain how much want and suffering affect the unemployed during a crisis. The welfare payments are inadequate, vastly inadequate; the charity from the wealthy is like a drop in the ocean, gone the moment it falls, and begging can only help a few in the crowd. If local vendors didn’t extend credit to the working class during difficult times—paying themselves back handsomely afterward, I must admit—and if the working class didn’t support one another, every crisis would lead to a vast number of deaths from starvation. However, since the worst periods are usually short, lasting at most one, two, or two and a half years, most people manage to survive after severe hardships. Yet, indirectly, through diseases and other issues, every crisis causes numerous casualties, as we’ll see. Before that, though, let’s look at another factor that keeps the English worker in a vulnerable position, a factor that continuously pushes the entire class downward.

p. 90IRISH IMMIGRATION.

We have already referred several times in passing to the Irish who have immigrated into England; and we shall now have to investigate more closely the causes and results of this immigration.  The rapid extension of English industry could not have taken place if England had not possessed in the numerous and impoverished population of Ireland a reserve at command.  The Irish had nothing to lose at home, and much to gain in England; and from the time when it became known in Ireland that the east side of St. George’s Channel offered steady work and good pay for strong arms, every year has brought armies of the Irish hither.  It has been calculated that more than a million have already immigrated, and not far from fifty thousand still come every year, nearly all of whom enter the industrial districts, especially the great cities, and there form the lowest class of the population.  Thus there are in London, 120,000; in Manchester, 40,000; in Liverpool, 34,000; Bristol, 24,000; Glasgow, 40,000; Edinburgh, 29,000, poor Irish people. {90a}  These people having grown up almost without civilisation, accustomed from youth to every sort of privation, rough, intemperate, and improvident, bring all their brutal habits with them among a class of the English population which has, in truth, little inducement to cultivate education and morality.  Let us hear Thomas Carlyle upon this subject: {90b}

We have already briefly mentioned the Irish who have immigrated to England, and now we need to take a closer look at the reasons and consequences of this immigration. The rapid growth of English industry wouldn’t have been possible without the large, impoverished population of Ireland to draw from. The Irish had nothing to lose back home and a lot to gain in England. Once it became known in Ireland that the east side of St. George’s Channel offered steady work and good wages for strong laborers, each year has seen waves of Irish people coming over. It’s estimated that over a million have already immigrated, and nearly fifty thousand continue to arrive every year, most of whom settle in industrial areas, especially the major cities, forming the lowest class of the population. For example, there are about 120,000 in London; 40,000 in Manchester; 34,000 in Liverpool; 24,000 in Bristol; 40,000 in Glasgow; and 29,000 in Edinburgh—poor Irish people. {90a} These individuals have grown up almost without any exposure to civilization, used to all kinds of hardship from a young age. They tend to be rough, intemperate, and neglectful, bringing their harsh habits with them into a segment of the English population that often lacks the motivation to pursue education and morality. Let’s hear what Thomas Carlyle has to say about this: {90b}

“The wild Milesian features, looking false ingenuity, restlessness, unreason, misery, and mockery, salute you on all highways and byways.  The English coachman, as he whirls past, lashes the p. 91Milesian with his whip, curses him with his tongue; the Milesian is holding out his hat to beg.  He is the sorest evil this country has to strive with.  In his rags and laughing savagery, he is there to undertake all work that can be done by mere strength of hand and back—for wages that will purchase him potatoes.  He needs only salt for condiment, he lodges to his mind in any pig-hutch or dog-hutch, roosts in outhouses, and wears a suit of tatters, the getting on and off of which is said to be a difficult operation, transacted only in festivals and the high tides of the calendar.  The Saxon-man, if he cannot work on these terms, finds no work.  The uncivilised Irishman, not by his strength, but by the opposite of strength, drives the Saxon native out, takes possession in his room.  There abides he, in his squalor and unreason, in his falsity and drunken violence, as the ready-made nucleus of degradation and disorder.  Whoever struggles, swimming with difficulty, may now find an example how the human being can exist not swimming, but sunk.  That the condition of the lower multitude of English labourers approximates more and more to that of the Irish, competing with them in all the markets: that whatsoever labour, to which mere strength with little skill will suffice, is to be done, will be done not at the English price, but at an approximation to the Irish price; at a price superior as yet to the Irish, that is, superior to scarcity of potatoes for thirty weeks yearly; superior, yet hourly, with the arrival of every new steamboat, sinking nearer to an equality with that.”

“The harsh traits of the Irish people, reflecting false cleverness, restlessness, irrationality, suffering, and mockery, greet you on every road. The English coachman, speeding by, lashes the Irishman with his whip and curses him; meanwhile, the Irishman is there, holding out his hat to beg. He is the biggest issue this country faces. In his rags and wild laughter, he’s ready to take on any work that can be done with sheer strength—for pay that will buy him potatoes. He just needs salt for flavoring and will stay wherever he can—whether it’s a pigsty or a doghouse, he’ll even sleep in outhouses. His clothes are so torn that putting them on and taking them off is said to be such a struggle that he only does it during festivals and special occasions. The Englishman, if he can't work under these conditions, finds no work at all. The uncivilized Irishman, not through his strength, but through lack of it, pushes the English native out and takes his place. He remains there, in his filth and irrationality, in his deceit and drunken rage, serving as a ready source of degradation and chaos. Anyone who struggles, barely getting by, can now see how a person can survive, not by swimming, but by sinking. The situation of the lower class of English laborers is increasingly resembling that of the Irish, competing with them in every market: any labor that requires just strength and little skill will be paid not at the English wage, but closer to the Irish wage; a wage that is still higher than the Irish wage, meaning better than facing a shortage of potatoes for thirty weeks a year; better, yet with every new steamboat arrival, getting closer to equal.”

If we except his exaggerated and one-sided condemnation of the Irish national character, Carlyle is perfectly right.  These Irishmen who migrate for fourpence to England, on the deck of a steamship on which they are often packed like cattle, insinuate themselves everywhere.  The worst dwellings are good enough for them; their clothing causes them little trouble, so long as it holds together by a single thread; shoes they know not; their food consists of potatoes and potatoes only; whatever they earn beyond these needs they spend upon drink.  What does such a race want with high wages?  The worst quarters of all the large towns are inhabited by Irishmen.  Whenever a district is distinguished for especial filth and especial ruinousness, the explorer may safely count upon meeting chiefly those Celtic faces which one recognises at the first glance as different from the Saxon physiognomy of the p. 92native, and the singing, aspirate brogue which the true Irishman never loses.  I have occasionally heard the Irish-Celtic language spoken in the most thickly populated parts of Manchester.  The majority of the families who live in cellars are almost everywhere of Irish origin.  In short, the Irish have, as Dr. Kay says, discovered the minimum of the necessities of life, and are now making the English workers acquainted with it.  Filth and drunkenness, too, they have brought with them.  The lack of cleanliness, which is not so injurious in the country, where population is scattered, and which is the Irishman’s second nature, becomes terrifying and gravely dangerous through its concentration here in the great cities.  The Milesian deposits all garbage and filth before his house door here, as he was accustomed to do at home, and so accumulates the pools and dirt-heaps which disfigure the working-people’s quarters and poison the air.  He builds a pig-sty against the house wall as he did at home, and if he is prevented from doing this, he lets the pig sleep in the room with himself.  This new and unnatural method of cattle-raising in cities is wholly of Irish origin.  The Irishman loves his pig as the Arab his horse, with the difference that he sells it when it is fat enough to kill.  Otherwise, he eats and sleeps with it, his children play with it, ride upon it, roll in the dirt with it, as any one may see a thousand times repeated in all the great towns of England.  The filth and comfortlessness that prevail in the houses themselves it is impossible to describe.  The Irishman is unaccustomed to the presence of furniture; a heap of straw, a few rags, utterly beyond use as clothing, suffice for his nightly couch.  A piece of wood, a broken chair, an old chest for a table, more he needs not; a tea-kettle, a few pots and dishes, equip his kitchen, which is also his sleeping and living room.  When he is in want of fuel, everything combustible within his reach, chairs, door-posts, mouldings, flooring, finds its way up the chimney.  Moreover, why should he need much room?  At home in his mud-cabin there was only one room for all domestic purposes; more than one room his family does not need in England.  So the custom of crowding many persons into a single room, now so universal, has been chiefly implanted by the p. 93Irish immigration.  And since the poor devil must have one enjoyment, and society has shut him out of all others, he betakes himself to the drinking of spirits.  Drink is the only thing which makes the Irishman’s life worth having, drink and his cheery care-free temperament; so he revels in drink to the point of the most bestial drunkenness.  The southern facile character of the Irishman, his crudity, which places him but little above the savage, his contempt for all humane enjoyments, in which his very crudeness makes him incapable of sharing, his filth and poverty, all favour drunkenness.  The temptation is great, he cannot resist it, and so when he has money he gets rid of it down his throat.  What else should he do?  How can society blame him when it places him in a position in which he almost of necessity becomes a drunkard; when it leaves him to himself, to his savagery?

If we set aside his exaggerated and one-sided criticism of the Irish national character, Carlyle is absolutely right. These Irish immigrants who travel to England for just a few pence on overcrowded steamships manage to integrate themselves everywhere. The worst living conditions are acceptable to them; their clothing causes them little concern as long as it stays intact by a single thread; they don’t wear shoes; their diet consists solely of potatoes; and whatever money they earn beyond that, they spend on alcohol. Why would such a group care about high wages? The run-down areas of all the large cities are mostly populated by Irish individuals. Whenever a neighborhood is known for its extreme filth and ruin, you can safely expect to encounter those Celtic faces that are instantly recognizable as different from the Saxon features of the locals, along with the distinct brogue that true Irishmen never lose. I’ve occasionally heard the Irish-Celtic language spoken in the most densely populated parts of Manchester. Most families living in basements are of Irish descent. In short, the Irish have, as Dr. Kay says, found the bare minimum of life's necessities and are now introducing that standard to English workers. They’ve also brought filth and alcoholism with them. The lack of cleanliness, which isn’t so detrimental in rural areas with scattered populations, and which is the Irishman’s second nature, becomes alarming and utterly harmful when concentrated in large cities. The Irishman dumps all his garbage right outside his door just like he did back home, creating the puddles and heaps of filth that ruin working-class neighborhoods and contaminate the air. He builds a pigsty against the wall of his house as he did at home, and if he can’t do that, he’ll let the pig sleep in the same room with him. This unconventional and unnatural way of keeping livestock in cities originates entirely from the Irish. The Irishman loves his pig like the Arab loves his horse, with the exception that he sells it when it's fat enough to eat. Otherwise, he eats and sleeps with it, and his children play with it, ride it, and roll around in the dirt with it, as can be seen time and again in all the large towns of England. The filth and discomfort found in their homes is beyond description. The Irishman isn’t used to furniture; a pile of straw and a few rags that are no good for clothing are enough for his bed. A piece of wood, a broken chair, or an old chest serves as a table; he only needs that. A teapot, a few pots and dishes make up his kitchen, which doubles as his sleeping and living space. When he needs fuel, he throws anything combustible he can find—chairs, door frames, moldings, flooring—up the chimney. Besides, why should he need much space? Back in his mud cabin, there was usually just one room for everything; more than one room isn’t necessary for his family in England. Thus, the practice of cramming many people into one room, now so common, has largely developed from Irish immigration. And since the poor guy must have some form of enjoyment, and society has excluded him from all others, he turns to drinking spirits. Alcohol is the only thing that makes the Irishman’s life bearable, along with his cheerful, carefree personality; so he indulges in drinking to the point of extreme drunkenness. The Irishman's easy-going nature, his rawness that keeps him barely above savagery, his disregard for all civilized pleasures—which his very crudeness makes him incapable of enjoying—is all conducive to a heavy drinking culture. The temptation is overwhelming; he can’t resist it, so when he has money, he spends it on alcohol. What else should he do? How can society criticize him when it puts him in a situation where he almost inevitably becomes a drunkard, leaving him to his own devices and his primal instincts?

With such a competitor the English working-man has to struggle with a competitor upon the lowest plane possible in a civilised country, who for this very reason requires less wages than any other.  Nothing else is therefore possible than that, as Carlyle says, the wages of English working-men should be forced down further and further in every branch in which the Irish compete with him.  And these branches are many.  All such as demand little or no skill are open to the Irish.  For work which requires long training or regular, pertinacious application, the dissolute, unsteady, drunken Irishman is on too low a plane.  To become a mechanic, a mill-hand, he would have to adopt the English civilisation, the English customs, become, in the main, an Englishman.  But for all simple, less exact work, wherever it is a question more of strength than skill, the Irishman is as good as the Englishman.  Such occupations are therefore especially overcrowded with Irishmen: hand-weavers, bricklayers, porters, jobbers, and such workers, count hordes of Irishmen among their number, and the pressure of this race has done much to depress wages and lower the working-class.  And even if the Irish, who have forced their way into other occupations, should become more civilised, enough of the old habits would cling to them to have a strong degrading influence upon their English companions in toil, especially in view of the p. 94general effect of being surrounded by the Irish.  For when, in almost every great city, a fifth or a quarter of the workers are Irish, or children of Irish parents, who have grown up among Irish filth, no one can wonder if the life, habits, intelligence, moral status—in short, the whole character of the working-class assimilates a great part of the Irish characteristics.  On the contrary, it is easy to understand how the degrading position of the English workers, engendered by our modern history, and its immediate consequences, has been still more degraded by the presence of Irish competition.

The English working man has to compete against someone at the lowest level in a civilized country, who, for this reason, demands lower wages than anyone else. Therefore, as Carlyle states, the wages of English workers will continue to be pushed down in every area where the Irish are competing. And there are many such areas. Jobs that require little to no skill are open to the Irish. In contrast, for work that requires extensive training or consistent hard work, the unruly, unstable, and often intoxicated Irishman falls short. To become a mechanic or a millworker, he would need to adopt English customs and, for the most part, become English himself. However, in any simple, less precise jobs—especially those where strength is more important than skill—the Irishman is just as good as the Englishman. Therefore, these occupations tend to be overcrowded with Irish workers: hand-weavers, bricklayers, porters, and laborers all have many Irish among them, and this influx has significantly decreased wages and negatively affected the working class. Even if the Irish, who have moved into other jobs, become more assimilated, some of their old habits will likely have a negative impact on their English coworkers, especially considering the overall influence of being surrounded by the Irish. When, in nearly every large city, a fifth or a quarter of the workforce consists of Irish or children of Irish descent, who grew up in poor circumstances, it's no surprise that the life, habits, intelligence, moral standards—in short, the entire character of the working class picks up many Irish traits. It’s easy to see how the already degraded status of English workers, created by our modern history and its immediate effects, has only been worsened by Irish competition.

p. 95RESULTS.

Having now investigated, somewhat in detail, the conditions under which the English working-class lives, it is time to draw some further inferences from the facts presented, and then to compare our inferences with the actual state of things.  Let us see what the workers themselves have become under the given circumstances, what sort of people they are, what their physical, mental, and moral status.

Having now looked into, in some detail, the conditions in which the English working class lives, it's time to draw some further conclusions from the facts presented and then compare our conclusions with the actual situation. Let's see what the workers themselves have become under these circumstances, what kind of people they are, and what their physical, mental, and moral state is.

When one individual inflicts bodily injury upon another, such injury that death results, we call the deed manslaughter; when the assailant knew in advance that the injury would be fatal, we call his deed murder.  But when society {95} places hundreds of proletarians in such a position that they inevitably meet a too early and an unnatural death, one which is quite as much a death by violence as that by the sword or bullet; when it deprives thousands of the necessaries of life, places them under conditions in which they cannot live—forces them, through the strong arm of the law, to remain in such conditions until that death ensues which is the inevitable consequence—knows that these thousands of victims must perish, and yet permits these conditions to remain, its deed is murder just as surely as the deed of the single individual; disguised, malicious murder, murder against which p. 96none can defend himself, which does not seem what it is, because no man sees the murderer, because the death of the victim seems a natural one, since the offence is more one of omission than of commission.  But murder it remains.  I have now to prove that society in England daily and hourly commits what the working-men’s organs, with perfect correctness, characterise as social murder, that it has placed the workers under conditions in which they can neither retain health nor live long; that it undermines the vital force of these workers gradually, little by little, and so hurries them to the grave before their time.  I have further to prove that society knows how injurious such conditions are to the health and the life of the workers, and yet does nothing to improve these conditions.  That it knows the consequences of its deeds; that its act is, therefore, not mere manslaughter, but murder, I shall have proved, when I cite official documents, reports of Parliament and of the Government, in substantiation of my charge.

When one person causes physical harm to another, resulting in death, we call it manslaughter; when the attacker knew ahead of time that the harm would lead to death, we refer to it as murder. However, when society {95} puts countless workers in situations where they inevitably face premature and unnatural deaths—deaths that are just as violent as those caused by weapons—when it denies thousands the essentials of life and puts them in conditions where they cannot survive, forcing them, through the law's power, to remain in such circumstances until death inevitably follows, knowing full well that these thousands will die, yet allowing these conditions to persist, its actions are murder just like those of an individual; hidden, malicious murder that no one can defend against, which doesn't appear as it is because no one sees the killer, and the victim's death seems natural since the crime is more about what is not done than what is done. But it is murder nonetheless. I now need to prove that society in England is committing what the workers' organizations accurately label as social murder every day; that it has placed workers in conditions where they can't stay healthy or live for long; that it gradually undermines the vital strength of these workers, pushing them towards an early grave. I must also show that society understands how harmful these conditions are to the health and lives of workers, yet still does nothing to change them. That it knows the consequences of its actions; that its act is, therefore, not just manslaughter, but murder, I will have demonstrated when I reference official documents, reports from Parliament and the Government to support my claims.

That a class which lives under the conditions already sketched and is so ill-provided with the most necessary means of subsistence, cannot be healthy and can reach no advanced age, is self-evident.  Let us review the circumstances once more with especial reference to the health of the workers.  The centralisation of population in great cities exercises of itself an unfavourable influence; the atmosphere of London can never be so pure, so rich in oxygen, as the air of the country; two and a half million pairs of lungs, two hundred and fifty thousand fires, crowded upon an area three to four miles square, consume an enormous amount of oxygen, which is replaced with difficulty, because the method of building cities in itself impedes ventilation.  The carbonic acid gas, engendered by respiration and fire, remains in the streets by reason of its specific gravity, and the chief air current passes over the roofs of the city.  The lungs of the inhabitants fail to receive the due supply of oxygen, and the consequence is mental and physical lassitude and low vitality.  For this reason, the dwellers in cities are far less exposed to acute, and especially to inflammatory, affections than rural populations, who live in a free, normal atmosphere; but they suffer the more from chronic p. 97affections.  And if life in large cities is, in itself, injurious to health, how great must be the harmful influence of an abnormal atmosphere in the working-people’s quarters, where, as we have seen, everything combines to poison the air.  In the country, it may, perhaps, be comparatively innoxious to keep a dung-heap adjoining one’s dwelling, because the air has free ingress from all sides; but in the midst of a large town, among closely built lanes and courts that shut out all movement of the atmosphere, the case is different.  All putrefying vegetable and animal substances give off gases decidedly injurious to health, and if these gases have no free way of escape, they inevitably poison the atmosphere.  The filth and stagnant pools of the working-people’s quarters in the great cities have, therefore, the worst effect upon the public health, because they produce precisely those gases which engender disease; so, too, the exhalations from contaminated streams.  But this is by no means all.  The manner in which the great multitude of the poor is treated by society to-day is revolting.  They are drawn into the large cities where they breathe a poorer atmosphere than in the country; they are relegated to districts which, by reason of the method of construction, are worse ventilated than any others; they are deprived of all means of cleanliness, of water itself, since pipes are laid only when paid for, and the rivers so polluted that they are useless for such purposes; they are obliged to throw all offal and garbage, all dirty water, often all disgusting drainage and excrement into the streets, being without other means of disposing of them; they are thus compelled to infect the region of their own dwellings.  Nor is this enough.  All conceivable evils are heaped upon the heads of the poor.  If the population of great cities is too dense in general, it is they in particular who are packed into the least space.  As though the vitiated atmosphere of the streets were not enough, they are penned in dozens into single rooms, so that the air which they breathe at night is enough in itself to stifle them.  They are given damp dwellings, cellar dens that are not waterproof from below, or garrets that leak from above.  Their houses are so built that the clammy air cannot escape.  They are p. 98supplied bad, tattered, or rotten clothing, adulterated and indigestible food.  They are exposed to the most exciting changes of mental condition, the most violent vibrations between hope and fear; they are hunted like game, and not permitted to attain peace of mind and quiet enjoyment of life.  They are deprived of all enjoyments except that of sexual indulgence and drunkenness, are worked every day to the point of complete exhaustion of their mental and physical energies, and are thus constantly spurred on to the maddest excess in the only two enjoyments at their command.  And if they surmount all this, they fall victims to want of work in a crisis when all the little is taken from them that had hitherto been vouchsafed them.

That a class living under the already described conditions and lacking even the most basic means of survival cannot be healthy or live to an old age is obvious. Let’s look at the situation again, especially considering the health of the workers. The concentration of people in big cities has an inherently negative impact; the air in London can never be as clean or rich in oxygen as that found in the countryside. With two and a half million people and two hundred and fifty thousand fires packed into an area just three to four miles across, a massive amount of oxygen gets consumed, and it's hard to replace it because city layouts hinder ventilation. The carbon dioxide produced from breathing and fires lingers in the streets due to its weight, while the main airflow passes over the rooftops. As a result, the residents' lungs don't get the oxygen they need, leading to mental and physical fatigue and low energy. That's why city dwellers are less likely to experience acute and especially inflammatory diseases compared to people in rural areas, who breathe fresh, cleaner air; however, they suffer more from chronic illnesses. If life in large cities is harmful to health, just imagine the even worse effects of the toxic air in working-class neighborhoods, where, as we’ve seen, everything works together to contaminate it. In the countryside, having a manure pile next to your home might not be too harmful because the air can flow freely from all directions; but in a big city, where narrow streets and alleys block air movement, it’s a different story. All decaying plant and animal matter releases gases that are definitely harmful to health, and if these gases can't escape, they will poison the air. The grime and stagnant water in working-class areas of big cities, therefore, have the most harmful impact on public health because they produce exactly those gases that cause disease—as do the fumes from polluted waterways. But that’s not all. The way society treats the vast number of poor people today is appalling. They are lured into large cities where they breathe in worse air than in the countryside; they’re forced into areas that are more poorly ventilated due to how the buildings are arranged; they lack basic sanitation, even clean water, since plumbing is only installed when paid for, and rivers are so polluted they can't be used for water; they have to dump all their waste and dirty water, often including sewage, directly into the streets because they have no other disposal options; this forces them to pollute the area where they live. And that’s not enough. All kinds of suffering are piled on the poor. If the population in big cities is generally overcrowded, they are the ones who are crammed into the smallest spaces. As if the already contaminated street air wasn't bad enough, they often get packed into tiny rooms, making the air they breathe at night stifling. They live in damp places, like basements that are not waterproof from below, or attics that leak from above. Their homes are built in a way that traps the damp air inside. They are given poor-quality, torn, or rotten clothing, along with food that is often tampered with and hard to digest. They face intense emotional ups and downs, swinging wildly between hope and despair; they are treated like animals, with no chance to find peace or enjoyment in life. Their only sources of pleasure are sexual gratification and drunkenness; they are worked to the point of complete exhaustion, both mentally and physically, which drives them to excess in the only two things they can enjoy. And if they manage to get through all of this, they still risk losing their jobs during economic downturns when everything little they had is stripped away.

How is it possible, under such conditions, for the lower class to be healthy and long lived?  What else can be expected than an excessive mortality, an unbroken series of epidemics, a progressive deterioration in the physique of the working population?  Let us see how the facts stand.

How is it possible, under these conditions, for the lower class to be healthy and live long? What else can we expect but high mortality rates, continuous epidemics, and a steady decline in the physical condition of the working population? Let’s take a look at the facts.

That the dwellings of the workers in the worst portions of the cities, together with the other conditions of life of this class, engender numerous diseases, is attested on all sides.  The article already quoted from the Artisan asserts with perfect truth, that lung diseases must be the inevitable consequence of such conditions, and that, indeed, cases of this kind are disproportionately frequent in this class.  That the bad air of London, and especially of the working-people’s districts, is in the highest degree favourable to the development of consumption, the hectic appearance of great numbers of persons sufficiently indicates.  If one roams the streets a little in the early morning, when the multitudes are on their way to their work, one is amazed at the number of persons who look wholly or half-consumptive.  Even in Manchester the people have not the same appearance; these pale, lank, narrow-chested, hollow-eyed ghosts, whom one passes at every step, these languid, flabby faces, incapable of the slightest energetic expression, I have seen in such startling numbers only in London, though consumption carries off a horde of victims annually in the factory towns of the North.  In competition with consumption stands p. 99typhus, to say nothing of scarlet fever, a disease which brings most frightful devastation into the ranks of the working-class.  Typhus, that universally diffused affliction, is attributed by the official report on the sanitary condition of the working-class, directly to the bad state of the dwellings in the matters of ventilation, drainage, and cleanliness.  This report, compiled, it must not be forgotten, by the leading physicians of England from the testimony of other physicians, asserts that a single ill-ventilated court, a single blind alley without drainage, is enough to engender fever, and usually does engender it, especially if the inhabitants are greatly crowded.  This fever has the same character almost everywhere, and develops in nearly every case into specific typhus.  It is to be found in the working-people’s quarters of all great towns and cities, and in single ill-built, ill-kept streets of smaller places, though it naturally seeks out single victims in better districts also.  In London it has now prevailed for a considerable time; its extraordinary violence in the year 1837 gave rise to the report already referred to.  According to the annual report of Dr. Southwood Smith on the London Fever Hospital, the number of patients in 1843 was 1,462, or 418 more than in any previous year.  In the damp, dirty regions of the north, south, and east districts of London, this disease raged with extraordinary violence.  Many of the patients were working-people from the country, who had endured the severest privation while migrating, and, after their arrival, had slept hungry and half-naked in the streets, and so fallen victims to the fever.  These people were brought into the hospital in such a state of weakness, that unusual quantities of wine, cognac, and preparations of ammonia and other stimulants were required for their treatment; 16½ per cent. of all patients died.  This malignant fever is to be found in Manchester; in the worst quarters of the Old Town, Ancoats, Little Ireland, etc., it is rarely extinct; though here, as in the English towns generally, it prevails to a less extent than might be expected.  In Scotland and Ireland, on the other hand, it rages with a violence that surpasses all conception.  In Edinburgh and Glasgow it broke out in 1817, after the famine, and in 1826 and 1837 with especial violence, after p. 100the commercial crisis, subsiding somewhat each time after having raged about three years.  In Edinburgh about 6,000 persons were attacked by the fever during the epidemic of 1817, and about 10,000 in that of 1837, and not only the number of persons attacked but the violence of the disease increased with each repetition. {100a}

That the homes of workers in the worst parts of the cities, along with their overall living conditions, lead to many diseases is evident from all sides. The previously quoted article from the Artisan rightly claims that lung diseases are an unavoidable result of these conditions, and that, indeed, these cases are disproportionately common in this class. The poor air quality in London, especially in the neighborhoods where working-class people live, greatly contributes to the rise of tuberculosis, as evidenced by the sickly appearance of many individuals. If you walk the streets early in the morning when crowds are heading to work, you can't help but notice how many people look completely or partly affected by tuberculosis. Even in Manchester, people do not look the same. These pale, thin, narrow-chested, hollow-eyed figures that you encounter everywhere in London are so strikingly numerous there, despite tuberculosis also claiming many lives annually in factory towns up North. Competing with tuberculosis is typhus, not to mention scarlet fever, which causes massive destruction among the working class. Typhus, which is widely spread, is attributed by the official report on the health conditions of the working class directly to the poor state of housing concerning ventilation, drainage, and cleanliness. This report, compiled by leading physicians in England based on testimony from other doctors, states that a single poorly ventilated courtyard or a blind alley without drainage is enough to cause fever, and usually does, especially if the residents are extremely crowded. This fever is almost universally similar in nature and nearly always develops into specific typhus. It's found in the working-class neighborhoods of all major cities and in poorly constructed, poorly maintained streets of smaller towns, though it can also find individual victims in better areas. In London, it has been prevalent for a considerable time; its extraordinary severity in 1837 led to the report mentioned earlier. According to the annual report by Dr. Southwood Smith on the London Fever Hospital, the number of patients in 1843 was 1,462, which is 418 more than in any previous year. In the damp, filthy areas of the north, south, and east of London, this disease raged exceptionally fiercely. Many of the patients were rural workers who experienced extreme hardship while migrating and, after arriving, ended up hungry and half-naked on the streets, falling victim to the fever. These individuals were admitted to the hospital in such weak condition that they required unusual amounts of wine, cognac, ammonia, and other stimulants for treatment; 16½ percent of all patients died. This severe fever is also found in Manchester; it rarely goes extinct in the worst areas of the Old Town, like Ancoats and Little Ireland, although it’s less widespread here than might be expected. In contrast, in Scotland and Ireland, it spreads with a ferocity that is hard to imagine. In Edinburgh and Glasgow, it erupted in 1817 after the famine and then again in 1826 and 1837 with particular intensity following the commercial crisis, tapering off after about three years each time. In Edinburgh, around 6,000 people were affected by the fever during the epidemic of 1817, and around 10,000 in 1837, with both the number of cases and the severity of the illness increasing each time. {100a}

But the fury of the epidemic in all former periods seems to have been child’s play in comparison with its ravages after the crisis of 1842.  One-sixth of the whole indigent population of Scotland was seized by the fever, and the infection was carried by wandering beggars with fearful rapidity from one locality to another.  It did not reach the middle and upper classes of the population, yet in two months there were more fever cases than in twelve years before.  In Glasgow, twelve per cent. of the population were seized in the year 1843; 32,000 persons, of whom thirty-two per cent. perished, while this mortality in Manchester and Liverpool does not ordinarily exceed eight per cent.  The illness reached a crisis on the seventh and fifteenth days; on the latter, the patient usually became yellow, which our authority {100b} regards as an indication that the cause of the malady was to be sought in mental excitement and anxiety.  In Ireland, too, these fever epidemics have become domesticated.  During twenty-one months of the years 1817-1818, 39,000 fever patients passed through the Dublin hospital; and in a more recent year, according to Sheriff Alison, {100c} 60,000.  In Cork the fever hospital received one-seventh of the population in 1817-1818, in Limerick in the same time one-fourth, and in the bad quarter of Waterford, nineteen-twentieths of the whole population were ill of the fever at one time.

But the intensity of the epidemic in earlier times seems trivial compared to its effects after the crisis of 1842. One-sixth of the entire impoverished population of Scotland was affected by the fever, and wandering beggars spread the infection alarmingly fast from one area to another. While it didn’t reach the middle and upper classes, within two months there were more fever cases than in the previous twelve years combined. In Glasgow, twelve percent of the population was affected in 1843; that’s 32,000 people, with thirty-two percent of them dying, while the mortality rate in Manchester and Liverpool doesn’t typically exceed eight percent. The illness peaked on the seventh and fifteenth days; on the latter, patients usually turned yellow, which our source {100b} considers a sign that the cause of the illness was linked to mental stress and anxiety. In Ireland, these fever epidemics have also become common. During a twenty-one month period in 1817-1818, 39,000 fever patients were treated at the Dublin hospital; and in a more recent year, according to Sheriff Alison, {100c} 60,000. In Cork, the fever hospital cared for one-seventh of the population in 1817-1818, in Limerick during the same period one-fourth, and in the worst area of Waterford, nineteen-twentieths of the entire population were ill with the fever at one time.

When one remembers under what conditions the working-people live, when one thinks how crowded their dwellings are, how every nook and corner swarms with human beings, how sick and well sleep in the same room, in the same bed, the only wonder is that a contagious disease like this fever does not spread p. 101yet farther.  And when one reflects how little medical assistance the sick have at command, how many are without any medical advice whatsoever, and ignorant of the most ordinary precautionary measures, the mortality seems actually small.  Dr. Alison, who has made a careful study of this disease, attributes it directly to the want and the wretched condition of the poor, as in the report already quoted.  He asserts that privations and the insufficient satisfaction of vital needs are what prepare the frame for contagion and make the epidemic widespread and terrible.  He proves that a period of privation, a commercial crisis or a bad harvest, has each time produced the typhus epidemic in Ireland as in Scotland, and that the fury of the plague has fallen almost exclusively on the working-class.  It is a noteworthy fact, that according to his testimony, the majority of persons who perish by typhus are fathers of families, precisely the persons who can least be spared by those dependent upon them; and several Irish physicians whom he quotes bear the same testimony.

When you think about the conditions that working-class people live in, it’s astonishing to see how cramped their homes are, how every space is full of people, how sick and healthy individuals share the same room and sometimes even the same bed. The fact that a contagious disease like this fever hasn't spread more widely is surprising. And when you consider how little medical help the sick have access to, how many have no medical advice at all, and how unaware they are of basic precautions, the mortality rate seems surprisingly low. Dr. Alison, who has studied this disease carefully, directly links it to the poverty and terrible living conditions of the poor, as noted in the previous report. He argues that deprivation and the inability to meet basic needs set the stage for contagion, making the epidemic widespread and severe. He shows that times of hardship, like a commercial crisis or a poor harvest, have consistently led to typhus epidemics in both Ireland and Scotland, with the brunt of the outbreak hitting the working class the hardest. It's worth noting that, according to his findings, most of those who die from typhus are fathers, specifically those whose families can least afford to lose them; several Irish doctors he references make the same observation.

Another category of diseases arises directly from the food rather than the dwellings of the workers.  The food of the labourer, indigestible enough in itself, is utterly unfit for young children, and he has neither means nor time to get his children more suitable food.  Moreover, the custom of giving children spirits, and even opium, is very general; and these two influences, with the rest of the conditions of life prejudicial to bodily development, give rise to the most diverse affections of the digestive organs, leaving life-long traces behind them.  Nearly all workers have stomachs more or less weak, and are yet forced to adhere to the diet which is the root of the evil.  How should they know what is to blame for it?  And if they knew, how could they obtain a more suitable regimen so long as they cannot adopt a different way of living and are not better educated?  But new disease arises during childhood from impaired digestion.  Scrofula is almost universal among the working-class, and scrofulous parents have scrofulous children, especially when the original influences continue in full force to operate upon the inherited tendency of the children.  A second consequence of this insufficient bodily p. 102nourishment, during the years of growth and development, is rachitis, which is extremely common among the children of the working-class.  The hardening of the bones is delayed, the development of the skeleton in general is restricted, and deformities of the legs and spinal column are frequent, in addition to the usual rachitic affections.  How greatly all these evils are increased by the changes to which the workers are subject in consequence of fluctuations in trade, want of work, and the scanty wages in time of crisis, it is not necessary to dwell upon.  Temporary want of sufficient food, to which almost every working-man is exposed at least once in the course of his life, only contributes to intensify the effects of his usual sufficient but bad diet.  Children who are half-starved, just when they most need ample and nutritious food—and how many such there are during every crisis and even when trade is at its best—must inevitably become weak, scrofulous and rachitic in a high degree.  And that they do become so, their appearance amply shows.  The neglect to which the great mass of working-men’s children are condemned leaves ineradicable traces and brings the enfeeblement of the whole race of workers with it.  Add to this, the unsuitable clothing of this class, the impossibility of precautions against colds, the necessity of toiling so long as health permits, want made more dire when sickness appears, and the only too common lack of all medical assistance; and we have a rough idea of the sanitary condition of the English working-class.  The injurious effects peculiar to single employments as now conducted, I shall not deal with here.

Another category of diseases comes directly from food rather than the living conditions of workers. The laborer's diet, hard to digest on its own, is completely unsuitable for young children, and he lacks both the means and time to provide his children with better food. Additionally, it's very common to give children alcohol and even opium; these two factors, along with other harmful aspects of their lives, lead to various digestive issues that can leave lasting impacts. Almost all workers have weak stomachs but are forced to stick to the diet that causes their problems. How are they supposed to know what's causing it? And if they did know, how could they afford a better diet when they can't change their way of life and lack proper education? New diseases develop during childhood from poor digestion. Scrofula is nearly universal among the working class, and children inherit this condition from scrofulous parents, especially when the original factors continue to affect the children's genetic predisposition. A second outcome of this inadequate nutrition during growth is rickets, which is extremely common among working-class children. The hardening of bones is delayed, skeletal development is limited, and deformities of the legs and spine are common, along with the typical symptoms of rickets. The challenges faced by workers due to economic ups and downs, lack of work, and low wages during crises greatly exacerbate these issues. Temporary food shortages, which almost every working man experiences at least once in his life, only increase the negative effects of their usual poor diet. Children who are malnourished when they need nutritious food the most—and there are many such instances during economic crises and even when business is thriving—inevitably become weak, scrofulous, and severely affected by rickets. Their appearance clearly reflects this. The neglect that a vast number of working-class children endure leaves lasting marks and weakens the entire working class. In addition, consider the unsuitable clothing, the inability to take precautions against colds, the need to work as long as health allows, the heightened struggle when illness strikes, and the frequent lack of medical care; together, these present a stark picture of the health conditions within the English working class. I won’t address here the harmful effects specific to particular kinds of jobs as they are currently conducted.

Besides these, there are other influences which enfeeble the health of a great number of workers, intemperance most of all.  All possible temptations, all allurements combine to bring the workers to drunkenness.  Liquor is almost their only source of pleasure, and all things conspire to make it accessible to them.  The working-man comes from his work tired, exhausted, finds his home comfortless, damp, dirty, repulsive; he has urgent need of recreation, he must have something to make work worth his trouble, to make the prospect of the next day endurable.  His unnerved, uncomfortable, hypochondriac state of mind and body p. 103arising from his unhealthy condition, and especially from indigestion, is aggravated beyond endurance by the general conditions of his life, the uncertainty of his existence, his dependence upon all possible accidents and chances, and his inability to do anything towards gaining an assured position.  His enfeebled frame, weakened by bad air and bad food, violently demands some external stimulus; his social need can be gratified only in the public-house, he has absolutely no other place where he can meet his friends.  How can he be expected to resist the temptation?  It is morally and physically inevitable that, under such circumstances, a very large number of working-men should fall into intemperance.  And apart from the chiefly physical influences which drive the working-man into drunkenness, there is the example of the great mass, the neglected education, the impossibility of protecting the young from temptation, in many cases the direct influence of intemperate parents, who give their own children liquor, the certainty of forgetting for an hour or two the wretchedness and burden of life, and a hundred other circumstances so mighty that the workers can, in truth, hardly be blamed for yielding to such overwhelming pressure.  Drunkenness has here ceased to be a vice, for which the vicious can be held responsible; it becomes a phenomenon, the necessary, inevitable effect of certain conditions upon an object possessed of no volition in relation to those conditions.  They who have degraded the working-man to a mere object have the responsibility to bear.  But as inevitably as a great number of working-men fall a prey to drink, just so inevitably does it manifest its ruinous influence upon the body and mind of its victims.  All the tendencies to disease arising from the conditions of life of the workers are promoted by it, it stimulates in the highest degree the development of lung and digestive troubles, the rise and spread of typhus epidemics.

In addition to these, there are other factors that weaken the health of many workers, with excessive drinking being the most significant. All sorts of temptations and attractions come together to push workers toward alcohol. Drinking is nearly their only source of enjoyment, and everything seems to make it easy for them to access. After a long day at work, the worker comes home feeling tired, drained, and finds his living space to be bleak, damp, dirty, and uninviting; he desperately needs a way to unwind. He *must* have something to make his labor worthwhile and to help him cope with the thought of facing another day. His stressed, uncomfortable, and anxious state of mind and body, mainly due to his poor health and especially indigestion, is made worse by the overall circumstances of his life: the unpredictability of his situation, his reliance on chance events, and his inability to secure a stable future. His weakened body, suffering from bad air and poor nutrition, longs for some external boost; his need for social interaction can only be satisfied in the pub, as he has no other place to gather with friends. How can we expect him to resist the lure? It is both morally and physically unavoidable that a large number of working men will become alcoholics under such circumstances. Aside from the physical factors that drive workers to drink, there's the influence of the majority, a lack of education, the challenge of shielding young people from temptation, and in many cases, the direct impact of parents who are themselves heavy drinkers, even giving alcohol to their children. There’s the certainty of temporarily escaping the harshness and weight of life, along with countless other pressing factors that make it very hard to blame workers for succumbing to such overwhelming pressure. In this context, drunkenness is no longer a vice for which the individuals can be held accountable; it transforms into a social phenomenon, an unavoidable result of specific circumstances affecting a person who has no control over those circumstances. Those who have reduced the worker to merely an object must bear that responsibility. Yet, just as many working men inevitably fall prey to alcohol, its destructive impact on their bodies and minds is equally certain. All health issues stemming from the workers' living conditions are worsened by it, and it significantly accelerates the development of lung and digestive diseases, as well as the emergence and spread of typhus epidemics.

Another source of physical mischief to the working-class lies in the impossibility of employing skilled physicians in cases of illness.  It is true that a number of charitable institutions strive to supply this want, that the infirmary in Manchester, for instance, receives or gives advice and medicine to 2,200 patients annually.  But p. 104what is that in a city in which, according to Gaskell’s calculation, {104} three-fourths of the population need medical aid every year?  English doctors charge high fees, and working-men are not in a position to pay them.  They can therefore do nothing, or are compelled to call in cheap charlatans, and use quack remedies, which do more harm than good.  An immense number of such quacks thrive in every English town, securing their clientèle among the poor by means of advertisements, posters, and other such devices.  Besides these, vast quantities of patent medicines are sold, for all conceivable ailments: Morrison’s Pills, Parr’s Life Pills, Dr. Mainwaring’s Pills, and a thousand other pills, essences, and balsams, all of which have the property of curing all the ills that flesh is heir to.  These medicines rarely contain actually injurious substances, but, when taken freely and often, they affect the system prejudicially; and as the unwary purchasers are always recommended to take as much as possible, it is not to be wondered at that they swallow them wholesale whether wanted or not.

Another source of physical harm for the working class is the inability to access skilled doctors when they’re sick. It’s true that some charitable organizations try to fill this gap, and the infirmary in Manchester, for example, sees or provides advice and medicine to 2,200 patients each year. But what does that amount to in a city where, according to Gaskell’s estimate, three-fourths of the population needs medical help every year? English doctors charge high fees, and working-class people can’t afford to pay them. As a result, they often do nothing or have to rely on cheap frauds and use fake remedies that do more harm than good. Many of these quacks succeed in every English town, attracting clients among the poor through ads, posters, and other tactics. Additionally, a huge number of patent medicines are sold for every imaginable ailment: Morrison’s Pills, Parr’s Life Pills, Dr. Mainwaring’s Pills, and countless other pills, essences, and balms, all claiming to cure every imaginable issue. These medicines rarely contain harmful substances, but when taken excessively and frequently, they negatively impact the body; and since unwitting buyers are always advised to take as much as they can, it’s no surprise that they consume them in large quantities, whether needed or not.

It is by no means unusual for the manufacturer of Parr’s Life Pills to sell twenty to twenty-five thousand boxes of these salutary pills in a week, and they are taken for constipation by this one, for diarrhœa by that one, for fever, weakness, and all possible ailments.  As our German peasants are cupped or bled at certain seasons, so do the English working-people now consume patent medicines to their own injury and the great profit of the manufacturer.  One of the most injurious of these patent medicines is a drink prepared with opiates, chiefly laudanum, under the name Godfrey’s Cordial.  Women who work at home, and have their own and other people’s children to take care of, give them this drink to keep them quiet, and, as many believe, to strengthen them.  They often begin to give this medicine to newly-born children, and continue, without knowing the effects of this “heartsease,” until the children die.  The less susceptible the child’s system to the action of the opium, the greater the quantities administered.  When the cordial ceases to act, laudanum alone is given, often to the extent of fifteen to twenty drops at a dose.  p. 105The Coroner of Nottingham testified before a Parliamentary Commission {105a} that one apothecary had, according to his own statement, used thirteen hundredweight of laudanum in one year in the preparation of Godfrey’s Cordial.  The effects upon the children so treated may be readily imagined.  They are pale, feeble, wilted, and usually die before completing the second year.  The use of this cordial is very extensive in all great towns and industrial districts in the kingdom.

It’s quite common for the maker of Parr’s Life Pills to sell between twenty to twenty-five thousand boxes of these beneficial pills each week. People use them for constipation, while others take them for diarrhea, fever, weakness, and various other issues. Just as German peasants are cupped or bled at certain times of the year, English workers now rely on patent medicines, often to their own detriment and to the significant profit of the manufacturers. One of the most harmful of these patent medicines is a drink made with opiates, primarily laudanum, called Godfrey’s Cordial. Women who work at home and care for their own and other people’s children give this drink to keep the kids calm, and many believe it also strengthens them. They often start giving this medicine to newborns and continue without realizing the effects of this “heartsease” until the children die. The less sensitive a child is to the opium, the more they are given. When the cordial stops working, laudanum is given alone, often in doses of fifteen to twenty drops. p. 105The Coroner of Nottingham testified before a Parliamentary Commission {105a} that one pharmacist claimed to have used thirteen hundredweight of laudanum in a single year in making Godfrey’s Cordial. The effects on the children receiving this treatment are easy to imagine. They are pale, weak, frail, and typically die before reaching their second birthday. This cordial is widely used in all major cities and industrial areas across the country.

The result of all these influences is a general enfeeblement of the frame in the working-class.  There are few vigorous, well-built, healthy persons among the workers, i.e., among the factory operatives, who are employed in confined rooms, and we are here discussing these only.  They are almost all weakly, of angular but not powerful build, lean, pale, and of relaxed fibre, with the exception of the muscles especially exercised in their work.  Nearly all suffer from indigestion, and consequently from a more or less hypochondriac, melancholy, irritable, nervous condition.  Their enfeebled constitutions are unable to resist disease, and are therefore seized by it on every occasion.  Hence they age prematurely, and die early.  On this point the mortality statistics supply unquestionable testimony.

The result of all these influences is a general weakening of the frame in the working class. There are few strong, well-built, healthy individuals among the workers, specifically among the factory operatives, who are the focus of this discussion. They are mostly frail, with angular but not muscular builds, lean, pale, and lacking vitality, except for the muscles that are specifically used in their jobs. Nearly all of them suffer from indigestion, which leads to a hypochondriac, melancholic, irritable, and nervous state. Their weakened bodies struggle to resist illness, making them susceptible to disease at every turn. As a result, they age prematurely and die young. The mortality statistics provide clear evidence of this.

According to the Report of Registrar-General Graham, the annual death-rate of all England and Wales is something less than 2¼ per cent.  That is to say, out of forty-five persons, one dies every year. {105b}  This was the average for the year 1839-40.  In 1840-41 the mortality diminished somewhat, and the death-rate was but one in forty-six.  But in the great cities the proportion is wholly different.  I have before me official tables of mortality (Manchester Guardian, July 31st, 1844), according to which the death-rate of several large towns is as follows:—In Manchester, p. 106including Chorlton and Salford, one in 32.72; and excluding Chorlton and Salford, one in 30.75.  In Liverpool, including West Derby (suburb), 31.90, and excluding West Derby, 29.90; while the average of all the districts of Cheshire, Lancashire, and Yorkshire cited, including a number of wholly or partially rural districts and many small towns, with a total population of 2,172,506 for the whole, is one death in 39.80 persons.  How unfavourably the workers are placed in the great cities, the mortality for Prescott in Lancashire shows: a district inhabited by miners, and showing a lower sanitary condition than that of the agricultural districts, mining being by no means a healthful occupation.  But these miners live in the country, and the death-rate among them is but one in 47.54, or nearly two-and-a-half per cent. better than that for all England.  All these statements are based upon the mortality tables for 1843.  Still higher is the death-rate in the Scotch cities; in Edinburgh, in 1838-39, one in 29; in 1831, in the Old Town alone, one in 22.  In Glasgow, according to Dr. Cowen, {106} the average has been, since 1830, one in 30; and in single years, one in 22 to 24.  That this enormous shortening of life falls chiefly upon the working-class, that the general average is improved by the smaller mortality of the upper and middle-classes, is attested upon all sides.  One of the most recent depositions is that of a physician, Dr. P. H. Holland, in Manchester, who investigated Chorlton-on-Medlock, a suburb of Manchester, under official commission.  He divided the houses and streets into three classes each, and ascertained the following variations in the death-rate:

According to Registrar-General Graham's report, the annual death rate for all of England and Wales is just under 2.25 percent. This means that out of every 45 people, one dies each year. {105b} This was the average for the year 1839-40. In 1840-41, the death rate decreased slightly, with one in 46 dying. However, the situation is very different in major cities. I have official mortality tables from the Manchester Guardian, dated July 31, 1844, showing the death rates for several large towns as follows: in Manchester, including Chorlton and Salford, it's one in 32.72, and excluding Chorlton and Salford, it's one in 30.75. In Liverpool, including the suburb of West Derby, it's 31.90, and excluding West Derby, it's 29.90. Meanwhile, the average death rate for all the districts in Cheshire, Lancashire, and Yorkshire mentioned, which includes a mix of rural areas and small towns with a total population of 2,172,506, is one death in 39.80 people. The poor conditions for workers in big cities are highlighted by the death rate in Prescott, Lancashire, which is home to miners and has worse sanitary conditions than agricultural areas, as mining is not a healthy job. However, these miners live in the countryside, and their death rate is only one in 47.54, which is nearly two-and-a-half percent better than the national average for all of England. All these statistics are derived from mortality tables for 1843. The death rate is even higher in Scottish cities; in Edinburgh in 1838-39, it was one in 29, and in 1831, in the Old Town alone, it was one in 22. In Glasgow, as reported by Dr. Cowen, {106} the average since 1830 has been one in 30, with some years seeing rates of one in 22 to 24. It's clear that this significant reduction in life expectancy mainly affects the working class, while the overall average is skewed by lower death rates in the upper and middle classes. This has been supported by various sources, including a recent investigation by Dr. P. H. Holland in Manchester, who examined Chorlton-on-Medlock, a Manchester suburb, on official commission. He categorized the houses and streets into three classes and found the following variations in the death rate:

First class of Streets.  Houses  Class I.  Mortality one in 51  
,,     ,,                  ,,    Class II.      ,,      ,,      45  
,,     ,,                  ,,   Class III.      ,,      ,,      36  
Second ,,                  ,,     Class I.      ,,      ,,      55  
,,     ,,                  ,,    Class II.      ,,      ,,      38  
,,     ,,                  ,,   Class III.      ,,      ,,      35  
Third  ,,                  ,,     Class I.      Wanting  ---   ----  
,,     ,,                  ,,    Class II.      Mortality ,,     35  
,,     ,,                  ,,   Class III.      ,,      ,,      25  

p. 107It is clear from other tables given by Holland that the mortality in the streets of the second class is 18 per cent. greater, and in the streets of the third class 68 per cent. greater than in those of the first class; that the mortality in the houses of the second class is 31 per cent greater, and in the third class 78 per cent. greater than in those of the first class; that the mortality is those bad streets which were improved, decreased 25 per cent.  He closes with the remark, very frank for an English bourgeois: {107}

p. 107It is evident from other tables provided by Holland that the death rate in the streets of the second class is 18 percent higher, and in the streets of the third class, it is 68 percent higher compared to those of the first class; that the death rate in the houses of the second class is 31 percent higher, and in the third class, it is 78 percent higher than in those of the first class; that the death rate in those poorly maintained streets that were improved decreased by 25 percent. He concludes with a remark that is quite candid for an English middle-class person: {107}

“When we find the rate of mortality four times as high in some streets as in others, and twice as high in whole classes of streets as in other classes, and further find that it is all but invariably high in those streets which are in bad condition, and almost invariably low in those whose condition is good, we cannot resist the conclusion that multitudes of our fellow-creatures, hundreds of our immediate neighbours, are annually destroyed for want of the most evident precautions.”

"When we notice that the death rate is four times higher on some streets than others, and twice as high in certain types of streets compared to others, and we also see that it's almost always high on poorly maintained streets and almost always low on well-maintained ones, we can't overlook the conclusion that countless people, hundreds of our close neighbors, are dying every year because basic safety measures are missing."

The Report on the Sanitary Condition of the Working-Class contains information which attests the same fact.  In Liverpool, in 1840, the average longevity of the upper-classes, gentry, professional men, etc., was thirty-five years; that of the business men and better-placed handicraftsmen, twenty-two years; and that of the operatives, day-labourers, and serviceable class in general, but fifteen years.  The Parliamentary reports contain a mass of similar facts.

The Report on the Sanitary Condition of the Working-Class provides information that confirms the same reality. In Liverpool, in 1840, the average life expectancy for the upper class, gentry, professional men, etc., was thirty-five years; for business men and skilled workers, it was twenty-two years; and for laborers, day workers, and the general service class, it was just fifteen years. The Parliamentary reports include a wealth of similar information.

The death-rate is kept so high chiefly by the heavy mortality among young children in the working-class.  The tender frame of a child is least able to withstand the unfavourable influences of an inferior lot in life; the neglect to which they are often subjected, when both parents work or one is dead, avenges itself promptly, and no one need wonder that in Manchester, according to the report last quoted, more than fifty-seven per cent. of the children of the working-class perish before the fifth year, while but twenty per cent. of the children of the higher classes, and not quite thirty-two per cent. of the children of all classes in the p. 108country die under five years of age. {108a}  The article of the Artisan, already several times referred to, furnishes exacter information on this point, by comparing the city death-rate in single diseases of children with the country death-rate, thus demonstrating that, in general, epidemics in Manchester and Liverpool are three times more fatal than in country districts; that affections of the nervous system are quintupled, and stomach troubles trebled, while deaths from affections of the lungs in cities are to those in the country as 2½ to 1.  Fatal cases of smallpox, measles, scarlet fever, and whooping cough, among small children, are four times more frequent; those of water on the brain are trebled, and convulsions ten times more frequent.  To quote another acknowledged authority, I append the following table.  Out of 10,000 persons, there die—{108b}

The death rate is so high mainly because of the significant mortality among young children in the working class. A child's delicate body is least equipped to handle the negative effects of a disadvantaged life; the neglect they often face when both parents work or when one is absent takes a toll quickly. It's not surprising that in Manchester, as reported earlier, more than fifty-seven percent of working-class children die before their fifth birthday, while only twenty percent of higher-class kids, and just under thirty-two percent of children from all backgrounds in the p. 108country, die under age five. {108a} The article from the Artisan, mentioned several times before, provides more precise information on this topic by comparing the child death rates from specific diseases in the city with those in the countryside. It shows that epidemics in Manchester and Liverpool are generally three times deadlier than in rural areas; nervous system disorders are five times more common, and stomach issues are three times more frequent, while lung disease deaths in cities compared to the countryside are at a rate of 2½ to 1. Fatal cases of smallpox, measles, scarlet fever, and whooping cough among young children occur four times as often; cases of water on the brain are three times more common, and convulsions happen ten times more frequently. To cite another recognized source, I’m including the following table. Out of 10,000 people, there die—{108b}

             Under  5-19   20-39   40-59   60-69   70-79  80-89  90-99  100 x
             5 years
In Rutlandshire, a
healthy agricultural
district     2,865   891   1,275   1,299   1,189   1,428    938  112     3
Essex, marshy
agricultural
district     3,159 1,110   1,526   1,413     963   1,019    630  177     3
Town of Carlisle,
1779-1787, before
introduction of
mills        4,408   921   1,006   1,201     940     826    633  153    22
Town of Carlisle,
after introduction
of mills     4,738   930   1,201   1,134     677     727    452   80     1
Preston, factory
town         4,947 1,136   1,379   1,114     553     532    298   38     3
Leeds, factory
town         5,286   927   1,228   1,198     593     512    225   29     2

Apart from the divers diseases which are the necessary consequence of the present neglect and oppression of the poorer classes, there are other influences which contribute to increase the mortality among small children.  In many families the wife, like the husband, has to work away from home, and the consequence is the total neglect of the children, who are either locked up or given out to be taken care of.  It is, therefore, not to be wondered at if hundreds of them perish through all manner of accidents.  Nowhere are so many children run over, nowhere are so many killed p. 109by falling, drowning, or burning, as in the great cities and towns of England.  Deaths from burns and scalds are especially frequent, such a case occurring nearly every week during the winter months in Manchester, and very frequently in London, though little mention is made of them in the papers.  I have at hand a copy of the Weekly Despatch of December 15th, 1844, according to which, in the week from December 1st to December 7th inclusive, six such cases occurred.  These unhappy children, perishing in this terrible way, are victims of our social disorder, and of the property-holding classes interested in maintaining and prolonging this disorder.  Yet one is left in doubt whether even this terribly torturing death is not a blessing for the children in rescuing them from a long life of toil and wretchedness, rich in suffering and poor in enjoyment.  So far has it gone in England; and the bourgeoisie reads these things every day in the newspapers and takes no further trouble in the matter.  But it cannot complain if, after the official and non-official testimony here cited which must be known to it, I broadly accuse it of social murder.  Let the ruling class see to it that these frightful conditions are ameliorated, or let it surrender the administration of the common interests to the labouring-class.  To the latter course it is by no means inclined; for the former task, so long as it remains the bourgeoisie crippled by bourgeois prejudice, it has not the needed power.  For if, at last, after hundreds of thousands of victims have perished, it manifests some little anxiety for the future, passing a “Metropolitan Buildings Act,” under which the most unscrupulous overcrowding of dwellings is to be, at least in some slight degree, restricted; if it points with pride to measures which, far from attacking the root of the evil, do not by any means meet the demands of the commonest sanitary policy, it cannot thus vindicate itself from the accusation.  The English bourgeoisie has but one choice, either to continue its rule under the unanswerable charge of murder and in spite of this charge, or to abdicate in favour of the labouring-class.  Hitherto it has chosen the former course.

Aside from the widespread issues caused by the ongoing neglect and oppression of the poorer classes, there are other factors that increase the death rate among young children. In many families, both parents have to work away from home, leading to complete neglect of the children, who are either locked inside or sent off to be cared for by others. It's no surprise that hundreds of them die from various accidents. Nowhere else do so many children get run over, and nowhere else are so many killed by falling, drowning, or burning, as in the major cities and towns of England. Deaths from burns and scalds are particularly common, with such incidents occurring almost every week during the winter months in Manchester, and quite frequently in London, though they rarely make the news. I have a copy of the Weekly Despatch from December 15th, 1844, which reports that during the week from December 1st to December 7th, there were six such cases. These unfortunate children, dying in such horrific ways, are victims of our social chaos, and of the property-owning classes who benefit from maintaining and extending this chaos. One might even wonder if this excruciating death is a relief for the children, saving them from a long life of hard labor and misery, full of suffering and lacking in joy. That's the situation in England; yet the middle class reads about these events in the newspapers and does nothing further. However, they cannot complain if, after the official and unofficial evidence presented here, which they must be aware of, I bluntly accuse them of social murder. The ruling class must address these terrible conditions, or else hand over the management of common interests to the working class. They are far from inclined to the latter option; for so long as they remain a middle class hindered by their own prejudices, they lack the necessary power for the former task. If, after countless victims have perished, they finally show some concern for the future by passing a “Metropolitan Buildings Act,” which merely attempts to slightly limit the most ruthless overcrowding of housing, and if they take pride in measures that do not even address the root cause of the issue and do not meet basic sanitary needs, they cannot redeem themselves from this accusation. The English bourgeoisie has only one choice: either to continue ruling under the undeniable accusation of murder, ignoring it, or to step aside for the working class. So far, they have chosen the former path.

Let us turn from the physical to the mental state of the workers.  Since the bourgeoisie vouchsafes them only so much of life as is p. 110absolutely necessary, we need not wonder that it bestows upon them only so much education as lies in the interest of the bourgeoisie; and that, in truth, is not much.  The means of education in England are restricted out of all proportion to the population.  The few day schools at the command of the working-class are available only for the smallest minority, and are bad besides.  The teachers, worn-out workers, and other unsuitable persons who only turn to teaching in order to live, are usually without the indispensable elementary knowledge, without the moral discipline so needful for the teacher, and relieved of all public supervision.  Here, too, free competition rules, and, as usual, the rich profit by it, and the poor, for whom competition is not free, who have not the knowledge needed to enable them to form a correct judgment, have the evil consequences to bear.  Compulsory school attendance does not exist.  In the mills it is, as we shall see, purely nominal; and when in the session of 1843 the Ministry was disposed to make this nominal compulsion effective, the manufacturing bourgeoisie opposed the measure with all its might, though the working-class was outspokenly in favour of compulsory school attendance.  Moreover, a mass of children work the whole week through in the mills or at home, and therefore cannot attend school.  The evening schools, supposed to be attended by children who are employed during the day, are almost abandoned or attended without benefit.  It is asking too much, that young workers who have been using themselves up twelve hours in the day, should go to school from eight to ten at night.  And those who try it usually fall asleep, as is testified by hundreds of witnesses in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.  Sunday schools have been founded, it is true, but they, too, are most scantily supplied with teachers, and can be of use to those only who have already learnt something in the day schools.  The interval from one Sunday to the next is too long for an ignorant child to remember in the second sitting what it learned in the first, a week before.  The Children’s Employment Commission’s Report furnishes a hundred proofs, and the Commission itself most emphatically expresses the opinion, that neither the week-day nor p. 111the Sunday schools, in the least degree, meet the needs of the nation.  This report gives evidence of ignorance in the working-class of England, such as could hardly be expected in Spain or Italy.  It cannot be otherwise; the bourgeoisie has little to hope, and much to fear, from the education of the working-class.  The Ministry, in its whole enormous budget of £55,000,000, has only the single trifling item of £40,000 for public education, and, but for the fanaticism of the religious sects which does at least as much harm as good, the means of education would be yet more scanty.  As it is, the State Church manages its national schools and the various sects their sectarian schools for the sole purpose of keeping the children of the brethren of the faith within the congregation, and of winning away a poor childish soul here and there from some other sect.  The consequence is that religion, and precisely the most unprofitable side of religion, polemical discussion, is made the principal subject of instruction, and the memory of the children overburdened with incomprehensible dogmas and theological distinctions; that sectarian hatred and bigotry are awakened as early as possible, and all rational mental and moral training shamefully neglected.  The working class has repeatedly demanded of Parliament a system of strictly secular public education, leaving religion to the ministers of the sects; but, thus far, no Ministry has been induced to grant it.  The Minister is the obedient servant of the bourgeoisie, and the bourgeoisie is divided into countless sects; but each would gladly grant the workers the otherwise dangerous education on the sole condition of their accepting, as an antidote, the dogmas peculiar to the especial sect in question.  And as these sects are still quarrelling among themselves for supremacy, the workers remain for the present without education.  It is true that the manufacturers boast of having enabled the majority to read, but the quality of the reading is appropriate to the source of the instruction, as the Children’s Employment Commission proves.  According to this report, he who knows his letters can read enough to satisfy the conscience of the manufacturers.  And when one reflects upon the confused orthography of the English language which makes reading p. 112one of the arts, learned only under long instruction, this ignorance is readily understood.  Very few working-people write readily; and writing orthographically is beyond the powers even of many “educated” persons.  The Sunday schools of the State Church, of the Quakers, and, I think, of several other sects, do not teach writing, “because it is too worldly an employment for Sunday.”  The quality of the instruction offered the workers in other directions may be judged from a specimen or two, taken from the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report, which unfortunately does not embrace mill-work proper:

Let’s shift from the physical to the mental condition of the workers. Since the bourgeoisie provides them with only as much life as is absolutely necessary, we shouldn’t be surprised that it also gives them only as much education as serves its interests, which isn’t much at all. The education system in England is far too limited compared to the population. The few day schools available to the working class serve only a small minority and are inadequate. The teachers are often exhausted workers and other unsuitable individuals who turn to teaching just to make a living, lacking essential basic knowledge and the moral discipline crucial for educators, while being free from public oversight. Here, too, free competition prevails, benefiting the wealthy while the poor bear the negative consequences, as they cannot freely compete or judge the system accurately. There is no compulsory school attendance. In the mills, attendance is merely nominal, and when the government attempted to reinforce this nominal compulsion in 1843, the manufacturing bourgeoisie fought fiercely against it, despite the working class strongly supporting mandatory school attendance. Furthermore, many children work throughout the week in the mills or at home and thus cannot attend school. Evening schools, meant for working children, are nearly deserted or attended without benefit. It’s unreasonable to expect young workers, who put in twelve-hour days, to go to school from eight to ten at night. Those who do usually fall asleep, as confirmed by numerous testimonies in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report. Sunday schools were established, but they too have very few teachers and can only help those who have already learned something in day schools. The gap from one Sunday to the next is too long for an uninformed child to remember what was taught a week earlier. The Children’s Employment Commission’s Report provides countless pieces of evidence, and the Commission strongly asserts that neither the weekday nor Sunday schools adequately address the needs of the nation. This report highlights a level of ignorance in the working class of England that is hard to believe could exist in Spain or Italy. This situation is expected; the bourgeoisie has little to gain and much to lose from the education of the working class. Within its entire massive budget of £55,000,000, the Ministry allocates only a minor amount of £40,000 for public education, and if it weren’t for the zeal of various religious sects, which can do as much harm as good, educational resources would be even scarcer. As it stands, the State Church manages its national schools while different sects control their own schools primarily to keep their followers engaged and to lure away a few from other sects. Consequently, the main focus of instruction becomes religion, specifically contentious discussions about it, burdening children with confusing doctrines and theological distinctions. Sectarian hatred and intolerance are instilled as early as possible, while all rational mental and moral education is shamefully ignored. The working class has repeatedly asked Parliament for a system of strictly secular public education, leaving religious instruction to the ministers of the sects; however, no Ministry has yet agreed to this. The Minister obediently serves the bourgeoisie, which is fragmented into numerous sects, each willing to grant workers this otherwise risky education only if they accept the specific doctrine of that sect. While these groups argue among themselves for dominance, the workers remain uneducated. It is true that manufacturers brag about having enabled the majority to read, but the quality of that reading matches the source of the instruction, as shown by the Children’s Employment Commission. According to this report, someone who knows their letters can read just enough to satisfy the manufacturers' conscience. Considering the confusing spelling system of the English language, which makes reading an art that requires extensive instruction, this ignorance becomes understandable. Very few working-class individuals write easily, and even many "educated" people struggle with spelling correctly. The Sunday schools of the State Church, the Quakers, and others often don’t teach writing “because it’s too worldly for Sunday.” The quality of the instruction offered to workers in other areas can be evaluated by a couple of examples from the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report, which unfortunately does not cover mill work specifically:

“In Birmingham,” says Commissioner Grainger, “the children examined by me are, as a whole, utterly wanting in all that could be in the remotest degree called a useful education.  Although in almost all the schools religious instruction alone is furnished, the profoundest ignorance even upon that subject prevailed.”—“In Wolverhampton,” says Commissioner Horne, “I found, among others, the following example: A girl of eleven years had attended both day and Sunday school, ‘had never heard of another world, of Heaven, or another life.’  A boy, seventeen years old, did not know that twice two are four, nor how many farthings in two pence even when the money was placed in his hand.  Several boys had never heard of London nor of Willenhall, though the latter was but an hour’s walk from their homes, and in the closest relations with Wolverhampton.  Several had never heard the name of the Queen nor other names, such as Nelson, Wellington, Bonaparte; but it was noteworthy that those who had never heard even of St. Paul, Moses, or Solomon, were very well instructed as to the life, deeds, and character of Dick Turpin, and especially of Jack Sheppard.  A youth of sixteen did not know how many twice two are, nor how much four farthings make.  A youth of seventeen asserted that four farthings are four half pence; a third, seventeen years old, answered several very simple questions with the brief statement, that he ‘was ne jedge o’ nothin’.’” {112a}  These children who are crammed with religious doctrines four or five years at a stretch, know as little at the end as at the beginning.  One child “went to Sunday school regularly for five years; does not know who Jesus Christ is, but had heard the name; had never heard of the twelve Apostles, Samson, Moses, Aaron, etc.” {112b}  p. 113Another “attended Sunday school regularly six years; knows who Jesus Christ was; he died on the Cross to save our Saviour; had never heard of St. Peter or St. Paul.” {113a}  A third, “attended different Sunday schools seven years; can read only the thin, easy books with simple words of one syllable; has heard of the Apostles, but does not know whether St. Peter was one or St. John; the latter must have been St. John Wesley.” {113b}  To the question who Christ was, Horne received the following answers among others: “He was Adam,” “He was an Apostle,” “He was the Saviour’s Lord’s Son,” and from a youth of sixteen: “He was a king of London long ago.”  In Sheffield, Commissioner Symonds let the children from the Sunday school read aloud; they could not tell what they had read, or what sort of people the Apostles were, of whom they had just been reading.  After he had asked them all one after the other about the Apostles without securing a single correct answer, one sly-looking little fellow, with great glee, called out: “I know, mister; they were the lepers!” {113c}  From the pottery districts and from Lancashire the reports are similar.

“In Birmingham,” says Commissioner Grainger, “the kids I examined are, overall, totally lacking in any kind of useful education. Even though almost all the schools only teach religion, there's still a lot of ignorance on that subject.” — “In Wolverhampton,” says Commissioner Horne, “I found, among other examples, an eleven-year-old girl who had gone to both day and Sunday school but ‘had never heard of another world, Heaven, or another life.’ A boy who was seventeen didn’t know that two times two is four or how many farthings make up two pence, even when he was holding the money. Several boys had never heard of London or Willenhall, even though Willenhall was just an hour’s walk from their homes and closely tied to Wolverhampton. Many hadn’t heard the name of the Queen or names like Nelson, Wellington, or Bonaparte; notably, those who didn’t know St. Paul, Moses, or Solomon were quite familiar with the life, actions, and character of Dick Turpin and especially Jack Sheppard. A sixteen-year-old didn’t know what two times two is or how much four farthings equal. A seventeen-year-old insisted that four farthings equal four halfpences; another seventeen-year-old answered several very simple questions by saying that he ‘was ne jedge o’ nothin’.’” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ These kids, who have been filled with religious teachings for four or five years, know as little by the end as they did at the beginning. One child “went to Sunday school regularly for five years; doesn’t know who Jesus Christ is but has heard the name; had never heard of the twelve Apostles, Samson, Moses, Aaron, etc.” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ p. 113 Another “attended Sunday school regularly for six years; knows who Jesus Christ was; he died on the Cross to save our Saviour; had never heard of St. Peter or St. Paul.” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__ A third “attended different Sunday schools for seven years; can only read thin, easy books with simple one-syllable words; has heard of the Apostles but doesn’t know if St. Peter was one or if St. John was; the latter must have been St. John Wesley.” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ When asked who Christ was, Horne received various answers, including: “He was Adam,” “He was an Apostle,” “He was the Son of the Saviour,” and from a sixteen-year-old: “He was a king of London long ago.” In Sheffield, Commissioner Symonds had the Sunday school kids read aloud; they couldn’t say what they had read or what kind of people the Apostles were, even after just reading about them. After he asked them all one by one about the Apostles without getting a single correct answer, one cheeky little boy gleefully shouted out: “I know, mister; they were the lepers!” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ Reports from the pottery districts and Lancashire are similar.

This is what the bourgeoisie and the State are doing for the education and improvement of the working-class.  Fortunately the conditions under which this class lives are such as give it a sort of practical training, which not only replaces school cramming, but renders harmless the confused religious notions connected with it, and even places the workers in the vanguard of the national movement of England.  Necessity is the mother of invention, and what is still more important, of thought and action.  The English working-man who can scarcely read and still less write, nevertheless knows very well where his own interest and that of the nation lies.  He knows, too, what the especial interest of the bourgeoisie is, and what he has to expect of that bourgeoisie.  If he cannot write he can speak, and speak in public; if he has no arithmetic, he can, nevertheless, reckon with the Political Economists enough to see through a Corn-Law-repealing bourgeois, and to get the better of him in argument; if celestial matters remain very mixed for him in spite of all the effort of the preachers, he sees all the more clearly into terrestrial, political, p. 114and social questions.  We shall have occasion to refer again to this point; and pass now to the moral characteristics of our workers.

This is what the middle class and the government are doing for the education and improvement of the working class. Fortunately, the conditions in which this class lives provide a kind of practical training that not only replaces rote learning but also neutralizes the confusing religious ideas associated with it, and even positions the workers at the forefront of the national movement in England. Necessity drives innovation, and even more importantly, it drives thought and action. The English worker who can barely read and even less so write, still understands where his own interests and those of the nation lie. He also knows what the specific interests of the middle class are and what to expect from them. If he can't write, he can still speak, and speak publicly; if he doesn't know much about math, he can still engage with economists enough to see through a middle-class person who supports the repeal of the Corn Laws, and outsmart them in discussion; if he finds spiritual matters confusing despite the preachers' efforts, he sees much more clearly into earthly political and social issues. We will return to this point later, and now we'll move on to the moral characteristics of our workers.

It is sufficiently clear that the instruction in morals can have no better effect than the religious teaching, with which in all English schools it is mixed up.  The simple principles which, for plain human beings, regulate the relations of man to man, brought into the direst confusion by our social state, our war of each against all, necessarily remain confused and foreign to the working-man when mixed with incomprehensible dogmas, and preached in the religious form of an arbitrary and dogmatic commandment.  The schools contribute, according to the confession of all authorities, and especially of the Children’s Employment Commission, almost nothing to the morality of the working-class.  So short-sighted, so stupidly narrow-minded is the English bourgeoisie in its egotism, that it does not even take the trouble to impress upon the workers the morality of the day, which the bourgeoisie has patched together in its own interest for its own protection!  Even this precautionary measure is too great an effort for the enfeebled and sluggish bourgeoisie.  A time must come when it will repent its neglect, too late.  But it has no right to complain that the workers know nothing of its system of morals, and do not act in accordance with it.

It is clear that teaching morals can’t have a better effect than the religious education that's blended with it in all English schools. The basic principles that guide human interactions, which are thrown into chaos by our society and the struggle of everyone against everyone else, inevitably remain confusing and irrelevant to the working-class when combined with complicated beliefs and presented as rigid and dogmatic rules. According to various authorities, especially the Children’s Employment Commission, schools do almost nothing to improve the morality of the working-class. The English middle class is so shortsighted and narrow-minded in its selfishness that it doesn’t even bother to instill the current moral standards it has crafted to protect its own interests! Even this preventive measure is too much effort for the weakened and slothful middle class. A time will come when it will regret its negligence, but it will be too late. It has no right to complain that workers are unaware of its moral code and do not follow it.

Thus are the workers cast out and ignored by the class in power, morally as well as physically and mentally.  The only provision made for them is the law, which fastens upon them when they become obnoxious to the bourgeoisie.  Like the dullest of the brutes, they are treated to but one form of education, the whip, in the shape of force, not convincing but intimidating.  There is, therefore, no cause for surprise if the workers, treated as brutes, actually become such; or if they can maintain their consciousness of manhood only by cherishing the most glowing hatred, the most unbroken inward rebellion against the bourgeoisie in power.  They are men so long only as they burn with wrath against the reigning class.  They become brutes the moment they bend in patience under the yoke, and merely strive to make life endurable while abandoning the effort to break the yoke.

The workers are pushed aside and ignored by those in power, both morally and in every other way. The only thing set up for them is the law, which targets them when they become a nuisance to the wealthy. Treated like the least intelligent animals, they receive only one kind of education: the whip of force, which is not persuasive but instead intimidating. It's no wonder that if workers are treated like animals, they start to act like them; or that they can hold onto their sense of being human only by nurturing a deep hatred and constant inner rebellion against the ruling class. They are only fully human as long as they are filled with anger towards the upper class. They become like animals the moment they bow in patience under oppression and simply try to make life bearable while giving up the fight to break free from it.

p. 115This, then, is all that the bourgeoisie has done for the education of the proletariat—and when we take into consideration all the circumstances in which this class lives, we shall not think the worse of it for the resentment which it cherishes against the ruling class.  The moral training which is not given to the worker in school is not supplied by the other conditions of his life; that moral training, at least, which alone has worth in the eyes of the bourgeoisie; his whole position and environment involves the strongest temptation to immorality.  He is poor, life offers him no charm, almost every enjoyment is denied him, the penalties of the law have no further terrors for him; why should he restrain his desires, why leave to the rich the enjoyment of his birthright, why not seize a part of it for himself?  What inducement has the proletarian not to steal!  It is all very pretty and very agreeable to the ear of the bourgeois to hear the “sacredness of property” asserted; but for him who has none, the sacredness of property dies out of itself.  Money is the god of this world; the bourgeois takes the proletarian’s money from him and so makes a practical atheist of him.  No wonder, then, if the proletarian retains his atheism and no longer respects the sacredness and power of the earthly God.  And when the poverty of the proletarian is intensified to the point of actual lack of the barest necessaries of life, to want and hunger, the temptation to disregard all social order does but gain power.  This the bourgeoisie for the most part recognises.  Symonds {115a} observes that poverty exercises the same ruinous influence upon the mind which drunkenness exercises upon the body; and Dr. Alison explains to property-holding readers, with the greatest exactness, what the consequences of social oppression must be for the working-class. {115b}  Want leaves the working-man the choice between starving slowly, killing himself speedily, or taking what he needs where he finds it—in plain English, stealing.  And there is no cause for surprise that most of them prefer stealing to starvation and suicide.

p. 115This is everything the bourgeoisie has done for the education of the working class—and when we consider all the circumstances in which this class exists, we won’t judge them harshly for the resentment they feel toward the ruling class. The moral education that workers miss out on in school isn’t provided by the other aspects of their lives; that moral training, at least the kind that matters to the bourgeoisie, is absent. Their entire situation and environment create a powerful temptation toward immorality. They are poor, life has no appeal for them, almost every pleasure is out of reach, and the consequences of the law don’t scare them anymore; so why would they hold back their desires? Why let the rich enjoy what they were born into, and why not take some of it for themselves? What incentive does a worker have not to steal? It sounds nice and pleasing to the bourgeois to hear the “sacredness of property” declared, but for someone who has none, the idea of property’s sacredness naturally fades away. Money is the god of this world; the bourgeois takes away the proletarian's money, effectively making them an atheist in a practical sense. It's no surprise, then, that the proletarian maintains their disbelief and no longer honors the sanctity and authority of this earthly god. And when a worker's poverty becomes severe enough that they lack even the most basic necessities, leading to want and hunger, the temptation to disregard all social order only grows stronger. This is mostly acknowledged by the bourgeoisie. Symonds {115a} points out that poverty has a similarly destructive impact on the mind as drunkenness does on the body; and Dr. Alison precisely explains to property-owning readers the inevitable consequences of social oppression for the working class. {115b} Want forces the worker to choose between slowly starving, quickly ending their life, or taking what they need wherever they can find it—in simpler terms, stealing. And it’s no shock that most of them would rather steal than face starvation or suicide.

True, there are, within the working-class, numbers too moral to p. 116steal even when reduced to the utmost extremity, and these starve or commit suicide.  For suicide, formerly the enviable privilege of the upper classes, has become fashionable among the English workers, and numbers of the poor kill themselves to avoid the misery from which they see no other means of escape.

True, there are, within the working class, some people who are too moral to p. 116steal even when they are pushed to their breaking point, and these individuals either starve or take their own lives. For suicide, once seen as a privilege of the upper classes, has become common among English workers, and many of the poor end their lives to escape the misery that they feel has no other way out.

But far more demoralising than his poverty in its influence upon the English working-man is the insecurity of his position, the necessity of living upon wages from hand to mouth, that in short which makes a proletarian of him.  The smaller peasants in Germany are usually poor, and often suffer want, but they are less at the mercy of accident, they have at least something secure.  The proletarian, who has nothing but his two hands, who consumes to-day what he earned yesterday, who is subject to every possible chance, and has not the slightest guarantee for being able to earn the barest necessities of life, whom every crisis, every whim of his employer may deprive of bread, this proletarian is placed in the most revolting, inhuman position conceivable for a human being.  The slave is assured of a bare livelihood by the self-interest of his master, the serf has at least a scrap of land on which to live; each has at worst a guarantee for life itself.  But the proletarian must depend upon himself alone, and is yet prevented from so applying his abilities as to be able to rely upon them.  Everything that the proletarian can do to improve his position is but a drop in the ocean compared with the floods of varying chances to which he is exposed, over which he has not the slightest control.  He is the passive subject of all possible combinations of circumstances, and must count himself fortunate when he has saved his life even for a short time; and his character and way of living are naturally shaped by these conditions.  Either he seeks to keep his head above water in this whirlpool, to rescue his manhood, and this he can do solely in rebellion {116} against the class which plunders him so mercilessly and then abandons him to his fate, which strives to hold him in this position so demoralising to a human being; or he gives up the struggle against his fate as hopeless, and strives to p. 117profit, so far as he can, by the most favourable moment.  To save is unavailing, for at the utmost he cannot save more than suffices to sustain life for a short time, while if he falls out of work, it is for no brief period.  To accumulate lasting property for himself is impossible; and if it were not, he would only cease to be a working-man and another would take his place.  What better thing can he do, then, when he gets high wages, than live well upon them?  The English bourgeoisie is violently scandalised at the extravagant living of the workers when wages are high; yet it is not only very natural but very sensible of them to enjoy life when they can, instead of laying up treasures which are of no lasting use to them, and which in the end moth and rust (i.e., the bourgeoisie) get possession of.  Yet such a life is demoralising beyond all others.  What Carlyle says of the cotton spinners is true of all English industrial workers: {117a}

But far more discouraging than his poverty for the English working man is the uncertainty of his situation, the need to live paycheck to paycheck, which essentially makes him part of the working class. The smaller farmers in Germany are usually poor and often face hunger, but they are less vulnerable to random misfortunes; they at least have something stable. The worker, who has nothing but his own labor, who spends today what he earned yesterday, who is subject to every possible risk and has no guarantee of earning the basic necessities of life, and who can be deprived of food by any crisis or whim of his employer, finds himself in one of the most degrading and inhumane positions imaginable for any human being. A slave is guaranteed a basic livelihood through the self-interest of his master, while a serf has at least a patch of land to sustain himself; both have, at worst, some assurance of survival. But the worker must rely solely on himself and is prevented from using his skills in a way that allows him to trust in them. Anything the worker does to improve his situation is just a drop in the ocean compared to the overwhelming chances he faces, all of which are beyond his control. He is merely a passive participant in all possible combinations of circumstances and must consider himself lucky if he can hold on to his life, even for a short while; his character and lifestyle are undeniably shaped by these conditions. Either he tries to stay afloat in this chaotic environment, fighting to retain his dignity—and he can only do this through rebellion against the class that exploits him so ruthlessly and then leaves him to his fate, a class that works to keep him in this demoralizing position; or he gives up the fight against his fate as futile and instead tries to take advantage, as best as he can, of any favorable moment. Saving is pointless because, at most, he can save just enough to survive for a little while, and if he loses his job, it won't be for just a short time. Accumulating lasting wealth for himself is impossible; even if it were, he would stop being a worker and someone else would take his place. So what better choice does he have than to enjoy his high wages when he gets them? The English bourgeoisie is outraged by the lavish lifestyles of workers when wages are high; yet it is very natural and reasonable for them to enjoy life when they can, instead of hoarding wealth that will ultimately be of no lasting benefit, and that, in the end, will be consumed by moth and rust (i.e., the bourgeoisie). Still, this kind of life is more demoralizing than any other. What Carlyle says about cotton spinners applies to all English industrial workers:

“Their trade, now in plethoric prosperity, anon extenuated into inanition and ‘short time,’ is of the nature of gambling; they live by it like gamblers, now in luxurious superfluity, now in starvation.  Black, mutinous discontent devours them; simply the miserablest feeling that can inhabit the heart of man.  English commerce, with its world-wide, convulsive fluctuations, with its immeasurable Proteus Steam demon, makes all paths uncertain for them, all life a bewilderment; society, steadfastness, peaceable continuance, the first blessings of man are not theirs.—This world is for them no home, but a dingy prison-house, of reckless unthrift, rebellion, rancour, indignation against themselves and against all men.  Is it a green, flowery world, with azure everlasting sky stretched over it, the work and government of a God; or a murky, simmering Tophet, of copperas fumes, cotton fuz, gin riot, wrath and toil, created by a Demon, governed by a Demon?”

“Their once-thriving business has quickly shrunk to scarcity and ‘short time,’ resembling gambling; they live like gamblers, sometimes in luxury, sometimes in poverty. A deep, rebellious discontent eats away at them; it’s the most miserable feeling anyone can experience. English commerce, with its chaotic global fluctuations and massive steam-powered machine, makes every path uncertain for them, turning life into confusion; they lack the basic blessings of society, like stability and peaceful living. This world isn’t their home, but a dreary prison filled with reckless spending, rebellion, resentment, and anger towards themselves and others. Is it a vibrant, flourishing world under a never-ending blue sky, created and governed by God; or a bleak, smoldering hell filled with toxic fumes, cotton fluff, drunken chaos, anger, and hard work, made by a Demon and ruled by a Demon?”

And elsewhere: {117b}

And elsewhere: {117b}

“Injustice, infidelity to truth and fact and Nature’s order, being properly the one evil under the sun, and the feeling of injustice the one intolerable pain under the sun, our grand question as to the condition of these working-men would be: Is it just?  And, first of all, what belief have they themselves formed about the p. 118justice of it?  The words they promulgate are notable by way of answer; their actions are still more notable.  Revolt, sullen, revengeful humour of revolt against the upper classes, decreasing respect for what their temporal superiors command, decreasing faith for what their spiritual superiors teach, is more and more the universal spirit of the lower classes.  Such spirit may be blamed, may be vindicated, but all men must recognise it as extant there, all may know that it is mournful, that unless altered it will be fatal.”

"Injustice, betrayal of truth and reality, and the disruption of nature’s order are the only real evils in the world, and the feeling of injustice is the most unbearable pain. So, our main question about the situation of these working-class people is: Is it fair? And first, what beliefs have they formed about its fairness? The words they share provide a clear answer; their actions reveal even more. There’s a growing sense of rebellion, a gloomy and vengeful attitude toward the upper classes, decreasing respect for what their social superiors demand, and a fading faith in what their spiritual leaders preach. This mindset is becoming more common among the lower classes. It can be criticized or justified, but everyone must recognize its existence; all can see that it is tragic and, if it doesn’t change, it will lead to disaster."

Carlyle is perfectly right as to the facts and wrong only in censuring the wild rage of the workers against the higher classes.  This rage, this passion, is rather the proof that the workers feel the inhumanity of their position, that they refuse to be degraded to the level of brutes, and that they will one day free themselves from servitude to the bourgeoisie.  This may be seen in the case of those who do not share this wrath; they either bow humbly before the fate that overtakes them, live a respectful private life as well as they can, do not concern themselves as to the course of public affairs, help the bourgeoisie to forge the chains of the workers yet more securely, and stand upon the plane of intellectual nullity that prevailed before the industrial period began; or they are tossed about by fate, lose their moral hold upon themselves as they have already lost their economic hold, live along from day to day, drink and fall into licentiousness; and in both cases they are brutes.  The last-named class contributes chiefly to the “rapid increase of vice,” at which the bourgeoisie is so horrified after itself setting in motion the causes which give rise to it.

Carlyle is completely right about the facts but wrong to criticize the workers' intense anger toward the upper classes. This anger, this passion, actually shows that the workers are aware of the inhumanity of their situation, that they refuse to be treated like animals, and that they will eventually free themselves from the bourgeoisie. This is evident in those who don't share this anger; they either submit submissively to their fate, try to live a respectable private life as best as they can, remain indifferent to public matters, help the bourgeoisie strengthen the chains binding workers, and stay stuck in the intellectual stagnation that existed before the industrial age began; or they are tossed around by fate, losing their moral grip just as they have lost their economic footing, going through life day by day, drinking and indulging in reckless behavior; and in both cases, they act like animals. The latter group mainly drives the “rapid increase of vice,” which the bourgeoisie finds so shocking, despite having set in motion the causes that led to it.

Another source of demoralisation among the workers is their being condemned to work.  As voluntary, productive activity is the highest enjoyment known to us, so is compulsory toil the most cruel, degrading punishment.  Nothing is more terrible than being constrained to do some one thing every day from morning until night against one’s will.  And the more a man the worker feels himself, the more hateful must his work be to him, because he feels the constraint, the aimlessness of it for himself.  Why does he work?  For love of work?  From a natural impulse?  p. 119Not at all!  He works for money, for a thing which has nothing whatsoever to do with the work itself; and he works so long, moreover, and in such unbroken monotony, that this alone must make his work a torture in the first weeks if he has the least human feeling left.  The division of labour has multiplied the brutalising influences of forced work.  In most branches the worker’s activity is reduced to some paltry, purely mechanical manipulation, repeated minute after minute, unchanged year after year. {119}  How much human feeling, what abilities can a man retain in his thirtieth year, who has made needle points or filed toothed wheels twelve hours every day from his early childhood, living all the time under the conditions forced upon the English proletarian?  It is still the same thing since the introduction of steam.  The worker’s activity is made easy, muscular effort is saved, but the work itself becomes unmeaning and monotonous to the last degree.  It offers no field for mental activity, and claims just enough of his attention to keep him from thinking of anything else.  And a sentence to such work, to work which takes his whole time for itself, leaving him scarcely time to eat and sleep, none for physical exercise in the open air, or the enjoyment of Nature, much less for mental activity, how can such a sentence help degrading a human being to the level of a brute?  Once more the worker must choose, must either surrender himself to his fate, become a “good” workman, heed “faithfully” the interest of the bourgeoisie, in which case he most certainly becomes a brute, or else he must rebel, fight for his manhood to the last, and this he can only do in the fight against the bourgeoisie.

Another source of demoralization among workers is that they are forced to work. While doing voluntary, productive work brings us the greatest joy, being compelled to toil is the most cruel and degrading punishment. There’s nothing worse than being forced to do the same thing every day from morning until night against one’s will. The more a worker identifies as a person, the more hateful their work becomes, because they feel the constraints and the aimlessness of it. Why do they work? For love of the job? Out of a natural impulse? Not at all! They work for money, for something that has nothing to do with the work itself; and they work for such long hours, and in such unbroken monotony, that even the first few weeks must feel torturous if they have any human emotions left. The division of labor has intensified the dehumanizing effects of forced work. In most fields, a worker’s tasks are reduced to minor, purely mechanical actions, repeated minute after minute, unchanged year after year. How much humanity and ability can a person retain at thirty years old, who has been making needle points or filing gears twelve hours a day since childhood, living under the same conditions as the English working class? Even with the introduction of steam power, things remain the same. The work might be physically easier, but it becomes meaningless and monotonous to the extreme. It offers no mental challenge and requires just enough of their focus to prevent them from thinking about anything else. Being sentenced to such work, which monopolizes all their time, leaving them barely enough to eat and sleep, with no time for outdoor exercise or enjoying nature, and certainly no time for mental activities—how can such punishment not degrade a person to the level of an animal? Once again, workers must choose: they can accept their fate and become a "good" worker, faithfully serving the interests of the bourgeoisie, which will undoubtedly turn them into brutes; or they can rebel, fight for their humanity to the end, and this can only happen through the struggle against the bourgeoisie.

And when all these conditions have engendered vast demoralisation among the workers, a new influence is added to the old, to spread this degradation more widely and carry it to the extremest point.  This influence is the centralisation of the population.  The writers of the English bourgeoisie are crying murder at the demoralising tendency of the great cities, like perverted Jeremiahs, p. 120they sing dirges, not over the destruction, but the growth of the cities.  Sheriff Alison attributes almost everything, and Dr. Vaughan, author of “The Age of Great Cities,” still more to this influence.  And this is natural, for the propertied class has too direct an interest in the other conditions which tend to destroy the worker body and soul.  If they should admit that “poverty, insecurity, overwork, forced work, are the chief ruinous influences,” they would have to draw the conclusion, “then let us give the poor property, guarantee their subsistence, make laws against overwork,” and this the bourgeoisie dare not formulate.  But the great cities have grown up so spontaneously, the population has moved into them so wholly of its own motion, and the inference that manufacture and the middle-class which profits from it alone have created the cities is so remote, that it is extremely convenient for the ruling class to ascribe all the evil to this apparently unavoidable source; whereas the great cities really only secure a more rapid and certain development for evils already existing in the germ.  Alison is humane enough to admit this; he is no thoroughbred Liberal manufacturer, but only a half developed Tory bourgeois, and he has, therefore, an open eye, now and then, where the full-fledged bourgeois is still stone blind.  Let us hear him: {120}

And when all these conditions have created widespread demoralization among the workers, a new factor joins the old, spreading this degradation further and pushing it to the extreme. This factor is the centralization of the population. Writers from the English bourgeoisie are lamenting the demoralizing effects of large cities, like twisted Jeremiahs, they sing dirges not over the destruction, but the expansion of the cities. Sheriff Alison blames almost everything on this, and Dr. Vaughan, the author of “The Age of Great Cities,” even more so points to this influence. This is understandable because the propertied class has a significant stake in the other conditions that tend to destroy the workers both physically and mentally. If they were to acknowledge that “poverty, insecurity, overwork, and forced labor are the main destructive forces,” they would have to conclude, “then let’s provide the poor with property, ensure their livelihood, and establish laws against overwork,” which the bourgeoisie refuse to articulate. But the large cities have developed so spontaneously, and the population has moved into them so entirely of its own accord, that the idea that manufacturing and the middle class benefiting from it alone created the cities is so far-fetched, making it convenient for the ruling class to blame all the issues on this seemingly unavoidable factor; while in reality, the large cities only allow for a quicker and more certain development of problems that already exist. Alison is humane enough to recognize this; he isn't a thoroughbred Liberal manufacturer, but only a partially developed Tory bourgeois, and he has, therefore, an occasional clear view where the fully developed bourgeois remains completely oblivious. Let’s hear him: {120}

“It is in the great cities that vice has spread her temptations, and pleasure her seductions, and folly her allurements; that guilt is encouraged by the hope of impunity, and idleness fostered by the frequency of example.  It is to these great marts of human corruption that the base and the profligate resort from the simplicity of country life; it is here that they find victims whereon to practise their iniquity, and gains to reward the dangers that attend them.  Virtue is here depressed from the obscurity in which it is involved.  Guilt is matured from the difficulty of its detection; licentiousness is rewarded by the immediate enjoyment which it promises.  If any person will walk through St. Giles’s, the crowded alleys of Dublin, or the poorer quarters of Glasgow by night, he will meet with ample proof of these observations; he will no longer wonder at the disorderly habits and profligate enjoyments of the lower orders; his astonishment will be, not that p. 121there is so much, but that there is so little crime in the world.  The great cause of human corruption in these crowded situations is the contagious nature of bad example and the extreme difficulty of avoiding the seductions of vice when they are brought into close and daily proximity with the younger part of the people.  Whatever we may think of the strength of virtue, experience proves that the higher orders are indebted for their exemption from atrocious crime or disorderly habits chiefly to their fortunate removal from the scene of temptation; and that where they are exposed to the seductions which assail their inferiors, they are noways behind them in yielding to their influence.  It is the peculiar misfortune of the poor in great cities that they cannot fly from these irresistible temptations, but that, turn where they will, they are met by the alluring forms of vice, or the seductions of guilty enjoyment.  It is the experienced impossibility of concealing the attractions of vice from the younger part of the poor in great cities which exposes them to so many causes of demoralisation.  All this proceeds not from any unwonted or extraordinary depravity in the character of these victims of licentiousness, but from the almost irresistible nature of the temptations to which the poor are exposed.  The rich, who censure their conduct, would in all probability yield as rapidly as they have done to the influence of similar causes.  There is a certain degree of misery, a certain proximity to sin, which virtue is rarely able to withstand, and which the young, in particular, are generally unable to resist.  The progress of vice in such circumstances is almost as certain and often nearly as rapid as that of physical contagion.”

“It's in the big cities that vice spreads its temptations, pleasure offers its seductions, and foolishness has its attractions; where guilt is fueled by the hope of getting away with it and laziness is supported by plenty of examples. It's from the simplicity of rural life that the dishonest and reckless come to these major hubs of human corruption; here, they find victims to exploit and rewards for their risky behaviors. Virtue gets pushed into the shadows. Guilt thrives when it's hard to spot; promiscuity gets rewarded with the immediate thrill it promises. Anyone who walks through St. Giles’s, the busy streets of Dublin, or the poorer parts of Glasgow at night will see plenty of evidence of these claims; they won't be shocked by the chaotic habits and reckless pleasures of the lower classes; instead, they'll be amazed that there's so little crime. The main reason for human corruption in these crowded areas is the contagious nature of bad examples and the extreme difficulty of avoiding temptations when they are constantly in contact with the younger generation. No matter how strong we believe virtue to be, experience shows that the upper classes owe their freedom from serious crime or bad behavior mainly to their fortunate distance from temptation; and when they're exposed to the same seductions affecting the lower classes, they are just as likely to give in. The particular misfortune of the poor in big cities is that they can't escape these overwhelming temptations; no matter where they turn, they face the enticing forms of vice or the seductions of guilty pleasures. The practical impossibility of shielding the younger poor from the allure of vice in large cities exposes them to many reasons for moral decline. All this doesn't stem from any unusual or extraordinary wickedness in the character of these victims of immorality, but from the almost irresistible nature of the temptations they encounter. The wealthy, who criticize their behaviors, would likely fall just as quickly to similar influences. There’s a certain level of misery, a certain closeness to sin, that virtue rarely withstands, especially for the young, who are generally unable to resist. The spread of vice in such situations is nearly as inevitable and often just as rapid as that of physical disease.”

And elsewhere:

And elsewhere:

“When the higher orders for their own profit have drawn the labouring-classes in great numbers into a small space, the contagion of guilt becomes rapid and unavoidable.  The lower orders, situated as they are in so far as regards moral or religious instruction, are frequently hardly more to be blamed for yielding to the temptations which surround them than for falling victims to the typhus fever.”

“When people in power prioritize their own interests and corral large groups of working-class individuals into a confined space, wrongdoing can spread rapidly and inevitably. The lower classes, lacking moral or religious direction, are often no more to blame for giving in to the temptations around them than they are for catching typhus fever.”

Enough!  The half-bourgeois Alison betrays to us, however narrow his manner of expressing himself, the evil effect of the great cities upon the moral development of the workers.  Another, a bourgeois pur sang, a man after the heart of the Anti-Corn Law p. 122League, Dr. Andrew Ure, {122} betrays the other side.  He tells us that life in great cities facilitates cabals among the workers and confers power on the Plebs.  If here the workers are not educated (i.e., to obedience to the bourgeoisie), they may view matters one-sidedly, from the standpoint of a sinister selfishness, and may readily permit themselves to be hoodwinked by sly demagogues; nay, they might even be capable of viewing their greatest benefactors, the frugal and enterprising capitalists, with a jealous and hostile eye.  Here proper training alone can avail, or national bankruptcy and other horrors must follow, since a revolution of the workers could hardly fail to occur.  And our bourgeois is perfectly justified in his fears.  If the centralisation of population stimulates and develops the property-holding class, it forces the development of the workers yet more rapidly.  The workers begin to feel as a class, as a whole; they begin to perceive that, though feeble as individuals, they form a power united; their separation from the bourgeoisie, the development of views peculiar to the workers and corresponding to their position in life, is fostered, the consciousness of oppression awakens, and the workers attain social and political importance.  The great cities are the birthplaces of labour movements; in them the workers first began to reflect upon their own condition, and to struggle against it; in them the opposition between proletariat and bourgeoisie first made itself manifest; from them proceeded the Trades-Unions, Chartism, and Socialism.  The great cities have transformed the disease of the social body, which appears in chronic form in the country, into an acute one, and so made manifest its real nature and the means of curing it.  Without the great cities and their forcing influence upon the popular intelligence, the working-class would be far less advanced than it is.  Moreover, they have destroyed the last remnant of the patriarchal relation between working-men and employers, a result to which manufacture on a large scale has contributed by multiplying the employés dependent upon a single employer.  The bourgeoisie deplores all this, it is true, and has good reason to do p. 123so; for, under the old conditions, the bourgeois was comparatively secure against a revolt on the part of his hands.  He could tyrannise over them and plunder them to his heart’s content, and yet receive obedience, gratitude, and assent from these stupid people by bestowing a trifle of patronising friendliness which cost him nothing, and perhaps some paltry present, all apparently out of pure, self-sacrificing, uncalled-for goodness of heart, but really not one-tenth part of his duty.  As an individual bourgeois, placed under conditions which he had not himself created, he might do his duty at least in part; but, as a member of the ruling class, which, by the mere fact of its ruling, is responsible for the condition of the whole nation, he did nothing of what his position involved.  On the contrary, he plundered the whole nation for his own individual advantage.  In the patriarchal relation that hypocritically concealed the slavery of the worker, the latter must have remained an intellectual zero, totally ignorant of his own interest, a mere private individual.  Only when estranged from his employer, when convinced that the sole bond between employer and employé is the bond of pecuniary profit, when the sentimental bond between them, which stood not the slightest test, had wholly fallen away, then only did the worker begin to recognise his own interests and develop independently; then only did he cease to be the slave of the bourgeoisie in his thoughts, feelings, and the expression of his will.  And to this end manufacture on a grand scale and in great cities has most largely contributed.

Enough! The somewhat middle-class Alison shows us, no matter how limited his way of expressing himself, the negative impact of big cities on the moral development of workers. Another, a true bourgeois, a man aligned with the Anti-Corn Law League, Dr. Andrew Ure, reveals the opposite perspective. He claims that life in big cities encourages collaboration among workers and gives power to the masses. If in this environment the workers are not educated (i.e., in obedience to the bourgeoisie), they might see things in a narrow way, driven by selfishness, and could easily be misled by deceptive leaders; in fact, they might even start to perceive their greatest allies, the frugal and enterprising capitalists, with jealousy and hostility. Proper training is the only solution; otherwise, national bankruptcy and other crises will follow, since a workers' uprising would be almost inevitable. Our bourgeois is completely justified in his fears. If the centralization of population boosts the wealthier class, it accelerates the development of the workers even more. The workers begin to recognize themselves as a united class; they start to realize that, though weak as individuals, they possess collective strength; their separation from the bourgeoisie grows, unique worker viewpoints emerge that reflect their life circumstances, awareness of oppression develops, and the workers gain social and political significance. Big cities are the birthplace of labor movements; it is where workers first began to reflect on their situation and fight against it; it was there that the divide between proletariat and bourgeoisie first became clear; from there came the Trades-Unions, Chartism, and Socialism. Big cities have amplified the chronic issues of society often faced in rural areas, turning them into acute problems, exposing their true nature and the means to address them. Without big cities and their impactful influence on public awareness, the working class would be far less progressive than it is. Additionally, they have eliminated the last traces of the patriarchal relationship between workers and employers, a change driven by large-scale manufacturing that increased workers reliant on a single employer. The bourgeoisie laments this situation, and understandably so; under previous conditions, the bourgeois was relatively safe from a revolt by his workers. He could exploit them without restraint and still receive obedience, gratitude, and consent from these naive individuals by offering a bit of condescending kindness, which cost him nothing, and perhaps some trivial gift, all seemingly out of pure, selfless goodness but really not even a fraction of what he owed. As an individual bourgeois, placed in circumstances he did not create, he might fulfill part of his duty; but as a member of the ruling class, which is responsible for the conditions of the entire nation simply by ruling, he did none of what his role required. Instead, he exploited the entire nation for his own gain. In the patriarchal relationship that hypocritically masked the worker's subjugation, the worker must have remained utterly ignorant of his own interests, just a private individual. Only when distanced from his employer, convinced that the only connection between them was financial profit, and when the sentimental ties—which could not withstand any pressure—had completely dissolved, did the worker start to understand his own interests and develop independently; only then did he stop being a mental slave to the bourgeoisie in his thoughts, feelings, and expression of will. Large-scale manufacturing and life in big cities have played a huge role in bringing this about.

Another influence of great moment in forming the character of the English workers is the Irish immigration already referred to.  On the one hand it has, as we have seen, degraded the English workers, removed them from civilisation, and aggravated the hardship of their lot; but, on the other hand, it has thereby deepened the chasm between workers and bourgeoisie, and hastened the approaching crisis.  For the course of the social disease from which England is suffering is the same as the course of a physical disease; it develops, according to certain laws, has its own crisis, the last and most violent of which determines the fate of the patient.  And as the English nation cannot succumb under the final crises, p. 124but must go forth from it, born again, rejuvenated, we can but rejoice over everything which accelerates the course of the disease.  And to this the Irish immigration further contributes by reason of the passionate, mercurial Irish temperament, which it imports into England and into the English working-class.  The Irish and English are to each other much as the French and the Germans; and the mixing of the more facile, excitable, fiery Irish temperament with the stable, reasoning, persevering English must, in the long run, be productive only of good for both.  The rough egotism of the English bourgeoisie would have kept its hold upon the working-class much more firmly if the Irish nature, generous to a fault, and ruled primarily by sentiment, had not intervened, and softened the cold, rational English character in part by a mixture of the races, and in part by the ordinary contact of life.

Another significant influence on shaping the character of English workers is the Irish immigration mentioned earlier. On one hand, it has degraded English workers, distanced them from civilization, and worsened their hardships; but on the other hand, it has deepened the divide between workers and the bourgeoisie and expedited the impending crisis. The trajectory of the social illness plaguing England mirrors that of a physical illness; it progresses according to specific laws, has its own crisis, the last and most severe of which determines the outcome for the patient. And since the English nation cannot fall victim to the final crises, but must emerge from it, reborn and revitalized, we can only be hopeful for anything that speeds up the course of this illness. Irish immigration contributes to this process because of the passionate, unpredictable Irish temperament it brings into England and the English working class. The Irish and English have a relationship akin to that of the French and Germans; and the combination of the more spontaneous, fervent Irish temperament with the stable, rational, and persistent English nature must, in the long run, result in benefits for both. The self-centered egotism of the English bourgeoisie would have maintained a much stronger grip on the working class if the Irish nature, which is generous to a fault and primarily driven by emotion, had not intervened, softening the impassive, logical English character partly through the mixing of the races, and partly through everyday interactions.

In view of all this, it is not surprising that the working-class has gradually become a race wholly apart from the English bourgeoisie.  The bourgeoisie has more in common with every other nation of the earth than with the workers in whose midst it lives.  The workers speak other dialects, have other thoughts and ideals, other customs and moral principles, a different religion and other politics than those of the bourgeoisie.  Thus they are two radically dissimilar nations, as unlike as difference of race could make them, of whom we on the Continent have known but one, the bourgeoisie.  Yet it is precisely the other, the people, the proletariat, which is by far the more important for the future of England.

In light of all this, it's not surprising that the working class has gradually become a completely separate group from the English bourgeoisie. The bourgeoisie has more in common with other nations around the world than with the workers they live among. The workers speak different dialects, have different thoughts and ideals, other customs and moral values, a different religion, and other political views compared to the bourgeoisie. Thus, they are two fundamentally different groups, as distinct as race could make them, of which we on the Continent have only known one, the bourgeoisie. Yet it is precisely the other group, the people, the proletariat, that is by far the more important for the future of England.

Of the public character of the English working-man, as it finds expression in associations and political principles, we shall have occasion to speak later; let us here consider the results of the influences cited above, as they affect the private character of the worker.  The workman is far more humane in ordinary life than the bourgeois.  I have already mentioned the fact that the beggars are accustomed to turn almost exclusively to the workers, and that, in general, more is done by the workers than by the bourgeoisie for the maintenance of the poor.  This fact, which p. 125any one may prove for himself any day, is confirmed, among others, by Dr. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, who says: {125}

Of the public character of the English working-class, as it expresses itself in organizations and political beliefs, we will discuss later; for now, let's look at the effects of the influences mentioned above on the private character of the worker. The worker tends to be much more compassionate in everyday life than the middle-class. I've already pointed out that beggars usually turn to workers for help, and overall, workers do more than the middle-class to support the needy. This fact, which anyone can verify any day, is supported by Dr. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, who says: {125}

“The poor give one another more than the rich give the poor.  I can confirm my statement by the testimony of one of our eldest, most skilful, most observant, and humane physicians, Dr. Bardsley, who has often declared that the total sum which the poor yearly bestow upon one another, surpasses that which the rich contribute in the same time.”

“People who are struggling support each other more than wealthy individuals support those in need. I can support this with the words of one of our most experienced, skilled, observant, and caring doctors, Dr. Bardsley, who has often said that the total amount the poor give to one another each year is greater than what the rich donate in that same period.”

In other ways, too, the humanity of the workers is constantly manifesting itself pleasantly.  They have experienced hard times themselves, and can therefore feel for those in trouble, whence they are more approachable, friendlier, and less greedy for money, though they need it far more, than the property-holding class.  For them money is worth only what it will buy, whereas for the bourgeois it has an especial inherent value, the value of a god, and makes the bourgeois the mean, low money-grabber that he is.  The working-man who knows nothing of this feeling of reverence for money is therefore less grasping than the bourgeois, whose whole activity is for the purpose of gain, who sees in the accumulations of his money-bags the end and aim of life.  Hence the workman is much less prejudiced, has a clearer eye for facts as they are than the bourgeois, and does not look at everything through the spectacles of personal selfishness.  His faulty education saves him from religious prepossessions, he does not understand religious questions, does not trouble himself about them, knows nothing of the fanaticism that holds the bourgeoisie bound; and if he chances to have any religion, he has it only in name, not even in theory.  Practically he lives for this world, and strives to make himself at home in it.  All the writers of the bourgeoisie are unanimous on this point, that the workers are not religious, and do not attend church.  From the general statement are to be excepted the Irish, a few elderly people, and the half-bourgeois, the overlookers, foremen, and the like.  But among p. 126the masses there prevails almost universally a total indifference to religion, or at the utmost, some trace of Deism too undeveloped to amount to more than mere words, or a vague dread of the words infidel, atheist, etc.  The clergy of all sects is in very bad odour with the working-men, though the loss of its influence is recent.  At present, however, the mere cry: “He’s a parson!” is often enough to drive one of the clergy from the platform of a public meeting.  And like the rest of the conditions under which he lives, his want of religious and other culture contributes to keep the working-man more unconstrained, freer from inherited stable tenets and cut-and-dried opinions, than the bourgeois who is saturated with the class prejudices poured into him from his earliest youth.  There is nothing to be done with the bourgeois; he is essentially conservative in however liberal a guise, his interest is bound up with that of the property-holding class, he is dead to all active movement; he is losing his position in the forefront of England’s historical development.  The workers are taking his place, in rightful claim first, then in fact.

In many ways, the humanity of the workers consistently shows itself in a positive light. They’ve been through tough times themselves and can empathize with others in trouble, making them more approachable, friendlier, and less greedy for money, even though they need it much more than the wealthy. For them, money is only valuable for what it can buy, while for the bourgeois, it has a special inherent value that makes them act like stingy money-grabbers. The working man, who is not burdened by this reverence for money, is thus less greedy than the bourgeois, who focuses all his efforts on profit and views his financial accumulations as the ultimate goal in life. As a result, the worker is much less biased and has a clearer perspective on reality than the bourgeois, who views everything through the lens of personal gain. His limited education spares him from religious biases; he doesn’t concern himself with religious issues and knows little of the fanaticism that retains the bourgeoisie. If he has any religion, it’s only nominal, lacking even a solid theoretical basis. Essentially, he lives for this world and seeks to make himself comfortable in it. All bourgeois writers agree that workers aren’t religious and don’t go to church. The only exceptions are the Irish, some older individuals, and those who are half-bourgeois, like supervisors and foremen. But among the masses, there’s almost universal indifference to religion, or at most, a vague notion of Deism that’s too underdeveloped to be meaningful, along with a general unease about terms like infidel and atheist. The clergy of all faiths is held in low regard by the working men, though this decline in influence is recent. Nowadays, simply saying, “He’s a parson!” can often drive a member of the clergy away from a public meeting. Like other aspects of their lives, the worker’s lack of religious and cultural education allows him to be more unrestrained, free from the fixed beliefs and preconceived notions that burden the bourgeois, who has been shaped by class prejudices since childhood. There’s nothing to be done with the bourgeois; he is inherently conservative, no matter how liberal he may appear. His interests are tied to those of the wealthy, and he is detached from any proactive social movements; he is losing his position at the forefront of England’s historical evolution. The workers are taking his place, first rightfully, and then in reality.

All this, together with the correspondent public action of the workers, with which we shall deal later, forms the favourable side of the character of this class; the unfavourable one may be quite as briefly summed up, and follows quite as naturally out of the given causes.  Drunkenness, sexual irregularities, brutality, and disregard for the rights of property are the chief points with which the bourgeois charges them.  That they drink heavily is to be expected.  Sheriff Alison asserts that in Glasgow some thirty thousand working-men get drunk every Saturday night, and the estimate is certainly not exaggerated; and that in that city in 1830, one house in twelve, and in 1840, one house in ten, was a public-house; that in Scotland, in 1823, excise was paid upon 2,300,000 gallons; in 1837, upon 6,620,000 gallons; in England, in 1823, upon 1,976,000 gallons, and in 1837, upon 7,875,000 gallons of spirits.  The Beer Act of 1830, which facilitated the opening of beerhouses (jerry shops), whose keepers are licensed to sell beer to be drunk on the premises, facilitated the spread of intemperance by bringing a beerhouse, so to say, to everybody’s door.  p. 127In nearly every street there are several such beerhouses, and among two or three neighbouring houses in the country one is sure to be a jerry shop.  Besides these, there are hush-shops in multitudes, i.e., secret drinking-places which are not licensed, and quite as many secret distilleries which produce great quantities of spirits in retired spots, rarely visited by the police, in the great cities.  Gaskell estimates these secret distilleries in Manchester alone at more than a hundred, and their product at 156,000 gallons at the least.  In Manchester there are, besides, more than a thousand public-houses selling all sorts of alcoholic drinks, or quite as many in proportion to the number of inhabitants as in Glasgow.  In all other great towns, the state of things is the same.  And when one considers, apart from the usual consequences of intemperance, that men and women, even children, often mothers with babies in their arms, come into contact in these places with the most degraded victims of the bourgeois regime, with thieves, swindlers, and prostitutes; when one reflects that many a mother gives the baby on her arm gin to drink, the demoralising effects of frequenting such places cannot be denied.

All of this, along with the public actions of the workers, which we’ll talk about later, highlights the positive aspects of this class; the negative traits can also be briefly summarized and stem naturally from the same causes. The bourgeoisie often accuses them of drunkenness, sexual misconduct, violence, and a lack of respect for property rights. It’s expected that they drink heavily. Sheriff Alison claims that around thirty thousand working men in Glasgow get drunk every Saturday night, and that estimate isn’t exaggerating; in that city, back in 1830, one in every twelve houses was a pub, and by 1840, it was one in ten. In Scotland, in 1823, excise tax was collected on 2,300,000 gallons of alcohol; by 1837, that number increased to 6,620,000 gallons. In England, in 1823, it was 1,976,000 gallons, and in 1837, it jumped to 7,875,000 gallons of spirits. The Beer Act of 1830 made it easier to open beerhouses (or jerry shops), where the owners are allowed to sell beer for consumption on-site, which helped spread heavy drinking by bringing these establishments right to people’s doorsteps. In almost every street, there are several of these beerhouses, and usually one can be found among two or three neighboring houses in rural areas. Additionally, there are numerous hush-shops, which are unlicensed secret drinking spots, as well as many hidden distilleries producing large amounts of alcohol in secluded areas that are rarely patrolled by the police in major cities. Gaskell estimates that Manchester alone has more than a hundred of these clandestine distilleries, generating at least 156,000 gallons of spirits. Furthermore, Manchester has over a thousand public houses that serve all kinds of alcoholic beverages, which is similar in ratio to the population when compared to Glasgow. The situation is the same in all other major towns. Considering the typical consequences of heavy drinking, it’s troubling that men, women, and even children—often mothers with babies in their arms—frequently encounter the most degraded individuals of bourgeois society, including thieves, con artists, and sex workers. When one reflects that many mothers even give their babies gin to drink, the damaging effects of visiting these places become undeniable.

On Saturday evenings, especially when wages are paid and work stops somewhat earlier than usual, when the whole working-class pours from its own poor quarters into the main thoroughfares, intemperance may be seen in all its brutality.  I have rarely come out of Manchester on such an evening without meeting numbers of people staggering and seeing others lying in the gutter.  On Sunday evening the same scene is usually repeated, only less noisily.  And when their money is spent, the drunkards go to the nearest pawnshop, of which there are plenty in every city—over sixty in Manchester, and ten or twelve in a single street of Salford, Chapel Street—and pawn whatever they possess.  Furniture, Sunday clothes where such exist, kitchen utensils in masses are fetched from the pawnbrokers on Saturday night only to wander back, almost without fail, before the next Wednesday, until at last some accident makes the final redemption impossible, and one article after another falls into the clutches of the usurer, or until he refuses to give a single farthing more upon p. 128the battered, used-up pledge.  When one has seen the extent of intemperance among the workers in England, one readily believes Lord Ashley’s statement that this class annually expends something like twenty-five million pounds sterling upon intoxicating liquor: and the deterioration in external conditions, the frightful shattering of mental and physical health, the ruin of all domestic relations which follow may readily be imagined.  True, the temperance societies have done much, but what are a few thousand teetotallers among the millions of workers?  When Father Matthew, the Irish apostle of temperance, passes through the English cities, from thirty to sixty thousand workers take the pledge; but most of them break it again within a month.  If one counts up the immense numbers who have taken the pledge in the last three or four years in Manchester, the total is greater than the whole population of the town—and still it is by no means evident that intemperance is diminishing.

On Saturday evenings, especially when payday arrives and work ends a bit earlier than usual, the entire working class floods out of their struggling neighborhoods and into the main streets, where the harsh reality of drinking can be witnessed. I rarely leave Manchester on such an evening without encountering many people stumbling around and seeing others lying in the gutter. The same scene typically unfolds again on Sunday evening, but less noisily. Once they've spent their money, the drunkards head to the nearest pawnshop, and there are plenty in every city—over sixty in Manchester alone, and ten or twelve on a single street in Salford, Chapel Street—and pawn whatever they have. Furniture, Sunday clothes if they have any, and a bunch of kitchen tools are taken out of the pawnshops on Saturday night only to be returned, almost without fail, before the following Wednesday, until eventually something happens that makes full redemption impossible, and one item after another falls into the hands of the loan shark, or until he refuses to offer a single penny more on the worn-out, used collateral. Once you've witnessed the scale of drinking among workers in England, it's easy to believe Lord Ashley’s claim that this class spends around twenty-five million pounds a year on alcohol; the resulting decline in living conditions, the devastating impact on mental and physical health, and the destruction of family relationships can easily be imagined. True, the temperance societies have done a lot, but what good are a few thousand teetotalers among millions of workers? When Father Matthew, the Irish advocate for temperance, visits English cities, between thirty to sixty thousand workers take the pledge; however, most of them break it within a month. Even if you sum up the massive numbers of people who have pledged sobriety in the last three or four years in Manchester, the total exceeds the entire population of the city—and still, it’s not at all clear that drinking is decreasing.

Next to intemperance in the enjoyment of intoxicating liquors, one of the principal faults of English working-men is sexual licence.  But this, too, follows with relentless logic, with inevitable necessity out of the position of a class left to itself, with no means of making fitting use of its freedom.  The bourgeoisie has left the working-class only these two pleasures, while imposing upon it a multitude of labours and hardships, and the consequence is that the working-men, in order to get something from life, concentrate their whole energy upon these two enjoyments, carry them to excess, surrender to them in the most unbridled manner.  When people are placed under conditions which appeal to the brute only, what remains to them but to rebel or to succumb to utter brutality?  And when, moreover, the bourgeoisie does its full share in maintaining prostitution—and how many of the 40,000 prostitutes who fill the streets of London every evening live upon the virtuous bourgeoisie!  How many of them owe it to the seduction of a bourgeois, that they must offer their bodies to the passers-by in order to live?—surely it has least of all a right to reproach the workers with their sexual brutality.

Next to excessive drinking, one of the main issues with English working-class men is their sexual promiscuity. This behavior also emerges logically and inevitably from a class that has been left to fend for itself, lacking the means to use its freedom properly. The bourgeoisie has only given the working class these two pleasures while burdening them with many jobs and hardships. As a result, workers focus all their energy on these two forms of enjoyment, indulging in them excessively and without restraint. When people are in situations that appeal only to their base instincts, what other choice do they have but to rebel or fall into sheer brutality? Furthermore, the bourgeoisie plays a significant role in maintaining prostitution—how many of the 40,000 prostitutes on the streets of London every night depend on the virtuous bourgeoisie? How many of them, seduced by a bourgeois man, are forced to sell their bodies to survive? The bourgeoisie certainly has little right to criticize workers for their sexual excesses.

The failings of the workers in general may be traced to an unbridled p. 129thirst for pleasure, to want of providence, and of flexibility in fitting into the social order, to the general inability to sacrifice the pleasure of the moment to a remoter advantage.  But is that to be wondered at?  When a class can purchase few and only the most sensual pleasures by its wearying toil, must it not give itself over blindly and madly to those pleasures?  A class about whose education no one troubles himself, which is a playball to a thousand chances, knows no security in life—what incentives has such a class to providence, to “respectability,” to sacrifice the pleasure of the moment for a remoter enjoyment, most uncertain precisely by reason of the perpetually varying, shifting conditions under which the proletariat lives?  A class which bears all the disadvantages of the social order without enjoying its advantages, one to which the social system appears in purely hostile aspects—who can demand that such a class respect this social order?  Verily that is asking much!  But the working-man cannot escape the present arrangement of society so long as it exists, and when the individual worker resists it, the greatest injury falls upon himself.

The shortcomings of workers in general can be traced back to an unchecked desire for pleasure, a lack of foresight, and an inability to adapt to the social system, along with a general failure to sacrifice immediate gratification for a longer-term benefit. But should we really be surprised? When a class can only afford a few of the most indulgent pleasures through exhausting labor, isn’t it expected that they would surrender completely to those pleasures? A class that no one cares to educate, which is at the mercy of countless uncertainties, has no security in life—what motivation does such a class have to plan ahead, to strive for "respectability," or to give up immediate pleasure for something more uncertain down the line, especially when their conditions are constantly changing? A class that endures all the disadvantages of the social structure without reaping its benefits, one that sees the social system as entirely adversarial—how can we expect such a class to respect that social order? That is indeed a lot to ask! Yet the worker cannot escape the current social arrangement as long as it exists, and when an individual worker does resist, the greatest harm comes back to him.

Thus the social order makes family life almost impossible for the worker.  In a comfortless, filthy house, hardly good enough for mere nightly shelter, ill-furnished, often neither rain-tight nor warm, a foul atmosphere filling rooms overcrowded with human beings, no domestic comfort is possible.  The husband works the whole day through, perhaps the wife also and the elder children, all in different places; they meet night and morning only, all under perpetual temptation to drink; what family life is possible under such conditions?  Yet the working-man cannot escape from the family, must live in the family, and the consequence is a perpetual succession of family troubles, domestic quarrels, most demoralising for parents and children alike.  Neglect of all domestic duties, neglect of the children, especially, is only too common among the English working-people, and only too vigorously fostered by the existing institutions of society.  And children growing up in this savage way, amidst these demoralising influences, are expected to turn out goody-goody and moral in the end!  p. 130Verily the requirements are naïve, which the self-satisfied bourgeois makes upon the working-man!

The social system makes family life nearly impossible for workers. In a cramped, dirty home that's barely suitable for just sleeping, poorly furnished, often not even keeping out the rain or providing warmth, with a terrible atmosphere in rooms crowded with people, there’s no chance for any comfort. The husband works all day, and maybe the wife and older kids do too, all in different jobs; they only see each other mornings and nights, constantly tempted to drink. What kind of family life can exist in such conditions? Yet the working man can't escape from the family; he has to live with them, which leads to a cycle of family issues and arguments that are damaging for both parents and children. It’s very common among English working people to neglect household duties, especially the care of the children, and society's institutions only encourage this neglect. And children raised in such harsh conditions, surrounded by these damaging influences, are expected to grow up virtuous and moral in the end! p. 130 Truly, the expectations that self-satisfied middle-class people have of the working man are unrealistic!

The contempt for the existing social order is most conspicuous in its extreme form—that of offences against the law.  If the influences demoralising to the working-man act more powerfully, more concentratedly than usual, he becomes an offender as certainly as water abandons the fluid for the vaporous state at 80 degrees, Réaumur.  Under the brutal and brutalising treatment of the bourgeoisie, the working-man becomes precisely as much a thing without volition as water, and is subject to the laws of nature with precisely the same necessity; at a certain point all freedom ceases.  Hence with the extension of the proletariat, crime has increased in England, and the British nation has become the most criminal in the world.  From the annual criminal tables of the Home Secretary, it is evident that the increase of crime in England has proceeded with incomprehensible rapidity.  The numbers of arrests for criminal offences reached in the years: 1805, 4,605; 1810, 5,146; 1815, 7,898; 1820, 13,710; 1825, 14,437; 1830,18,107; 1835, 20,731; 1840, 27,187; 1841, 27,760; 1842, 31,309 in England and Wales alone.  That is to say, they increased sevenfold in thirty-seven years.  Of these arrests, in 1842, 4,497 were made in Lancashire alone, or more than 14 per cent. of the whole; and 4,094 in Middlesex, including London, or more than 13 per cent.  So that two districts which include great cities with large proletarian populations, produced one-fourth of the total amount of crime, though their population is far from forming one-fourth of the whole.  Moreover, the criminal tables prove directly that nearly all crime arises within the proletariat; for, in 1842, taking the average, out of 100 criminals, 32.35 could neither read nor write; 58.32 read and wrote imperfectly; 6.77 could read and write well; 0.22 had enjoyed a higher education, while the degree of education of 2.34 could not be ascertained.  In Scotland, crime has increased yet more rapidly.  There were but 89 arrests for criminal offences in 1819, and as early as 1837 the number had risen to 3,176, and in 1842 to 4,189.  In Lanarkshire, where Sheriff Alison himself made out p. 131the official report, population has doubled once in thirty years, and crime once in five and a half, or six times more rapidly than the population.  The offences, as in all civilised countries, are, in the great majority of cases, against property, and have, therefore, arisen from want in some form; for what a man has, he does not steal.  The proportion of offences against property to the population, which in the Netherlands is as 1: 7,140, and in France, as 1: 1,804, was in England, when Gaskell wrote, as 1: 799.  The proportion of offences against persons to the population is, in the Netherlands, 1: 28,904; in France, 1: 17,573; in England, 1: 23,395; that of crimes in general to the population in the agricultural districts, as 1: 1,043; in the manufacturing districts as 1: 840. {131a}  In the whole of England to-day the proportion is 1: 660; {131b} though it is scarcely ten years since Gaskell’s book appeared!

The disdain for the current social system is most evident in its most extreme form—criminal offenses. If the negative influences on the working-class man become stronger and more concentrated than usual, he becomes an offender just as surely as water changes from liquid to vapor at 80 degrees Réaumur. Under the harsh and dehumanizing treatment from the bourgeoisie, the working-class man becomes as much of a being without free will as water and is subject to the laws of nature with the same inevitability; at a certain point, all freedom disappears. Therefore, with the growth of the proletariat, crime has increased in England, making the British nation the most criminal in the world. From the annual crime statistics published by the Home Secretary, it's clear that the rise in crime in England has happened with bewildering speed. The number of arrests for criminal offenses reached the following figures: in 1805, 4,605; in 1810, 5,146; in 1815, 7,898; in 1820, 13,710; in 1825, 14,437; in 1830, 18,107; in 1835, 20,731; in 1840, 27,187; in 1841, 27,760; and in 1842, 31,309 in England and Wales alone. This means they increased sevenfold over thirty-seven years. Of these arrests, in 1842, 4,497 were made in Lancashire alone, which is over 14 percent of the total; and 4,094 in Middlesex, including London, making up over 13 percent. Thus, two areas with large cities and big working-class populations accounted for one-fourth of all crime, despite their populations not being one-fourth of the total. Furthermore, the crime statistics clearly show that nearly all crime comes from the proletariat; for instance, in 1842, on average, out of 100 criminals, 32.35 could neither read nor write; 58.32 read and wrote poorly; 6.77 could read and write well; 0.22 had received higher education, while the education level of 2.34 could not be determined. In Scotland, crime has increased even more quickly. There were only 89 arrests for criminal offenses in 1819, but by 1837 the number had jumped to 3,176, and by 1842 to 4,189. In Lanarkshire, where Sheriff Alison himself compiled the official report, the population has doubled every thirty years, while crime has increased once every five and a half years, or six times faster than the population. The offenses, as in all civilized countries, are mostly against property, arising from some form of need; after all, a person doesn’t steal what they already have. The ratio of property offenses to the population is 1: 7,140 in the Netherlands, and 1: 1,804 in France, compared to England's ratio of 1: 799 when Gaskell wrote. The ratio of personal offenses to the population is 1: 28,904 in the Netherlands, 1: 17,573 in France, and 1: 23,395 in England; the ratio of general crimes to the population in agricultural areas is 1: 1,043, while in manufacturing areas it’s 1: 840. {131a} In all of England today, the ratio is 1: 660; {131b} yet it's barely ten years since Gaskell's book was published!

These facts are certainly more than sufficient to bring any one, even a bourgeois, to pause and reflect upon the consequences of such a state of things.  If demoralisation and crime multiply twenty years longer in this proportion (and if English manufacture in these twenty years should be less prosperous than heretofore, the progressive multiplication of crime can only continue the more rapidly), what will the result be?  Society is already in a state of visible dissolution; it is impossible to pick up a newspaper without seeing the most striking evidence of the giving way of all social ties.  I look at random into a heap of English journals lying before me; there is the Manchester Guardian for October 30, 1844, which reports for three days.  It no longer takes the trouble to give exact details as to Manchester, and merely relates the most interesting cases: that the workers in a mill have struck for higher wages without giving notice, and been condemned by a Justice of the Peace to resume work; that in Salford a couple of boys had been caught stealing, and a bankrupt tradesman tried to cheat his creditors.  From the neighbouring towns the reports are more detailed: in Ashton, two thefts, one p. 132burglary, one suicide; in Bury, one theft; in Bolton, two thefts, one revenue fraud; in Leigh, one theft; in Oldham, one strike for wages, one theft, one fight between Irish women, one non-Union hatter assaulted by Union men, one mother beaten by her son, one attack upon the police, one robbery of a church; in Stockport, discontent of working-men with wages, one theft, one fraud, one fight, one wife beaten by her husband; in Warrington, one theft, one fight; in Wigan, one theft, and one robbery of a church.  The reports of the London papers are much worse; frauds, thefts, assaults, family quarrels crowd one another.  A Times of September 12, 1844, falls into my hand, which gives a report of a single day, including a theft, an attack upon the police, a sentence upon a father requiring him to support his illegitimate son, the abandonment of a child by its parents, and the poisoning of a man by his wife.  Similar reports are to be found in all the English papers.  In this country, social war is under full headway, every one stands for himself, and fights for himself against all comers, and whether or not he shall injure all the others who are his declared foes, depends upon a cynical calculation as to what is most advantageous for himself.  It no longer occurs to any one to come to a peaceful understanding with his fellow-man; all differences are settled by threats, violence, or in a law-court.  In short, every one sees in his neighbour an enemy to be got out of the way, or, at best, a tool to be used for his own advantage.  And this war grows from year to year, as the criminal tables show, more violent, passionate, irreconcilable.  The enemies are dividing gradually into two great camps—the bourgeoisie on the one hand, the workers on the other.  This war of each against all, of the bourgeoisie against the proletariat, need cause us no surprise, for it is only the logical sequel of the principle involved in free competition.  But it may very well surprise us that the bourgeoisie remains so quiet and composed in the face of the rapidly gathering storm-clouds, that it can read all these things daily in the papers without, we will not say indignation at such a social condition, but fear of its consequences, of a universal outburst of that which manifests itself symptomatically from day to day in the form of p. 133crime.  But then it is the bourgeoisie, and from its standpoint cannot even see the facts, much less perceive their consequences.  One thing only is astounding, that class prejudice and preconceived opinions can hold a whole class of human beings in such perfect, I might almost say, such mad blindness.  Meanwhile, the development of the nation goes its way whether the bourgeoisie has eyes for it or not, and will surprise the property-holding class one day with things not dreamed of in its philosophy.

These facts are certainly more than enough to make anyone, even someone from the middle class, stop and think about the consequences of this situation. If demoralization and crime keep increasing at this rate for another twenty years (and if English manufacturing during this time is less successful than before, the rise in crime will likely accelerate), what will happen? Society is already showing signs of breaking down; it's impossible to read a newspaper without seeing clear evidence of the crumbling social fabric. I randomly glance at a pile of English newspapers in front of me; there’s the *Manchester Guardian* from October 30, 1844, reporting over three days. It no longer bothers to provide detailed accounts from Manchester, just sharing the most interesting stories: workers at a mill striking for higher wages without notice and being ordered by a Justice of the Peace to go back to work; in Salford, two boys caught stealing, and a bankrupt shopkeeper trying to scam his creditors. The reports from nearby towns are more detailed: in Ashton, there are two thefts, one burglary, one suicide; in Bury, one theft; in Bolton, two thefts, one case of tax fraud; in Leigh, one theft; in Oldham, one strike for wages, one theft, one fight between Irish women, one non-Union hatmaker assaulted by Union members, one mother beaten by her son, one attack on the police, one church robbery; in Stockport, workers unhappy with their wages, one theft, one fraud, one fight, one wife beaten by her husband; in Warrington, one theft, one fight; in Wigan, one theft and one church robbery. The reports from London are even worse; frauds, thefts, assaults, and family disputes pile up. I come across a *Times* from September 12, 1844, which provides a report from just one day, including a theft, an attack on the police, a judge ordering a father to support his illegitimate child, parents abandoning a child, and a man poisoned by his wife. Similar reports can be found in all the English newspapers. Here, a social war is fully underway; everyone stands alone and fights for their own interests against everyone else, and whether or not they harm those they view as enemies depends on a cynical calculation of what benefits them most. It no longer occurs to anyone to seek a peaceful resolution with others; all disagreements are resolved through threats, violence, or in court. In short, everyone sees their neighbor as a competitor to be eliminated or, at best, a tool for their own gain. This conflict grows more violent, passionate, and irreconcilable year after year, as crime statistics show. The adversaries are gradually splitting into two major groups—the middle class on one side, the workers on the other. This struggle of each against all, of the middle class against the working class, shouldn’t surprise us; it’s just the logical result of free competition. What might surprise us is that the middle class remains so calm and composed in the face of the brewing storm, able to read about all these events in the newspapers without, I won’t say outrage over such a social situation, but fear of the consequences, of an eventual explosion of what unfolds daily in the form of crime. After all, it’s the middle class, and from their viewpoint, they can’t even see the facts, let alone understand their consequences. One thing is particularly shocking: class prejudice and preconceived notions can keep an entire social class in such complete, almost insane blindness. Meanwhile, the nation continues to develop, whether the middle class notices it or not, and will one day surprise the property-owning class with things they never imagined.

p. 134SINGLE BRANCHES OF INDUSTRY.  FACTORY HANDS.

In dealing now with the more important branches of the English manufacturing proletariat, we shall begin, according to the principle already laid down, with the factory-workers, i.e., those who are comprised under the Factory Act.  This law regulates the length of the working-day in mills in which wool, silk, cotton, and flax are spun or woven by means of water or steam-power, and embraces, therefore, the more important branches of English manufacture.  The class employed by them is the most intelligent and energetic of all the English workers, and, therefore, the most restless and most hated by the bourgeoisie.  It stands as a whole, and the cotton-workers pre-eminently stand, at the head of the labour movement, as their masters the manufacturers, especially those of Lancashire, take the lead of the bourgeois agitation.

When discussing the key sectors of the English manufacturing working class, we'll start, as we’ve already established, with factory workers, meaning those covered by the Factory Act. This law governs the length of the workday in mills where wool, silk, cotton, and flax are spun or woven using water or steam power, thus covering the most significant areas of English manufacturing. The workers in this sector are the most educated and driven among all English laborers, making them the most restless and most disliked by the bourgeois class. Collectively, and particularly the cotton workers, they lead the labor movement, just as their employers, especially those in Lancashire, spearhead the bourgeois activism.

We have already seen in the introduction how the population employed in working up the textile materials were first torn from their former way of life.  It is, therefore, not surprising that the progress of mechanical invention in later years also affected precisely these workers most deeply and permanently.  The history of cotton manufacture as related by Ure, {134a} Baines, {134b} and others is the story of improvements in every direction, most of which have become domesticated in the other branches of industry as well.  Hand-work is superseded by machine-work almost universally, nearly all manipulations are conducted by the aid of steam or water, and every year is bringing further improvements.

We already discussed in the introduction how the people working with textile materials were taken away from their previous way of life. So, it makes sense that the advancements in machinery over the years have impacted these workers the most significantly and lasting. The history of cotton manufacturing, as described by Ure, {134a} Baines, {134b} and others, tells the story of progress in every area, many of which have also been adopted in other industries. Manual labor has been almost completely replaced by machine work, nearly all tasks are done with the help of steam or water, and every year brings new improvements.

In a well-ordered state of society, such improvements could only be a source of rejoicing; in a war of all against all, individuals p. 135seize the benefit for themselves, and so deprive the majority of the means of subsistence.  Every improvement in machinery throws workers out of employment, and the greater the advance, the more numerous the unemployed; each great improvement produces, therefore, upon a number of workers the effect of a commercial crisis, creates want, wretchedness, and crime.  Take a few examples.  The very first invention, the jenny, worked by one man, produced at least sixfold what the spinning-wheel had yielded in the same time; thus every new jenny threw five spinners out of employment.  The throstle, which, in turn, produced much more than the jenny, and like it, was worked by one man, threw still more people out of employment.  The mule, which required yet fewer hands in proportion to the product, had the same effect, and every improvement in the mule, every multiplication of its spindles, diminished still further the number of workers employed.  But this increase of the number of spindles in the mule is so great that whole armies of workers have been thrown out of employment by it.  For, whereas one spinner, with a couple of children for piecers, formerly set six hundred spindles in motion, he could now manage fourteen hundred to two thousand spindles upon two mules, so that two adult spinners and a part of the piecers whom they employed were thrown out.  And since self-acting mules have been introduced into a very large number of spinning-mills, the spinners’ work is wholly performed by the machine.  There lies before me a book from the pen of James Leach, {135} one of the recognised leaders of the Chartists in Manchester.  The author has worked for years in various branches of industry, in mills and coal mines, and is known to me personally as an honest, trustworthy, and capable man.  In consequence of his political position, he had at command extensive detailed information as to the different factories, collected by the workers themselves, and he publishes tables from which it is clear that in 1841, in 35 factories, 1,060 fewer mule spinners were employed than in 1829, though the number of spindles in these 35 factories had increased by 99,239.  He cites five factories p. 136in which no spinners whatever are employed, self-actors only being used.  While the number of spindles increased by 10 per cent., the number of spinners diminished more than 60 per cent.  And Leach adds that since 1841, so many improvements have been introduced by double-decking and other means, that in some of the factories named, half the operatives have been discharged.  In one factory alone, where eighty spinners were employed a short time ago, there are now but twenty left; the others having been discharged or set at children’s work for children’s wages.  Of Stockport Leach tells a similar story, that in 1835, 800 spinners were employed, and in 1840 but 140, though the manufacture of Stockport has greatly increased during the last eight or nine years.  Similar improvements have now been made in carding frames, by which one-half the operatives have been thrown out of employment.  In one factory improved frames have been set up, which have thrown four hands out of eight out of work, besides which the employer reduced the wages of the four retained from eight shillings to seven.  The same process has gone on in the weaving industry; the power-loom has taken possession of one branch of hand-weaving after another, and since it produces much more than the hand-loom, while one weaver can work two looms, it has superseded a multitude of working-people.  And in all sorts of manufacture, in flax and wool-spinning, in silk-twisting, the case is the same.  The power-loom, too, is beginning to appropriate one branch after another of wool and linen-weaving; in Rochdale alone, there are more power than hand-looms in flannel and other wool-weaving branches.  The bourgeoisie usually replies to this, that improvements in machinery, by decreasing the cost of production, supply finished goods at lower prices, and that these reduced prices cause such an increase in consumption that the unemployed operatives soon find full employment in newly-founded factories. {136}  The bourgeoisie is so far correct that under certain conditions favourable for the general development of manufacture, every reduction in price of goods in which the raw material is cheap, greatly increases consumption, and gives rise to the building of new p. 137factories; but every further word of the assertion is a lie.  The bourgeoisie ignores the fact that it takes years for these results of the decrease in price to follow and for new factories to be built; it is silent upon the point that every improvement in machinery throws the real work, the expenditure of force, more and more upon the machine, and so transforms the work of full-grown men into mere supervision, which a feeble woman or even a child can do quite as well, and does for half or two-thirds wages; that, therefore, grown men are constantly more and more supplanted and not re-employed by the increase in manufacture; it conceals the fact that whole branches of industry fall away, or are so changed that they must be learned afresh; and it takes good care not to confess what it usually harps upon, whenever the question of forbidding the work of children is broached, that factory-work must be learned in earliest youth in order to be learned properly.  It does not mention the fact that the process of improvement goes steadily on, and that as soon as the operative has succeeded in making himself at home in a new branch, if he actually does succeed in so doing, this, too, is taken from him, and with it the last remnant of security which remained to him for winning his bread.  But the bourgeoisie gets the benefit of the improvements in machinery; it has a capital opportunity for piling up money during the first years while many old machines are still in use, and the improvement not yet universally introduced; and it would be too much to ask that it should have an open eye for the disadvantages inseparable from these improvements.

In a well-organized society, such advancements would be a cause for celebration; in a chaotic conflict where everyone is out for themselves, individuals grab the benefits for their own gain, leaving the majority without the means to survive. Every advancement in technology results in workers losing their jobs, and the more significant the advancement, the greater the number of people unemployed; thus, each major innovation impacts a number of workers as if they were experiencing a commercial crisis, leading to scarcity, suffering, and crime. Here are a few examples. The very first invention, the jenny, operated by one person, produced at least six times what the spinning wheel could produce in the same time, meaning every new jenny put five spinners out of work. The throstle, which produced even more than the jenny and was also operated by one person, displaced even more workers. The mule, which needed even fewer workers for each product made, had the same impact, and every improvement to the mule, every increase in its spindles, reduced the number of workers even further. The increase in the number of spindles on the mule is so vast that whole groups of workers have lost their jobs because of it. For instance, where one spinner, along with a couple of children to help, used to operate six hundred spindles, now one can handle fourteen hundred to two thousand spindles on two mules, which means two adult spinners and some of the children they employed have lost their jobs. Since self-acting mules have been introduced into many spinning mills, the work of spinning is now entirely done by machines. I have a book by James Leach, a recognized leader among the Chartists in Manchester. He has worked for years in different industries, including mills and coal mines, and I know him personally as an honest, reliable, and skilled man. Because of his political position, he gathered extensive detailed information about various factories from the workers themselves, and he publishes tables showing that in 1841, in 35 factories, there were 1,060 fewer mule spinners employed than in 1829, even though the number of spindles in those factories increased by 99,239. He lists five factories where there are no spinners employed at all, only machines. While the number of spindles went up by 10 percent, the number of spinners dropped by over 60 percent. Leach also notes that since 1841, many improvements like double-decking have led to even more operatives being let go; in one factory where eighty spinners used to work, only twenty are left now, the others either discharged or given children’s work for children’s wages. In Stockport, Leach tells a similar story: in 1835, 800 spinners were employed, but by 1840 that number had dropped to 140, despite a significant increase in production. Similar advancements have taken place in carding machines, resulting in half the workers losing their jobs. In one factory, improved machines have put four out of eight workers out of work, and the employer has also cut the wages of the four remaining from eight shillings to seven. The same trend is happening in the weaving industry; power looms have taken over one type of hand-weaving after another, producing far more than hand looms can, and since one weaver can operate two looms, many manual workers have been replaced. This pattern continues across various industries, from flax and wool spinning to silk twisting. The power loom is also starting to take over more kinds of wool and linen weaving; in Rochdale alone, there are more power looms than hand looms in flannel and other wool weaving. The capitalists often argue that improvements in machinery lower production costs, which results in cheaper goods that increase consumption and eventually lead to former workers finding jobs in new factories. The capitalists are partly right in that under certain favorable conditions for manufacturing growth, a decrease in goods' prices, especially when raw materials are cheap, can boost consumption and lead to new factories being established. However, the rest of that claim is misleading. They overlook the reality that it takes years for these effects from price drops to materialize and for new factories to be built; they also fail to acknowledge that every technological advancement pushes the actual labor— the physical work— more onto machines, turning the work of adult men into mere oversight that even a weak woman or child can do just as well and for half or two-thirds the pay; thus, grown men are being increasingly replaced and *not re-employed* as manufacturing expands. They conveniently ignore the fact that entire industries disappear or change so drastically that they require completely new skill sets; they purposefully refrain from admitting what they often insist on when the topic of banning child labor comes up, that factory work must be learned in youth to be done correctly. They also neglect to mention that improvements continuously happen, and as soon as a worker gets settled in a new role, if they manage to do so, that job too is taken away, along with any remaining security they had for earning a living. But the capitalists benefit from these machinery innovations; they have a prime opportunity to accumulate wealth during the initial years while many older machines are still in use, and improvements are not yet widespread, and it’s too much to expect that they would pay attention to the drawbacks that come with these advancements.

The fact that improved machinery reduces wages has also been as violently disputed by the bourgeoisie, as it is constantly reiterated by the working-men.  The bourgeoisie insists that although the price of piece-work has been reduced, yet the total of wages for the week’s work has rather risen than fallen, and the condition of the operatives rather improved than deteriorated.  It is hard to get to the bottom of the matter, for the operatives usually dwell upon the price of piece-work.  But it is certain that the weekly wage, also, has, in many branches of work, been reduced by the improvement of machinery.  The so-called fine p. 138spinners (who spin fine mule yarn), for instance, do receive high wages, thirty to forty shillings a week, because they have a powerful association for keeping wages up, and their craft requires long training; but the coarse spinners who have to compete against self-actors (which are not as yet adapted for fine spinning), and whose association was broken down by the introduction of these machines, receive very low wages.  A mule spinner told me that he does not earn more than fourteen shillings a week, and his statement agrees with that of Leach, that in various factories the coarse spinners earn less than sixteen shillings and sixpence a week, and that a spinner, who years ago earned thirty shillings, can now hardly scrape up twelve and a half, and had not earned more on an average in the past year.  The wages of women and children may perhaps have fallen less, but only because they were not high from the beginning.  I know several women, widows with children, who have trouble enough to earn eight to nine shillings a week; and that they and their families cannot live decently upon that sum, every one must admit who knows the price of the barest necessaries of life in England.  That wages in general have been reduced by the improvement of machinery is the unanimous testimony of the operatives.  The bourgeois assertion that the condition of the working-class has been improved by machinery is most vigorously proclaimed a falsehood in every meeting of working-men in the factory districts.  And even if it were true that the relative wage, the price of piece-work only, has fallen, while the absolute wage, the sum to be earned in the week, remained unchanged, what would follow?  That the operatives have had quietly to look on while the manufacturers filled their purses from every improvement without giving the hands the smallest share in the gain.  The bourgeois forgets, in fighting the working-man, the most ordinary principles of his own Political Economy.  He who at other times swears by Malthus, cries out in his anxiety before the workers: “Where could the millions by which the population of England has increased find work, without the improvements in machinery?” {138}  As though the bourgeois p. 139did not know well enough that without machinery and the expansion of industry which it produced, these “millions” would never have been brought into the world and grown up!  The service which machinery has rendered the workers is simply this: that it has brought home to their minds the necessity of a social reform by means of which machinery shall no longer work against but for them.  Let the wise bourgeois ask the people who sweep the streets in Manchester and elsewhere (though even this is past now, since machines for the purpose have been invented and introduced), or sell salt, matches, oranges, and shoe-strings on the streets, or even beg, what they were formerly, and he will see how many will answer: “Mill-hands thrown out of work by machinery.”  The consequences of improvement in machinery under our present social conditions are, for the working-man, solely injurious, and often in the highest degree oppressive.  Every new advance brings with it loss of employment, want, and suffering, and in a country like England where, without that, there is usually a “surplus population,” to be discharged from work is the worst that can befall the operative.  And what a dispiriting, unnerving influence this uncertainty of his position in life, consequent upon the unceasing progress of machinery, must exercise upon the worker, whose lot is precarious enough without it!  To escape despair, there are but two ways open to him; either inward and outward revolt against the bourgeoisie or drunkenness and general demoralisation.  And the English operatives are accustomed to take refuge in both.  The history of the English proletariat relates hundreds of uprisings against machinery and the bourgeoisie; we have already spoken of the moral dissolution which, in itself, is only another form of despair.

The fact that improved machinery lowers wages has been fiercely disputed by the upper class, even as the working class constantly asserts it. The upper class argues that while the pay per piece has decreased, the total weekly wages have actually increased, and that the situation for workers has improved rather than worsened. It's tough to get to the heart of the matter, as workers usually focus on piecework pay. However, it's clear that in many sectors, weekly wages have also decreased due to advancements in machinery. For instance, the so-called fine spinners (who spin fine mule yarn) earn high wages, between thirty and forty shillings a week, because they have a strong union supporting higher wages, and their trade requires extensive training. However, coarse spinners, who face competition from self-acting machines (which are not yet suitable for fine spinning), have seen their unions dismantled by the introduction of these machines, resulting in very low wages. One mule spinner told me he makes no more than fourteen shillings a week, and this matches Leach's observation that in several factories, coarse spinners earn less than sixteen shillings and sixpence a week, with a spinner who years ago made thirty shillings now struggling to earn twelve and a half, having averaged no more in the past year. Wages for women and children may have declined less, but that's only because their pay was low to begin with. I know several women, widows with children, who find it difficult to earn eight to nine shillings a week, and anyone who knows the cost of basic necessities in England will agree that they and their families cannot live decently on that amount. The workers unanimously testify that wages have dropped due to the improvements in machinery. The upper class's claim that the condition of the working class has improved because of machinery is strongly rejected at every meeting of workers in factory areas. Even if it were true that the relative wage, or piecework price, has decreased while the absolute wage, or total weekly earnings, stayed the same, what would that mean? It would simply indicate that workers have had to watch silently as manufacturers profit from every improvement without giving them any share of the gains. The upper class forgets, in their fight against workers, the most basic principles of their own economic theories. A person who usually champions Malthus now anxiously exclaims to the workers, “Where would all the millions that have increased England's population find employment without machinery improvements?” As if the upper class didn't understand that without machinery and the resulting industrial growth, these “millions” would never have been born and raised! The benefit of machinery for workers is straightforward: it has made clear the need for social reform that will allow machinery to work for them rather than against them. Let the wise upper class ask the people sweeping the streets in Manchester and elsewhere (though that's fading now since machines for that purpose have been invented), or those selling salt, matches, oranges, and shoelaces on the streets, or even begging, what they used to do, and they'll see how many respond with, “Mill-hands laid off because of machinery.” The effects of machinery improvement under our current social conditions are entirely harmful to the worker and often extremely oppressive. Every new advancement leads to job loss, poverty, and suffering, and in a country like England, where there’s often a “surplus population,” being laid off is the worst fate for a worker. The unsettling and demoralizing influence of this job uncertainty, which results from the relentless advance of machinery, must weigh heavily on workers, whose lives are already precarious enough! To avoid despair, they have only two options: either openly rebel against the upper class or turn to alcoholism and overall demoralization. And English workers have become accustomed to resorting to both. The history of the English working class includes hundreds of revolts against machinery and the upper class; we have already mentioned the moral decay that is, in itself, yet another form of despair.

The worst situation is that of those workers who have to compete against a machine that is making its way.  The price of the goods which they produce adapts itself to the price of the kindred product of the machine, and as the latter works more cheaply, its human competitor has but the lowest wages.  The same thing happens to every operative employed upon an old machine in competition with later improvements.  And who else is there to p. 140bear the hardship?  The manufacturer will not throw out his old apparatus, nor will he sustain the loss upon it; out of the dead mechanism he can make nothing, so he fastens upon the living worker, the universal scapegoat of society.  Of all the workers in competition with machinery, the most ill-used are the hand-loom cotton weavers.  They receive the most trifling wages, and, with full work, are not in a position to earn more than ten shillings a week.  One class of woven goods after another is annexed by the power-loom, and hand-weaving is the last refuge of workers thrown out of employment in other branches, so that the trade is always overcrowded.  Hence it comes that, in average seasons, the hand-weaver counts himself fortunate if he can earn six or seven shillings a week, while to reach this sum he must sit at his loom fourteen to eighteen hours a day.  Most woven goods require moreover a damp weaving-room, to keep the weft from snapping, and in part, for this reason, in part because of their poverty, which prevents them from paying for better dwellings, the workrooms of these weavers are usually without wooden or paved floors.  I have been in many dwellings of such weavers, in remote, vile courts and alleys, usually in cellars.  Often half-a-dozen of these hand-loom weavers, several of them married, live together in a cottage with one or two workrooms, and one large sleeping-room.  Their food consists almost exclusively of potatoes, with perhaps oatmeal porridge, rarely milk, and scarcely ever meat.  Great numbers of them are Irish or of Irish descent.  And these poor hand-loom weavers, first to suffer from every crisis, and last to be relieved from it, must serve the bourgeoisie as a handle in meeting attacks upon the factory system.  “See,” cries the bourgeois, triumphantly, “see how these poor creatures must famish, while the mill operatives are thriving, and then judge the factory {140} system!”  As though it were not precisely the factory system and the machinery belonging to it which had so shamefully crushed the hand-loom weavers, and as though the bourgeoisie did not know this quite as well as ourselves!  But the bourgeoisie has interests at stake, and so a falsehood or two and a bit of hypocrisy won’t matter much.

The worst situation is for those workers who have to compete against an advancing machine. The prices of the goods they produce adjust to the prices of similar products made by the machine, and since the machine can operate at a lower cost, its human competitor can only earn the lowest wages. The same thing happens to every worker using an old machine when competing with newer models. And who else suffers the consequences? The manufacturer won’t get rid of his old equipment or take a loss on it; since he can't make anything from the outdated machinery, he takes it out on the living worker, the universal scapegoat of society. Of all the workers competing with machines, the hand-loom cotton weavers are the most mistreated. They earn very little, and even with full work, they struggle to make more than ten shillings a week. One type of woven product after another is taken over by the power loom, and hand-weaving becomes the last option for workers laid off from other jobs, which makes this trade perpetually overcrowded. Consequently, in average times, the hand-weaver considers himself lucky if he can earn six or seven shillings a week, and to earn that, he must sit at his loom for fourteen to eighteen hours a day. Most woven goods need a damp weaving room to prevent the thread from breaking, and partly for this reason, along with their poverty that keeps them from affording better housing, the workspaces of these weavers usually lack wooden or paved floors. I have visited many homes of these weavers, often in remote, grim courts and alleys, typically in cellars. Often, several hand-loom weavers, some of them married, live together in a small cottage with one or two workrooms and one large sleeping area. Their diet mainly consists of potatoes, maybe oatmeal porridge, rarely milk, and hardly ever meat. Many of them are Irish or of Irish descent. And these poor hand-loom weavers, who suffer first from every crisis and are last to be assisted, become a tool for the bourgeoisie to fend off criticism of the factory system. "Look," the bourgeoisie cries triumphantly, "see how these poor souls are starving while the mill workers are thriving, and then judge the factory system!" As if it weren't precisely the factory system and the machinery associated with it that has so brutally oppressed the hand-loom weavers, and as if the bourgeoisie didn’t understand this just as well as we do! But the bourgeoisie has its interests to protect, so a little dishonesty and hypocrisy don’t matter much.

p. 141Let us examine somewhat more closely the fact that machinery more and more supersedes the work of men.  The human labour, involved in both spinning and weaving, consists chiefly in piecing broken threads, as the machine does all the rest.  This work requires no muscular strength, but only flexibility of finger.  Men are, therefore, not only not needed for it, but actually, by reason of the greater muscular development of the hand, less fit for it than women and children, and are, therefore, naturally almost superseded by them.  Hence, the more the use of the arms, the expenditure of strength, can be transferred to steam or water-power, the fewer men need be employed; and as women and children work more cheaply, and in these branches better than men, they take their places.  In the spinning-mills women and girls are to be found in almost exclusive possession of the throstles; among the mules one man, an adult spinner (with self-actors, he, too, becomes superfluous), and several piecers for tying the threads, usually children or women, sometimes young men of from eighteen to twenty years, here and there an old spinner {141} thrown out of other employment.  At the power-looms women, from fifteen to twenty years, are chiefly employed, and a few men; these, however, rarely remain at this trade after their twenty-first year.  Among the preparatory machinery, too, women alone are to be found, with here and there a man to clean and sharpen the carding-frames.  Besides all these, the factories employ numbers of children—doffers—for mounting and taking down bobbins, and a few men as overlookers, a mechanic and an engineer for the steam-engines, carpenters, porters, etc.; but the actual work of the mills is done by women and children.  This the manufacturers deny.

p. 141Let’s take a closer look at how machinery is increasingly replacing human labor. The work that people do in spinning and weaving mainly involves fixing broken threads, as the machines handle everything else. This task demands finger dexterity rather than physical strength. As a result, men are not only unnecessary for this work but, due to their more developed hand muscles, are actually less suited for it than women and children, who are therefore naturally taking on these roles. The more we can shift the physical work of using arms and strength to steam or water power, the fewer men need to be employed. Since women and children are more cost-effective and often more skilled in these areas than men, they take over these positions. In spinning mills, women and girls largely occupy the spinning machines; typically, there is one adult male spinner (who becomes redundant with self-operating machines) and several workers to tie the threads, usually children or women, sometimes young men aged eighteen to twenty, and occasionally an older spinner who has lost other work. At power looms, women aged fifteen to twenty are primarily employed, alongside a few men, but these men rarely stay in this job past their twenty-first birthday. Women also dominate the preparatory machinery, with only a few men on hand to clean and sharpen the carding machines. Additionally, factories hire many children—called doffers—to put on and take off bobbins, and a few men as supervisors, along with a mechanic and an engineer for the steam engines, carpenters, porters, etc.; however, the actual work in the mills is performed by women and children. This is something the manufacturers deny.

They published last year elaborate tables to prove that machinery does not supersede adult male operatives.  According to these tables, rather more than half of all the factory-workers employed, p. 142viz., 52 per cent., were females and 48 per cent. males, and of those operatives more than half were over eighteen years old.  So far, so good.  But the manufacturers are very careful not to tell us, how many of the adults were men and how many women.  And this is just the point.  Besides this, they have evidently counted the mechanics, engineers, carpenters, all the men employed in any way in the factories, perhaps even the clerks, and still they have not the courage to tell the whole truth.  These publications teem generally with falsehoods, perversions, crooked statements, with calculations of averages, that prove a great deal for the uninitiated reader and nothing for the initiated, and with suppressions of facts bearing on the most important points; and they prove only the selfish blindness and want of uprightness of the manufacturers concerned.  Let us take some of the statements of a speech with which Lord Ashley introduced the Ten Hours’ Bill, March 15th, 1844, into the House of Commons.  Here he gives some data as to the relations of sex and age of the operatives, not yet refuted by the manufacturers, whose statements, as quoted above, cover moreover only a part of the manufacturing industry of England.  Of 419,560 factory operatives of the British Empire in 1839, 192,887, or nearly half, were under eighteen years of age, and 242,296 of the female sex, of whom 112,192 were less than eighteen years old.  There remain, therefore, 80,695 male operatives under eighteen years, and 96,569 adult male operatives, or not one full quarter of the whole number.  In the cotton factories, 56¼ per cent.; in the woollen mills, 69½ per cent.; in the silk mills, 70½ per cent.; in the flax-spinning mills, 70½ per cent. of all operatives are of the female sex.  These numbers suffice to prove the crowding out of adult males.  But you have only to go into the nearest mill to see the fact confirmed.  Hence follows of necessity that inversion of the existing social order which, being forced upon them, has the most ruinous consequences for the workers.  The employment of women at once breaks up the family; for when the wife spends twelve or thirteen hours every day in the mill, and the husband works the same length of time there or elsewhere, what becomes of the children?  p. 143They grow up like wild weeds; they are put out to nurse for a shilling or eighteenpence a week, and how they are treated may be imagined.  Hence the accidents to which little children fall victims multiply in the factory districts to a terrible extent.  The lists of the Coroner of Manchester {143a} showed for nine months: 69 deaths from burning, 56 from drowning, 23 from falling, 77 from other causes, or a total of 225 {143b} deaths from accidents, while in non-manufacturing Liverpool during twelve months there were but 146 fatal accidents.  The mining accidents are excluded in both cases; and since the Coroner of Manchester has no authority in Salford, the population of both places mentioned in the comparison is about the same.  The Manchester Guardian reports one or more deaths by burning in almost every number.  That the general mortality among young children must be increased by the employment of the mothers is self-evident, and is placed beyond all doubt by notorious facts.  Women often return to the mill three or four days after confinement, leaving the baby, of course; in the dinner hour they must hurry home to feed the child and eat something, and what sort of suckling that can be is also evident.  Lord Ashley repeats the testimony of several workwomen: “M. H., twenty years old, has two children, the youngest a baby, that is tended by the other, a little older.  The mother goes to the mill shortly after five o’clock in the morning, and comes home at eight at night; all day the milk pours from her breasts, so that her clothing drips with it.”  “H. W. has three children, goes away Monday morning at five o’clock, and comes back Saturday evening; has so much to do for the children then that she cannot get to bed before three o’clock in the morning; often wet through to the skin, and obliged to work in that state.”  She said: “My breasts have given me the most frightful pain, and I have been dripping wet with milk.”  The use of narcotics to keep the children still is fostered by this infamous system, and has reached a great extent in the factory districts.  Dr. Johns, Registrar p. 144in Chief for Manchester, is of opinion that this custom is the chief source of the many deaths from convulsions.  The employment of the wife dissolves the family utterly and of necessity, and this dissolution, in our present society, which is based upon the family, brings the most demoralising consequences for parents as well as children.  A mother who has no time to trouble herself about her child, to perform the most ordinary loving services for it during its first year, who scarcely indeed sees it, can be no real mother to the child, must inevitably grow indifferent to it, treat it unlovingly like a stranger.  The children who grow up under such conditions are utterly ruined for later family life, can never feel at home in the family which they themselves found, because they have always been accustomed to isolation, and they contribute therefore to the already general undermining of the family in the working-class.  A similar dissolution of the family is brought about by the employment of the children.  When they get on far enough to earn more than they cost their parents from week to week, they begin to pay the parents a fixed sum for board and lodging, and keep the rest for themselves.  This often happens from the fourteenth or fifteenth year. {144}  In a word, the children emancipate themselves, and regard the paternal dwelling as a lodging-house, which they often exchange for another, as suits them.

They published detailed reports last year to show that machinery does not replace adult male workers. According to these reports, just over half of all factory workers, p. 142specifically, 52 percent, were women and 48 percent were men, and more than half of these workers were over eighteen years old. So far, so good. However, manufacturers are very cautious about revealing how many of the adults were men and how many were women. And this is the crucial point. Additionally, they have clearly included mechanics, engineers, carpenters, and all the men employed in any capacity in the factories, perhaps even clerks, and still lack the audacity to tell the full truth. These publications are filled with falsehoods, distortions, misleading statements, calculations of averages that may appear convincing to the uninformed reader but mean nothing to those in the know, and they suppress facts that are vital to understanding the key issues; they only demonstrate the selfish ignorance and lack of integrity of the manufacturers involved. Let’s examine some of the statements from a speech made by Lord Ashley when he introduced the Ten Hours’ Bill on March 15, 1844, in the House of Commons. Here he provides some data regarding the sex and age distribution of workers, which has yet to be contradicted by the manufacturers, whose statements, as mentioned earlier, only reflect a portion of England's manufacturing industry. Of the 419,560 factory workers in the British Empire in 1839, 192,887, or nearly half, were under eighteen years of age, and 242,296 were female, of whom 112,192 were younger than eighteen. Therefore, there were 80,695 male workers under eighteen, and 96,569 adult male workers, which is not even a full quarter of the total number. In cotton factories, 56¼ percent; in woolen mills, 69½ percent; in silk mills, 70½ percent; and in flax-spinning mills, 70½ percent of all workers are female. These figures clearly demonstrate the displacement of adult males. But one only needs to visit the nearest mill to see this reality confirmed. Consequently, this leads to a reversal of the current social order, which, when forced upon them, has devastating effects for workers. The employment of women disrupts the family structure; when the wife spends twelve or thirteen hours a day in the mill, and the husband works the same hours there or elsewhere, what happens to the children? p. 143They grow up neglected; they're sent off to be cared for by someone for a shilling or eighteenpence a week, and one can only imagine how they are treated. As a result, the number of accidents involving young children in factory areas skyrockets. The reports from the Coroner of Manchester {143a} showed, over nine months: 69 deaths from burning, 56 from drowning, 23 from falling, 77 from other causes, leading to a total of 225 {143b} deaths due to accidents, while in non-manufacturing Liverpool there were only 146 fatal accidents over twelve months. Mining accidents are excluded in both instances; and since the Coroner of Manchester lacks jurisdiction in Salford, the populations of both areas mentioned in the comparison are roughly the same. The Manchester Guardian reports one or more deaths by burning in almost every issue. It’s evident that the overall mortality rate among young children must rise due to mothers' employment, and this is supported by well-known facts. Women frequently return to work just three or four days after giving birth, leaving the baby behind; during breaks, they rush home to feed the child and grab a bite to eat, which makes one question the quality of that feeding process. Lord Ashley relays the experiences of several working mothers: “M. H., twenty years old, has two children, the youngest a baby, cared for by the older sibling. The mother leaves for the mill just after five in the morning and returns at eight at night; all day long, her milk flows uncontrollably, soaking through her clothes.” “H. W. has three children, leaves every Monday at five in the morning, and comes home Saturday evening; she has so much to catch up on with the children that she can't go to bed until three o'clock in the morning, often soaked to the skin, yet forced to work in those conditions.” She said: “I've experienced the most agonizing pain in my breasts, and I've been soaked through with milk.” The use of drugs to keep the children quiet has grown in this abusive system and has become widespread in factory regions. Dr. Johns, Chief Registrar for Manchester, believes that this practice is a primary cause of the many deaths from convulsions. The wife's employment completely disrupts family life, and this breakdown, in our current society which is founded on family units, leads to the most demoralizing effects for both parents and children. A mother who cannot find the time to care for her child, provide even the most basic loving support during its first year, and hardly sees it, cannot truly be a mother, inevitably growing indifferent and treating the child like a stranger. Children raised in such circumstances are utterly unfit for future family life, unable to feel at home in the families they establish for themselves because they've been conditioned to isolation and thus contribute to the ongoing erosion of family structures in working-class communities. A similar breakdown of the family occurs when children are employed. Once they earn more than they cost their parents weekly, they start paying their parents a set amount for food and lodging, keeping the rest for themselves. This often begins around age fourteen or fifteen. {144} In short, the children gain independence and view their parental home as just a place to stay, often switching to other homes as it suits them.

In many cases the family is not wholly dissolved by the employment of the wife, but turned upside down.  The wife supports the family, the husband sits at home, tends the children, sweeps the room and cooks.  This case happens very frequently; in Manchester alone, many hundred such men could be cited, condemned to domestic occupations.  It is easy to imagine the wrath aroused among the working-men by this reversal of all relations within the family, while the other social conditions remain unchanged.  There lies before me a letter from an English working-man, Robert Pounder, Baron’s Buildings, Woodhouse, Moorside, in Leeds (the bourgeoisie may hunt him up p. 145there; I give the exact address for the purpose), written by him to Oastler: {145}

In many situations, the family isn't completely broken apart by the wife’s job; instead, it gets turned upside down. The wife supports the family while the husband stays at home, takes care of the kids, cleans the house, and cooks. This happens quite often; in Manchester alone, there are hundreds of these men who could be mentioned, stuck with domestic tasks. It’s easy to see the anger that this role reversal creates among working men while other social conditions stay the same. I have a letter here from an English working man, Robert Pounder, Baron’s Buildings, Woodhouse, Moorside, in Leeds (the bourgeois can look him up p. 145there; I’m providing the exact address for that reason), written by him to Oastler: {145}

He relates how another working-man, being on tramp, came to St. Helens, in Lancashire, and there looked up an old friend.  He found him in a miserable, damp cellar, scarcely furnished; and when my poor friend went in, there sat poor Jack near the fire, and what did he, think you? why he sat and mended his wife’s stockings with the bodkin; and as soon as he saw his old friend at the door-post, he tried to hide them.  But Joe, that is my friend’s name, had seen it, and said: “Jack, what the devil art thou doing?  Where is the missus?  Why, is that thy work?” and poor Jack was ashamed, and said: “No, I know this is not my work, but my poor missus is i’ th’ factory; she has to leave at half-past five and works till eight at night, and then she is so knocked up that she cannot do aught when she gets home, so I have to do everything for her what I can, for I have no work, nor had any for more nor three years, and I shall never have any more work while I live;” and then he wept a big tear.  Jack again said: “There is work enough for women folks and childer hereabouts, but none for men; thou mayest sooner find a hundred pound on the road than work for men—but I should never have believed that either thou or any one else would have seen me mending my wife’s stockings, for, it is bad work.  But she can hardly stand on her feet; I am afraid she will be laid up, and then I don’t know what is to become of us, for it’s a good bit that she has been the man in the house and I the woman; it is bad work, Joe;” and he cried bitterly, and said, “It has not been always so.”  “No,” said Joe; “but when thou hadn’t no work, how hast thou not shifted?”  “I’ll tell thee, Joe, as well as I can, but it was bad enough; thou knowest when I got married I had work plenty, and thou knows I was not lazy.”  “No, that thou wert not.”  “And we had a good furnished house, and Mary need not go to work.  I could work for the two of us; but now the world is upside down.  Mary has to work and I have to stop at home, mind the childer p. 146sweep and wash, bake and mend; and, when the poor woman comes home at night, she is knocked up.  Thou knows, Joe, it’s hard for one that was used different.”  “Yes, boy, it is hard.”  And then Jack began to cry again, and he wished he had never married, and that he had never been born; but he had never thought, when he wed Mary, that it would come to this.  “I have often cried over it,” said Jack.  Now when Joe heard this, he told me that he had cursed and damned the factories, and the masters, and the Government, with all the curses that he had learned while he was in the factory from a child.

He shares how another worker, while traveling, ended up in St. Helens, Lancashire, where he looked up an old friend. He found him in a damp, rundown cellar that was barely furnished; and when my friend walked in, there was poor Jack sitting by the fire. And what do you think he was doing? He was mending his wife's stockings with a needle, and as soon as he saw his old friend in the doorway, he tried to hide them. But Joe, which is my friend's name, had seen it and said, “Jack, what on earth are you doing? Where's your wife? Is this your work?” Poor Jack felt embarrassed and said, “No, I know this isn't my work, but my poor wife is at the factory; she has to leave at half past five and works until eight at night, and by the time she gets home, she's so exhausted that she can't do anything, so I have to do what I can for her since I haven’t had a job in over three years, and I probably won't ever have one again.” He then shed a big tear. Jack continued, “There's plenty of work for women and kids around here, but none for men; you’d be more likely to find a hundred pounds lying on the street than work for men—but I never thought that you or anyone else would catch me mending my wife's stockings because it’s shameful work. But she can barely stand; I'm worried she’ll get sick, and then I don't know what will happen to us since it's been a while that she's been the breadwinner and I’ve been at home. It's tough, Joe,” and he cried hard, saying, “It hasn’t always been this way.” “No,” replied Joe; “but when you had no work, how did you manage?” “I'll tell you, Joe, as best as I can, but it was really hard; you know when I got married I had plenty of work, and you know I wasn't lazy.” “No, you weren’t.” “And we had a nicely furnished home, so Mary didn’t need to work. I could support us both; but now everything's turned upside down. Mary has to work, and I have to stay home, take care of the kids, clean, do laundry, bake, and mend. And when the poor woman comes home at night, she’s completely worn out. You know, Joe, it’s tough for someone who used to have it differently.” “Yes, it is tough.” Then Jack started crying again and wished he had never married or even been born; but he never thought that when he married Mary, it would lead to this. “I've cried about it often,” said Jack. When Joe heard this, he told me he had cursed the factories, the owners, and the government with all the anger he had learned while working in the factory since he was a child.

Can any one imagine a more insane state of things than that described in this letter?  And yet this condition, which unsexes the man and takes from the woman all womanliness without being able to bestow upon the man true womanliness, or the woman true manliness—this condition which degrades, in the most shameful way, both sexes, and, through them, Humanity, is the last result of our much-praised civilisation, the final achievement of all the efforts and struggles of hundreds of generations to improve their own situation and that of their posterity.  We must either despair of mankind, and its aims and efforts, when we see all our labour and toil result in such a mockery, or we must admit that human society has hitherto sought salvation in a false direction; we must admit that so total a reversal of the position of the sexes can have come to pass only because the sexes have been placed in a false position from the beginning.  If the reign of the wife over the husband, as inevitably brought about by the factory system, is inhuman, the pristine rule of the husband over the wife must have been inhuman too.  If the wife can now base her supremacy upon the fact that she supplies the greater part, nay, the whole of the common possession, the necessary inference is that this community of possession is no true and rational one, since one member of the family boasts offensively of contributing the greater share.  If the family of our present society is being thus dissolved, this dissolution merely shows that, at bottom, the binding tie of this family was not family affection, but private interest lurking under the cloak of a pretended community of possessions.  p. 147The same relation exists on the part of those children who support unemployed parents {147a} when they do not directly pay board as already referred to.  Dr. Hawkins testified in the Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report that this relation is common enough, and in Manchester it is notorious.  In this case the children are the masters in the house, as the wife was in the former case, and Lord Ashley gives an example of this in his speech: {147b} A man berated his two daughters for going to the public house, and they answered that they were tired of being ordered about, saying, “Damn you, we have to keep you!”  Determined to keep the proceeds of their work for themselves, they left the family dwelling, and abandoned their parents to their fate.

Can anyone imagine a more chaotic situation than what’s described in this letter? And yet this state, which takes away manhood from men and femininity from women without giving men true femininity or women true masculinity—this situation that humiliates both genders and, through them, humanity, is the ultimate result of our celebrated civilization, the final accomplishment of countless generations striving to improve their own lives and those of their descendants. We must either lose hope in humanity and its goals when we see all our hard work result in such a farce or acknowledge that society has been looking for solutions in the wrong way; we must accept that such a complete reversal of gender roles could only happen because both genders have been positioned incorrectly from the start. If a wife dominating her husband, as inevitably occurs due to the factory system, is inhumane, then the traditional dominance of husbands over wives must have been inhumane too. If the wife can now claim her authority based on the fact that she provides most, if not all, of the family’s resources, the clear implication is that this sharing of resources isn’t genuinely fair, since one family member proudly asserts they contribute the most. If the family structure of our current society is disintegrating in this way, this breakdown merely reveals that the underlying bond of this family wasn’t genuine affection but rather a self-serving interest hidden beneath a façade of shared ownership. p. 147The same dynamic is seen with children who support unemployed parents {147a} when they don’t directly pay for boarding, as mentioned earlier. Dr. Hawkins testified in the Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report that this situation is quite common, and it’s well-known in Manchester. In this case, the children are the ones in charge at home, just like the wife was in the previous example, and Lord Ashley illustrates this in his speech: {147b} A man scolded his two daughters for going to the pub, and they replied that they were tired of being bossed around, saying, “Damn you, we have to support you!” Determined to keep the money they earned for themselves, they left the family home and abandoned their parents to face the consequences.

The unmarried women, who have grown up in mills, are no better off than the married ones.  It is self-evident that a girl who has worked in a mill from her ninth year is in no position to understand domestic work, whence it follows that female operatives prove wholly inexperienced and unfit as housekeepers.  They cannot knit or sew, cook or wash, are unacquainted with the most ordinary duties of a housekeeper, and when they have young children to take care of, have not the vaguest idea how to set about it.  The Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report gives dozens of examples of this, and Dr. Hawkins, Commissioner for Lancashire, expresses his opinion as follows: {147c}

The unmarried women who grew up in mills are no better off than the married ones. It's obvious that a girl who has worked in a mill since she was nine has no real understanding of household duties, which means that female workers are completely inexperienced and not suited to be housekeepers. They can't knit or sew, cook or clean, and they're unfamiliar with even the simplest tasks of managing a household. When they have young children to care for, they have no idea how to handle it. The Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report provides many examples of this, and Dr. Hawkins, Commissioner for Lancashire, shares his thoughts as follows: {147c}

“The girls marry early and recklessly; they have neither means, time, nor opportunity to learn the ordinary duties of household life; but if they had them all, they would find no time in married life for the performance of these duties.  The mother is more than twelve hours away from her child daily; the baby is cared for by a young girl or an old woman, to whom it is given to nurse.  Besides this, the dwelling of the mill-hands is too often no home but a cellar, which contains no cooking or washing utensils, p. 148no sewing or mending materials, nothing which makes life agreeable and civilised, or the domestic hearth attractive.  For these and other reasons, and especially for the sake of the better chances of life for the little children, I can but wish and hope that a time may come in which married women will be shut out of the factories.” {148a}

"The girls get married young and without much thought; they don’t have the resources, time, or opportunities to learn the basic responsibilities of managing a household. Even if they did, married life doesn’t allow them the time to actually do those things. The mother is away from her child for more than twelve hours every day; the baby is cared for by a young girl or an elderly woman whose job is to look after it. Additionally, the homes of the mill workers are often just basements, lacking cooking or cleaning supplies, sewing or repair materials—nothing that makes life enjoyable and civilized, or that creates an inviting home. For these reasons and others, especially for the sake of better opportunities for the little ones, I can only wish and hope for a time when married women won’t have to work in factories anymore." {148a}

But that is the least of the evil.  The moral consequences of the employment of women in factories are even worse.  The collecting of persons of both sexes and all ages in a single workroom, the inevitable contact, the crowding into a small space of people, to whom neither mental nor moral education has been given, is not calculated for the favourable development of the female character.  The manufacturer, if he pays any attention to the matter, can interfere only when something scandalous actually happens; the permanent, less conspicuous influence of persons of dissolute character, upon the more moral, and especially upon the younger ones, he cannot ascertain, and consequently cannot prevent.  But precisely this influence is the most injurious.  The language used in the mills is characterised by many witnesses in the report of 1833, as “indecent,” “bad,” “filthy,” etc. {148b}  It is the same process upon a small scale which we have already witnessed upon a large one in the great cities.  The centralisation of population has the same influence upon the same persons, whether it affects them in a great city or a small factory.  The smaller the mill the closer the packing, and the more unavoidable the contact; and the consequences are not wanting.  A witness in Leicester said that he would rather let his daughter beg than go into a factory; that they are perfect gates of hell; that most of the prostitutes of the town had their employment in the mills to thank for their present situation. {148c}  Another, in Manchester, “did not hesitate to assert that three-fourths of the young factory employees, from fourteen to twenty years of age, were unchaste.” {149a}  p. 149Commissioner Cowell expresses it as his opinion, that the morality of the factory operatives is somewhat below the average of that of the working-class in general. {149b}  And Dr. Hawkins {149c} says:

But that's the least of the problems. The moral impact of employing women in factories is even worse. Bringing together people of all genders and ages in a single workspace, the unavoidable interactions, and the crowding of individuals who have received neither mental nor moral education, doesn't support the positive development of women's character. The factory owner, if they pay attention at all, can only step in when something scandalous occurs; the ongoing, less visible influence of people with corrupt character on those who are more moral—especially the younger ones—is something they cannot recognize or prevent. But this influence is what’s most harmful. Many witnesses in the 1833 report describe the language used in the mills as “indecent,” “bad,” “filthy,” etc. {148b} It’s the same process on a smaller scale that we have already observed on a larger scale in big cities. The centralization of people has the same effect on individuals, whether it happens in a large city or a small factory. The smaller the mill, the tighter the space, and the more unavoidable the interactions; and the negative outcomes are apparent. A witness in Leicester said he would rather let his daughter beg than work in a factory, calling them "perfect gates of hell," saying that most of the town's prostitutes owe their situation to their time in the mills. {148c} Another person in Manchester boldly claimed that three-fourths of the young factory workers, aged fourteen to twenty, were unchaste. {149a} p. 149Commissioner Cowell stated that the morality of factory workers is somewhat lower than the average morality of the working class in general. {149b} And Dr. Hawkins {149c} says:

“An estimate of sexual morality cannot readily be reduced to figures; but if I may trust my own observations and the general opinion of those with whom I have spoken, as well as the whole tenor of the testimony furnished me, the aspect of the influence of factory life upon the morality of the youthful female population is most depressing.”

“It's not easy to measure sexual morality, but from what I've seen and the general opinions of the people I've spoken with, as well as all the testimonies I've received, the impact of factory life on the morality of young women is very troubling.”

It is, besides, a matter of course that factory servitude, like any other, and to an even higher degree, confers the jus primæ noctis upon the master.  In this respect also the employer is sovereign over the persons and charms of his employees.  The threat of discharge suffices to overcome all resistance in nine cases out of ten, if not in ninety-nine out of a hundred, in girls who, in any case, have no strong inducements to chastity.  If the master is mean enough, and the official report mentions several such cases, his mill is also his harem; and the fact that not all manufacturers use their power, does not in the least change the position of the girls.  In the beginning of manufacturing industry, when most of the employers were upstarts without education or consideration for the hypocrisy of society, they let nothing interfere with the exercise of their vested rights.

It’s clear that factory servitude, like any other form of servitude, and even more so, gives the master a sort of ownership over his workers. In this way, the employer has complete control over the lives and appearances of his employees. The threat of being fired is enough to crush any resistance in nine out of ten cases, if not in ninety-nine out of a hundred, especially among girls who often lack strong reasons to stay virtuous. If the boss is cruel enough—and there are documented cases of this—his factory can also become his private harem; the fact that not all employers abuse their power doesn’t change the reality for the women involved. In the early days of the manufacturing industry, when many employers were self-made individuals lacking education and disregarding societal norms, they allowed nothing to get in the way of their entitled rights.

To form a correct judgment of the influence of factory-work upon the health of the female sex, it is necessary first to consider the work of children, and then the nature of the work itself.  From the beginning of manufacturing industry, children have been employed in mills, at first almost exclusively by reason of the smallness of the machines, which were later enlarged.  Even children from the workhouses were employed in multitudes, being rented out for a number of years to the manufacturers as apprentices.  They were lodged, fed, and clothed in common, and were, p. 150of course, completely the slaves of their masters, by whom they were treated with the utmost recklessness and barbarity.  As early as 1796, the public objection to this revolting system found such vigorous expression through Dr. Percival and Sir Robert Peel (father of the Cabinet Minister, and himself a cotton manufacturer), that in 1802 Parliament passed an Apprentices’ Bill, by which the most crying evils were removed.  Gradually the increasing competition of free workpeople crowded out the whole apprentice system; factories were built in cities, machinery was constructed on a larger scale, and workrooms were made more airy and wholesome; gradually, too, more work was found for adults and young persons.  The number of children in the mills diminished somewhat, and the age at which they began to work rose a little; few children under eight or nine years were now employed.  Later, as we shall see, the power of the State intervened several times to protect them from the money-greed of the bourgeoisie.

To accurately assess the impact of factory work on women's health, it's essential to first look at the work done by children and then examine the nature of that work. Since the start of the manufacturing industry, children have been hired in mills, initially because of the size of the machines, which were later made larger. Many children from workhouses were also employed in large numbers, rented out to manufacturers as apprentices for several years. They were housed, fed, and clothed together and, of course, were essentially slaves to their masters, who treated them with extreme cruelty and neglect. As early as 1796, there was strong public opposition to this horrific system, voiced by Dr. Percival and Sir Robert Peel (the father of the government minister and himself a cotton manufacturer). This led to Parliament passing the Apprentices’ Bill in 1802, which addressed the most urgent issues. Over time, the growing competition from free workers pushed out the entire apprentice system; factories were built in cities, machinery became larger, and workspaces were made more open and healthier. Gradually, more work was also found for adults and older youths. The number of children in mills decreased somewhat, and the age when they started working increased slightly; now, very few children under eight or nine years of age were employed. Later, as we shall see, the government intervened multiple times to protect them from the greed of the bourgeoisie.

The great mortality among children of the working-class, and especially among those of the factory operatives, is proof enough of the unwholesome conditions under which they pass their first year.  These influences are at work, of course, among the children who survive, but not quite so powerfully as upon those who succumb.  The result in the most favourable case is a tendency to disease, or some check in development, and consequent less than normal vigour of the constitution.  A nine years old child of a factory operative that has grown up in want, privation, and changing conditions, in cold and damp, with insufficient clothing and unwholesome dwellings, is far from having the working force of a child brought up under healthier conditions.  At nine years of age it is sent into the mill to work 6½ hours (formerly 8, earlier still, 12 to 14, even 16 hours) daily, until the thirteenth year; then twelve hours until the eighteenth year.  The old enfeebling influences continue, while the work is added to them.  It is not to be denied that a child of nine years, even an operative’s child, can hold out through 6½ hours’ daily work, without any one being able to trace visible bad results in its development directly p. 151to this cause; but in no case can its presence in the damp, heavy air of the factory, often at once warm and wet, contribute to good health; and, in any case, it is unpardonable to sacrifice to the greed of an unfeeling bourgeoisie the time of children which should be devoted solely to their physical and mental development, withdraw them from school and the fresh air, in order to wear them out for the benefit of the manufacturers.  The bourgeoisie says: “If we do not employ the children in the mills, they only remain under conditions unfavourable to their development;” and this is true, on the whole.  But what does this mean if it is not a confession that the bourgeoisie first places the children of the working-class under unfavourable conditions, and then exploits these bad conditions for its own benefit, appeals to that which is as much its own fault as the factory system, excuses the sin of to-day with the sin of yesterday?  And if the Factory Act did not in some measure fetter their hands, how this “humane,” this “benevolent” bourgeoisie, which has built its factories solely for the good of the working-class, would take care of the interests of these workers!  Let us hear how they acted before the factory inspector was at their heels.  Their own admitted testimony shall convict them in the report of the Factories’ Inquiry Commission of 1833.

The high mortality rate among working-class children, especially those of factory workers, clearly shows the unhealthy conditions they face during their first year of life. These harmful influences also affect the children who survive, but not as severely as those who don’t. In the best-case scenario, this leads to a tendency towards illness or some developmental delays, resulting in less-than-normal vitality. A nine-year-old child of a factory worker, raised in poverty and unstable environments, in cold and damp conditions, with inadequate clothing and unhealthy living spaces, lacks the strength of a child raised in healthier conditions. At nine years old, this child is sent to work in the mill for 6½ hours a day (which used to be 8 hours, and even longer, up to 12 to 14, or even 16 hours in the past), until they turn thirteen; then they work twelve hours a day until they are eighteen. The weakening influences continue alongside the demanding work. It can’t be denied that a nine-year-old, even a factory worker's child, can manage 6½ hours of work daily without visible, direct negative effects on their development; however, being in the damp, heavy air of the factory, which is often both warm and wet, certainly doesn’t promote good health. Moreover, it is inexcusable to prioritize the greed of an unfeeling middle class over time that should be dedicated to children’s physical and mental growth, taking them out of school and fresh air just to wear them down for the manufacturers' profit. The bourgeoisie argues, “If we don’t hire the children in the mills, they’ll remain in conditions detrimental to their development,” which is generally true. But what does this say if not that the bourgeoisie first subjects working-class children to unfavorable conditions, only to exploit these conditions for their own gain, blaming the problem on circumstances largely created by themselves, using yesterday’s wrongs to justify today’s? And if the Factory Act didn’t limit them somewhat, just think how this “humane” and “benevolent” bourgeoisie—who claim to build factories solely for the benefit of workers—would take care of these workers' interests! Let’s look at how they acted before factory inspectors began holding them accountable. Their own admissions will condemn them in the Factory Inquiry Commission report of 1833.

The report of the Central Commission relates that the manufacturers began to employ children rarely of five years, often of six, very often of seven, usually of eight to nine years; that the working-day often lasted fourteen to sixteen hours, exclusive of meals and intervals; that the manufacturers permitted overlookers to flog and maltreat children, and often took an active part in so doing themselves.  One case is related of a Scotch manufacturer, who rode after a sixteen years old runaway, forced him to return running after the employer as fast as the master’s horse trotted, and beat him the whole way with a long whip. {151}  In the large towns where the operatives resisted more vigorously, such things naturally happened less often.  But even this long working-day failed to satisfy the greed of the capitalists.  Their aim was to make the capital invested in the building and machinery produce p. 152the highest return, by every available means, to make it work as actively as possible.  Hence the manufacturers introduced the shameful system of night-work.  Some of them employed two sets of operatives, each numerous enough to fill the whole mill, and let one set work the twelve hours of the day, and the other twelve hours of the night.  It is needless to picture the effect upon the frames of young children, and even upon the health of young persons and adults, produced by permanent loss of sleep at night, which cannot be made good by any amount of sleep during the day.  Irritation of the whole nervous system, with general lassitude and enfeeblement of the entire frame, were the inevitable results, with the fostering of temptation to drunkenness and unbridled sexual indulgence.  One manufacturer testifies {152a} that during the two years in which night-work was carried on in his factory, the number of illegitimate children born was doubled, and such general demoralisation prevailed that he was obliged to give up night-work.  Other manufacturers were yet more barbarous, requiring many hands to work thirty to forty hours at a stretch, several times a week, letting them get a couple of hours sleep only, because the night-shift was not complete, but calculated to replace a part of the operatives only.

The report from the Central Commission states that manufacturers started employing children as young as five years old, often six, frequently seven, and typically between eight to nine years old. The workday often lasted fourteen to sixteen hours, not including meal breaks and rests. Manufacturers allowed overseers to beat and abuse children, and they often actively participated in this cruelty themselves. There is one account of a Scottish manufacturer who chased down a sixteen-year-old runaway, forced him to run after the employer as fast as the employer's horse could trot, and whipped him the entire way. {151} In bigger towns where workers fought back more vigorously, such abuses were less common. However, even this long workday didn’t satisfy the greed of the capitalists. Their goal was to get the maximum return from the capital invested in buildings and machinery by working them as actively as possible. This led manufacturers to adopt the disgraceful practice of night shifts. Some of them had two groups of workers, each large enough to fill the entire mill, with one group working twelve hours during the day and the other group working twelve hours at night. It’s unnecessary to describe the toll on the bodies of young children, as well as the health issues for young people and adults, caused by a consistent lack of sleep at night, which no amount of daytime sleep could compensate for. This resulted in irritation of the entire nervous system, general tiredness, and weakness of the whole body, which also increased the temptation to drink excessively and engage in uncontrolled sexual behavior. One manufacturer reports {152a} that during the two years his factory operated night shifts, the number of illegitimate children born doubled, and overall moral degradation was so severe that he had to stop the night shifts. Other manufacturers were even more brutal, forcing many workers to work thirty to forty hours straight several times a week, allowing them only a couple of hours of sleep, since the night shift was not full but designed to replace just some of the workers.

The reports of the Commission touching this barbarism surpass everything that is known to me in this line.  Such infamies, as are here related, are nowhere else to be found—yet we shall see that the bourgeoisie constantly appeals to the testimony of the Commission as being in its own favour.  The consequences of these cruelties became evident quickly enough.  The Commissioners mention a crowd of cripples who appeared before them, who clearly owed their distortion to the long working-hours.  This distortion usually consists of a curving of the spinal column and legs, and is described as follows by Francis Sharp, M.R.C.S., of Leeds: {152b}

The reports from the Commission about this brutality exceed everything I know on the subject. Such atrocities, as described here, can’t be found anywhere else—yet we’ll see that the bourgeoisie keeps citing the Commission’s findings as if they support their position. The impact of these abuses became clear pretty quickly. The Commissioners talk about a group of disabled people who came before them, clearly deformed from long working hours. This deformity usually involves a curvature of the spine and legs, and is described this way by Francis Sharp, M.R.C.S., of Leeds: {152b}

“I never saw the peculiar bending of the lower ends of the thigh bones before I came to Leeds.  At first I thought it was p. 153rachitis, but I was soon led to change my opinion in consequence of the mass of patients who presented themselves at the hospital, and the appearances of the disease at an age (from the fourteenth to the eighteenth year) in which children are usually not subject to rachitis, as well as by the circumstance that the malady had first appeared after children began to work in the mills.  Thus far I have seen about a hundred such cases, and can, most decidedly, express the opinion that they are the consequences of overwork.  So far as I know they were all mill children, and themselves attributed the evil to this cause.  The number of cases of curvature of the spine which have fallen under my observation, and which were evidently consequent upon too protracted standing, was not less than three hundred.”

“I had never seen the unusual bending of the lower ends of the thigh bones before I arrived in Leeds. At first, I thought it was p. 153rickets, but I quickly changed my mind because of the large number of patients who came to the hospital and the way the disease showed up at an age (between fourteen and eighteen years) when children usually don’t have rickets. It also became clear that the problem started after the children began working in the mills. So far, I've seen about a hundred such cases and can confidently say that they are the result of overwork. As far as I know, they were all mill children, and they themselves linked the issue to this cause. The number of cases of spinal curvature I've observed, which clearly resulted from standing for too long, was at least three hundred.”

Precisely similar is the testimony of Dr. Ray, for eighteen years physician in the hospital in Leeds: {153a}

Precisely similar is the testimony of Dr. Ray, for eighteen years physician in the hospital in Leeds: {153a}

“Malformations of the spine are very frequent among mill-hands; some of them consequent upon mere overwork, others the effect of long work upon constitutions originally feeble, or weakened by bad food.  Deformities seem even more frequent than these diseases; the knees were bent inward, the ligaments very often relaxed and enfeebled, and the long bones of the legs bent.  The thick ends of these long bones were especially apt to be bent and disproportionately developed, and these patients came from the factories in which long work-hours were of frequent occurrence.”

"Spinal deformities are quite common among factory workers; some are caused by overexertion, while others arise from long hours at work on bodies that were already weak or affected by inadequate nutrition. Deformities seem to occur even more often than these health issues; knees often curve inward, ligaments are often loose and weakened, and the long bones in the legs can become misshapen. The ends of these long bones tend to be bent and grow disproportionately, and these individuals usually come from factories where long working hours are the norm."

Surgeons Beaumont and Sharp, of Bradford, bear the same testimony.  The reports of Drinkwater, Power, and Dr. Loudon contain a multitude of examples of such distortions, and those of Tufnell and Sir David Barry, which are less directed to this point, give single examples. {153b}  The Commissioners for Lancashire, Cowell, Tufnell, and Hawkins, have almost wholly neglected this aspect of the physiological results of the factory system, though this district rivals Yorkshire in the number of cripples.  I have p. 154seldom traversed Manchester without meeting three or four of them, suffering from precisely the same distortions of the spinal columns and legs as that described, and I have often been able to observe them closely.  I know one personally who corresponds exactly with the foregoing description of Dr. Ray, and who got into this condition in Mr. Douglas’ factory in Pendleton, an establishment which enjoys an unenviable notoriety among the operatives by reason of the former long working periods continued night after night.  It is evident, at a glance, whence the distortions of these cripples come; they all look exactly alike.  The knees are bent inward and backwards, the ankles deformed and thick, and the spinal column often bent forwards or to one side.  But the crown belongs to the philanthropic manufacturers of the Macclesfield silk district.  They employed the youngest children of all, even from five to six years of age.  In the supplementary testimony of Commissioner Tufnell, I find the statement of a certain factory manager Wright, both of whose sisters were most shamefully crippled, and who had once counted the cripples in several streets, some of them the cleanest and neatest streets of Macclesfield.  He found in Townley Street ten, George Street five, Charlotte Street four, Watercots fifteen, Bank Top three, Lord Street seven, Mill Lane twelve, Great George Street two, in the workhouse two, Park Green one, Peckford Street two, whose families all unanimously declared that the cripples had become such in consequence of overwork in the silk-twisting mills.  One boy is mentioned so crippled as not to be able to go upstairs, and girls deformed in back and hips.

Surgeons Beaumont and Sharp from Bradford share the same observations. The reports by Drinkwater, Power, and Dr. Loudon include numerous examples of these distortions, while those from Tufnell and Sir David Barry, which are less focused on this issue, provide individual cases. {153b} The Commissioners for Lancashire—Cowell, Tufnell, and Hawkins—have largely overlooked this aspect of the physical consequences of the factory system, even though this area has a number of disabled people that rivals Yorkshire. I have rarely walked through Manchester without encountering three or four individuals suffering from the exact same spinal and leg distortions described, and I’ve often been able to observe them closely. I personally know one who matches Dr. Ray's previous description exactly, who developed this condition while working at Mr. Douglas' factory in Pendleton, a place notorious among workers for its long working hours night after night. It's clear at a glance where these distortions come from; they all appear strikingly similar. Their knees bend inward and backward, their ankles are thick and misshapen, and their spines are often bent forward or to one side. However, the worst conditions can be found among the well-meaning manufacturers in the Macclesfield silk district. They employed the youngest children, some as young as five or six years old. In the added testimony from Commissioner Tufnell, there's a statement by a factory manager named Wright, whose two sisters were disgracefully disabled. He once counted the number of disabled individuals on several streets, including some of the cleanest and neatest in Macclesfield. He found ten on Townley Street, five on George Street, four on Charlotte Street, fifteen on Watercots, three on Bank Top, seven on Lord Street, twelve on Mill Lane, two on Great George Street, two in the workhouse, one on Park Green, and two on Peckford Street, all of whose families unanimously stated that the disabilities had resulted from overwork in the silk-twisting mills. One boy was mentioned as being so crippled that he couldn’t go upstairs, and there were girls with deformities in their backs and hips.

Other deformities also have proceeded from this overwork, especially flattening of the foot, which Sir D. Barry {154a} frequently observed, as did the physicians and surgeons in Leeds. {154b}  In cases, in which a stronger constitution, better food, and other more favourable circumstances enabled the young operative to resist this effect of a barbarous exploitation, we find, at least, pain in the back, p. 155hips, and legs, swollen joints, varicose veins, and large, persistent ulcers in the thighs and calves.  These affections are almost universal among the operatives.  The reports of Stuart, Mackintosh, and Sir D. Barry contain hundreds of examples; indeed, they know almost no operative who did not suffer from some of these affections; and in the remaining reports, the occurrence of the same phenomena is attested by many physicians.  The reports covering Scotland place it beyond all doubt, that a working-day of thirteen hours, even for men and women from eighteen to twenty-two years of age, produces at least these consequences, both in the flax-spinning mills of Dundee and Dunfermline, and in the cotton mills of Glasgow and Lanark.

Other deformities have resulted from this overwork, especially flattened feet, which Sir D. Barry {154a} frequently observed, as did the doctors and surgeons in Leeds. {154b} In cases where a stronger constitution, better nutrition, and other more favorable circumstances allowed the young workers to withstand the effects of this brutal exploitation, we still find pain in the back, hips, and legs, swollen joints, varicose veins, and large, persistent ulcers on the thighs and calves. These issues are nearly universal among the workers. The reports from Stuart, Mackintosh, and Sir D. Barry include hundreds of examples; indeed, they know of almost no worker who didn't suffer from some of these conditions. In the remaining reports, many doctors confirm the same phenomena. The reports covering Scotland make it clear that a working day of thirteen hours, even for men and women aged eighteen to twenty-two, leads to at least these consequences in both the flax-spinning mills of Dundee and Dunfermline, and in the cotton mills of Glasgow and Lanark.

All these affections are easily explained by the nature of factory-work, which is, as the manufacturers say, very “light,” and precisely by reason of its lightness, more enervating than any other.  The operatives have little to do, but must stand the whole time.  Any one who sits down, say upon a window-ledge or a basket, is fined, and this perpetual upright position, this constant mechanical pressure of the upper portions of the body upon spinal column, hips, and legs, inevitably produces the results mentioned.  This standing is not required by the work itself, and at Nottingham chairs have been introduced, with the result that these affections disappeared, and the operatives ceased to object to the length of the working-day.  But in a factory where the operative works solely for the bourgeois, and has small interest in doing his work well, he would probably use the seats more than would be agreeable and profitable to the manufacturer; and in order that somewhat less raw material may be spoiled for the bourgeois, the operative must sacrifice health and strength. {155}  This long protracted upright position, with the bad atmosphere prevalent in the mills, entails, besides the deformities mentioned, a marked relaxation of all vital energies, and, in consequence, all sorts of other affections general rather than local.  The atmosphere of the factories is, as a rule, at once damp and warm, unusually warmer p. 156than is necessary, and, when the ventilation is not very good, impure, heavy, deficient in oxygen, filled with dust and the smell of the machine oil, which almost everywhere smears the floor, sinks into it, and becomes rancid.  The operatives are lightly clad by reason of the warmth, and would readily take cold in case of irregularity of the temperature; a draught is distasteful to them, the general enervation which gradually takes possession of all the physical functions diminishes the animal warmth: this must be replaced from without, and nothing is therefore more agreeable to the operative than to have all the doors and windows closed, and to stay in his warm factory-air.  Then comes the sudden change of temperature on going out into the cold and wet or frosty atmosphere, without the means of protection from the rain, or of changing wet clothing for dry, a circumstance which perpetually produces colds.  And when one reflects that, with all this, not one single muscle of the body is really exercised, really called into activity, except perhaps those of the legs; that nothing whatsoever counteracts the enervating, relaxing tendency of all these conditions; that every influence is wanting which might give the muscles strength, the fibres elasticity and consistency; that from youth up, the operative is deprived of all fresh air recreation, it is impossible to wonder at the almost unanimous testimony of the physicians in the Factories’ Report, that they find a great lack of ability to resist disease, a general depression in vital activity, a constant relaxation of the mental and physical powers.  Let us hear Sir D. Barry first: {156}

All these issues are easy to understand given the nature of factory work, which manufacturers describe as very “light,” but because it's light, it's actually more exhausting than any other kind of work. The workers don’t have much to do, but they have to stand the entire time. Anyone who sits down, say on a windowsill or a basket, gets fined. This constant standing position and the mechanical pressure on the spinal column, hips, and legs inevitably lead to the mentioned problems. Standing isn't necessary for the work itself, and at Nottingham, chairs have been introduced, which led to these issues disappearing, and the workers stopped complaining about the long hours. However, in a factory where workers solely serve the bourgeois and have little interest in doing their jobs well, they would likely use the seats more than the manufacturer would find acceptable or beneficial. As a result, to waste less raw material for the bourgeois, the workers must sacrifice their health and strength. {155} This prolonged standing, combined with the poor air quality in the mills, also leads to the physical deformities mentioned earlier, along with a significant decrease in all vital energies, resulting in various other general health problems. The factory atmosphere is usually damp and warm, often warmer p. 156 than necessary, and when the ventilation isn’t very good, it's impure, heavy, lacking oxygen, filled with dust and the smell of machine oil, which stains and rancidifies the floor. Workers are dressed lightly because of the warmth and are prone to catching cold if the temperature changes suddenly. A draft is unpleasant for them, and the overall exhaustion that gradually affects all physical functions lowers their body heat; this needs to be compensated from outside, so nothing is more comforting for the worker than having all doors and windows shut and staying in the warm factory air. Then they face a sudden temperature drop when stepping out into the cold, damp, or frosty air without any protection from the rain or a chance to change out of wet clothes into dry ones, which constantly leads to colds. And when you consider that, despite all this, not a single muscle in the body is really exercised or actively engaged—except maybe those in the legs—and that nothing counteracts the exhausting, relaxing nature of these conditions, and that there's a complete lack of influences that could strengthen the muscles or give the fibers elasticity and firmness; that from a young age, the worker is deprived of all fresh air and recreation, it’s no wonder that doctors in the Factories' Report unanimously agree on finding a significant lack of disease resistance, a general decrease in vitality, and a constant weakening of mental and physical powers. Let’s hear from Sir D. Barry first: {156}

“The unfavourable influences of mill-work upon the hands are the following: (1) The inevitable necessity of forcing their mental and bodily effort to keep pace with a machine moved by a uniform and unceasing motive power.  (2) Continuance in an upright position during unnaturally long and quickly recurring periods.  (3) Loss of sleep in consequence of too long working-hours, pain in the legs, and general physical derangement.  To these are often added low, crowded, dusty, or damp workrooms, impure air, a high temperature, and constant perspiration.  Hence the boys especially very soon and with but few exceptions, lose p. 157the rosy freshness of childhood, and become paler and thinner than other boys.  Even the hand-weaver’s bound boy, who sits before his loom with his bare feet resting upon the clay-floor, retains a fresher appearance, because he occasionally goes into the fresh air for a time.  But the mill child has not a moment free except for meals, and never goes into the fresh air except on its way to them.  All adult male spinners are pale and thin, suffer from capricious appetite and indigestion; and as they are all trained in the mills from their youth up, and there are very few tall, athletic men among them, the conclusion is justified that their occupation is very unfavourable for the development of the male constitution; females bear this work far better.”  (Very naturally.  But we shall see that they have their own diseases.)

“The negative effects of working in a mill on employees include: (1) The unavoidable need to exert themselves mentally and physically to keep up with a machine that runs on constant and endless power. (2) Staying in an upright position for unnaturally long and often repeated periods. (3) Sleep loss due to excessively long working hours, leg pain, and overall physical discomfort. Additionally, workers often face cramped, dusty, or damp workspaces, poor air quality, high temperatures, and constant sweating. As a result, boys especially quickly lose, with few exceptions, the healthy glow of childhood, becoming paler and thinner than other boys. Even the young hand-weaver, who sits at his loom with his bare feet on the dirt floor, looks healthier because he occasionally gets some fresh air. But the child working in the mill has no free time except for meals and only goes outside briefly while heading to them. All adult male spinners are pale and thin, suffer from erratic appetites and digestive issues; since they all start working in the mills at a young age, and very few of them are tall, athletic men, it’s reasonable to conclude that this work harms male physical development; women tend to cope with this work much better.” (Very naturally. But we will see that they have their own health issues.)

So, too, Power: {157a}

So is Power: {157a}

“I can bear witness that the factory system in Bradford has engendered a multitude of cripples, and that the effect of long continued labour upon the physique is apparent, not alone in actual deformity, but also, and much more generally, in stunted growth, relaxation of the muscles, and delicacy of the whole frame.”

“I can confirm that the factory system in Bradford has resulted in many people with disabilities, and the effects of long-term labor on the body are clear, not just in visible deformities, but also, and much more often, in stunted growth, weakened muscles, and overall fragility.”

So, too, F. Sharp, in Leeds, the surgeon {157b} already quoted:

So, F. Sharp, in Leeds, the surgeon {157b} already mentioned:

“When I moved from Scarborough to Leeds, I was at once struck by the fact that the general appearance of the children was much paler, and their fibre less vigorous here than in Scarborough and its environs.  I saw, too, that many children were exceptionally small for their age.  I have met with numberless cases of scrofula, lung trouble, mesenteric affections, and indigestion, concerning which I, as a medical man, have no doubt that they arose from mill work.  I believe that the nervous energy of the body is weakened by the long hours, and the foundation of many diseases laid.  If people from the country were not constantly coming in, the race of mill-hands would soon be wholly degenerate.”

“When I moved from Scarborough to Leeds, I was immediately struck by how much paler the children looked and how they seemed less healthy here compared to Scarborough and the surrounding areas. I also noticed that many kids were unusually small for their age. I have seen countless cases of scrofula, lung issues, digestive problems, and indigestion, and as a medical professional, I have no doubt that these are a result of working in the mills. I believe that long hours of work weaken the body's nervous energy and set the stage for many diseases. If people from the countryside weren’t constantly coming in, the population of mill workers would quickly decline.”

So, too, Beaumont, surgeon in Bradford:

So, Beaumont, a surgeon in Bradford:

“To my thinking, the system, according to which work is done in the mills here, produces a peculiar relaxation of the whole p. 158organism, and thereby makes children in the highest degree susceptible to epidemic, as well as to incidental illness.  I regard the absence of all appropriate regulations for ventilation and cleanliness in the mills very decidedly as the chief cause of that peculiar tendency or susceptibility to morbid affections which I have so frequently met in my practice.”

"In my opinion, the way work is organized in the mills here causes a particular relaxation of the whole body, making children very susceptible to both epidemics and minor illnesses. I strongly believe that the absence of adequate regulations for ventilation and cleanliness in the mills is the primary reason for that unusual tendency or vulnerability to health problems that I've frequently seen in my practice."

Similar testimony is borne by Dr. Ray:

Similar testimony is provided by Dr. Ray:

(1)  “I have had opportunity of observing the effects of the factory system upon the health of children under the most favourable circumstances (in Wood’s mill, in Bradford, the best arranged of the district, in which he was factory surgeon). (2)  These effects are decidedly, and to a very great extent, injurious, even under these most favourable circumstances. (3)  In the year 1842, three-fifths of all the children employed in Wood’s mill were treated by me. (4)  The worst effect is not the predominance of deformities, but of enfeebled and morbid constitutions. (5)  All this is greatly improved since the working-hours of children have been reduced at Wood’s to ten.”

(1) “I’ve had the opportunity to observe how the factory system impacts children’s health in the best conditions (at Wood’s mill in Bradford, the best-organized mill in the area, where I worked as the factory doctor). (2) These effects are definitely harmful, even under these ideal circumstances. (3) In 1842, I treated three-fifths of all the children working at Wood’s mill. (4) The most significant issue is not just the number of deformities but also the occurrence of weakened and unhealthy bodies. (5) Conditions have greatly improved since the working hours for children were reduced to ten at Wood’s.”

The Commissioner, Dr. Loudon himself, who cites these witnesses, says:

The Commissioner, Dr. Loudon himself, who mentions these witnesses, says:

“In conclusion, I think it has been clearly proved that children have been worked a most unreasonable and cruel length of time daily, and that even adults have been expected to do a certain quantity of labour which scarcely any human being is able to endure.  The consequence is that many have died prematurely, and others are afflicted for life with defective constitutions, and the fear of a posterity enfeebled by the shattered constitution of the survivors is but too well founded, from a physiological point of view.”

“In conclusion, I believe it’s clear that children have been forced to work an unreasonably harsh number of hours each day, and even adults are expected to perform labor that very few people can endure. Consequently, many have died young, and others are left with lifelong health problems due to their weakened bodies. The worry about future generations being compromised by the poor health of those who survive is unfortunately justified from a biological standpoint.”

And, finally, Dr. Hawkins, in speaking of Manchester:

And finally, Dr. Hawkins, when talking about Manchester:

“I believe that most travellers are struck by the lowness of stature, the leanness and the paleness which present themselves so commonly to the eye at Manchester, and above all, among the factory classes.  I have never been in any town in Great Britain, nor in Europe, in which degeneracy of form and colour from the national standard has been so obvious.  Among the married women all the characteristic peculiarities of the English wife are conspicuously wanting.  I must confess that all the boys and girls brought before me from the Manchester mills had a depressed p. 159appearance, and were very pale.  In the expression of their faces lay nothing of the usual mobility, liveliness, and cheeriness of youth.  Many of them told me that they felt not the slightest inclination to play out of doors on Saturday and Sunday, but preferred to be quiet at home.”

"I think most travelers notice the short height, thinness, and paleness that are so common in Manchester, especially among factory workers. I've never been to any town in Great Britain or Europe where the decline in health and appearance from the national standard is so obvious. Among married women, all the typical traits of the English wife are noticeably missing. I have to admit that all the boys and girls I saw from the Manchester mills looked downcast and were very pale. Their faces lacked the usual energy, liveliness, and joy of youth. Many of them told me they had no desire to play outside on Saturdays and Sundays and would rather stay quietly at home."

I add, at once, another passage of Hawkins’ report, which only half belongs here, but may be quoted here as well as anywhere else:

I’ll quickly include another part of Hawkins’ report, which only partially fits here, but can be quoted just as well in this context as anywhere else:

“Intemperance, excess, and want of providence are the chief faults of the factory population, and these evils may be readily traced to the habits which are formed under the present system, and almost inevitably arise from it.  It is universally admitted that indigestion, hypochondria, and general debility affect this class to a very great extent.  After twelve hours of monotonous toil, it is but natural to look about for a stimulant of one sort or another; but when the above-mentioned diseased conditions are added to the customary weariness, people will quickly and repeatedly take refuge in spirituous liquors.”

"Excessive drinking, overindulgence, and poor planning are the main issues facing factory workers, and these problems can easily be linked to the habits developed under the current system, which almost inevitably lead to them. It's well-known that indigestion, anxiety, and general weakness have a significant effect on this group. After twelve hours of monotonous work, it's only natural to seek some kind of stimulant; but when these health problems are combined with regular exhaustion, people often turn to alcoholic beverages for relief."

For all this testimony of the physicians and commissioners, the report itself offers hundreds of cases of proof.  That the growth of young operatives is stunted, by their work, hundreds of statements testify; among others, Cowell gives the weight of 46 youths of 17 years of age, from one Sunday school, of whom 26 employed in mills, averaged 104.5 pounds, and 20 not employed in mills, 117.7 pounds.  One of the largest manufacturers of Manchester, leader of the opposition against the working-men, I think Robert Hyde Greg himself, said, on one occasion, that if things went on as at present, the operatives of Lancashire would soon be a race of pigmies. {159a}  A recruiting officer {159b} testified that operatives are little adapted for military service, looked thin and nervous, and were frequently rejected by the surgeons as unfit.  In Manchester he could hardly get men of five feet eight inches; they were usually only five feet six to seven, whereas in the agricultural districts, most of the recruits were five feet eight.

For all the testimonies from doctors and officials, the report presents hundreds of case studies as evidence. Numerous statements indicate that the growth of young workers is stunted due to their jobs; for example, Cowell mentions the weights of 46 boys aged 17 from a Sunday school, where those working in mills averaged 104.5 pounds, while those not working in mills averaged 117.7 pounds. One of the biggest manufacturers in Manchester, who led the opposition against the workers, Robert Hyde Greg himself, once said that if things continued as they were, the workers in Lancashire would soon become a race of small people. {159a} A recruiting officer {159b} stated that workers were not well-suited for military service, appearing thin and nervous, and were often rejected by doctors as unfit. In Manchester, he struggled to find men who were five feet eight inches tall; they typically measured only five feet six to seven, while in rural areas, most recruits were five feet eight.

The men wear out very early in consequence of the conditions p. 160under which they live and work.  Most of them are unfit for work at forty years, a few hold out to forty-five, almost none to fifty years of age.  This is caused not only by the general enfeeblement of the frame, but also very often by a failure of the sight, which is a result of mule-spinning, in which the operative is obliged to fix his gaze upon a long row of fine, parallel threads, and so greatly to strain the sight.

The men wear out very quickly because of the conditions p. 160 they live and work under. Most of them are unable to work by the time they’re forty, a few last until forty-five, and almost none make it to fifty. This is due not only to the overall weakening of their bodies but also often to vision problems, which result from mule-spinning, where workers have to focus on a long line of fine, parallel threads, straining their eyes significantly.

Of 1,600 operatives employed in several factories in Harpur and Lanark, but 10 were over 45 years of age; of 22,094 operatives in diverse factories in Stockport and Manchester, but 143 were over 45 years old.  Of these 143, 16 were retained as a special favour, and one was doing the work of a child.  A list of 131 spinners contained but seven over 45 years, and yet the whole 131 were rejected by the manufacturers, to whom they applied for work, as “too old,” and were without means of support by reason of old age!  Mr. Ashworth, a large manufacturer, admits in a letter to Lord Ashley, that, towards the fortieth year, the spinners can no longer prepare the required quantity of yarn, and are therefore “sometimes” discharged; he calls operatives forty years of age “old people!”  Commissioner Mackintosh expresses himself in the same way in the report of 1833:

Of 1,600 workers employed in various factories in Harpur and Lanark, only 10 were over 45 years old; of 22,094 workers in different factories in Stockport and Manchester, only 143 were over 45. Out of these 143, 16 were kept on as a special favor, and one was doing work meant for a child. A list of 131 spinners included only seven over 45 years old, yet all 131 were turned away by the manufacturers they applied to for being “too old” and were left without support due to their age! Mr. Ashworth, a large manufacturer, acknowledges in a letter to Lord Ashley that, by around the age of 40, spinners can no longer produce the required amount of yarn and are therefore “sometimes” let go; he refers to workers in their forties as “old people!” Commissioner Mackintosh expresses a similar sentiment in the 1833 report:

“Although I was prepared for it from the way the children are employed, I still found it difficult to believe the statements of the older hands as to their ages; they age so very early.”

“Even though I was prepared for it because of how fast kids typically grow up, I still found it hard to believe what the older workers said about their ages; they grow up so fast.”

Surgeon Smellie, of Glasgow, who treated operatives chiefly, says that forty years is old age for them. {160a}  And similar evidence may be found elsewhere. {160b}  In Manchester, this premature old age among the operatives is so universal that almost every man of forty would be taken for ten to fifteen years older, while the prosperous classes, men as well as women, preserve their appearance exceedingly well if they do not drink too heavily.

Surgeon Smellie from Glasgow, who mainly treated workers, claims that forty is considered old age for them. {160a}  You can find similar evidence in other places. {160b}  In Manchester, this early onset of old age among workers is so common that nearly every man in his forties looks ten to fifteen years older, while the more affluent classes, both men and women, maintain their appearance quite well as long as they don’t drink too much.

The influence of factory-work upon the female physique also is marked and peculiar.  The deformities entailed by long hours of p. 161work are much more serious among women.  Protracted work frequently causes deformities of the pelvis, partly in the shape of abnormal position and development of the hip bones, partly of malformation of the lower portion of the spinal column.

The impact of factory work on women's bodies is noticeable and specific. The physical issues caused by long hours of work are significantly more severe for women. Extended work often leads to deformities in the pelvis, which includes unusual positioning and growth of the hip bones, as well as malformations in the lower part of the spine.

“Although,” says Dr. Loudon, in his report, “no example of malformation of the pelvis and of some other affections came under my notice, these things are nevertheless so common, that every physician must regard them as probable consequences of such working-hours, and as vouched for besides by men of the highest medical credibility.”

“However,” Dr. Loudon states in his report, “I didn’t notice any cases of pelvic malformation or other conditions, but these issues are so common that every doctor should see them as probable outcomes of such working hours, backed by highly reputable medical experts.”

That factory operatives undergo more difficult confinement than other women is testified to by several midwives and accoucheurs, and also that they are more liable to miscarriage. {161}  Moreover, they suffer from the general enfeeblement common to all operatives, and, when pregnant, continue to work in the factory up to the hour of delivery, because otherwise they lose their wages and are made to fear that they may be replaced if they stop away too soon.  It frequently happens that women are at work one evening and delivered the next morning, and the case is none too rare of their being delivered in the factory among the machinery.  And if the gentlemen of the bourgeoisie find nothing particularly shocking in this, their wives will perhaps admit that it is a piece of cruelty, an infamous act of barbarism, indirectly to force a pregnant woman to work twelve or thirteen hours daily (formerly still longer), up to the day of her delivery, in a standing position, with frequent stoopings.  But this is not all.  If these women are not obliged to resume work within two weeks, they are thankful, and count themselves fortunate.  Many come back to the factory after eight, and even after three to four days, to resume full work.  I once heard a manufacturer ask an overlooker: “Is so and so not back yet?”  “No.”  “How long since she was confined?”  “A week.”  “She might surely have been back long ago.  That one over there only stays three days.”  Naturally, fear of being discharged, dread of starvation drives her to the factory in spite of p. 162her weakness, in defiance of her pain.  The interest of the manufacturer will not brook that his employees stay at home by reason of illness; they must not be ill, they must not venture to lie still through a long confinement, or he must stop his machinery or trouble his supreme head with a temporary change of arrangements, and rather than do this, he discharges his people when they begin to be ill.  Listen: {162a}

That factory workers face harsher conditions than other women is supported by several midwives and doctors, who also note that they are more prone to miscarriage. {161} Moreover, they suffer from the overall exhaustion common to all workers, and when they are pregnant, they keep working in the factory right up until they give birth, because if they don’t, they lose their pay and fear being replaced if they take too much time off. It often happens that women are working one evening and give birth the next morning, and it’s not uncommon for them to deliver in the factory among the machinery. If the gentlemen of the bourgeoisie find nothing particularly shocking about this, their wives might admit that it’s cruel and barbaric to indirectly force a pregnant woman to work twelve or thirteen hours a day (often even longer in the past) until the day she delivers, on her feet and frequently bending over. But that’s not all. If these women aren’t forced to return to work within two weeks, they consider themselves lucky. Many come back to the factory after eight days, and even as soon as three to four days, to resume full work. I once heard a manufacturer ask an overlooker, “Is so-and-so not back yet?” “No.” “How long has it been since she gave birth?” “A week.” “She could definitely have returned by now. That one over there only took three days.” Naturally, the fear of getting fired and the dread of starvation push her back to the factory despite her weakness and pain. The manufacturer’s interest won’t allow his employees to stay home due to illness; they mustn’t be sick, they mustn’t dare lie down for a long recovery, or he would have to stop the machinery or trouble his boss with rearranging things temporarily, and rather than do that, he fires people as soon as they start getting sick. Listen: {162a}

“A girl feels very ill, can scarcely do her work.  Why does she not ask permission to go home?  Ah! the master is very particular, and if we are away half a day, we risk being sent away altogether.”

“A girl feels really sick and can hardly get her work done. Why doesn’t she ask to go home? Ah! The teacher is really strict, and if we miss even half a day, we might be totally kicked out.”

Or Sir D. Barry: {162b}

Or Sir D. Barry: {162b}

“Thomas McDurt, workman, has slight fever.  Cannot stay at home longer than four days, because he would fear of losing his place.”

“Thomas McDurt, an employee, has a mild fever. He can't stay home for more than four days because he's concerned about losing his job.”

And so it goes on in almost all the factories.  The employment of young girls produces all sorts of irregularities during the period of development.  In some, especially those who are better fed, the heat of the factories hastens this process, so that in single cases, girls of thirteen and fourteen are wholly mature.  Robertson, whom I have already cited (mentioned in the Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report as the “eminent” gynæcologist of Manchester), relates in the North of England Medical and Surgical Journal, that he had seen a girl of eleven years who was not only a wholly developed woman, but pregnant, and that it was by no means rare in Manchester for women to be confined at fifteen years of age.  In such cases, the influence of the warmth of the factories is the same as that of a tropical climate, and, as in such climates, the abnormally early development revenges itself by correspondingly premature age and debility.  On the other hand, retarded development of the female constitution occurs, the breasts mature late or not at all. {162c}  Menstruation first appears in the p. 163seventeenth or Eighteenth, sometimes in the twentieth year, and is often wholly wanting. {163a}  Irregular menstruation, coupled with great pain and numerous affections, especially with anæmia, is very frequent, as the medical reports unanimously state.

And so it happens in almost all factories. Employing young girls leads to all sorts of irregularities during their development. In some cases, especially among those who are better nourished, the heat from the factories speeds up this process, so that in a few cases, girls as young as thirteen and fourteen are fully matured. Robertson, whom I’ve already mentioned (noted in the Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report as the “eminent” gynecologist of Manchester), reports in the North of England Medical and Surgical Journal that he has seen an eleven-year-old girl who was not only fully developed but also pregnant, and that it’s not uncommon in Manchester for women to give birth at the age of fifteen. In these cases, the effect of the warmth in the factories is similar to that of a tropical climate, and, just like in such climates, the unusually early development leads to corresponding premature aging and weakness. On the other hand, some girls experience delayed development, with their breasts maturing late or not at all. {162c} Menstruation first appears in the p. 163 seventeenth or eighteenth year, and sometimes not until the twentieth year, and it is often entirely absent. {163a} Irregular menstruation, along with severe pain and various issues, especially with anemia, is very common, as medical reports consistently indicate.

Children of such mothers, particularly of those who are obliged to work during pregnancy, cannot be vigorous.  They are, on the contrary, described in the report, especially in Manchester, as very feeble; and Barry alone asserts that they are healthy, but says further, that in Scotland, where his inspection lay, almost no married women worked in factories.  Moreover, most of the factories there are in the country (with the exception of Glasgow), a circumstance which contributes greatly to the invigoration of the children.  The operatives’ children in the neighbourhood of Manchester are nearly all thriving and rosy, while those within the city look pale and scrofulous; but with the ninth year the colour vanishes suddenly, because all are then sent into the factories, when it soon becomes impossible to distinguish the country from the city children.

Children of such mothers, especially those who have to work during pregnancy, are not likely to be strong. Instead, the report describes them, particularly in Manchester, as quite weak; and Barry alone claims they are healthy, but he also notes that in Scotland, where he conducted his inspections, almost no married women worked in factories. Additionally, most of the factories there are located in rural areas (except for Glasgow), which greatly helps the health of the children. The children of workers in the Manchester area are mostly thriving and rosy-cheeked, while those in the city appear pale and unhealthy; however, by the time they reach nine years old, that healthy color fades quickly, as all the children are then sent to work in factories, making it hard to tell the difference between those from the countryside and those from the city.

But besides all this, there are some branches of factory-work which have an especially injurious effect.  In many rooms of the cotton and flax-spinning mills, the air is filled with fibrous dust, which produces chest affections, especially among workers in the carding and combing-rooms.  Some constitutions can bear it, some cannot; but the operative has no choice.  He must take the room in which he finds work, whether his chest is sound or not.  The most common effects of this breathing of dust are blood-spitting, hard, noisy breathing, pains in the chest, coughs, sleeplessness—in short, all the symptoms of asthma ending in the worst cases in consumption. {163b}  Especially unwholesome is the wet spinning of linen-yarn which is carried on by young girls and boys.  The water spirts over them from the spindle, so that the front of their clothing is constantly wet through to the skin; and there is p. 164always water standing on the floor.  This is the case to a less degree in the doubling-rooms of the cotton mills, and the result is a constant succession of colds and affections of the chest.  A hoarse, rough voice is common to all operatives, but especially to wet spinners and doublers.  Stuart, Mackintosh, and Sir D. Barry express themselves in the most vigorous terms as to the unwholesomeness of this work, and the small consideration shown by most of the manufacturers for the health of the girls who do it.  Another effect of flax-spinning is a peculiar deformity of the shoulder, especially a projection of the right shoulder-blade, consequent upon the nature of the work.  This sort of spinning and the throstle-spinning of cotton frequently produce diseases of the knee-pan, which is used to check the spindle during the joining of broken threads.  The frequent stooping and the bending to the low machines common to both these branches of work have, in general, a stunting effect upon the growth of the operative.  In the throstle-room of the cotton mill at Manchester, in which I was employed, I do not remember to have seen one single tall, well-built girl; they were all short, dumpy, and badly-formed, decidedly ugly in the whole development of the figure.  But apart from all these diseases and malformations, the limbs of the operatives suffer in still another way.  The work between the machinery gives rise to multitudes of accidents of more or less serious nature, which have for the operative the secondary effect of unfitting him for his work more or less completely.  The most common accident is the squeezing off of a single joint of a finger, somewhat less common the loss of the whole finger, half or a whole hand, an arm, etc., in the machinery.  Lockjaw very often follows, even upon the lesser among these injuries, and brings death with it.  Besides the deformed persons, a great number of maimed ones may be seen going about in Manchester; this one has lost an arm or a part of one, that one a foot, the third half a leg; it is like living in the midst of an army just returned from a campaign.  But the most dangerous portion of the machinery is the strapping which conveys motive power from the shaft to the separate machines, especially if it contains buckles, which, however, are p. 165rarely used now.  Whoever is seized by the strap is carried up with lightning speed, thrown against the ceiling above and floor below with such force that there is rarely a whole bone left in the body, and death follows instantly.  Between June 12th and August 3rd, 1843, the Manchester Guardian reported the following serious accidents (the trifling ones it does not notice): June 12th, a boy died in Manchester of lockjaw, caused by his hand being crushed between wheels.  June 16th, a youth in Saddleworth seized by a wheel and carried away with it; died, utterly mangled.  June 29th, a young man at Green Acres Moor, near Manchester, at work in a machine shop, fell under the grindstone, which broke two of his ribs and lacerated him terribly.  July 24th, a girl in Oldham died, carried around fifty times by a strap; no bone unbroken.  July 27th, a girl in Manchester seized by the blower (the first machine that receives the raw cotton), and died of injuries received.  August 3rd, a bobbins turner died in Dukenfield, caught in a strap, every rib broken.  In the year 1843, the Manchester Infirmary treated 962 cases of wounds and mutilations caused by machinery, while the number of all other accidents within the district of the hospital was 2,426, so that for five accidents from all other causes, two were caused by machinery.  The accidents which happened in Salford are not included here, nor those treated by surgeons in private practice.  In such cases, whether or not the accident unfits the victim for further work, the employer, at best, pays the doctor, or, in very exceptional cases, he may pay wages during treatment; what becomes of the operative afterwards, in case he cannot work, is no concern of the employer.

But besides all this, some types of factory work are especially harmful. In many rooms of the cotton and flax-spinning mills, the air is filled with fibrous dust, which causes respiratory issues, particularly among workers in the carding and combing rooms. Some people can handle it, and some can’t; but the workers have no say in the matter. They must take whatever room has available work, regardless of their health. The most common effects of breathing in this dust include spitting blood, wheezing, chest pain, coughing, insomnia—in summary, all the symptoms of asthma, which can lead to severe cases of tuberculosis. {163b} Wet spinning of linen yarn, done by young girls and boys, is particularly unhealthy. Water splashes over them from the spindle, making the front of their clothing constantly soaked to the skin; and there is always water puddled on the floor. This is less severe in the doubling rooms of the cotton mills, yet it still leads to repeated colds and respiratory issues. A hoarse, rough voice is common among all workers, especially those who spin and double wet yarn. Stuart, Mackintosh, and Sir D. Barry strongly criticize the unhealthiness of this work and the little regard most manufacturers have for the health of the girls who do it. Another consequence of flax spinning is a specific shoulder deformity, particularly a protrusion of the right shoulder blade, due to the nature of the work. This type of spinning, along with throstle spinning of cotton, often causes knee disorders because the knee is used to stop the spindle when joining broken threads. The frequent bending and stooping to work with low machines generally stunt the growth of the workers. In the throstle room of the cotton mill in Manchester where I worked, I don’t recall seeing a single tall, well-built girl; they were all short, stocky, and poorly formed, definitely unattractive in their overall figure. But besides all these diseases and deformities, the workers' limbs suffer in another way. Working around the machines leads to many accidents, which can leave the workers unfit for their jobs to varying degrees. The most common accident involves losing part of a finger, while losing a whole finger, half a hand, an arm, etc., is somewhat less common. Lockjaw frequently follows even minor injuries, often leading to death. Along with the deformed individuals, many maimed ones can be seen in Manchester; this one has lost an arm or part of one, that one a foot, and another half a leg; it’s like living among an army just back from battle. But the most dangerous part of the machinery is the strapping that transfers power from the shaft to the individual machines, especially if it includes buckles, though these are rarely used now. Anyone who gets caught in the strap is pulled up at lightning speed and slammed against the ceiling and floor with such force that it’s unlikely any bones are left intact, resulting in instant death. Between June 12th and August 3rd, 1843, the Manchester Guardian reported the following serious accidents (the minor ones were not mentioned): June 12th, a boy in Manchester died of lockjaw after having his hand crushed between wheels. June 16th, a young man in Saddleworth was caught by a wheel and carried away, resulting in his mangled death. June 29th, a young man at Green Acres Moor, near Manchester, fell under a grindstone, breaking two ribs and sustaining terrible lacerations. July 24th, a girl in Oldham died after being carried around fifty times by a strap, with no bones unbroken. July 27th, a girl in Manchester was caught by the blower (the first machine that receives the raw cotton) and died from her injuries. August 3rd, a bobbin turner in Dukinfield died after being caught in a strap, with every rib broken. In 1843, the Manchester Infirmary treated 962 cases of wounds and mutilations caused by machinery, while the total number of all other accidents in the hospital's district was 2,426, meaning two of every five accidents were caused by machinery. The accidents in Salford and those treated by private surgeons are not included here. In such cases, whether or not the accident renders the victim unfit for work, the employer, at best, pays the medical bills, or in very rare cases, may pay wages during treatment; what happens to the worker afterward, if they are unable to work, is not the employer’s concern.

The Factory Report says on this subject, that employers must be made responsible for all cases, since children cannot take care, and adults will take care in their own interest.  But the gentlemen who write the report are bourgeois, and so they must contradict themselves and bring up later all sorts of bosh on the subject of the culpable temerity of the operatives.

The Factory Report states that employers should be held accountable in all situations, as children cannot look after themselves, and adults will act in their own self-interest. However, the gentlemen who wrote the report are from the middle class, and therefore, they end up contradicting themselves and later introducing all kinds of nonsense regarding the reckless behavior of the workers.

The state of the case is this: If children cannot take care, the employment of children must be forbidden.  If adults are reckless, p. 166they must be mere over-grown children on a plane of intelligence which does not enable them to appreciate the danger in its full scope; and who is to blame for this but the bourgeoisie which keeps them in a condition in which their intelligence cannot develop?  Or the machinery is ill-arranged, and must be surrounded with fencing, to supply which falls to the share of the bourgeoisie.  Or the operative is under inducements which outweigh the threatened danger; he must work rapidly to earn his wages, has no time to take care, and for this, too, the bourgeoisie is to blame.  Many accidents happen, for instance, while the operatives are cleaning machinery in motion.  Why?  Because the bourgeois would otherwise oblige the worker to clean the machinery during the free hours while it is not going, and the worker naturally is not disposed to sacrifice any part of his free time.  Every free hour is so precious to the worker that he often risks his life twice a week rather than sacrifice one of them to the bourgeois.  Let the employer take from working-hours the time required for cleaning the machinery, and it will never again occur to an operative to clean machinery in motion.  In short, from whatever point of view, the blame falls ultimately on the manufacturer, and of him should be required, at the very least, life-long support of the incapacitated operative, and support of the victim’s family in case death follows the accident.  In the earliest period of manufacture, the accidents were much more numerous in proportion than now, for the machinery was inferior, smaller, more crowded, and almost never fenced.  But the number is still large enough, as the foregoing cases prove, to arouse grave question as to a state of things which permits so many deformities and mutilations for the benefit of a single class, and plunges so many industrious working-people into want and starvation by reason of injuries undergone in the service and through the fault of the bourgeoisie.

The situation is this: If children can't take care of themselves, then child labor must be banned. If adults are reckless, they might just be oversized children who lack the awareness to see the danger fully. Who is responsible for this if not the bourgeoisie, who keep them in conditions where their intelligence can't develop? Or maybe the machinery is poorly designed, and it needs to be fenced off, which is the responsibility of the bourgeoisie. Or the workers face pressures that outweigh the risks; they have to work quickly to earn their wages and don’t have time to be careful, and again, this is the fault of the bourgeoisie. Many accidents happen, for example, when workers are cleaning machines while they’re still running. Why? Because the bourgeois would otherwise force the worker to clean the machines during their free time when they're not in operation, and naturally, the worker isn’t willing to give up any of that precious free time. Every bit of free time is so valuable that many workers risk their lives multiple times a week instead of sacrificing one of those hours to the bourgeois. If the employer would take some of the work hours for cleaning the machines, workers would no longer think of cleaning them while they’re running. In short, regardless of the perspective, the responsibility ultimately lies with the manufacturer, who should at least be required to provide lifelong support for any injured workers and support their families if there’s a fatal accident. In the early days of manufacturing, accidents were much more frequent because the machinery was inferior, smaller, more crowded, and rarely enclosed. But the number of accidents is still significant enough, as the previous examples show, to raise serious questions about a system that allows so many injuries and mutilations for the benefit of one class, while driving many hardworking individuals into poverty and starvation due to injuries sustained in the service and through the negligence of the bourgeois.

A pretty list of diseases engendered purely by the hateful money greed of the manufacturers!  Women made unfit for childbearing, children deformed, men enfeebled, limbs crushed, whole generations wrecked, afflicted with disease and infirmity, p. 167purely to fill the purses of the bourgeoisie.  And when one reads of the barbarism of single cases, how children are seized naked in bed by the overlookers, and driven with blows and kicks to the factory, their clothing over their arms, {167a} how their sleepiness is driven off with blows, how they fall asleep over their work nevertheless, how one poor child sprang up, still asleep, at the call of the overlooker, and mechanically went through the operations of its work after its machine was stopped; when one reads how children, too tired to go home, hide away in the wool in the drying-room to sleep there, and could only be driven out of the factory with straps; how many hundreds came home so tired every night, that they could eat no supper for sleepiness and want of appetite, that their parents found them kneeling by the bedside, where they had fallen asleep during their prayers; when one reads all this and a hundred other villainies and infamies in this one report, all testified to on oath, confirmed by several witnesses, deposed by men whom the commissioners themselves declare trustworthy; when one reflects that this is a Liberal report, a bourgeois report, made for the purpose of reversing the previous Tory report, and rehabilitating the pureness of heart of the manufacturers, that the commissioners themselves are on the side of the bourgeoisie, and report all these things against their own will, how can one be otherwise than filled with wrath and resentment against a class which boasts of philanthropy and self-sacrifice, while its one object is to fill its purse à tout prix?  Meanwhile, let us listen to the bourgeoisie speaking through the mouth of its chosen apostle, Dr. Ure, who relates in his “Philosophy of Manufactures” {167b} that the workers have been told that their wages bore no proportion to their sacrifices, the good understanding between masters and men being thus disturbed.  Instead of this, the working-men should have striven to recommend themselves by attention and industry, and should have rejoiced in the prosperity of their masters.  They would then become overseers, superintendents, and finally partners, and would thus—(Oh!  Wisdom, thou speakest as the dove!)—p. 168“have increased at the same time the demand for their companions’ labour in the market!”

A disturbing list of diseases caused solely by the greedy money hunger of the manufacturers! Women unable to have children, children born with deformities, men weakened, limbs crushed, entire generations devastated, suffering from illness and disability, just to line the pockets of the rich. And when you read about the barbaric incidents, like how children are dragged naked from their beds by overseers and forced with blows and kicks to get to the factory, their clothes thrown over their arms, how their drowsiness is beaten away, how they still fall asleep while working, how one poor child leaped up, still asleep, at the overseer's command and mindlessly resumed its tasks even after the machine stopped; when you read about children so exhausted they hide in the drying room among the wool to sleep, only being forced out of the factory with straps; how many hundreds return home every night so worn out that they can’t eat dinner due to fatigue and lack of appetite, and their parents find them kneeling by the bedside, having fallen asleep during their prayers; when you read all this and countless other horrors detailed in this one report, all sworn to be true, backed up by several witnesses, testimonies from people deemed trustworthy by the commissioners themselves; when you consider that this is a Liberal report, a report made by the rich aimed at overturning the previous Tory report and restoring the good reputation of the manufacturers, with the commissioners siding with the wealthy and reluctantly reporting all these things, how can anyone not feel anger and resentment towards a class that claims to be philanthropic and selfless, while its only goal is to fill its pockets at any cost? Meanwhile, let’s listen to the bourgeoisie speaking through their chosen spokesperson, Dr. Ure, who claims in his “Philosophy of Manufactures” that workers have been told their wages don't match their sacrifices, thus creating tension between employers and employees. Instead of this, the workers should have worked to impress their employers with their diligence and commitment, celebrating the success of their bosses. Then they would become overseers, managers, and eventually partners, which would—(Oh! Wisdom, you speak like a gentle dove!)—“simultaneously increase the demand for their fellow workers’ labor in the market!”

“Had it not been for the violent collisions and interruptions resulting from erroneous views among the operatives, the factory system would have been developed still more rapidly and beneficially.” {168a}

“If it weren't for the violent clashes and disruptions caused by misconceptions among the workers, the factory system would have progressed even faster and more positively.” {168a}

Hereupon follows a long Jeremiad upon the spirit of resistance of the operatives, and on the occasion of a strike of the best paid workers, the fine spinners, the following naïve observation: {168b}

Here’s a lengthy rant about the determination of the workers, and during a strike by the best-paid employees, the skilled spinners, we get this naive comment: {168b}

“In fact, it was their high wages which enabled them to maintain a stipendiary committee in affluence, and to pamper themselves into nervous ailments, by a diet too rich and exciting for their indoor employments.”

"Actually, it was their high salaries that enabled them to comfortably support a paid committee and to indulge in anxiety problems, due to a diet that was too rich and stimulating for their office work."

Let us hear how the bourgeois describes the work of children: {168c}

Let’s listen to how the middle class talks about the work of children: {168c}

“I have visited many factories, both in Manchester and in the surrounding districts, during a period of several months, entering the spinning-rooms unexpectedly, and often alone, at different times of the day, and I never saw a single instance of corporal chastisement inflicted on a child; nor, indeed, did I ever see children in ill-humour.  They seemed to be always cheerful and alert; taking pleasure in the light play of their muscles, enjoying the mobility natural to their age.  The scene of industry, so far from exciting sad emotions, in my mind, was always exhilerating.  It was delightful to observe the nimbleness with which they pieced broken ends, as the mule carriage began to recede from the fixed roller beam, and to see them at leisure, after a few seconds’ exercise of their tiny fingers, to amuse themselves in any attitude they chose, till the stretch and winding on were once more completed.  The work of these lively elves seemed to resemble a sport, in which habit gave them a pleasing dexterity.  Conscious of their skill, they were delighted to show it off to any stranger.  As to exhaustion by the day’s work, they evinced no trace of it on emerging from the mill in the evening; for they immediately began to skip about any neighbouring playground, and to commence their little games with the same alacrity as boys issuing from a school.”

“Over several months, I visited many factories in Manchester and the surrounding areas, often walking into the spinning rooms unexpectedly and usually alone, at various times of the day. I never witnessed a single instance of corporal punishment being used on a child; in fact, I never saw any children in a bad mood. They always appeared cheerful and full of energy, enjoying the way their muscles moved and the freedom that came with their age. The industrial atmosphere, rather than making me feel sad, always felt invigorating. It was a pleasure to see how quickly they reconnected broken threads as the mule carriage moved away from the fixed roller beam, and how they then played freely in any position they liked after just a few moments of using their tiny fingers until the stretching and winding were done again. The work these lively kids did seemed like a game, and their habits gave them a pleasing skill. Aware of their own abilities, they were eager to show them off to newcomers. After a long day of work, they showed no signs of tiredness when they left the mill in the evening; instead, they quickly ran to nearby playgrounds and jumped into their games with the same energy as boys coming out of school.”

p. 169Naturally!  As though the immediate movement of every muscle were not an urgent necessity for frames grown at once stiff and relaxed!  But Ure should have waited to see whether this momentary excitement had not subsided after a couple of minutes.  And besides, Ure could see this whole performance only in the afternoon after five or six hours’ work, but not in the evening!  As to the health of the operatives, the bourgeois has the boundless impudence to cite the report of 1833 just quoted in a thousand places, as testimony for the excellent health of these people; to try to prove by detached and garbled quotations that no trace of scrofula can be found among them, and, what is quite true, that the factory system frees them from all acute diseases, (that they have every variety of chronic affection instead he naturally conceals).  To explain the impudence with which our friend Ure palms off the grossest falsehoods upon the English public, it must be known that the report consists of three large folio volumes, which it never occurs to a well-fed English bourgeois to study through.  Let us hear further how he expresses himself as to the Factory Act of 1834, passed by the Liberal bourgeoisie, and imposing only the most meagre limitations upon the manufacturers, as we shall see.  This law, especially its compulsory education clause, he calls an absurd and despotic measure directed against the manufacturers, through which all children under twelve years of age have been thrown out of employment; and with what results?  The children thus discharged from their light and useful occupation receive no education whatsoever; cast out from the warm spinning-room into a cold world, they subsist only by begging and stealing, a life in sad contrast with their steadily improving condition in the factory and in Sunday school.  Under the mask of philanthropy, this law intensifies the sufferings of the poor, and will greatly restrict the conscientious manufacturer in his useful work, if, indeed, it does not wholly stop him. {169}

p. 169Of course! As if the immediate movement of every muscle wasn't an urgent necessity for bodies that have become simultaneously stiff and relaxed! But Ure should have waited to see if this momentary excitement had calmed down after a couple of minutes. Plus, Ure could only see this entire performance in the afternoon after five or six hours of work, not in the evening! Regarding the health of the workers, the bourgeoisie has the audacity to quote the report from 1833 in a thousand places as proof of these people's excellent health; they try to argue with selective and distorted quotes that there's no sign of scrofula among them, and, while it is true that the factory system keeps them free from acute diseases, they conveniently hide the fact that they suffer from all kinds of chronic ailments. To understand the audacity with which our friend Ure pushes these blatant lies on the English public, you need to know that the report consists of three large folio volumes, which a well-fed English bourgeois never thinks to read in full. Let’s see how he talks about the Factory Act of 1834, passed by the Liberal bourgeoisie, which imposes only the most minimal restrictions on manufacturers, as we will observe. This law, particularly its compulsory education clause, he calls an absurd and oppressive measure aimed at the manufacturers, claiming it has forced all children under twelve out of work; and what are the results? The children discharged from their light and useful jobs receive no education at all; cast out from the warm spinning room into a cold world, they survive only by begging and stealing, a life that starkly contrasts with the steadily improving conditions they had in the factory and Sunday school. Under the guise of philanthropy, this law worsens the plight of the poor and will severely limit the conscientious manufacturer in his valuable work, if it doesn’t completely stop him. {169}

The ruinous influence of the factory system began at an early day to attract general attention.  We have already alluded to the Apprentices’ Act of 1802.  Later, towards 1817, Robert Owen, p. 170then a manufacturer in New Lanark, in Scotland, afterwards founder of English Socialism, began to call the attention of the Government, by memorials and petitions, to the necessity of legislative guarantees for the health of the operatives, and especially of children.  The late Sir Robert Peel and other philanthropists united with him, and gradually secured the Factory Acts of 1818, 1825, and 1831, of which the first two were never enforced, and the last only here and there.  This law of 1831, based upon the motion of Sir J. C. Hobhouse, provided that in cotton mills no one under twenty-one should be employed between half-past seven at night and half-past five in the morning; and that in all factories young persons under eighteen should work no longer than twelve hours daily, and nine hours on Saturday.  But since operatives could not testify against their masters without being discharged, this law helped matters very little.  In the great cities, where the operatives were more restive, the larger manufacturers came to an agreement among themselves to obey the law; but even there, there were many who, like the employers in the country, did not trouble themselves about it.  Meanwhile, the demand for a ten hours’ law had become lively among the operatives; that is, for a law which should forbid all operatives under eighteen years of age to work longer than ten hours daily; the Trades Unions, by their agitation, made this demand general throughout the manufacturing population; the philanthropic section of the Tory party, then led by Michael Sadler, seized upon the plan, and brought it before Parliament.  Sadler obtained a parliamentary committee for the investigation of the factory system, and this committee reported in 1832.  Its report was emphatically partisan, composed by strong enemies of the factory system, for party ends.  Sadler permitted himself to be betrayed by his noble enthusiasm into the most distorted and erroneous statements, drew from his witnesses by the very form of his questions, answers which contained the truth, but truth in a perverted form.  The manufacturers themselves, incensed at a report which represented them as monsters, now demanded an official investigation; they knew that an exact report must, in this case, be advantageous to p. 171them; they knew that Whigs, genuine bourgeois, were at the helm, with whom they were upon good terms, whose principles were opposed to any restriction upon manufacture.  They obtained a commission, in due order, composed of Liberal bourgeois, whose report I have so often cited.  This comes somewhat nearer the truth than Sadler’s, but its deviations therefrom are in the opposite direction.  On every page it betrays sympathy with the manufacturers, distrust of the Sadler report, repugnance to the working-men agitating independently and the supporters of the Ten Hours’ Bill.  It nowhere recognises the right of the working-man to a life worthy of a human being, to independent activity, and opinions of his own.  It reproaches the operatives that in sustaining the Ten Hours’ Bill they thought, not of the children only, but of themselves as well; it calls the working-men engaged in the agitation demagogues, ill-intentioned, malicious, etc., is written, in short, on the side of the bourgeoisie; and still it cannot whitewash the manufacturers, and still it leaves such a mass of infamies upon the shoulders of the employers, that even after this report, the agitation for the Ten Hours’ Bill, the hatred against the manufacturers, and the committee’s severest epithets applied to them are all fully justified.  But there was the one difference, that whereas the Sadler report accuses the manufacturers of open, undisguised brutality, it now became evident that this brutality was chiefly carried on under the mask of civilisation and humanity.  Yet Dr. Hawkins, the medical commissioner for Lancashire, expresses himself decidedly in favour of the Ten Hours’ Bill in the opening lines of his report, and Commissioner Mackintosh explains that his own report does not contain the whole truth, because it is very difficult to induce the operatives to testify against their employers, and because the manufacturers, besides being forced into greater concessions towards their operatives by the excitement among the latter, are often prepared for the inspection of the factories, have them swept, the speed of the machinery reduced, etc.  In Lancashire especially they resorted to the device of bringing the overlookers of workrooms before the commissioners, and letting them testify as working-men to the humanity of the employers, the p. 172wholesome effects of the work, and the indifference, if not the hostility of the operatives, towards the Ten Hours’ Bill.  But these are not genuine working-men; they are deserters from their class, who have entered the service of the bourgeoisie for better pay, and fight in the interests of the capitalists against the workers.  Their interest is that of the capitalists, and they are, therefore, almost more hated by the workers than the manufacturers themselves.

The damaging effects of the factory system started to get a lot of attention pretty early on. We've already mentioned the Apprentices’ Act of 1802. Later, around 1817, Robert Owen, then a manufacturer in New Lanark, Scotland, who later became a key figure in English Socialism, began bringing the government's attention to the need for legal protections for the health of workers, especially children, through memorials and petitions. The late Sir Robert Peel and other philanthropists joined him, and they gradually pushed for the Factory Acts of 1818, 1825, and 1831, although the first two were never enforced, and the last one was only occasionally applied. The 1831 law, initiated by Sir J. C. Hobhouse, stated that no one under twenty-one could be employed in cotton mills between 7:30 PM and 5:30 AM, and that young workers under eighteen could not work more than twelve hours a day and nine hours on Saturdays. However, since workers couldn't testify against their employers without risking their jobs, this law didn’t do much to improve conditions. In larger cities, where workers were more active, many manufacturers agreed among themselves to follow the law, but in other areas, many employers ignored it. Meanwhile, there was a growing call among workers for a ten-hour workday law, which would prohibit anyone under eighteen from working more than ten hours daily. The Trades Unions spread this demand among the manufacturing workforce, and the more philanthropic members of the Tory party, led by Michael Sadler, took up the cause and presented it to Parliament. Sadler got a parliamentary committee to investigate the factory system, which reported back in 1832. This report was clearly biased, written by strong opponents of the factory system for political purposes. Sadler, driven by his passionate beliefs, allowed himself to be misled into making exaggerated and inaccurate claims, shaping the responses from his witnesses through his questioning, providing answers that revealed the truth but in a twisted way. The manufacturers, outraged by a report that portrayed them as monsters, then demanded an official investigation; they knew that an accurate report would likely benefit them, especially since the Whigs, who were in charge, were on good terms with them and did not support any restrictions on manufacturing. They got a commission comprised of liberal bourgeois members, whose report I’ve referenced many times. This report comes closer to the truth than Sadler’s, but it also strays in the opposite direction. It shows sympathy for the manufacturers, distrust of the Sadler report, and a negative view of working-class efforts for independence and support for the Ten Hours’ Bill. It does not acknowledge the workers' right to a decent life and the ability to act independently and express their opinions. It criticizes workers for considering their own needs alongside children’s when supporting the Ten Hours’ Bill, labeling those involved in the campaign as demagogues with ill intentions. Basically, it sided with the bourgeoisie; yet it couldn't exonerate the manufacturers, and it still left a lot of serious wrongs on the employers’ shoulders. Even after this report, calls for the Ten Hours’ Bill, animosity towards manufacturers, and the harsh criticisms of them from the committee are still completely justified. The notable difference, however, is that while the Sadler report accused manufacturers of blatant brutality, it now became clear that this brutality was mostly disguised under a facade of civility and compassion. Still, Dr. Hawkins, the medical commissioner for Lancashire, strongly supported the Ten Hours’ Bill in the opening lines of his report, and Commissioner Mackintosh acknowledged that his own report didn't fully capture the truth because it was hard to get workers to testify against their bosses. He noted that the manufacturers, pressured into making bigger concessions for their workers by rising tensions, often prepared for factory inspections by cleaning up their operations and reducing machine speeds. Especially in Lancashire, they would bring in overseers to testify as if they were workers, promoting the benevolence of their employers, the benefits of the work, and the workers’ indifference, if not outright opposition, to the Ten Hours’ Bill. However, these were not genuine workers; they were traitors from their class who had joined the ranks of the bourgeoisie for better pay and worked against the interests of their fellow workers. Their loyalty lay with the capitalists, making them almost more despised by the workers than the manufacturers themselves.

And yet this report suffices wholly to exhibit the most shameful recklessness of the manufacturing bourgeoisie towards its employees, the whole infamy of the industrial exploiting system in its full inhumanity.  Nothing is more revolting than to compare the long register of diseases and deformities engendered by overwork, in this report, with the cold, calculating political economy of the manufacturers, by which they try to prove that they, and with them all England, must go to ruin, if they should be forbidden to cripple so and so many children every year.  The language of Dr. Ure alone, which I have quoted, would be yet more revolting if it were not so preposterous.

And yet this report clearly shows the appalling carelessness of the manufacturing upper class towards its workers, highlighting the entire disgrace of the industrial exploitation system in all its cruelty. There's nothing more sickening than contrasting the extensive list of illnesses and disabilities caused by overwork in this report with the cold, calculated economic arguments of the manufacturers, who try to convince us that they, along with all of England, would face disaster if they were not allowed to harm a certain number of children each year. The words of Dr. Ure alone, which I've quoted, would be even more disgusting if they weren't so absurd.

The result of this report was the Factory Act of 1834, which forbade the employment of children under nine years of age (except in silk mills), limited the working-hours of children between 9-13 years to 48 per week, or 9 hours in any one day at the utmost; that of young persons from 14-18 years of age to 69 per week, or 12 on any one day as the maximum, provided for an hour and a half as the minimum interval for meals, and repeated the total prohibition of night-work for persons under eighteen years of age.  Compulsory school attendance two hours daily was prescribed for all children under fourteen years, and the manufacturer declared punishable in case of employing children without a certificate of age from the factory surgeon, and a certificate of school attendance from the teacher.  As recompense, the employer was permitted to withdraw one penny from the child’s weekly earnings to pay the teacher.  Further, surgeons and inspectors were appointed to visit the factories at all times, take testimony of operatives on oath, and enforce the law by prosecution before p. 173a Justice of the Peace.  This is the law against which Dr. Ure inveighs in such unmeasured terms!

The outcome of this report was the Factory Act of 1834, which prohibited the employment of children under nine years old (except in silk mills), limited the working hours of children aged 9-13 to a maximum of 48 hours per week or 9 hours in one day, and restricted young people aged 14-18 to 69 hours per week or 12 hours in one day at the most. It mandated at least an hour and a half for meal breaks and reinforced the complete ban on night work for anyone under eighteen. Additionally, all children under fourteen were required to attend school for two hours daily, and manufacturers faced penalties for employing children without an age certificate from the factory surgeon and a school attendance certificate from the teacher. As compensation, employers were allowed to deduct one penny from the child's weekly pay to cover the teacher's fee. Furthermore, surgeons and inspectors were assigned to regularly visit factories, take sworn testimony from workers, and enforce the law through prosecutions in front of a Justice of the Peace. This is the law that Dr. Ure harshly criticizes!

The consequence of this law, and especially of the appointment of inspectors, was the reduction of working-hours to an average of twelve to thirteen, and the superseding of children as far as possible.  Hereupon some of the most crying evils disappeared almost wholly.  Deformities arose now only in cases of weak constitution, and the effects of overwork became much less conspicuous.  Nevertheless, enough testimony remains to be found in the Factory Report, that the lesser evils, swelling of the ankles, weakness and pain in the legs, hips, and back, varicose veins, ulcers on the lower extremities, general weakness, especially of the pelvic region, nausea, want of appetite alternating with unnatural hunger, indigestion, hypochondria, affections of the chest in consequence of the dust and foul atmosphere of the factories, etc. etc., all occur among employees subject to the provisions of Sir J. C. Hobhouse’s law (of 1831), which prescribes twelve to thirteen hours as the maximum.  The reports from Glasgow and Manchester are especially worthy of attention in this respect.  These evils remained too, after the law of 1834, and continue to undermine the health of the working-class to this day.  Care has been taken to give the brutal profit-greed of the bourgeoisie a hypocritical, civilised form, to restrain the manufacturers through the arm of the law from too conspicuous villainies, and thus to give them a pretext for self-complacently parading their sham philanthropy.  That is all.  If a new commission were appointed to-day, it would find things pretty much as before.  As to the extemporised compulsory attendance at school, it remained wholly a dead letter, since the Government failed to provide good schools.  The manufacturers employed as teachers worn-out operatives, to whom they sent the children two hours daily, thus complying with the letter of the law; but the children learned nothing.  And even the reports of the factory inspectors, which are limited to the scope of the inspector’s duties, i.e., the enforcement of the Factory Act, give data enough to justify the conclusion that the old evils inevitably remain.  Inspectors Horner and Saunders, in their reports for October and p. 174December, 1844, state that, in a number of branches in which the employment of children can be dispensed with or superseded by that of adults, the working-day is still fourteen to sixteen hours, or even longer.  Among the operatives in these branches they found numbers of young people who had just outgrown the provisions of the law.  Many employers disregard the law, shorten the meal times, work children longer than is permitted, and risk prosecution, knowing that the possible fines are trifling in comparison with the certain profits derivable from the offence.  Just at present especially, while business is exceptionally brisk, they are under great temptation in this respect.

The outcome of this law, particularly with the appointment of inspectors, led to a reduction of working hours to around twelve to thirteen on average, and aimed to limit child labor as much as possible. As a result, some of the most glaring issues almost completely vanished. Deformities now mostly occurred only in those with weak constitutions, and the signs of overwork became much less obvious. Still, there's enough evidence in the Factory Report to show that minor issues, like swollen ankles, leg, hip, and back pain, varicose veins, ulcers on the lower limbs, general weakness (especially in the pelvic area), nausea, alternating lack of appetite and unnatural hunger, indigestion, hypochondria, and chest issues caused by dust and poor air quality in the factories, occurred among workers under the rules of Sir J. C. Hobhouse’s law (of 1831), which set twelve to thirteen hours as the maximum. The reports from Glasgow and Manchester deserve special attention in this regard. These problems persisted even after the law of 1834 and continue to affect the health of the working class today. Efforts have been made to present the brutal profit-driven motives of the bourgeoisie in a hypocritical, civilized way, restraining manufacturers through the law from overtly horrendous actions, allowing them to superficially display their fake philanthropy. That's about it. If a new commission were formed today, it would find conditions largely unchanged. As for the makeshift mandatory school attendance, it was essentially ineffective since the Government failed to establish quality schools. Manufacturers employed exhausted workers as teachers, sending the children for just two hours a day, thus adhering to the law's letter while ensuring the kids learned nothing. Even the factory inspectors' reports, which focus solely on their duties to enforce the Factory Act, provide enough information to support the idea that the old problems remain. Inspectors Horner and Saunders, in their reports for October and December 1844, noted that in several sectors where child labor could be replaced by adult workers, the workday still lasted fourteen to sixteen hours or even longer. They found many young workers in those sectors who had just aged out of the law’s protections. Many employers ignore the law, cut meal breaks, work children longer than allowed, and risk prosecution, knowing that potential fines are insignificant compared to the guaranteed profits from their violations. This is particularly true right now, while business is unusually booming, making it tempting for them to exploit these situations.

Meanwhile the agitation for the Ten Hours’ Bill by no means died out among the operatives; in 1839 it was under full headway once more, and Sadler’s place, he having died, was filled in the House of Commons by Lord Ashley {174} and Richard Oastler, both Tories.  Oastler especially, who carried on a constant agitation in the factory districts, and had been active in the same way during Sadler’s life, was the particular favourite of the working-men.  They called him their “good old king,” “the king of the factory children,” and there is not a child in the factory districts that does not know and revere him, that does not join the procession which moves to welcome him when he enters a town.  Oastler vigorously opposed the New Poor Law also, and was therefore imprisoned for debt by a Mr. Thornley, on whose estate he was employed as agent, and to whom he owed money.  The Whigs offered repeatedly to pay his debt and confer other favours upon him if he would only give up his agitation against the Poor Law.  But in vain; he remained in prison, whence he published his Fleet Papers against the factory system and the Poor Law.

Meanwhile, the push for the Ten Hours’ Bill didn't fade away among the workers; in 1839, it was picking up steam again, and after Sadler's death, Lord Ashley {174} and Richard Oastler, both Tories, took his place in the House of Commons. Oastler, in particular, was actively campaigning in the factory areas and had been involved in similar efforts during Sadler’s life. He was very popular among the workers, who called him their “good old king” and “the king of the factory children.” Every child in the factory districts knows and admires him and joins the procession to welcome him whenever he arrives in a town. Oastler also strongly opposed the New Poor Law, which led to him being imprisoned for debt by Mr. Thornley, his employer and the person to whom he owed money. The Whigs repeatedly offered to pay off his debt and provide other benefits if he would just stop his campaign against the Poor Law. But it was all for nothing; he stayed in prison, where he published his Fleet Papers against the factory system and the Poor Law.

The Tory Government of 1841 turned its attention once more to the Factory Acts.  The Home Secretary, Sir James Graham, proposed, in 1843, a bill restricting the working-hours of children to six and one-half, and making the enactments for compulsory school attendance more effective; the principal point in this connection being a provision for better schools.  This bill was, however, p. 175wrecked by the jealousy of the dissenters; for, although compulsory religious instruction was not extended to the children of dissenters, the schools provided for were to be placed under the general supervision of the Established Church, and the Bible made the general reading-book; religion being thus made the foundation of all instruction, whence the dissenters felt themselves threatened.  The manufacturers and the Liberals generally united with them, the working-men were divided by the Church question, and therefore inactive.  The opponents of the bill, though outweighed in the great manufacturing towns, such as Salford and Stockport, and able in others, such as Manchester, to attack certain of its points only, for fear of the working-men, collected nevertheless nearly two million signatures for a petition against it, and Graham allowed himself to be so far intimidated as to withdraw the whole bill.  The next year he omitted the school clauses, and proposed that, instead of the previous provisions, children between eight and thirteen years should be restricted to six and one-half hours, and so employed as to have either the whole morning or the whole afternoon free; that young people between thirteen and eighteen years, and all females, should be limited to twelve hours; and that the hitherto frequent evasions of the law should be prevented.  Hardly had he proposed this bill, when the ten hours’ agitation was begun again more vigorously than ever.  Oastler had just then regained his liberty; a number of his friends and a collection among the workers had paid his debt, and he threw himself into the movement with all his might.  The defenders of the Ten Hours’ Bill in the House of Commons had increased in numbers, the masses of petitions supporting it which poured in from all sides brought them allies, and on March 19th, 1844, Lord Ashley carried, with a majority of 179 to 170, a resolution that the word “Night” in the Factory Act should express the time from six at night to six in the morning, whereby the prohibition of night-work came to mean the limitation of working-hours to twelve, including free hours, or ten hours of actual work a day.  But the ministry did not agree to this.  Sir James Graham began to threaten resignation from the Cabinet, p. 176and at the next vote on the bill the House rejected by a small majority both ten and twelve hours!  Graham and Peel now announced that they should introduce a new bill, and that if this failed to pass they should resign.  The new bill was exactly the old Twelve Hours’ Bill with some changes of form, and the same House of Commons which had rejected the principal points of this bill in March, now swallowed it whole.  The reason of this was that most of the supporters of the Ten Hours’ Bill were Tories who let fall the bill rather than the ministry; but be the motives what they may, the House of Commons by its votes upon this subject, each vote reversing the last, has brought itself into the greatest contempt among all the workers, and proved most brilliantly the Chartists’ assertion of the necessity of its reform.  Three members, who had formerly voted against the ministry, afterwards voted for it and rescued it.  In all the divisions, the bulk of the opposition voted for and the bulk of its own party against the ministry. {176}  The foregoing propositions of Graham touching the employment of children six and one-half and of all other operatives twelve hours are now legislative provisions, and by them and by the limitation of overwork for making up time lost through breakdown of machinery or insufficient water-power by reason of frost or drought, a working-day of more than twelve hours has been made well-nigh impossible.  There remains, however, no doubt that, in a very short time, the Ten Hours’ Bill will really be adopted.  The manufacturers are naturally all against it, there are perhaps not ten who are for it; they have used every honourable and dishonourable means against this dreaded measure, but with no other result than that of drawing down upon them the ever deepening hatred of the working-men.  The bill will pass.  What the working-men will do they can do, and that they will have this bill they proved last spring.  The economic arguments of the manufacturers that a Ten Hours’ Bill would increase the cost of production and incapacitate the English producers for p. 177competition in foreign markets, and that wages must fall, are all half true; but they prove nothing except this, that the industrial greatness of England can be maintained only through the barbarous treatment of the operatives, the destruction of their health, the social, physical, and mental decay of whole generations.  Naturally, if the Ten Hours’ Bill were a final measure, it must ruin England; but since it must inevitably bring with it other measures which must draw England into a path wholly different from that hitherto followed, it can only prove an advance.

The Tory Government of 1841 once again focused on the Factory Acts. The Home Secretary, Sir James Graham, suggested a bill in 1843 that limited the working hours for children to six and a half hours and aimed to strengthen the laws on mandatory school attendance, notably by providing better schools. However, this bill was sabotaged by the dissenters' resentment; although compulsory religious instruction wasn't extended to dissenting children, the schools were to be supervised by the Established Church, with the Bible serving as the primary reading material. This made religion the foundation of all education, which led the dissenters to feel threatened. Manufacturers and Liberals teamed up with them, while the working men were split on the church issue, leaving them inactive. The bill's opponents, despite being in the minority in major manufacturing cities like Salford and Stockport, and only being able to criticize certain aspects of the bill in others like Manchester for fear of the workers, gathered nearly two million signatures for a petition against it. Consequently, Graham felt intimidated enough to withdraw the entire bill. The following year, he removed the school-related clauses and proposed that children aged eight to thirteen be limited to six and a half hours of work, with either the whole morning or afternoon free; that young people aged thirteen to eighteen, and all females, should work no more than twelve hours; and that loopholes in the law should be closed. Hardly had he introduced this bill when the ten hours' campaign reignited more vigorously than ever. Oastler had just regained his freedom; his friends and a fundraising effort by workers had paid his debt, and he threw himself into the movement with full energy. Supporters of the Ten Hours’ Bill in the House of Commons grew in number, and the flood of petitions backing it drew in allies. On March 19th, 1844, Lord Ashley managed to pass a resolution with a majority of 179 to 170, stating that "Night" in the Factory Act would mean from six at night to six in the morning, effectively meaning that working hours would be capped at twelve, including free time, or ten hours of actual work per day. However, the ministry opposed this. Sir James Graham started threatening to resign from the Cabinet, and in the next vote on the bill, the House narrowly rejected both the ten and twelve-hour proposals! Graham and Peel announced they would introduce a new bill and would resign if it didn't pass. The new bill was essentially the old Twelve Hours’ Bill with some minor changes, and the same House of Commons that had previously rejected the key elements of this bill in March, now accepted it completely. This happened because most supporters of the Ten Hours’ Bill were Tories who preferred to let the bill fall rather than compromise the ministry; regardless of motivation, the House of Commons, through its contradictory votes on this topic, found itself in disgrace among all workers, thereby confirming the Chartists' assertion about the need for reform. Three members who once voted against the ministry later voted in its favor, saving it. In all the voting, most opposition members voted for it while the majority of its own party members voted against it. The proposals from Graham regarding a six and a half hour workday for children and a twelve hour workday for all other workers are now established legislation, and due to these laws and restrictions on excessive work to account for downtime from machinery breakdowns or insufficient water power caused by frost or drought, working days longer than twelve hours have become nearly impossible. Nevertheless, it is clear that very soon, the Ten Hours’ Bill will truly be enacted. The manufacturers are overwhelmingly against it, with perhaps only a handful in favor; they have used every means, both honorable and dishonorable, against this dreaded legislation, but this has only resulted in growing resentment from the working class. The bill will pass. The workers can enforce their demands, as they demonstrated last spring. The manufacturers' economic arguments that a Ten Hours’ Bill would raise production costs and render English producers incapable of competing internationally, leading to wage drops, are all partially true; but they only indicate that England's industrial strength relies on the brutal treatment of workers, destroying their health and causing social, physical, and mental decline over generations. Naturally, if the Ten Hours’ Bill were to be the last measure, it would spell disaster for England; but since it will inevitably lead to further reform, pulling England onto a completely different path, it can only be seen as progress.

Let us turn to another side of the factory system which cannot be remedied by legislative provisions so easily as the diseases now engendered by it.  We have already alluded in a general way to the nature of the employment, and enough in detail to be able to draw certain inferences from the facts given.  The supervision of machinery, the joining of broken threads, is no activity which claims the operative’s thinking powers, yet it is of a sort which prevents him from occupying his mind with other things.  We have seen, too, that this work affords the muscles no opportunity for physical activity.  Thus it is, properly speaking, not work, but tedium, the most deadening, wearing process conceivable.  The operative is condemned to let his physical and mental powers decay in this utter monotony, it is his mission to be bored every day and all day long from his eighth year.  Moreover, he must not take a moment’s rest; the engine moves unceasingly; the wheels, the straps, the spindles hum and rattle in his ears without a pause, and if he tries to snatch one instant, there is the overlooker at his back with the book of fines.  This condemnation to be buried alive in the mill, to give constant attention to the tireless machine is felt as the keenest torture by the operatives, and its action upon mind and body is in the long run stunting in the highest degree.  There is no better means of inducing stupefaction than a period of factory work, and if the operatives have, nevertheless, not only rescued their intelligence, but cultivated and sharpened it more than other working-men, they have found this possible only in rebellion against their fate and against the bourgeoisie, the sole subject on which under all circumstances p. 178they can think and feel while at work.  Or, if this indignation against the bourgeoisie does not become the supreme passion of the working-man, the inevitable consequence is drunkenness and all that is generally called demoralisation.  The physical enervation and the sickness, universal in consequence of the factory system, were enough to induce Commissioner Hawkins to attribute this demoralisation thereto as inevitable; how much more when mental lassitude is added to them, and when the influences already mentioned which tempt every working-man to demoralisation, make themselves felt here too!  There is no cause for surprise, therefore, that in the manufacturing towns especially, drunkenness and sexual excesses have reached the pitch which I have already described. {178}

Let’s look at another aspect of the factory system that can’t be easily fixed by laws, unlike the issues it creates. We’ve already touched on the nature of the work in a general way and provided enough details to draw some conclusions from the facts presented. Monitoring machines and attaching broken threads doesn't require much thought from the worker, yet it keeps him from focusing on other things. We’ve also noted that this type of work gives the muscles no chance for physical activity. So, it’s not really work; it’s boredom, the most draining and soul-crushing process imaginable. The worker is forced to let his physical and mental abilities fade away in this relentless monotony, spending every day from the age of eight in a state of boredom. Additionally, he doesn't get a moment’s rest; the machine keeps running constantly; the wheels, belts, and spindles make noise in his ears without stopping, and if he tries to take a break, the supervisor is right there with the book of fines. This sentence of being buried alive in the factory, having to focus constantly on the unyielding machine, is experienced as the worst kind of torture by workers, and its long-term effects on both mind and body are extremely stunting. Working in a factory is one of the most effective ways to induce numbness, and if workers have managed to maintain and even sharpen their intelligence more than other laborers, it’s only due to their resistance against their fate and the bourgeoisie, the only topic they can think about while working. If this anger towards the bourgeoisie doesn’t become the overriding passion for the worker, the result is often alcoholism and what’s commonly referred to as moral decline. The physical exhaustion and sickness, widespread due to the factory system, prompted Commissioner Hawkins to conclude that this moral decline was inevitable; how much worse is it when mental fatigue is added, along with other factors that lead every worker towards demoralization? It’s no surprise, then, that in manufacturing towns especially, alcoholism and sexual misconduct have reached the alarming levels I’ve already described. {178}

Further, the slavery in which the bourgeoisie holds the proletariat chained, is nowhere more conspicuous than in the factory system.  Here ends all freedom in law and in fact.  The operative must be in the mill at half-past five in the morning; if he comes a couple of minutes too late, he is fined; if he comes ten minutes too late, he is not let in until breakfast is over, and a quarter of the day’s wages is withheld, though he loses only two and one-half hours’ work out of twelve.  He must eat, drink, and sleep at command.  For satisfying the most imperative needs, he is vouchsafed the least possible time absolutely required by them.  Whether his dwelling is a half-hour or a whole one removed from p. 179the factory does not concern his employer.  The despotic bell calls him from his bed, his breakfast, his dinner.

Additionally, the way the bourgeoisie keeps the proletariat enslaved is most clearly seen in the factory system. Here, all freedom, both legally and in practice, comes to an end. Workers must be at the mill by 5:30 a.m.; if they arrive just a couple minutes late, they face fines. If they are ten minutes late, they can't enter until breakfast is over, and they lose a quarter of their daily wages, even though they’ve only missed two and a half hours of work out of twelve. They must eat, drink, and sleep on demand. For meeting their basic needs, they are given the minimum necessary time. Whether their home is a half-hour or a full hour away from the factory is irrelevant to their employer. A tyrannical bell summons them from their bed, breakfast, or dinner.

What a time he has of it, too, inside the factory!  Here the employer is absolute law-giver; he makes regulations at will, changes and adds to his codex at pleasure, and even, if he inserts the craziest stuff, the courts say to the working-man: “You were your own master, no one forced you to agree to such a contract if you did not wish to; but now, when you have freely entered into it, you must be bound by it.”  And so the working-man only gets into the bargain the mockery of the Justice of the Peace who is a bourgeois himself, and of the law which is made by the bourgeoisie.  Such decisions have been given often enough.  In October, 1844, the operatives of Kennedy’s mill, in Manchester struck.  Kennedy prosecuted them on the strength of a regulation placarded in the mill, that at no time more than two operatives in one room may quit work at once.  And the court decided in his favour, giving the working-men the explanation cited above. {179a}  And such rules as these usually are!  For instance: 1.  The doors are closed ten minutes after work begins, and thereafter no one is admitted until the breakfast hour; whoever is absent during this time forfeits 3d. per loom. 2.  Every power-loom weaver detected absenting himself at another time, while the machinery is in motion, forfeits for each hour and each loom, 3d.  Every person who leaves the room during working-hours, without obtaining permission from the overlooker, forfeits 3d. 3.  Weavers who fail to supply themselves with scissors forfeit, per day, 1d. 4.  All broken shuttles, brushes, oil-cans, wheels, window panes, etc., must be paid for by the weaver. 5.  No weaver to stop work without giving a week’s notice.  The manufacturer may dismiss any employee without notice for bad work or improper behaviour. 6.  Every operative detected speaking to another, singing or whistling, will be fined 6d.; for leaving his place during working-hours, 6d. {179b}  Another copy of factory regulations lies before me, according to which every operative who p. 180comes three minutes too late, forfeits the wages for a quarter of an hour, and every one who comes twenty minutes too late, for a quarter of a day.  Every one who remains absent until breakfast forfeits a shilling on Monday, and sixpence every other day of the week, etc, etc.  This last is the regulation of the Phœnix Works in Jersey Street, Manchester.  It may be said that such rules are necessary in a great, complicated factory, in order to insure the harmonious working of the different parts; it may be asserted that such a severe discipline is as necessary here as in an army.  This may be so, but what sort of a social order is it which cannot be maintained without such shameful tyranny?  Either the end sanctifies the means, or the inference of the badness of the end from the badness of the means is justified.  Every one who has served as a soldier knows what it is to be subjected even for a short time to military discipline.  But these operatives are condemned from their ninth year to their death to live under the sword, physically and mentally.  They are worse slaves than the negroes in America, for they are more sharply watched, and yet it is demanded of them that they shall live like human beings, shall think and feel like men!  Verily, this they can do only under glowing hatred towards their oppressors, and towards that order of things which place them in such a position, which degrades them to machines.  But it is far more shameful yet, that according to the universal testimony of the operatives, numbers of manufacturers collect the fines imposed upon the operatives with the most heartless severity, and for the purpose of piling up extra profits out of the farthings thus extorted from the impoverished proletarians.  Leach asserts, too, that the operatives often find the factory clock moved forward a quarter of an hour and the doors shut, while the clerk moves about with the fines-book inside, noting the many names of the absentees.  Leach claims to have counted ninety-five operatives thus shut out, standing before a factory, whose clock was a quarter of an hour slower than the town clocks at night, and a quarter of an hour faster in the morning.  The Factory Report relates similar facts.  In one factory the clock was set back during working-hours, so that the operatives worked overtime without extra pay; in another, p. 181a whole quarter of an hour overtime was worked; in a third, there were two clocks, an ordinary one and a machine clock, which registered the revolutions of the main shaft; if the machinery went slowly, working-hours were measured by the machine clock until the number of revolutions due in twelve hours was reached; if work went well, so that the number was reached before the usual working-hours were ended, the operatives were forced to toil on to the end of the twelfth hour.  The witness adds that he had known girls who had good work, and who had worked overtime, who, nevertheless, betook themselves to a life of prostitution rather than submit to this tyranny. {181a}  To return to the fines, Leach relates having repeatedly seen women in the last period of pregnancy fined 6d. for the offence of sitting down a moment to rest.  Fines for bad work are wholly arbitrary; the goods are examined in the wareroom, and the supervisor charges the fines upon a list without even summoning the operative, who only learns that he has been fined when the overlooker pays his wages, and the goods have perhaps been sold, or certainly been placed beyond his reach.  Leach has in his possession such a fines list, ten feet long, and amounting to £35 17s. 10d.  He relates that in the factory where this list was made, a new supervisor was dismissed for fining too little, and so bringing in five pounds too little weekly. {181b}  And I repeat that I know Leach to be a thoroughly trustworthy man incapable of a falsehood.

What a time he has inside the factory! Here, the employer is the absolute authority; he creates rules as he pleases, modifies his regulations at will, and even if he includes the most ridiculous clauses, the courts tell the workers: “You were free to agree to this contract; no one forced you to accept it, but now that you've willingly entered into it, you must abide by it.” So the worker ends up with nothing but the mockery of the Justice of the Peace, who is a bourgeois himself, and the laws written by the bourgeoisie. Such rulings have been issued often enough. In October 1844, the workers at Kennedy’s mill in Manchester went on strike. Kennedy took them to court based on a rule posted in the mill that no more than two workers can leave work at the same time. The court ruled in his favor, giving the explanation stated above. {179a} And these rules are typical! For example: 1. The doors shut ten minutes after work starts, and no one is allowed in until breakfast; anyone absent during this time loses 3d. per loom. 2. Any power-loom weaver caught absenting himself at other times while the machines are running loses 3d. per hour and per loom. Anyone who leaves the room during work hours without permission from the supervisor loses 3d. 3. Weavers who don’t bring their own scissors lose 1d. per day. 4. Weavers must pay for broken shuttles, brushes, oil cans, wheels, window panes, etc. 5. No weaver can stop work without giving a week’s notice. The manufacturer can fire any worker without notice for poor work or bad behavior. 6. Any worker caught talking to someone else, singing, or whistling will be fined 6d.; for leaving their place during work hours, 6d. {179b} Another set of factory rules is in front of me, stating that any worker who is three minutes late loses pay for a quarter of an hour, and anyone who is twenty minutes late loses pay for a quarter of a day. Anyone who stays absent until breakfast loses a shilling on Monday and sixpence on the other days, etc., etc. This last set comes from the Phœnix Works in Jersey Street, Manchester. It might be said that such rules are necessary in a large, complex factory to ensure smooth operation; it might be argued that strict discipline is as essential here as it is in an army. This could be true, but what kind of social order requires such disgraceful tyranny to function? Either the end justifies the means, or it’s valid to infer the badness of the end from the badness of the means. Anyone who has been a soldier knows what it's like to be under military discipline, even for a short time. But these workers are condemned to live under this oppression from their ninth year until death, both physically and mentally. They are worse off than enslaved people in America because they are monitored more closely, yet they are expected to live and think like human beings! Truly, they can only do this with intense hatred towards their oppressors and the system that degrades them to mere machines. It’s even more shameful that, according to the consistent testimony of the workers, many manufacturers collect fines from employees with ruthless severity, solely to boost their profits from the few pennies extracted from the impoverished workers. Leach also claims that workers often find the factory clock set ahead by fifteen minutes and the doors locked, while the clerk walks around with the fines book, recording the names of those absent. Leach says he counted ninety-five workers locked out, standing outside a factory whose clock was fifteen minutes slower than the town clocks at night and fifteen minutes faster in the morning. The Factory Report mentions similar cases. In one factory, the clock was set back during work hours so the workers ended up working overtime without extra pay; in another, a full quarter of an hour of overtime was required; in a third, two clocks were used, a normal one and a machine clock that recorded the main shaft's revolutions; if the machinery ran slowly, working hours were tracked by the machine clock until the required revolutions in twelve hours were completed; if work went well, and the number was reached before the usual end of the working hours, the workers were forced to continue until the end of the twelfth hour. A witness states that he knew girls who, despite working well and taking on overtime, turned to prostitution rather than endure this tyranny. {181a} Returning to the fines, Leach recounts seeing women in the late stages of pregnancy fined 6d. for sitting down for a moment to rest. Fines for poor work are completely arbitrary; items are inspected in the storeroom, and the supervisor records fines without even calling in the worker, who only finds out about the fine when the overlooker pays them, and by then the goods may have already been sold or definitely placed out of their reach. Leach has a fines list, ten feet long, totaling £35 17s. 10d. He tells of a factory where a new supervisor was fired for imposing too few fines, resulting in a loss of five pounds weekly. {181b} And I repeat that I know Leach is a completely trustworthy person incapable of lying.

But the operative is his employer’s slave in still other respects.  If his wife or daughter finds favour in the eyes of the master, a command, a hint suffices, and she must place herself at his disposal.  When the employer wishes to supply with signatures a petition in favour of bourgeois interests, he need only send it to his mill.  If he wishes to decide a Parliamentary election, he sends his enfranchised operatives in rank and file to the polls, and they vote for the bourgeois candidate whether they will or no.  If he desires a majority in a public meeting, he dismisses them half-an-hour earlier than usual, and secures them places close to the platform, where he can watch them to his satisfaction.

But the worker is essentially their employer’s slave in other ways as well. If his wife or daughter catches the employer's eye, a simple command or suggestion is all it takes, and she has to make herself available. When the employer wants to gather signatures for a petition that supports middle-class interests, he just sends it to his factory. If he wants to influence a Parliamentary election, he sends his eligible workers in an organized line to vote, and they’re told to vote for the chosen candidate, whether they want to or not. If he wants to ensure a majority at a public meeting, he lets them leave work half an hour early and makes sure they have seats close to the platform, where he can keep an eye on them.

p. 182Two further arrangements contribute especially to force the operative under the dominion of the manufacturer; the Truck system and the Cottage system.  The truck system, the payment of the operatives in goods, was formerly universal in England.  The manufacturer opens a shop, “for the convenience of the operatives, and to protect them from the high prices of the petty dealers.”  Here goods of all sorts are sold to them on credit; and to keep the operatives from going to the shops where they could get their goods more cheaply—the “Tommy shops” usually charging twenty-five to thirty per cent. more than others—wages are paid in requisitions on the shop instead of money.  The general indignation against this infamous system led to the passage of the Truck Act in 1831, by which, for most employees, payment in truck orders was declared void and illegal, and was made punishable by fine; but, like most other English laws, this has been enforced only here and there.  In the towns it is carried out comparatively efficiently; but in the country, the truck system, disguised or undisguised, flourishes.  In the town of Leicester, too, it is very common.  There lie before me nearly a dozen convictions for this offence, dating from the period between November, 1843, and June, 1844, and reported, in part, in the Manchester Guardian and, in part, in the Northern Star.  The system is, of course, less openly carried on at present; wages are usually paid in cash, but the employer still has means enough at command to force him to purchase his wares in the truck shop and nowhere else.  Hence it is difficult to combat the truck system, because it can now be carried on under cover of the law, provided only that the operative receives his wages in money.  The Northern Star of April 27th, 1843, publishes a letter from an operative of Holmfirth, near Huddersfield, in Yorkshire, which refers to a manufacturer of the name of Bowers, as follows (retranslated from the German):

p. 182Two additional systems particularly force workers under the control of the manufacturer: the Truck system and the Cottage system. The truck system, where workers are paid in goods instead of cash, was once widespread in England. The manufacturer opens a shop “for the convenience of the workers and to protect them from the high prices of the small dealers.” Here, all kinds of goods are sold to them on credit; to prevent workers from going to shops where they could buy goods more cheaply—the "Tommy shops," which typically charge twenty-five to thirty percent more than others—wages are given in vouchers for the shop instead of cash. The widespread outrage against this notorious system led to the Truck Act in 1831, which declared that for most employees, payment in truck orders was invalid and illegal, and punishable by fines; however, like many other English laws, this has been enforced inconsistently. In towns, it is enforced relatively effectively; but in the countryside, the truck system, whether disguised or not, continues to thrive. In the town of Leicester, it's also quite common. I have nearly a dozen convictions for this offense before me, dating from November 1843 to June 1844, partially reported in the Manchester Guardian and partially in the Northern Star. The system is, of course, less overtly practiced now; wages are usually paid in cash, but the employer still has enough power to force workers to buy their goods only from the truck shop. Therefore, it's challenging to fight the truck system, as it can now operate within the law as long as the worker is paid in money. The Northern Star from April 27, 1843, published a letter from a worker in Holmfirth, near Huddersfield in Yorkshire, referring to a manufacturer named Bowers, as follows (retranslated from the German):

“It is very strange to think that the accursed truck system should exist to such an extent as it does in Holmfirth, and nobody be found who has the pluck to make the manufacturer stop it.  There are here a great many honest hand-weavers suffering through this damned system; here is one sample from a good many out of p. 183the noble-hearted Free Trade Clique.  There is a manufacturer who has upon himself the curses of the whole district on account of his infamous conduct towards his poor weavers; if they have got a piece ready which comes to 34 or 36 shillings, he gives them 20s. in money and the rest in cloth or goods, and 40 to 50 per cent. dearer than at the other shops, and often enough the goods are rotten into the bargain.  But, what says the Free Trade Mercury, the Leeds Mercury?  They are not bound to take them; they can please themselves.  Oh, yes, but they must take them or else starve.  If they ask for another 20s. in money, they must wait eight or fourteen days for a warp; but if they take the 20s. and the goods, then there is always a warp ready for them.  And that is Free Trade.  Lord Brougham said we ought to put by something in our young days, so that we need not go to the parish when we are old.  Well, are we to put by the rotten goods?  If this did not come from a lord, one would say his brains were as rotten as the goods that our work is paid in.  When the unstamped papers came out “illegally,” there was a lot of them to report it to the police in Holmfirth, the Blythes, the Edwards, etc.; but where are they now?  But this is different.  Our truck manufacturer belongs to the pious Free Trade lot; he goes to church twice every Sunday, and repeats devotedly after the parson: ‘We have left undone the things we ought to have done, and we have done the things we ought not to have done, and there is no good in us; but, good Lord, deliver us.’  Yes, deliver us till to-morrow, and we will pay our weavers again in rotten goods.”

“It’s really strange to think that the terrible truck system is so common in Holmfirth, yet no one seems to have the courage to make the manufacturer stop it. Many honest hand-weavers are suffering because of this terrible system; here’s just one example from many out of p. 183the noble-hearted Free Trade Clique. There’s a manufacturer who has the anger of the entire district on him for his awful treatment of his poor weavers; if they complete a piece worth 34 or 36 shillings, he pays them 20s. in cash and the rest in cloth or goods, which are 40 to 50 percent more expensive than at other stores, and often the quality is terrible too. But what do the Free Trade Mercury and the Leeds Mercury say? They claim the weavers aren’t forced to take them; they can make their own choices. Oh, sure, but they have to accept them or else they’ll starve. If they ask for another 20s. in cash, they have to wait eight to fourteen days for a warp; but if they take the 20s. and the goods, there’s always a warp ready for them. And that’s Free Trade. Lord Brougham said we should save a little in our youth so we wouldn’t have to depend on the parish when we’re old. Well, are we supposed to save these terrible goods? If this didn’t come from a lord, one might think his thinking is as rotten as the goods we’re given. When the unstamped papers came out “illegally,” a lot of people reported it to the police in Holmfirth, the Blythes, the Edwards, etc.; but where are they now? But this situation is different. Our truck manufacturer is part of the pious Free Trade crowd; he goes to church twice every Sunday and repeats after the parson: ‘We have left undone the things we ought to have done, and we have done the things we ought not to have done, and there is no good in us; but, good Lord, deliver us.’ Yes, deliver us until tomorrow, and we will pay our weavers again in terrible goods.”

The Cottage system looks much more innocent and arose in a much more harmless way, though it has the same enslaving influence upon the employee.  In the neighbourhood of the mills in the country, there is often a lack of dwelling accommodation for the operatives.  The manufacturer is frequently obliged to build such dwellings and does so gladly, as they yield great advantages, besides the interest upon the capital invested.  If any owner of working-men’s dwellings averages about six per cent. on his invested capital, it is safe to calculate that the manufacturer’s cottages yield twice this rate; for so long as his factory does not stand perfectly idle he is sure of occupants, and of occupants who pay punctually.  He is therefore spared the two chief disadvantages under which other house-owners labour; his cottages never stand p. 184empty, and he runs no risk.  But the rent of the cottages is as high as though these disadvantages were in full force, and by obtaining the same rent as the ordinary house-owner, the manufacturer, at cost of the operatives, makes a brilliant investment at twelve to fourteen per cent.  For it is clearly unjust that he should make twice as much profit as other competing house-owners, who at the same time are excluded from competing with him.  But it implies a double wrong, when he draws his fixed profit from the pockets of the non-possessing class, which must consider the expenditure of every penny.  He is used to that, however, he whose whole wealth is gained at the cost of his employees.  But this injustice becomes an infamy when the manufacturer, as often happens, forces his operatives, who must occupy his houses on pain of dismissal, to pay a higher rent than the ordinary one, or even to pay rent for houses in which they do not live!  The Halifax Guardian, quoted by the Liberal Sun, asserts that hundreds of operatives in Ashton-under-Lyne, Oldham, and Rochdale, etc., are forced by their employers to pay house-rent whether they occupy the house or not. {184}  The cottage system is universal in the country districts; it has created whole villages, and the manufacturer usually has little or no competition against his houses, so that he can fix his price regardless of any market rate, indeed at his pleasure.  And what power does the cottage system give the employer over his operatives in disagreements between master and men?  If the latter strike, he need only give them notice to quit his premises, and the notice need only be a week; after that time the operative is not only without bread but without a shelter, a vagabond at the mercy of the law which sends him, without fail, to the treadmill.

The cottage system seems much more innocent and originated in a less harmful way, but it has the same enslaving influence on the worker. In areas near the mills, there's often a shortage of housing for the workers. Manufacturers frequently have to build these homes and do so willingly, as they provide significant benefits in addition to the interest on the invested capital. If the owner of working-class housing averages around six percent on his invested capital, it's safe to say that the manufacturer's cottages yield double that rate; as long as his factory isn’t completely idle, he can count on tenants who pay on time. Thus, he avoids the two main disadvantages faced by other landlords: his cottages never sit empty, and he faces no risks. However, the rent for these cottages is as high as if those disadvantages did exist, and by charging the same rent as regular landlords, the manufacturer, at the expense of the workers, makes a significant profit of twelve to fourteen percent. It’s clearly unfair that he should earn twice as much as other competing landlords, who are also excluded from competing with him. It represents a double injustice when he takes his guaranteed profit from those who have nothing, making them account for every penny spent. He’s accustomed to this because his entire wealth is built at the expense of his workers. But this injustice becomes disgraceful when the manufacturer, as often happens, forces his workers—who have no choice but to live in his houses or face dismissal—to pay higher rents than average or even rent for houses they don’t occupy! The Halifax Guardian, cited by the Liberal Sun, claims that hundreds of workers in Ashton-under-Lyne, Oldham, and Rochdale are coerced by their employers into paying rent regardless of whether they live in the house or not. {184} The cottage system is widespread in rural areas; it has formed entire villages, and manufacturers typically have little or no competition for their houses, allowing them to set prices without regard to market rates—essentially, at their discretion. And what power does the cottage system give the employer over his workers during disputes? If the workers go on strike, he simply has to serve them notice to leave his property, and that notice can be as short as a week; after that, the worker is not only without income but also without a home, becoming a vagrant at the mercy of a legal system that will inevitably send him to the treadmill.

Such is the factory system sketched as fully as my space permits, and with as little partisan spirit as the heroic deeds of the bourgeoisie against the defenceless workers permit—deeds to wards which it is impossible to remain indifferent, towards which indifference were a crime.  Let us compare the condition of the free Englishman of 1845 with the Saxon serf under the lash of p. 185the Norman barons of 1145.  The serf was glebæ adscriptus, bound to the soil, so is the free working-man through the cottage system.  The serf owed his master the jus primæ noctis, the right of the first night—the free working-man must, on demand, surrender to his master not only that, but the right of every night.  The serf could acquire no property; everything that he gained, his master could take from him; the free working-man has no property, can gain none by reason of the pressure of competition, and what even the Norman baron did not do, the modern manufacturer does.  Through the truck system, he assumes every day the administration in detail of the things which the worker requires for his immediate necessities.  The relation of the lord of the soil to the serf was regulated by the prevailing customs and by-laws which were obeyed, because they corresponded to them.  The free working-man’s relation to his master is regulated by laws which are not obeyed, because they correspond neither with the interests of the employer nor with the prevailing customs.  The lord of the soil could not separate the serf from the land, nor sell him apart from it, and since almost all the land was fief and there was no capital, practically could not sell him at all.  The modern bourgeois forces the working-man to sell himself.  The serf was the slave of the piece of land on which he was born, the working-man is the slave of his own necessaries of life and of the money with which he has to buy them—both are slaves of a thing.  The serf had a guarantee for the means of subsistence in the feudal order of society in which every member had his own place.  The free working-man has no guarantee whatsoever, because he has a place in society only when the bourgeoisie can make use of him; in all other cases he is ignored, treated as non-existent.  The serf sacrificed himself for his master in war, the factory operative in peace.  The lord of the serf was a barbarian who regarded his villain as a head of cattle; the employer of operatives is civilised and regards his “hand” as a machine.  In short, the position of the two is not far from equal, and if either is at a disadvantage, it is the free working-man.  Slaves they both are, with the single difference that the slavery of the one is undissembled, open, p. 186honest; that of the other cunning, sly, disguised, deceitfully concealed from himself and every one else, a hypocritical servitude worse than the old.  The philanthropic Tories were right when they gave the operatives the name white slaves.  But the hypocritical disguised slavery recognises the right to freedom, at least in outward form; bows before a freedom-loving public opinion, and herein lies the historic progress as compared with the old servitude, that the principle of freedom is affirmed, and the oppressed will one day see to it that this principle is carried out. {186}

Such is the factory system outlined as fully as my space allows, and with as little bias as the heroic actions of the bourgeoisie against the defenseless workers will allow—actions that make it impossible to remain indifferent, and indifference would be a crime. Let's compare the condition of the free Englishman in 1845 with the Saxon serf under the control of the Norman barons in 1145. The serf was bound to the land, just as the free worker is bound through the cottage system. The serf owed his master the right of the first night; the free worker must, upon request, surrender not only that but the right of every night. The serf could not own property; anything he acquired could be taken by his master. The free worker has no property, can gain none due to the pressures of competition, and what even the Norman baron did not do, the modern manufacturer does. Through the truck system, he takes on the detailed management of the things the worker needs for his immediate survival. The relationship between the landowner and the serf was governed by prevailing customs and laws that were followed because they reflected reality. The relationship of the free worker to his employer is governed by laws that are not followed, as they do not align with the interests of the employer or the prevailing customs. The landowner could not separate the serf from the land or sell him apart from it; since most land was feudal and there was no capital, he practically could not sell him at all. The modern bourgeois forces the worker to sell himself. The serf was the slave of the land he was born on; the worker is the slave of his basic needs and the money needed to buy them—both are slaves to something. The serf had some guarantee for his means of subsistence in a feudal society in which everyone had their place. The free worker has no guarantee whatsoever, because he only has a place in society when the bourgeoisie can use him; otherwise, he is ignored and treated as if he doesn't exist. The serf sacrificed himself for his master in battle; the factory worker sacrifices himself in times of peace. The lord of the serf was a barbarian who viewed his serf as livestock; the employer of workers is civilized and views his “hands” as machines. In short, their situations are not far from equal, and if either is at a disadvantage, it is the free worker. Both are slaves, with the only difference being that one slavery is openly acknowledged, while the other's is hidden, deceptive, disguised from himself and everyone else, a hypocritical servitude worse than the old. The philanthropic Tories were correct when they referred to the workers as white slaves. But the camouflaged slavery recognizes the right to freedom, at least in appearance; it bows to a freedom-loving public opinion, and herein lies the historical progress compared to the old servitude, that the principle of freedom is acknowledged, and the oppressed will one day ensure that this principle is fulfilled. {186}

p. 188THE REMAINING BRANCHES OF INDUSTRY.

We were compelled to deal with the factory system somewhat at length, as it is an entirely novel creation of the industrial period; we shall be able to treat the other workers the more briefly, because what has been said either of the industrial proletariat in general, or of the factory system in particular, will wholly, or in part, apply to them.  We shall, therefore, merely have to record how far the factory system has succeeded in forcing its way into each branch of industry, and what other peculiarities these may reveal.

We had to discuss the factory system in detail, as it's a brand new development of the industrial era. We can address the other workers more briefly because what we've said about the industrial working class in general, or about the factory system specifically, will apply to them in whole or in part. So, we'll simply note how much the factory system has managed to take hold in each industry and what unique aspects this might show.

The four branches comprised under the Factory Act are engaged in the production of clothing stuffs.  We shall do best if we deal next with those workers who receive their materials from these factories; and, first of all, with the stocking weavers of Nottingham, Derby, and Leicester.  Touching these workers, the Children’s Employment Commission reports that the long working-hours, imposed by low wages, with a sedentary life and the strain upon the eyes involved in the nature of the employment, usually enfeeble the whole frame, and especially the eyes.  Work at night is impossible without a very powerful light produced by concentrating the rays of the lamp, making them pass through glass globes, which is most injurious to the sight.  At forty years of age, nearly all wear spectacles.  The children employed at spooling and hemming usually suffer grave injuries to the health and constitution.  They work from the sixth, seventh, or eighth year ten to twelve hours daily in small, close rooms.  It is not uncommon for them to faint at their work, to become too feeble for the most ordinary household occupation, and so near-sighted as to be obliged to wear glasses during childhood.  p. 189Many were found by the commissioners to exhibit all the symptoms of a scrofulous constitution, and the manufacturers usually refuse to employ girls who have worked in this way as being too weak.  The condition of these children is characterised as “a disgrace to a Christian country,” and the wish expressed for legislative interference.  The Factory Report {189} adds that the stocking weavers are the worst paid workers in Leicester, earning six, or with great effort, seven shillings a week, for sixteen to eighteen hours’ daily work.  Formerly they earned twenty to twenty-one shillings, but the introduction of enlarged frames has ruined their business; the great majority still work with old, small, single frames, and compete with difficulty with the progress of machinery.  Here, too, every progress is a disadvantage for the workers.  Nevertheless, Commissioner Power speaks of the pride of the stocking weavers that they are free, and had no factory bell to measure out the time for their eating, sleeping, and working.  Their position to-day is no better than in 1833, when the Factory Commission made the foregoing statements, the competition of the Saxon stocking weavers, who have scarcely anything to eat, takes care of that.  This competition is too strong for the English in nearly all foreign markets, and for the lower qualities of goods even in the English market.  It must be a source of rejoicing for the patriotic German stocking weaver that his starvation wages force his English brother to starve too!  And, verily, will he not starve on, proud and happy, for the greater glory of German industry, since the honour of the Fatherland demands that his table should be bare, his dish half empty?  Ah! it is a noble thing this competition, this “race of the nations.”  In the Morning Chronicle, another Liberal sheet, the organ of the bourgeoisie par excellence, there were published some letters from a stocking weaver in Hinckley, describing the condition of his fellow-workers.  Among other things, he reports 50 families, 321 persons, who were supported by 109 frames; each frame yielded on an average 5½ shillings; each family earned an average of 11s. 4d. weekly.  Out of this there was required for house rent, frame rent, fuel, p. 190light, soap, and needles, together 5s. 10d., so that there remained for food, per head daily, 1½d., and for clothing nothing.  “No eye,” says the stocking weaver, “has seen, no ear heard, and no heart felt the half of the sufferings that these poor people endure.”  Beds were wanting either wholly or in part, the children ran about ragged and barefoot; the men said, with tears in their eyes: “It’s a long time since we had any meat; we have almost forgotten how it tastes;” and, finally, some of them worked on Sunday, though public opinion pardons anything else more readily than this, and the rattling noise of the frame is audible throughout the neighbourhood.  “But,” said one of them, “look at my children and ask no questions.  My poverty forces me to it; I can’t and won’t hear my children forever crying for bread, without trying the last means of winning it honestly.  Last Monday I got up at two in the morning and worked to near midnight; the other days from six in the morning to between eleven and twelve at night.  I have had enough of it; I sha’n’t kill myself; so now I go to bed at ten o’clock, and make up the lost time on Sundays.”  Neither in Leicester, Nottingham, nor Derby have wages risen since 1833; and the worst of it is that in Leicester the truck system prevails to a great extent, as I have mentioned.  It is therefore not to be wondered at that the weavers of this region take a very active part in all working-men’s movements, the more active and effective because the frames are worked chiefly by men.

The four branches covered under the Factory Act are involved in making clothing materials. It’s best if we first look at the workers who get their supplies from these factories, starting with the stocking weavers in Nottingham, Derby, and Leicester. Regarding these workers, the Children’s Employment Commission reports that long working hours, caused by low wages, along with a sedentary lifestyle and the strain on their eyes from the type of work, generally weaken their entire body, especially their eyesight. Working at night is impossible without very bright light created by focusing lamp rays through glass globes, which is harmful to vision. By the age of forty, nearly everyone wears glasses. The children working in spooling and hemming often suffer serious health issues and damage to their constitution. They start working at six, seven, or eight years old, putting in ten to twelve hours a day in small, cramped spaces. It's common for them to faint on the job, become too weak for basic household tasks, and become so near-sighted they need glasses during childhood. p. 189 Many were found by the commissioners to show signs of a scrofulous constitution, and manufacturers usually refuse to hire girls who have worked like this because they are too frail. The condition of these children is described as “a disgrace to a Christian country,” prompting calls for legislative action. The Factory Report {189} points out that the stocking weavers are the lowest-paid workers in Leicester, making six, or at best, seven shillings a week for sixteen to eighteen hours of work each day. They used to earn twenty to twenty-one shillings, but the introduction of larger frames has devastated their trade; most continue to use old, small, single frames and struggle to keep up with advancing machinery. Here, too, every advancement is a downside for the workers. Still, Commissioner Power mentions the pride of the stocking weavers in their freedom, as they’re not timed by a factory bell for eating, sleeping, and working. Their situation today is no better than it was in 1833, when the Factory Commission made those earlier observations, as they face strong competition from Saxon stocking weavers, who have barely enough to eat. This competition is too fierce for the English in nearly all international markets, and even in the English market for lower-quality goods. It must be a source of pride for the patriotic German stocking weaver that his meager wages also put his English counterpart in a position of hardship! And indeed, he will likely continue to starve, proud and happy, for the greater glory of German industry, as the honor of the Fatherland demands his table be empty and his dish half full? Ah! What noble competition this is, this “race of nations.” In the Morning Chronicle, another liberal publication, which serves the bourgeoisie well, some letters from a stocking weaver in Hinckley were published, detailing the conditions of his fellow workers. Among other things, he reports 50 families, 321 individuals, supported by 109 frames; each frame produced an average of 5½ shillings; each family earned an average of 11s. 4d. weekly. From this, 5s. 10d. was needed for rent, frame rental, fuel, p. 190light, soap, and needles, leaving only 1½d. per person for food each day, and nothing for clothing. “No eye,” says the stocking weaver, “has seen, no ear has heard, and no heart has felt even half of the suffering endured by these poor people.” They either completely lack beds or have only part of one, the children run around ragged and barefoot; the men, with tears in their eyes, said, “It’s been a long time since we had any meat; we’ve almost forgotten how it tastes;” and some of them even worked on Sundays, although public opinion is more forgiving of most other actions than this, with the noise of the frame audible throughout the area. “But,” said one of them, “look at my children and don’t ask questions. My poverty forces me to it; I can’t just listen to my children cry for bread without doing everything I can to earn it honestly. Last Monday, I got up at two in the morning and worked until nearly midnight; the other days from six in the morning to around eleven or twelve at night. I’ve had enough; I’m not going to wear myself out; so now I go to bed at ten o’clock and catch up on Sundays.” Wages have not increased since 1833 in Leicester, Nottingham, or Derby; and to make matters worse, the truck system is still prevalent in Leicester, as I mentioned. It’s no wonder that the weavers in this area are very active in all labor movements, and their involvement is more robust and effective since the frames are mainly operated by men.

In this stocking weavers’ district the lace industry also has its headquarters.  In the three counties mentioned there are in all 2,760 lace frames in use, while in all the rest of England there are but 786.  The manufacture of lace is greatly complicated by a rigid division of labour, and embraces a multitude of branches.  The yarn is first spooled by girls fourteen years of age and upwards, winders; then the spools are set up on the frames by boys, eight years old and upwards, threaders, who pass the thread through fine openings, of which each machine has an average of 1,800, and bring it towards its destination; then the weaver weaves the lace which comes out of the machine like a broad p. 191piece of cloth and is taken apart by very little children who draw out the connecting threads.  This is called running or drawing lace, and the children themselves lace-runners.  The lace is then made ready for sale.  The winders, like the threaders, have no specified working-time, being called upon whenever the spools on a frame are empty, and are liable, since the weavers work at night, to be required at any time in the factory or workroom.  This irregularity, the frequent night-work, the disorderly way of living consequent upon it, engender a multitude of physical and moral ills, especially early and unbridled sexual licence, upon which point all witnesses are unanimous.  The work is very bad for the eyes, and although a permanent injury in the case of the threaders is not universally observable, inflammations of the eye, pain, tears, and momentary uncertainty of vision during the act of threading are engendered.  For the winders, however, it is certain that their work seriously affects the eye, and produces, besides the frequent inflammations of the cornea, many cases of amaurosis and cataract.  The work of the weavers themselves is very difficult, as the frames have constantly been made wider, until those now in use are almost all worked by three men in turn, each working eight hours, and the frame being kept in use the whole twenty-four.  Hence it is that the winders and threaders are so often called upon during the night, and must work to prevent the frame from standing idle.  The filling in of 1,800 openings with thread occupies three children at least two hours.  Many frames are moved by steam-power, and the work of men thus superseded; and, as the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report mentions only lace factories to which the children are summoned, it seems to follow either that the work of the weavers has been removed to great factory rooms of late, or that steam-weaving has become pretty general; a forward movement of the factory system in either case.  Most unwholesome of all is the work of the runners, who are usually children of seven, and even of five and four, years old.  Commissioner Grainger actually found one child of two years old employed at this work.  Following a thread which is to be withdrawn by a needle from an intricate p. 192texture, is very bad for the eyes, especially when, as is usually the case, the work is continued fourteen to sixteen hours.  In the least unfavourable case, aggravated near-sightedness follows; in the worst case, which is frequent enough, incurable blindness from amaurosis.  But, apart from that, the children, in consequence of sitting perpetually bent up, become feeble, narrow-chested, and scrofulous from bad digestion.  Disordered functions of the uterus are almost universal among the girls, and curvature of the spine also, so that “all the runners may be recognised from their gait.”  The same consequences for the eyes and the whole constitution are produced by the embroidery of lace.  Medical witnesses are unanimously of the opinion that the health of all children employed in the production of lace suffers seriously, that they are pale, weak, delicate, undersized, and much less able than other children to resist disease.  The affections from which they usually suffer are general debility, frequent fainting, pains in the head, sides, back, and hips, palpitation of the heart, nausea, vomiting and want of appetite, curvature of the spine, scrofula, and consumption.  The health of the female lacemakers especially, is constantly and deeply undermined; complaints are universal of anæmia, difficult childbirth, and miscarriage. {192a}  The same subordinate official of the Children’s Employment Commission reports further that the children are very often ill-clothed and ragged, and receive insufficient food, usually only bread and tea, often no meat for months together.  As to their moral condition, he reports: {192b}

In this stocking weavers’ district, the lace industry also has its main office. In the three counties mentioned, there are a total of 2,760 lace frames in use, while there are only 786 throughout the rest of England. The production of lace is highly complicated due to a strict division of labor and includes many different roles. The yarn is first spooled by girls aged fourteen and older, known as winders. Then, boys aged eight and up, called threaders, set up the spools on the frames, passing the thread through fine openings, with each machine having an average of 1,800, and guiding it to where it needs to go. After that, the weaver operates the machine, producing lace that comes out like a wide piece of cloth, which is then taken apart by very small children who pull out the connecting threads. This process is known as running or drawing lace, and the children who do this are called lace-runners. The lace is then prepared for sale. The winders, like the threaders, have no fixed working hours and are called in whenever the spools on a frame are empty. Since the weavers work at night, they can be required to work at any time in the factory or workshop. This irregular schedule, along with frequent night shifts and the resulting chaotic lifestyle, leads to a range of physical and moral issues, particularly early and uncontrolled sexual behavior, which all witnesses agree on. The work is very stressful on the eyes, and while permanent damage isn't always evident among threaders, they do experience eye inflammation, pain, tears, and occasional vision issues while threading. However, for the winders, their work definitely has a serious impact on their eyesight, leading to frequent corneal inflammations and various cases of amaurosis and cataracts. The work done by the weavers is also very demanding, as the frames have been made wider, with most currently requiring three men to work in shifts of eight hours each, keeping the frame in operation 24/7. This is why winders and threaders are often called to work at night to minimize downtime. Filling in 1,800 openings with thread takes at least three kids about two hours. Many frames are powered by steam, eliminating the need for some manual labor. As noted in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report, it seems that the work of the weavers has either recently moved to larger factory settings or that steam weaving has become more common, indicating progress in factory operations either way. The most detrimental work is that of the runners, who are often just seven, and sometimes even five or four years old. Commissioner Grainger discovered one child as young as two engaged in this work. Following a thread to be pulled out by a needle from a complex texture is very straining on the eyes, especially when work lasts for fourteen to sixteen hours. In the least harmful cases, it leads to worsened near-sightedness; in the worst cases, which happen frequently enough, it results in permanent blindness from amaurosis. Additionally, the children, due to constantly sitting bent over, become weak, barrel-chested, and develop scrofula from poor digestion. Many girls suffer from reproductive health issues, and spinal curvature is common as well, to the extent that “all the runners can be recognized by their walk.” Similar adverse effects on the eyes and overall health are caused by lace embroidery. Medical experts unanimously agree that the health of all children involved in lace production is severely compromised; they appear pale, weak, fragile, undersized, and significantly less able than other children to ward off illness. They commonly suffer from general weakness, frequent fainting, headaches, pain in the sides, back, and hips, heart palpitations, nausea, vomiting, lack of appetite, spinal curvature, scrofula, and tuberculosis. The health of female lace-makers, in particular, is consistently and profoundly damaged; complaints of anemia, difficult childbirth, and miscarriage are widespread. {192a} The same junior official from the Children’s Employment Commission also reports that the children are often poorly dressed and ragged, and receive inadequate nutrition, usually only bread and tea, often going for months without any meat. As for their moral condition, he reports: {192b}

“All the inhabitants of Nottingham, the police, the clergy, the manufacturers, the working-people, and the parents of the children are all unanimously of opinion that the present system of labour is a most fruitful source of immorality.  The threaders, chiefly boys, and the winders, usually girls, are called for in the factory at the same time; and as their parents cannot know how long they are wanted there, they have the finest opportunity to form improper connections and remain together after the close of the work.  This has contributed, in no small degree, to the immorality p. 193which, according to general opinion, exists to a terrible extent in Nottingham.  Apart from this, the quiet of home life, and the comfort of the family to which these children and young people belong, is wholly sacrificed to this most unnatural state of things.”

“Everyone in Nottingham, including the police, the clergy, manufacturers, workers, and parents, agrees that the current labor system is a major cause of immorality. The threaders, mostly boys, and the winders, usually girls, are called to the factory at the same time. Since their parents have no idea how long they'll be needed, they have the perfect chance to form inappropriate relationships and hang out together after work. This has greatly contributed to the immorality p. 193that many believe is alarmingly common in Nottingham. In addition, the peace of home life and the comfort of family for these children and young people are completely sacrificed to this unnatural situation.”

Another branch of lace-making, bobbin-lacework, is carried on in the agricultural shires of Northampton, Oxford, and Bedford, chiefly by children and young persons, who complain universally of bad food, and rarely taste meat.  The employment itself is most unwholesome.  The children work in small, ill-ventilated, damp rooms, sitting always bent over the lace cushion.  To support the body in this wearying position, the girls wear stays with a wooden busk, which, at the tender age of most of them, when the bones are still very soft, wholly displace the ribs, and make narrow chests universal.  They usually die of consumption after suffering the severest forms of digestive disorders, brought on by sedentary work in a bad atmosphere.  They are almost wholly without education, least of all do they receive moral training.  They love finery, and in consequence of these two influences their moral condition is most deplorable, and prostitution almost epidemic among them. {193}

Another type of lace-making, bobbin lace work, takes place in the farming counties of Northampton, Oxford, and Bedford, primarily by children and young people, who consistently complain about poor food and rarely eat meat. The work itself is very unhealthy. The children are in small, poorly ventilated, damp rooms, always hunched over the lace cushion. To support their bodies in this tiring position, the girls wear stays with a wooden busk, which, at their young age when their bones are still very soft, completely displace their ribs and create narrow chests. They often die of consumption after enduring severe digestive issues caused by their sedentary work in a bad environment. They are almost entirely uneducated, and they receive little to no moral guidance. They have a fondness for fancy things, and because of these two factors, their moral situation is extremely dire, with prostitution being almost widespread among them. {193}

This is the price at which society purchases for the fine ladies of the bourgeoisie the pleasure of wearing lace; a reasonable price truly!  Only a few thousand blind working-men, some consumptive labourers’ daughters, a sickly generation of the vile multitude bequeathing its debility to its equally “vile” children and children’s children.  But what does that come to?  Nothing, nothing whatsoever!  Our English bourgeoisie will lay the report of the Government Commission aside indifferently, and wives and daughters will deck themselves with lace as before.  It is a beautiful thing, the composure of an English bourgeois.

This is the price society pays for the enjoyment of lace by the fine ladies of the middle class; a fair price indeed! Just a few thousand blind laborers, some sickly daughters of hardworking families, a frail generation of the wretched population passing on their weaknesses to their equally “wretched” children and grandchildren. But what does that matter? Nothing, absolutely nothing! Our English middle class will casually ignore the Government Commission's report, and wives and daughters will continue to adorn themselves with lace as usual. It’s quite striking, the calmness of an English middle-class person.

A great number of operatives are employed in the cotton-printing establishments of Lancashire, Derbyshire, and the West of Scotland.  In no branch of English industry has mechanical ingenuity produced such brilliant results as here, but in no other p. 194has it so crushed the workers.  The application of engraved cylinders driven by steam-power, and the discovery of a method of printing four to six colours at once with such cylinders, has as completely superseded hand-work as did the application of machinery to the spinning and weaving of cotton, and these new arrangements in the printing-works have superseded the hand-workers much more than was the case in the production of the fabrics.  One man, with the assistance of one child, now does with a machine the work done formerly by 200 block printers; a single machine yields 28 yards of printed cloth per minute.  The calico printers are in a very bad way in consequence; the shires of Lancaster, Derby, and Chester produced (according to a petition of the printers to the House of Commons), in the year 1842, 11,000,000 pieces of printed cotton goods: of these, 100,000 were printed by hand exclusively, 900,000 in part with machinery and in part by hand, and 10,000,000 by machinery alone, with four to six colours.  As the machinery is chiefly new and undergoes constant improvement, the number of hand-printers is far too great for the available quantity of work, and many of them are therefore starving; the petition puts the number at one-quarter of the whole, while the rest are employed but one or two, in the best case three days in the week, and are ill-paid.  Leach {194} asserts of one print-work (Deeply Dale, near Bury, in Lancashire), that the hand-printers did not earn on an average more than five shillings, though he knows that the machine-printers were pretty well paid.  The print-works are thus wholly affiliated with the factory system, but without being subject to the legislative restrictions placed upon it.  They produce an article subject to fashion, and have therefore no regular work.  If they have small orders, they work half time; if they make a hit with a pattern, and business is brisk, they work twelve hours, perhaps all night.  In the neighbourhood of my home, near Manchester, there was a print-work that was often lighted when I returned late at night; and I have heard that the children were obliged at times to work so long there, that they would try to catch a moment’s rest and sleep on the stone steps p. 195and in the corners of the lobby.  I have no legal proof of the truth of the statement, or I should name the firm.  The Report of the Children’s Employment Commission is very cursory upon this subject, stating merely that in England, at least, the children are mostly pretty well clothed and fed (relatively, according to the wages of the parents), that they receive no education whatsoever, and are morally on a low plane.  It is only necessary to remember that these children are subject to the factory system, and then, referring the reader to what has already been said of that, we can pass on.

A large number of workers are employed in the cotton-printing establishments of Lancashire, Derbyshire, and the West of Scotland. In no other part of English industry has mechanical innovation produced such impressive results, but it has also severely impacted the workers. The use of engrave cylinders powered by steam, along with a method to print four to six colors at once with these cylinders, has completely replaced manual labor, just like machinery did for spinning and weaving cotton. These new setups in the printing works have replaced manual workers even more than in fabric production. Now, one man, with help from one child, can do the work that used to take 200 block printers; a single machine can produce 28 yards of printed cloth per minute. The calico printers are suffering as a result; according to a petition from the printers to the House of Commons, the counties of Lancaster, Derby, and Chester produced 11,000,000 pieces of printed cotton goods in 1842: of these, 100,000 were printed entirely by hand, 900,000 were partially done by machinery and partially by hand, and 10,000,000 were done entirely by machinery with four to six colors. Since the equipment is mostly new and constantly being improved, there are far too many hand-printers for the work available, and many are struggling to survive; the petition claims that a quarter of them are out of work, while the rest work only one or two days a week, at best three, and receive poor pay. Leach asserts regarding one print workshop (Deeply Dale, near Bury in Lancashire) that the hand-printers usually earned no more than five shillings, although he knows that the machine-printers were paid fairly well. The print works are thus completely tied to the factory system but are not subject to the same legislative restrictions. They produce items based on fashion trends, leading to inconsistent work schedules. When they receive small orders, they work part-time; when they create a popular pattern and business is good, they may work twelve hours, sometimes overnight. Near my home, close to Manchester, there was a print shop that was often still lit when I returned late at night; I've heard that the children sometimes had to work so long that they would try to catch a moment’s rest and sleep on the stone steps and in the corners of the lobby. I don’t have legal proof of this claim, or I would name the firm. The Report of the Children’s Employment Commission touches on this issue briefly, stating only that in England, the children are generally well clothed and fed (compared to their parents' wages), that they receive no education at all, and are in a morally low state. It’s only necessary to remember that these children are subjected to the factory system, and then, referring the reader to what has already been said about that, we can move on.

Of the remaining workers employed in the manufacture of clothing stuffs little remains to be said; the bleachers’ work is very unwholesome, obliging them to breathe chlorine, a gas injurious to the lungs.  The work of the dyers is in many cases very healthful, since it requires the exertion of the whole body; how these workers are paid is little known, and this is ground enough for the inference that they do not receive less than the average wages, otherwise they would make complaint.  The fustian cutters, who, in consequence of the large consumption of cotton velvet, are comparatively numerous, being estimated at from 3,000 to 4,000, have suffered very severely, indirectly, from the influence of the factory system.  The goods formerly woven with hand-looms, were not perfectly uniform, and required a practised hand in cutting the single rows of threads.  Since power-looms have been used, the rows run regularly; each thread of the weft is exactly parallel with the preceding one, and cutting is no longer an art.  The workers thrown out of employment by the introduction of machinery turn to fustian cutting, and force down wages by their competition; the manufacturers discovered that they could employ women and children, and the wages sank to the rate paid them, while hundreds of men were thrown out of employment.  The manufacturers found that they could get the work done in the factory itself more cheaply than in the cutters’ workroom, for which they indirectly paid the rent.  Since this discovery, the low upper-storey cutters’ rooms stand empty in many a cottage, or are let for dwellings, while the cutter has lost his p. 196freedom of choice of his working-hours, and is brought under the dominion of the factory bell.  A cutter of perhaps forty-five years of age told me that he could remember a time when he had received 8d. a yard for work, for which he now received 1d.; true, he can cut the more regular texture more quickly than the old, but he can by no means do twice as much in an hour as formerly, so that his wages have sunk to less than a quarter of what they were.  Leach {196} gives a list of wages paid in 1827 and in 1843 for various goods, from which it appears that articles paid in 1827 at the rates of 4d., 2¼d., 2¾d., and 1d. per yard, were paid in 1843 at the rate of 1½d., 1d., ¾d., and 0.375d. per yard, cutters’ wages.  The average weekly wage, according to Leach, was as follows: 1827, £1 6s. 6d.; £1 2s. 6d.; £1; £1 6s. 6d.; and for the same goods in 1843, 10s. 6d.; 7s. 6d.; 6s. 8d.; 10s.; while there are hundreds of workers who cannot find employment even at these last named rates.  Of the hand-weavers of the cotton industry we have already spoken; the other woven fabrics are almost exclusively produced on hand-looms.  Here most of the workers have suffered as the weavers have done from the crowding in of competitors displaced by machinery, and are, moreover, subject like the factory operatives to a severe fine system for bad work.  Take, for instance, the silk weavers.  Mr. Brocklehurst, one of the largest silk manufacturers in all England, laid before a committee of members of Parliament lists taken from his books, from which it appears that for goods for which he paid wages in 1821 at the rate of 30s., 14s., 3½s., ¾s., 1½s., 10s., he paid in 1839 but 9s., 7¼s., 2¼s., 0.333s., 0½s., 6¼s., while in this case no improvement in the machinery has taken place.  But what Mr. Brocklehurst does may very well be taken as a standard for all.  From the same lists it appears that the average weekly wage of his weavers, after all deductions, was, in 1821, 16½s., and, in 1831, but 6s.  Since that time wages have fallen still further.  Goods which brought in 4d. weavers’ wages in 1831, bring in but 2½d. in 1843 (single sarsnets), and a great number of weavers in the country can get work only when they undertake these goods at 1½d.-2d.  Moreover, p. 197they are subject to arbitrary deductions from their wages.  Every weaver who receives materials is given a card, on which is usually to be read that the work is to be returned at a specified hour of the day; that a weaver who cannot work by reason of illness must make the fact known at the office within three days, or sickness will not be regarded as an excuse; that it will not be regarded as a sufficient excuse if the weaver claims to have been obliged to wait for yarn; that for certain faults in the work (if, for example, more weft-threads are found within a given space than are prescribed), not less than half the wages will be deducted; and that if the goods should not be ready at the time specified, one penny will be deducted for every yard returned.  The deductions in accordance with these cards are so considerable that, for instance, a man who comes twice a week to Leigh, in Lancashire, to gather up woven goods, brings his employer at least £15 fines every time.  He asserts this himself, and he is regarded as one of the most lenient.  Such things were formerly settled by arbitration; but as the workers were usually dismissed if they insisted upon that, the custom has been almost wholly abandoned, and the manufacturer acts arbitrarily as prosecutor, witness, judge, law-giver, and executive in one person.  And if the workman goes to a Justice of the Peace, the answer is: “When you accepted your card you entered upon a contract, and you must abide by it.”  The case is the same as that of the factory operatives.  Besides, the employer obliges the workman to sign a document in which he declares that he agrees to the deductions made.  And if a workman rebels, all the manufacturers in the town know at once that he is a man who, as Leach says, {197} “resists the lawful order as established by weavers’ cards, and, moreover, has the impudence to doubt the wisdom of those who are, as he ought to know, his superiors in society.”

Of the remaining workers in the clothing industry, not much else needs to be said; the bleachers’ jobs are very unhealthy, forcing them to inhale chlorine, a gas that's harmful to the lungs. The work of the dyers is often quite physical, requiring the use of the whole body; how these workers are compensated isn't widely known, which suggests they likely earn at least average wages, or they would complain. The fustian cutters, numbering around 3,000 to 4,000 due to the high demand for cotton velvet, have been severely impacted by the factory system. The goods that were once woven by hand were not completely uniform and required skilled hands to cut single rows of threads. Now, with the introduction of power looms, the rows run consistently; each thread of weft is perfectly aligned with the one before it, making cutting much less of a craft. Workers who have lost their jobs due to machinery have turned to fustian cutting, driving wages down through competition; manufacturers realized they could hire women and children, which caused wages to drop to that of what these workers would accept, while hundreds of men were pushed out of work. The manufacturers found they could get the work done in the factory more cheaply than in the cutters’ workshops, for which they indirectly paid rent. Since this realization, many upper-story cutters’ rooms in cottages are left vacant or rented out as living spaces, while cutters have lost the freedom to choose their working hours and are now controlled by the factory bell. A cutter, about forty-five years old, told me he remembers a time when he earned 8d. a yard for work that now pays only 1d.; while true that he can cut the more uniform fabric faster than before, he certainly can't cut twice as much in an hour, so his pay has dropped to less than a quarter of what it used to be. Leach {196} provides a list of wages from 1827 and 1843 for various goods, showing that items that paid 4d., 2¼d., 2¾d., and 1d. per yard in 1827 were now paid at rates of 1½d., 1d., ¾d., and 0.375d. per yard in 1843. According to Leach, the average weekly wage was as follows: in 1827, £1 6s. 6d.; £1 2s. 6d.; £1; £1 6s. 6d.; and in 1843 for the same goods, 10s. 6d.; 7s. 6d.; 6s. 8d.; 10s.; while many workers can't even find work at these lower rates. We have already discussed the hand-weavers in the cotton industry; other woven fabrics are mostly produced on hand-looms. Here, most workers have suffered like weavers from the influx of competitors displaced by machinery, and are also subjected, like factory workers, to a strict fine system for poor quality work. For example, with silk weavers, Mr. Brocklehurst, one of the largest silk manufacturers in England, presented to a committee of MPs records from his books showing that for goods he paid wages for in 1821 at rates of 30s., 14s., 3½s., ¾s., 1½s., and 10s., he paid in 1839 only 9s., 7¼s., 2¼s., 0.333s., 0½s., and 6¼s., with no improvements in machinery since then. What Mr. Brocklehurst does can be seen as representative of the industry. From the same records, it appears that the average weekly wage for his weavers, after all deductions, was 16½s. in 1821, but only 6s. in 1831. Since then, wages have fallen even further. Goods that brought in weavers’ wages of 4d. in 1831 now earn only 2½d. in 1843 (single sarsnets), and many weavers can only find work if they agree to take on these items for 1½d.-2d. In addition, they face arbitrary deductions from their pay. Every weaver who receives materials gets a card that typically states that work must be returned by a certain time; if a weaver can't work due to illness, they must inform the office within three days, or their illness won't be considered a valid excuse; claiming to wait for yarn isn’t regarded as a sufficient reason; for certain mistakes in the work (if, for example, more weft-threads are found than allowed), at least half the wages will be deducted; and if the goods aren't ready on time, one penny will be deducted for every yard returned. The deductions according to these cards are so significant that, for example, a guy who collects woven goods twice a week in Leigh, Lancashire, brings his employer at least £15 in fines each time. He claims this himself and is seen as one of the more lenient ones. Such issues were previously settled through arbitration, but since workers were usually fired for insisting on it, this practice has nearly vanished, allowing manufacturers to act as prosecutor, witness, judge, law-maker, and enforcer all in one. If a worker goes to a Justice of the Peace, the response is: “By accepting your card, you entered into a contract, and you must comply.” The same applies to factory workers. Furthermore, the employer requires the worker to sign a document stating he agrees to the deductions. And if a worker complains, all the manufacturers in town quickly know he's someone who, as Leach says, {197} “resists the lawful orders established by weavers’ cards and, moreover, has the audacity to question the judgment of those who are, as he should know, his superiors in society.”

Naturally, the workers are perfectly free; the manufacturer does not force them to take his materials and his cards, but he says to them what Leach translates into plain English with the words: “If you don’t like to be frizzled in my frying-pan, you p. 198can take a walk into the fire.”  The silk weavers of London, and especially of Spitalfields, have lived in periodic distress for a long time, and that they still have no cause to be satisfied with their lot is proved by their taking a most active part in English labour movements in general, and in London ones in particular.  The distress prevailing among them gave rise to the fever which broke out in East London, and called forth the Commission for Investigating the Sanitary Condition of the Labouring Class.  But the last report of the London Fever Hospital shows that this disease is still raging.

Naturally, the workers are completely free; the manufacturer doesn’t force them to accept his materials and cards, but he tells them what Leach translates into straightforward English: “If you don’t want to be cooked in my frying pan, you can just walk into the fire.” The silk weavers in London, especially those in Spitalfields, have faced periodic hardship for a long time, and the fact that they still feel dissatisfied with their situation is demonstrated by their active involvement in English labor movements overall, and in London ones specifically. The struggles they’ve faced led to the outbreak of fever in East London, which prompted the Commission for Investigating the Sanitary Condition of the Labouring Class. However, the latest report from the London Fever Hospital indicates that this disease is still ongoing.

After the textile fabrics, by far the most important products of English industry are the metal-wares.  This trade has its headquarters at Birmingham, where the finer metal goods of all sorts are produced, at Sheffield for cutlery, and in Staffordshire, especially at Wolverhampton, where the coarser articles, locks, nails, etc., are manufactured.  In describing the position of the workers employed in these trades, let us begin with Birmingham.  The disposition of the work has retained in Birmingham, as in most places where metals are wrought, something of the old handicraft character; the small employers are still to be found, who work with their apprentices in the shop at home, or when they need steam-power, in great factory buildings which are divided into little shops, each rented to a small employer, and supplied with a shaft moved by the engine, and furnishing motive power for the machinery.  Leon Faucher, author of a series of articles in the Revue des Deux Mondes, which at least betray study, and are better than what has hitherto been written upon the subject by Englishmen or Germans, characterises this relation in contrast with the manufacture of Lancashire as “Démocratie industrielle,” and observes that it produces no very favourable results for master or men.  This observation is perfectly correct, for the many small employers cannot well subsist on the profit divided amongst them, determined by competition, a profit under other circumstances absorbed by a single manufacturer.  The centralising tendency of capital holds them down.  For one who grows rich ten are ruined, and a hundred placed at a p. 199greater disadvantage than ever, by the pressure of the one upstart who can afford to sell more cheaply than they.  And in the cases where they have to compete from the beginning against great capitalists, it is self-evident that they can only toil along with the greatest difficulty.  The apprentices are, as we shall see, quite as badly off under the small employers as under the manufacturers, with the single difference that they, in turn, may become small employers, and so attain a certain independence—that is to say, they are at best less directly exploited by the bourgeoisie than under the factory system.  Thus these small employers are neither genuine proletarians, since they live in part upon the work of their apprentices, nor genuine bourgeois, since their principal means of support is their own work.  This peculiar midway position of the Birmingham iron-workers is to blame for their having so rarely joined wholly and unreservedly in the English labour movements.  Birmingham is a politically radical, but not a Chartist, town.  There are, however, numerous larger factories belonging to capitalists; and in these the factory system reigns supreme.  The division of labour, which is here carried out to the last detail (in the needle industry, for example), and the use of steam-power, admit of the employment of a great multitude of women and children, and we find here {199} precisely the same features reappearing which the Factories’ Report presented,—the work of women up to the hour of confinement, incapacity as housekeepers, neglect of home and children, indifference, actual dislike to family life, and demoralisation; further, the crowding out of men from employment, the constant improvement of machinery, early emancipation of children, husbands supported by their wives and children, etc. etc.  The children are described as half-starved and ragged, the half of them are said not to know what it is to have enough to eat, many of them get nothing to eat before the midday meal, or even live the whole day upon a pennyworth of bread for a noonday meal—there were actually cases in which children received no food from eight in the morning until seven at night.  Their clothing is very often scarcely p. 200sufficient to cover their nakedness, many are barefoot even in winter.  Hence they are all small and weak for their age, and rarely develop with any degree of vigour.  And when we reflect that with these insufficient means of reproducing the physical forces, hard and protracted work in close rooms is required of them, we cannot wonder that there are few adults in Birmingham fit for military service.  “The working men,” says a recruiting surgeon, “are small, delicate, and of very slight physical power; many of them deformed, too, in the chest or spinal column.”  According to the assertion of a recruiting sergeant, the people of Birmingham are smaller than those anywhere else, being usually 5 feet 4 to 5 inches tall; out of 613 recruits, but 238 were found fit for service.  As to education, a series of depositions and specimens taken from the metal districts have already been given, {200a} to which the reader is referred.  It appears further, from the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report, that in Birmingham more than half the children between five and fifteen years attend no school whatsoever, that those who do are constantly changing, so that it is impossible to give them any training of an enduring kind, and that they are all withdrawn from school very early and set to work.  The report makes it clear what sort of teachers are employed.  One teacher, in answer to the question whether she gave moral instruction, said, No, for threepence a week school fees that was too much to require, but that she took a great deal of trouble to instil good principles into the children.  (And she made a decided slip in her English in saying it.)  In the schools the commissioner found constant noise and disorder.  The moral state of the children is in the highest degree deplorable.  Half of all the criminals are children under fifteen, and in a single year ninety ten-years’-old offenders, among them forty-four serious criminal cases, were sentenced.  Unbridled sexual intercourse seems, according to the opinion of the commissioner, almost universal, and that at a very early age. {200b}

After textiles, the most significant products of English industry are metal goods. This industry is centered in Birmingham, known for producing high-quality metal items, Sheffield for cutlery, and Staffordshire, especially Wolverhampton, where coarser products like locks and nails are made. Let's start by looking at the workers in these trades, beginning with Birmingham. The way work is organized in Birmingham retains a bit of its old craft character, similar to other metalworking areas. There are still small employers who work alongside their apprentices in home shops or, when they need steam power, in large factory buildings divided into small rented shops, each powered by a shared engine driving their machinery. Leon Faucher, who wrote a series of articles in the *Revue des Deux Mondes*, which show significant research and far surpass anything previously written by English or German authors on the topic, describes this relationship compared to Lancashire's manufacturing as "Industrial Democracy," noting that it yields poor results for both employers and workers. This observation is spot on; the numerous small employers struggle to survive with profits so divided by competition, profits that, under different circumstances, would support one manufacturer entirely. The centralizing nature of capital keeps them down. For one person who becomes wealthy, ten are ruined, and a hundred end up in a worse position due to the pressure from the one successful individual who sells at a lower price. When they have to compete from the outset against large capitalists, it’s clear that they can only manage with great difficulty. Apprentices, as we will see, suffer just as much under small employers as they do under larger manufacturers, with the only difference being that they might eventually become small employers themselves, achieving a certain level of independence. In other words, they are at least less directly exploited by the bourgeoisie than they would be under the factory system. Thus, these small employers are neither truly proletarians, as they partly depend on the work of their apprentices, nor genuinely bourgeois, since their main source of income is their own labor. This unique middle position of Birmingham's metalworkers is why they rarely participate fully in English labor movements. Birmingham is politically radical but not a Chartist city. However, there are many larger factories owned by capitalists, where the factory system dominates. The division of labor is taken to extreme levels here (as seen in the needle industry), and the use of steam power allows for the employment of many women and children. Here, we see the same issues highlighted in the Factories’ Report: women working up until childbirth, being unable to manage household duties, neglecting home and children, lacking interest in family life, and suffering moral decline. Additionally, men are being pushed out of jobs, machinery keeps improving, and children are being freed from work early, with husbands relying on their wives’ and children’s incomes. The children are described as half-starved and ragged, with half of them not knowing what it feels like to be full. Many go without food before lunch or live on just a penny’s worth of bread for their midday meal—some children reportedly go from 8 AM until 7 PM without food. Their clothing is often barely enough to cover them, with many going barefoot even in winter. As a result, they are small and frail for their age and seldom develop any real strength. When you consider that they are expected to work hard in small, cramped spaces with such insufficient means to maintain their physical health, it’s no wonder that very few adults in Birmingham are fit for military service. “The working men,” says a recruiting surgeon, “are small, delicate, and have little physical power; many are also deformed, especially in the chest or spine.” According to a recruiting sergeant, people in Birmingham are shorter than anywhere else, averaging between 5 feet 4 and 5 inches tall; out of 613 recruits, only 238 were deemed suitable for service. Regarding education, a series of surveys and samples from the metal districts have already been provided, to which the reader is referred. The Children's Employment Commission’s Report reveals that in Birmingham, more than half of children aged five to fifteen do not attend school at all, and those who do are constantly changing, making it impossible to provide consistent training. Additionally, they are all withdrawn from school very early to start working. The report highlights the poor quality of teachers employed. One teacher, asked about providing moral education, replied no, saying that for the low weekly fee of threepence, that was too much to expect, but she claimed to put in a lot of effort to instill good principles. (She even made a noticeable mistake in her English while saying this.) In the schools, the commissioner observed a constant level of noise and chaos. The children’s moral condition is extremely concerning. Half of all criminals are children under fifteen, and in one year, ninety ten-year-old offenders were detained, including forty-four serious cases. Uncontrolled sexual behavior seems, in the commissioner’s view, to be nearly universal and occurring at a very young age.

In the iron district of Staffordshire the state of things is still worse.  For the coarse wares made here neither much division of p. 201labour (with certain exceptions) nor steam-power or machinery can be applied.  In Wolverhampton, Willenhall, Bilston, Sedgeley, Wednesfield, Darlaston, Dudley, Walsall, Wednesbury, etc., there are, therefore, fewer factories, but chiefly single forges, where the small masters work alone, or with one or more apprentices, who serve them until reaching the twenty-first year.  The small employers are in about the same situation as those of Birmingham; but the apprentices, as a rule, are much worse off.  They get almost exclusively meat from diseased animals or such as have died a natural death, or tainted meat, or fish to eat, with veal from calves killed too young, and pork from swine smothered during transportation, and such food is furnished not by small employers only, but by large manufacturers, who employ from thirty to forty apprentices.  The custom seems to be universal in Wolverhampton, and its natural consequence is frequent bowel complaints and other diseases.  Moreover, the children usually do not get enough to eat, and have rarely other clothing than their working rags, for which reason, if for no other, they cannot go to Sunday school The dwellings are bad and filthy, often so much so that they give rise to disease; and in spite of the not materially unhealthy work, the children are puny, weak, and, in many cases, severely crippled.  In Willenhall, for instance, there are countless persons who have, from perpetually filing at the lathe, crooked backs and one leg crooked, “hind-leg” as they call it, so that the two legs have the form of a K; while it is said that more than one-third of the working-men there are ruptured.  Here, as well as in Wolverhampton, numberless cases were found of retarded puberty among girls, (for girls, too, work at the forges,) as well as among boys, extending even to the nineteenth year.  In Sedgeley and its surrounding district, where nails form almost the sole product, the nailers live and work in the most wretched stable-like huts, which for filth can scarcely be equalled.  Girls and boys work from the tenth or twelfth year, and are accounted fully skilled only when they make a thousand nails a day.  For twelve hundred nails the pay is 5¾d.  Every nail receives twelve blows, and since the hammer weighs 1¼ pounds, the nailer must p. 202lift 18,000 pounds to earn this miserable pay.  With this hard work and insufficient food, the children inevitably develop ill-formed, undersized frames, and the commissioners depositions confirm this.  As to the state of education in this district, data have already been furnished in the foregoing chapters.  It is upon an incredibly low plane; half the children do not even go to Sunday school, and the other half go irregularly; very few, in comparison with the other districts, can read, and in the matter of writing the case is much worse.  Naturally, for between the seventh and tenth years, just when they are beginning to get some good out of going to school, they are set to work, and the Sunday school teachers, smiths or miners, frequently cannot read, and write their names with difficulty.  The prevailing morals correspond with these means of education.  In Willenhall, Commissioner Horne asserts, and supplies ample proofs of his assertion, that there exists absolutely no moral sense among the workers.  In general, he found that the children neither recognised duties to their parents nor felt any affection for them.  They were so little capable of thinking of what they said, so stolid, so hopelessly stupid, that they often asserted that they were well treated, were coming on famously, when they were forced to work twelve to fourteen hours, were clad in rags, did not get enough to eat, and were beaten so that they felt it several days afterwards.  They knew nothing of a different kind of life than that in which they toil from morning until they are allowed to stop at night, and did not even understand the question never heard before, whether they were tired. {202}

In the iron region of Staffordshire, things are even worse. The rough products made here don't allow for much division of labor (with a few exceptions), nor can steam power or machinery be used. In places like Wolverhampton, Willenhall, Bilston, Sedgeley, Wednesfield, Darlaston, Dudley, Walsall, Wednesbury, etc., there are fewer factories, mainly just small forges, where individual craftsmen work alone or with one or more apprentices who work for them until they turn twenty-one. The small business owners are in a similar situation to those in Birmingham, but apprentices generally have it much worse. They mostly receive meat from sick animals, those that died naturally, spoiled meat, or fish, along with veal from very young calves and pork from pigs that suffocated during transport. This food is provided not only by the small business owners but also by large manufacturers who have thirty to forty apprentices. This practice seems widespread in Wolverhampton, leading to frequent bowel issues and other diseases. Moreover, kids usually don’t get enough to eat and rarely have any clothes besides their work rags, which means, if for no other reason, they can't attend Sunday school. The living conditions are poor and filthy, often enough to cause disease; despite the work not being physically unhealthy, the children are underdeveloped, weak, and in many cases, severely disabled. For example, in Willenhall, countless individuals have crooked backs and one leg that curves due to constantly working at lathes, leading to a K-shaped leg formation; it's reported that more than a third of the working men there have hernias. Similarly, in Wolverhampton, many cases of delayed puberty were found among girls (who also work at the forges) and boys, lasting up until the age of nineteen. In Sedgeley and the surrounding area, where nails are almost the only product made, the nailers live and work in terrible, filthy huts that are barely fit for habitation. Kids start working as early as ten or twelve and are only considered skilled when they can produce a thousand nails a day. For twelve hundred nails, they earn 5¾d. Each nail requires twelve strikes, and since the hammer weighs 1¼ pounds, the nailer has to lift a total of 18,000 pounds to earn this pitiful wage. With such hard work and not enough food, children inevitably grow up with malformed, undersized bodies, as confirmed by the commissioners’ reports. Regarding education in this area, details have already been provided in previous chapters. The situation is incredibly poor; half the children don’t even attend Sunday school, and of those that do, attendance is irregular. Compared to other regions, very few can read, and the situation is even worse for writing. Most kids between the ages of seven and ten—when they should be benefiting from school—are sent to work, and Sunday school teachers, typically smiths or miners, often struggle to read and barely manage to write their names. The prevailing moral standards reflect this lack of education. In Willenhall, Commissioner Horne claims and provides ample evidence that there is no sense of morality among the workers. Overall, he found that the children neither recognized their responsibilities to their parents nor felt any affection for them. They were so oblivious and dull that they would often claim they were well treated and thriving while being forced to work twelve to fourteen hours a day, dressed in rags, underfed, and beaten to the extent that they felt pain for days afterward. They had no concept of a lifestyle different from the one filled with exhausting labor from morning until nightfall, and they didn’t even comprehend the question—one they had never heard before—of whether they were tired. {202}

In Sheffield wages are better, and the external state of the workers also.  On the other hand, certain branches of work are to be noticed here, because of their extraordinarily injurious influence upon health.  Certain operations require the constant pressure of tools against the chest, and engender consumption in many cases; others, file-cutting among them, retard the general development of the body and produce digestive disorders; bone-cutting for knife handles brings with it headache, biliousness, and among p. 203girls, of whom many are employed, anæmia.  By far the most unwholesome work is the grinding of knife-blades and forks, which, especially when done with a dry stone, entails certain early death.  The unwholesomeness of this work lies in part in the bent posture, in which chest and stomach are cramped; but especially in the quantity of sharp-edged metal dust particles freed in the cutting, which fill the atmosphere, and are necessarily inhaled.  The dry grinders’ average life is hardly thirty-five years, the wet grinders’ rarely exceeds forty-five.  Dr. Knight, in Sheffield, says: {203}

In Sheffield, wages are better, and the overall condition of the workers is improved too. However, there are certain types of jobs that stand out here due to their severely harmful effects on health. Some tasks require constant pressure from tools against the chest, which can lead to respiratory illnesses in many cases; others, like file-cutting, hinder overall physical development and cause digestive issues; working with bone for knife handles often results in headaches, nausea, and among the many girls employed, anemia. The most detrimental job is grinding knife blades and forks, particularly when done with a dry stone, which inevitably leads to early mortality. The unhealthiness of this work is partly due to the hunched posture, which constricts the chest and stomach, but especially from the amount of sharp metal dust particles released during cutting, which fill the air and are inevitably inhaled. The average lifespan of dry grinders is barely thirty-five years, while wet grinders rarely live past forty-five. Dr. Knight, in Sheffield, says: {203}

“I can convey some idea of the injuriousness of this occupation only by asserting that the hardest drinkers among the grinders are the longest lived among them, because they are longest and oftenest absent from their work.  There are, in all, some 2,500 grinders in Sheffield.  About 150 (80 men and 70 boys) are fork grinders; these die between the twenty-eighth and thirty-second years of age.  The razor grinders, who grind wet as well as dry, die between forty and forty-five years, and the table cutlery grinders, who grind wet, die between the fortieth and fiftieth year.”

“I can illustrate how harmful this job is by saying that the heaviest drinkers among the grinders generally live the longest because they spend the most time away from work. Overall, there are about 2,500 grinders in Sheffield. Around 150 of them (80 men and 70 boys) are fork grinders, who typically die between ages twenty-eight and thirty-two. The razor grinders, who grind both wet and dry, usually die between forty and forty-five years old, while the table cutlery grinders, who grind wet, tend to die between forty and fifty.”

The same physician gives the following description of the course of the disease called grinders’ asthma:

The same doctor offers this description of the progression of the disease known as grinders’ asthma:

“They usually begin their work with the fourteenth year, and, if they have good constitutions, rarely notice any symptoms before the twentieth year.  Then the symptoms of their peculiar disease appear.  They suffer from shortness of breath at the slightest effort in going up hill or up stairs, they habitually raise the shoulders to relieve the permanent and increasing want of breath; they bend forward, and seem, in general, to feel most comfortable in the crouching position in which they work.  Their complexion becomes dirty yellow, their features express anxiety, they complain of pressure upon the chest.  Their voices become rough and hoarse, they cough loudly, and the sound is as if air were driven through a wooden tube.  From time to time they expectorate considerable quantities of dust, either mixed with phlegm or in balls or cylindrical masses, with a thin coating of mucus.  Spitting blood, inability to lie down, night sweat, colliquative diarrhœa, unusual loss of flesh, and all the usual symptoms of consumption p. 204of the lungs finally carry them off, after they have lingered months, or even years, unfit to support themselves or those dependent upon them.  I must add that all attempts which have hitherto been made to prevent grinders’ asthma, or to cure it, have wholly failed.”

"They usually start working at fourteen, and if they’re in good health, they rarely notice any symptoms before turning twenty. Then, the signs of their specific illness start to appear. They experience shortness of breath even from light activities, like walking uphill or climbing stairs, and they often lift their shoulders to alleviate the persistent and worsening breathlessness. They lean forward and seem to be most comfortable in a crouched position while working. Their skin takes on a dirty yellow hue, their faces show anxiety, and they complain of pressure in their chest. Their voices become rough and hoarse, they cough loudly, sounding like air being pushed through a wooden tube. Sometimes, they spit out large amounts of dust, either mixed with mucus or in balls or cylindrical shapes, coated with a thin layer of slime. Spitting blood, difficulty lying down, night sweats, severe diarrhea, significant weight loss, and all the usual signs of lung disease eventually lead to their decline, after enduring months or even years unable to care for themselves or those who depend on them. I must note that all efforts so far to prevent or cure grinders' asthma have completely failed."

All this Knight wrote ten years ago; since then the number of grinders and the violence of the disease have increased, though attempts have been made to prevent it by covered grindstones and carrying off the dust by artificial draught.  These methods have been at least partially successful, but the grinders do not desire their adoption, and have even destroyed the contrivance here and there, in the belief that more workers may be attracted to the business and wages thus reduced; they are for a short life and a merry one.  Dr. Knight has often told grinders who came to him with the first symptoms of asthma that a return to grinding means certain death, but with no avail.  He who is once a grinder falls into despair, as though he had sold himself to the devil.  Education in Sheffield is upon a very low plane; a clergyman, who had occupied himself largely with the statistics of education, was of the opinion that of 16,500 children of the working-class who are in a position to attend school, scarcely 6,500 can read.  This comes of the fact that the children are taken from school in the seventh, and, at the very latest, in the twelfth year, and that the teachers are good for nothing; one was a convicted thief who found no other way of supporting himself after being released from jail than teaching school!  Immorality among young people seems to be more prevalent in Sheffield than anywhere else.  It is hard to tell which town ought to have the prize, and in reading the report one believes of each one that this certainly deserves it!  The younger generation spend the whole of Sunday lying in the street tossing coins or fighting dogs, go regularly to the gin palace, where they sit with their sweethearts until late at night, when they take walks in solitary couples.  In an ale-house which the commissioner visited, there sat forty to fifty young people of both sexes, nearly all under seventeen years of age, and each lad beside his lass.  Here and there cards were played, at other p. 205places dancing was going on, and everywhere drinking.  Among the company were openly avowed professional prostitutes.  No wonder, then, that, as all the witnesses testify, early, unbridled sexual intercourse, youthful prostitution, beginning with persons of fourteen to fifteen years, is extraordinarily frequent in Sheffield.  Crimes of a savage and desperate sort are of common occurrence; one year before the commissioner’s visit, a band, consisting chiefly of young persons, was arrested when about to set fire to the town, being fully equipped with lances and inflammable substances.  We shall see later that the labour movement in Sheffield has this same savage character. {205}

All this was written by Knight ten years ago; since then, the number of grinders and the severity of the disease have gone up, although there have been attempts to prevent it with covered grindstones and removing the dust with artificial ventilation. These methods have had some success, but the grinders don't want them implemented and have even damaged the devices here and there, thinking it might attract more workers and lower wages; they prefer a short, fun life. Dr. Knight has frequently told grinders who came to him with early asthma symptoms that going back to grinding means certain death, but it hasn't made a difference. Once someone becomes a grinder, they fall into despair, as if they've sold their soul to the devil. Education in Sheffield is very poor; a clergyman who studied education statistics believed that of 16,500 working-class children who could go to school, barely 6,500 can read. This is because children are taken out of school by the age of seven, or at the latest by twelve, and the teachers are inadequate; one was a convicted thief who had no other way to support himself after getting out of prison than by teaching! Immorality among young people seems to be more widespread in Sheffield than anywhere else. It's hard to say which town deserves the title for it, and while reading the report, you think each one certainly qualifies! The younger generation spends all of Sunday lying in the street tossing coins or fighting dogs, regularly goes to the pub, where they sit with their partners until late at night, and then take evening strolls as couples. In one pub visited by the commissioner, there were about forty to fifty young people of both genders, most under seventeen, each boy with a girl. Cards were being played here and there, dancing was happening in other spots, and everywhere people were drinking. Among the crowd were openly acknowledged professional prostitutes. It’s no surprise, then, that as all witnesses testify, early, unrestricted sexual activity and youthful prostitution start as early as fourteen or fifteen and are shockingly common in Sheffield. Violent and desperate crimes happen often; a year before the commissioner’s visit, a group mostly made up of young people was arrested while trying to set the town on fire, fully armed with lances and flammable materials. We will see later that the labor movement in Sheffield shares this same brutal character.

Besides these two main centres of the metal industry, there are needle factories in Warrington, Lancashire, where great want, immorality, and ignorance prevail among the workers, and especially among the children; and a number of nail forges in the neighbourhood of Wigan, in Lancashire, and in the east of Scotland.  The reports from these latter districts tell almost precisely the same story as those of Staffordshire.  There is one more branch of this industry carried on in the factory districts, especially in Lancashire, the essential peculiarity of which is the production of machinery by machinery, whereby the workers, crowded out elsewhere, are deprived of their last refuge, the creation of the very enemy which supersedes them.  Machinery for planing and boring, cutting screws, wheels, nuts, etc., with power lathes, has thrown out of employment a multitude of men who formerly found regular work at good wages; and whoever wishes to do so may see crowds of them in Manchester.

Besides these two main centers of the metal industry, there are needle factories in Warrington, Lancashire, where extreme poverty, moral issues, and ignorance are prevalent among the workers, especially the children. There are also several nail forges near Wigan in Lancashire and in eastern Scotland. The reports from these areas tell almost the same story as those from Staffordshire. There is one more aspect of this industry found in the factory districts, especially in Lancashire, characterized by the production of machinery using machinery, which pushes workers, who are already struggling elsewhere, out of their last refuge—the creation of the very tools that replace them. Machinery for planing and boring, cutting screws, wheels, nuts, etc., using power lathes, has displaced many men who previously found steady work at decent wages; and anyone who wants to can see crowds of them in Manchester.

North of the iron district of Staffordshire lies an industrial region to which we shall now turn our attention, the Potteries, whose headquarters are in the borough of Stoke, embracing Henley, Burslem, Lane End, Lane Delph, Etruria, Coleridge, Langport, Tunstall, and Golden Hill, containing together 60,000 inhabitants.  The Children’s Employment Commission reports upon this subject that in some branches of this industry, in the production of stoneware, the children have light employment in warm, airy rooms; in p. 206others, on the contrary, hard, wearing labour is required, while they receive neither sufficient food nor good clothing.  Many children complain: “Don’t get enough to eat, get mostly potatoes with salt, never meat, never bread, don’t go to school, haven’t got no clothes.”  “Haven’t got nothin’ to eat to-day for dinner, don’t never have dinner at home, get mostly potatoes and salt, sometimes bread.”  “These is all the clothes I have, no Sunday suit at home.”  Among the children whose work is especially injurious are the mould-runners, who have to carry the moulded article with the form to the drying-room, and afterwards bring back the empty form, when the article is properly dried.  Thus they must go to and fro the whole day, carrying burdens heavy in proportion to their age, while the high temperature in which they have to do this increases very considerably the exhaustiveness of the work.  These children, with scarcely a single exception, are lean, pale, feeble, stunted; nearly all suffer from stomach troubles, nausea, want of appetite, and many of them die of consumption.  Almost as delicate are the boys called “jiggers,” from the “jigger” wheel which they turn.  But by far the most injurious is the work of those who dip the finished article into a fluid containing great quantities of lead, and often of arsenic, or have to take the freshly-dipped article up with the hand.  The hands and clothing of these workers, adults and children, are always wet with this fluid, the skin softens and falls off under the constant contact with rough objects, so that the fingers often bleed, and are constantly in a state most favourable for the absorption of this dangerous substance.  The consequence is violent pain, and serious disease of the stomach and intestines, obstinate constipation, colic, sometimes consumption, and, most common of all, epilepsy among children.  Among men, partial paralysis of the hand muscles, colica pictorum, and paralysis of whole limbs are ordinary phenomena.  One witness relates that two children who worked with him died of convulsions at their work; another who had helped with the dipping two years while a boy, relates that he had violent pains in the bowels at first, then convulsions, in consequence of which he was confined to his bed two months, since when the attacks of convulsions p. 207have increased in frequency, are now daily, accompanied often by ten to twenty epileptic fits, his right arm is paralysed, and the physicians tell him that he can never regain the use of his limbs.  In one factory were found in the dipping-house four men, all epileptic and afflicted with severe colic, and eleven boys, several of whom were already epileptic.  In short, this frightful disease follows this occupation universally: and that, too, to the greater pecuniary profit of the bourgeoisie!  In the rooms in which the stoneware is scoured, the atmosphere is filled with pulverised flint, the breathing of which is as injurious as that of the steel dust among the Sheffield grinders.  The workers lose breath, cannot lie down, suffer from sore throat and violent coughing, and come to have so feeble a voice that they can scarcely be heard.  They, too, all die of consumption.  In the Potteries district, the schools are said to be comparatively numerous, and to offer the children opportunities for instruction; but as the latter are so early set to work for twelve hours and often more per day, they are not in a position to avail themselves of the schools, so that three-fourths of the children examined by the commissioner could neither read nor write, while the whole district is plunged in the deepest ignorance.  Children who have attended Sunday school for years could not tell one letter from another, and the moral and religious education, as well as the intellectual, is on a very low plane. {207}

North of the iron district of Staffordshire is the industrial area known as the Potteries, centered in the borough of Stoke, which includes Henley, Burslem, Lane End, Lane Delph, Etruria, Coleridge, Langport, Tunstall, and Golden Hill, totaling around 60,000 residents. The Children’s Employment Commission reports that in some parts of this industry, particularly in stoneware production, children have light jobs in warm, airy rooms. However, in other areas, they endure tough, exhausting work and aren't provided with enough food or proper clothing. Many children voice their complaints: “I don’t get enough to eat, mostly just potatoes with salt, never meat, never bread, can’t go to school, don’t have any clothes.” “I have nothing to eat for dinner today, never have dinner at home, mainly just potatoes and salt, sometimes bread.” “These are all the clothes I have; I don’t even have a Sunday outfit.” The jobs that are particularly harmful involve the mould-runners who carry the formed products to the drying room and then bring back the empty moulds. This means they’re constantly shuttling back and forth all day, carrying burdens that are too heavy for their age, and the high temperatures they work in make the labor even more exhausting. Almost all of these children are thin, pale, weak, and stunted; most suffer from stomach issues, nausea, and a lack of appetite, and many die from tuberculosis. The boys known as “jiggers,” named after the “jigger” wheel they operate, are also quite fragile. However, the most harmful job is for those who dip the finished products into a liquid that contains high levels of lead and often arsenic, or who handle the freshly dipped items directly. Their hands and clothing are always wet with this liquid, causing their skin to soften and peel away from constant contact with rough surfaces, resulting in frequent bleeding and creating a perfect environment for the absorption of this toxic substance. This leads to severe pain and serious illnesses in the stomach and intestines, persistent constipation, colic, and sometimes tuberculosis, with epilepsy being the most common issue among children. For men, partial paralysis of the hand muscles, painter’s colic, and paralysis of entire limbs are common outcomes. One witness recounts that two children he worked with died from seizures; another, who had worked in dipping for two years as a boy, reported severe abdominal pain initially, then convulsions, which confined him to bed for two months, and since then his seizures have increased in frequency to daily occurrences, often accompanied by ten to twenty epileptic fits. He now has paralysis in his right arm, and doctors have told him he’ll never regain use of his limbs. In one factory's dipping area, four men, all suffering from epilepsy and severe colic, and eleven boys, several already epileptic, were found. In short, this terrible disease is prevalent in this occupation, and it primarily benefits the bourgeoisie economically. In the rooms where stoneware is polished, the air is filled with pulverized flint, which is as harmful to breathe as the steel dust among Sheffield grinders. Workers experience shortness of breath, can't lie down, suffer from sore throats and severe coughing, and end up with such weak voices that they can hardly be heard. They also all die from tuberculosis. In the Potteries district, there are said to be relatively many schools that provide educational opportunities for children; however, since they begin working as early as twelve hours a day or more, they can’t attend school, resulting in three-quarters of the children examined by the commissioner being unable to read or write, leaving the entire district in a state of deep ignorance. Children who have attended Sunday school for years couldn’t differentiate one letter from another, and both moral and religious education, as well as intellectual education, is very lacking. {207}

In the manufacture of glass, too, work occurs which seems little injurious to men, but cannot be endured by children.  The hard labour, the irregularity of the hours, the frequent night-work, and especially the great heat of the working place (100 to 130 Fahrenheit), engender in children general debility and disease, stunted growth, and especially affections of the eye, bowel complaint, and rheumatic and bronchial affections.  Many of the children are pale, have red eyes, often blind for weeks at a time, suffer from violent nausea, vomiting, coughs, colds, and rheumatism.  When the glass is withdrawn from the fire, the children must often go into such heat that the boards on which they stand catch p. 208fire under their feet.  The glassblowers usually die young of debility and chest affections. {208}

In glass manufacturing, there are tasks that seem harmless to adults but are unbearable for children. The hard work, irregular hours, frequent night shifts, and especially the extreme heat in the workplace (100 to 130 degrees Fahrenheit) lead to general weakness and health issues in children, stunted growth, and particularly problems with the eyes, digestive issues, and rheumatic and bronchial conditions. Many of these children appear pale, have red eyes, are often blind for weeks, experience severe nausea and vomiting, and suffer from coughs, colds, and rheumatism. When glass is taken out of the furnace, the children sometimes have to endure such heat that the boards they stand on catch fire beneath their feet. Glassblowers typically die young from weakness and respiratory issues. {208}

As a whole, this report testifies to the gradual but sure introduction of the factory system into all branches of industry, recognisable especially by the employment of women and children.  I have not thought it necessary to trace in every case the progress of machinery and the superseding of men as workers.  Every one who is in any degree acquainted with the nature of manufacture can fill this out for himself, while space fails me to describe in detail an aspect of our present system of production, the result of which I have already sketched in dealing with the factory system.  In all directions machinery is being introduced, and the last trace of the working-man’s independence thus destroyed.  In all directions the family is being dissolved by the labour of wife and children, or inverted by the husband’s being thrown out of employment and made dependent upon them for bread; everywhere the inevitable machinery bestows upon the great capitalist command of trade and of the workers with it.  The centralisation of capital strides forward without interruption, the division of society into great capitalists and non-possessing workers is sharper every day, the industrial development of the nation advances with giant strides towards the inevitable crisis.

Overall, this report highlights the slow but steady adoption of the factory system across all industries, particularly evident in the employment of women and children. I didn’t find it necessary to detail every instance of machinery’s advancement or its replacement of human workers. Anyone familiar with manufacturing can easily fill in those details on their own, while I don’t have space to go into depth about a key aspect of our current production system, which I've already outlined in my discussion on the factory system. Machinery is being introduced everywhere, erasing the last remnants of workers' independence. The family unit is breaking down as wives and children enter the workforce, or is turned upside down when husbands lose their jobs and become dependent on their families for support; everywhere, the relentless introduction of machinery gives large capitalists control over trade and the labor force. The centralization of capital is progressing continuously, the divide between wealthy capitalists and the working class grows sharper every day, and the nation’s industrial development is surging toward an unavoidable crisis.

I have already stated that in the handicrafts the power of capital, and in some cases the division of labour too, has produced the same results, crushed the small tradesmen, and put great capitalists and non-possessing workers in their place.  As to these handicraftsmen there is little to be said, since all that relates to them has already found its place where the proletariat in general was under discussion.  There has been but little change here in the nature of the work and its influence upon health since the beginning of the industrial movement.  But the constant contact with the factory operatives, the pressure of the great capitalists, which is much more felt than that of the small employer p. 209to whom the apprentice still stood in a more or less personal relation, the influences of life in towns, and the fall of wages, have made nearly all the handicraftsmen active participators in labour movements.  We shall soon have more to say on this point, and turn meanwhile to one section of workers in London who deserve our attention by reason of the extraordinary barbarity with which they are exploited by the money-greed of the bourgeoisie.  I mean the dressmakers and sewing-women.

I have already mentioned that in handicrafts, the power of capital and, in some cases, the division of labor has produced similar outcomes: it has overwhelmed small tradespeople and replaced them with wealthy capitalists and unskilled workers. There isn’t much more to say about these artisans, as everything relevant to them has already been addressed in the discussion about the proletariat in general. Since the start of the industrial movement, there hasn't been much change in the nature of their work or its impact on health. However, the constant interaction with factory workers, the pressure from large capitalists—which is felt much more than that from small employers, with whom apprentices still had a somewhat personal relationship—the influences of urban life, and declining wages have turned almost all artisans into active participants in labor movements. We will discuss this further soon, but for now, let's focus on a group of workers in London who deserve our attention due to the extreme exploitation they face from the greed of the bourgeoisie. I’m referring to the dressmakers and seamstresses.

It is a curious fact that the production of precisely those articles which serve the personal adornment of the ladies of the bourgeoisie involves the saddest consequences for the health of the workers.  We have already seen this in the case of the lacemakers, and come now to the dressmaking establishments of London for further proof.  They employ a mass of young girls—there are said to be 15,000 of them in all—who sleep and eat on the premises, come usually from the country, and are therefore absolutely the slaves of their employers.  During the fashionable season, which lasts some four months, working-hours, even in the best establishments, are fifteen, and, in very pressing cases, eighteen a day; but in most shops work goes on at these times without any set regulation, so that the girls never have more than six, often not more than three or four, sometimes, indeed, not more than two hours in the twenty-four, for rest and sleep, working nineteen to twenty hours, if not the whole night through, as frequently happens!  The only limit set to their work is the absolute physical inability to hold the needle another minute.  Cases have occurred in which these helpless creatures did not undress during nine consecutive days and nights, and could only rest a moment or two here and there upon a mattress, where food was served them ready cut up in order to require the least possible time for swallowing.  In short, these unfortunate girls are kept by means of the moral whip of the modern slave-driver, the threat of discharge, to such long and unbroken toil as no strong man, much less a delicate girl of fourteen to twenty years, can endure.  In addition to this, the foul air of the workroom and sleeping places, the bent posture, the often bad and indigestible food, all p. 210these causes, combined with almost total exclusion from fresh air, entail the saddest consequences for the health of the girls.  Enervation, exhaustion, debility, loss of appetite, pains in the shoulders, back, and hips, but especially headache, begin very soon; then follow curvatures of the spine, high, deformed shoulders, leanness, swelled, weeping, and smarting eyes, which soon become short-sighted; coughs, narrow chests, and shortness of breath, and all manner of disorders in the development of the female organism.  In many cases the eyes suffer, so severely that incurable blindness follows; but if the sight remains strong enough to make continued work possible, consumption usually soon ends the sad life of these milliners and dressmakers.  Even those who leave this work at an early age retain permanently injured health, a broken constitution; and, when married, bring feeble and sickly children into the world.  All the medical men interrogated by the commissioner agreed that no method of life could be invented better calculated to destroy health and induce early death.

It's a strange fact that making the very items used for the personal adornment of middle-class women leads to terrible consequences for the health of the workers. We've already seen this with lacemakers, and now let’s look at the dressmaking shops in London for more evidence. They employ a large number of young girls—reportedly around 15,000—who sleep and eat at the workplace, typically coming from rural areas, making them completely dependent on their employers. During the fashion season, which lasts about four months, working hours, even in the best shops, can reach fifteen hours a day, and in urgent situations, up to eighteen hours; however, in most shops, there are no set hours, so the girls often have only six hours, and sometimes as few as three or four—and sometimes only two hours in twenty-four—dedicated to rest and sleep, working nineteen to twenty hours, if not the entire night often! The only limit on their work is when they are physically unable to hold a needle any longer. There have been instances where these unfortunate girls did not change their clothes for nine consecutive days and nights, managing only brief moments of rest on a mattress where food was offered already cut up to minimize the time spent eating. In essence, these girls are kept in relentless and continuous work by the moral pressure of the modern-day slave driver—the threat of being fired—something no strong man, let alone a delicate girl aged fourteen to twenty, can withstand. Additionally, the stale air in the workroom and sleeping quarters, the awkward postures, and often bad and hard-to-digest food, combined with almost complete lack of fresh air, lead to dire consequences for their health. Fatigue, exhaustion, weakness, loss of appetite, shoulder, back, and hip pain, especially headaches, start quickly; then come spine deformities, high, misshapen shoulders, weight loss, swollen, teary, and irritated eyes, which soon become short-sighted; coughing, narrow chests, and breathlessness, along with various disorders affecting their development as women. In many cases, the eyes are damaged so severely that irreversible blindness occurs; however, if their vision is good enough to continue working, tuberculosis usually soon claims the lives of these milliners and dressmakers. Even those who quit this work at a young age are left with lasting health issues and weakened constitutions, and when they marry, they often have frail and sickly children. All the medical professionals questioned by the commissioner agreed that no lifestyle could be more damaging to health and more likely to lead to early death.

With the same cruelty, though somewhat more indirectly, the rest of the needle-women of London are exploited.  The girls employed in stay-making have a hard, wearing occupation, trying to the eyes.  And what wages do they get?  I do not know; but this I know, that the middle-man who has to give security for the material delivered, and who distributes the work among the needle-women, receives 1½d. per piece.  From this he deducts his own pay, at least ½d., so that 1d. at most reaches the pocket of the girl.  The girls who sew neckties must bind themselves to work sixteen hours a day, and receive 4½s. a week. {210}  But the shirtmakers’ lot is the worst.  They receive for an ordinary shirt 1½d., formerly 2d.-3d.; but since the workhouse of St. Pancras, which is administered by a Radical board of guardians, began to undertake work at 1½d., the poor women outside have been compelled to do the same.  For fine, fancy shirts, which can be made in one day of eighteen hours, 6d. is paid.  The weekly wage of these sewing-women according to this and according to testimony p. 211from many sides, including both needle-women and employers, is 2s. 6d. to 3s. for most strained work continued far into the night.  And what crowns this shameful barbarism is the fact that the women must give a money deposit for a part of the materials entrusted to them, which they naturally cannot do unless they pawn a part of them (as the employers very well know), redeeming them at a loss; or if they cannot redeem the materials, they must appear before a Justice of the Peace, as happened a sewing-woman in November, 1843.  A poor girl who got into this strait and did not know what to do next, drowned herself in a canal in 1844.  These women usually live in little garret rooms in the utmost distress, where as many crowd together as the space can possibly admit, and where, in winter, the animal warmth of the workers is the only heat obtainable.  Here they sit bent over their work, sewing from four or five in the morning until midnight, destroying their health in a year or two and ending in an early grave, without being able to obtain the poorest necessities of life meanwhile. {211}  And below them roll the brilliant equipages of the upper bourgeoisie, and perhaps ten steps away some pitiable dandy loses more money in one evening at faro than they can earn in a year.

With the same harshness, albeit in a more indirect way, the other seamstresses in London are exploited. The women working in stay-making have a tough job that strains their eyesight. And what do they earn? I don’t know exactly, but I do know that the middleman, who has to secure the materials delivered and allocates the work among the seamstresses, takes 1½d. per piece. From this, he deducts his own pay, which is at least ½d., so only 1d. at most goes into the worker's pocket. The women who make neckties have to commit to working sixteen hours a day and earn only 4½s. a week. {210} But the situation for shirtmakers is the worst. They earn 1½d. for a regular shirt, down from 2d.-3d.; since the St. Pancras workhouse, run by a Radical board of guardians, started making shirts for 1½d., the struggling women outside had no choice but to follow suit. For fancy shirts, which can take up to eighteen hours to make, they get paid 6d. The weekly income for these seamstresses, based on this and testimony from various sources—including both seamstresses and employers—is only 2s. 6d. to 3s. for the most grueling work that stretches deep into the night. And what tops this disgraceful situation is the fact that the women have to put down a monetary deposit for part of the materials given to them, which they can't afford unless they pawn some of it (which the employers are very aware of), reclaiming it at a loss; or if they can't get the materials back, they have to face a Justice of the Peace, as one sewing woman did in November 1843. A poor girl who found herself in this predicament and didn’t know what to do next drowned herself in a canal in 1844. These women typically live in tiny garret rooms in extreme poverty, cramming as many as possible into the limited space, where in winter, the only warmth they have comes from each other. Here they sit hunched over their work, sewing from four or five in the morning until midnight, ruining their health within a year or two and ending up in an early grave, all while struggling to meet the basic necessities of life. {211} And just below them, the lavish carriages of the upper middle class roll by, while perhaps just ten steps away, some pitiful dandy loses more money in one evening of gambling than they can earn in a year.

* * * * *

Understood! Please provide the text you would like me to modernize.

Such is the condition of the English manufacturing proletariat.  In all directions, whithersoever we may turn, we find want and disease permanent or temporary, and demoralisation arising from the condition of the workers; in all directions slow but sure undermining, and final destruction of the human being physically as well as mentally.  Is this a state of things which can last?  It cannot and will not last.  The workers, the great majority of the nation, will not endure it.  Let us see what they say of it.

This is the state of the English manufacturing working class. Everywhere we look, whether we turn right or left, we encounter poverty and illness, whether permanent or temporary, along with the demoralization that comes from the workers’ situation; in all directions, there's a gradual but certain erosion, leading to the complete destruction of people both physically and mentally. Is this a situation that can continue? It can't and won't last. The workers, who are the vast majority of the nation, won't put up with it. Let's see what they have to say about it.

p. 212LABOUR MOVEMENTS.

It must be admitted, even if I had not proved it so often in detail, that the English workers cannot feel happy in this condition; that theirs is not a state in which a man or a whole class of men can think, feel, and live as human beings.  The workers must therefore strive to escape from this brutalizing condition, to secure for themselves a better, more human position; and this they cannot do without attacking the interest of the bourgeoisie which consists in exploiting them.  But the bourgeoisie defends its interests with all the power placed at its disposal by wealth and the might of the State.  In proportion as the working-man determines to alter the present state of things, the bourgeois becomes his avowed enemy.

It has to be acknowledged, even if I haven't proven it time and again in detail, that English workers can't feel happy in their current situation; it's not a state where a person or an entire class can think, feel, and live as human beings. The workers must therefore work to break free from this dehumanizing condition and secure a better, more humane existence for themselves; and they can't achieve this without challenging the interests of the bourgeoisie, which are rooted in exploiting them. However, the bourgeoisie defends its interests with all the power it gains from wealth and the strength of the State. As the working man decides to change the present situation, the bourgeois becomes his obvious enemy.

Moreover, the working-man is made to feel at every moment that the bourgeoisie treats him as a chattel, as its property, and for this reason, if for no other, he must come forward as its enemy.  I have shown in a hundred ways in the foregoing pages, and could have shown in a hundred others, that, in our present society, he can save his manhood only in hatred and rebellion against the bourgeoisie.  And he can protest with most violent passion against the tyranny of the propertied class, thanks to his education, or rather want of education, and to the abundance of hot Irish blood that flows in the veins of the English working-class.  The English working-man is no Englishman nowadays; no calculating money-grabber like his wealthy neighbour.  He possesses more fully developed feelings, his native northern coldness is overborne by the unrestrained development of his passions and their control over him.  The cultivation of the understanding which so greatly strengthens the selfish tendency of the English bourgeois, which has made selfishness his predominant p. 213trait and concentrated all his emotional power upon the single point of money-greed, is wanting in the working-man, whose passions are therefore strong and mighty as those of the foreigner.  English nationality is annihilated in the working-man.

Moreover, the worker constantly feels that the bourgeoisie views him as property, and for that reason, if for no other, he must stand against them. I've shown in numerous ways in the previous pages, and could have illustrated in many others, that in our current society, he can only preserve his humanity through hatred and rebellion against the bourgeoisie. He can protest passionately against the oppression of the wealthy class, thanks to his education, or rather lack of it, and the fierce Irish blood that runs in the veins of the English working class. The English worker is no longer just an Englishman; he isn’t a calculating money-grabber like his wealthy neighbor. He has more fully developed emotions; his natural northern coldness is overshadowed by the unrestrained expression of his passions and their hold over him. The cultivation of the intellect that vastly strengthens the selfish tendencies of the English bourgeois, which has made selfishness his primary trait and focused all his emotional energy on the singular point of greed, is absent in the worker, whose passions are therefore as strong and powerful as those of foreigners. English identity is obliterated in the worker.

Since, as we have seen, no single field for the exercise of his manhood is left him, save his opposition to the whole conditions of his life, it is natural that exactly in this opposition he should be most manly, noblest, most worthy of sympathy.  We shall see that all the energy, all the activity of the working-men is directed to this point, and that even their attempts to attain general education all stand in direct connection with this.  True, we shall have single acts of violence and even of brutality to report, but it must always be kept in mind that the social war is avowedly raging in England; and that, whereas it is in the interest of the bourgeoisie to conduct this war hypocritically, under the disguise of peace and even of philanthropy, the only help for the working-men consists in laying bare the true state of things and destroying this hypocrisy; that the most violent attacks of the workers upon the bourgeoisie and its servants are only the open, undisguised expression of that which the bourgeoisie perpetrates secretly, treacherously against the workers.

Since, as we've seen, there's no area left for him to assert his masculinity except by opposing the entire situation of his life, it's natural that in this opposition, he appears the most manly, noble, and deserving of sympathy. We'll find that all the energy and activity of the working-class is focused on this point, and even their efforts to gain general education are directly linked to it. It's true that we will hear about instances of violence and even brutality, but we must always remember that a social conflict is openly occurring in England; and while the bourgeoisie has a vested interest in waging this conflict hypocritically, masquerading as peaceful and even philanthropic, the only way to support the working-class is to expose the real situation and dismantle this hypocrisy. The most forceful actions taken by workers against the bourgeoisie and its agents are merely the open and honest reflection of what the bourgeoisie secretly and treacherously does to the workers.

The revolt of the workers began soon after the first industrial development, and has passed through several phases.  The investigation of their importance in the history of the English people I must reserve for separate treatment, limiting myself meanwhile to such bare facts as serve to characterise the condition of the English proletariat.

The workers' revolt started shortly after the initial industrial development and has gone through several stages. I will discuss its significance in the history of the English people in a separate analysis, for now, I will stick to the basic facts that illustrate the situation of the English working class.

The earliest, crudest, and least fruitful form of this rebellion was that of crime.  The working-man lived in poverty and want, and saw that others were better off than he.  It was not clear to his mind why he, who did more for society than the rich idler, should be the one to suffer under these conditions.  Want conquered his inherited respect for the sacredness of property, and he stole.  We have seen how crime increased with the extension of manufacture; how the yearly number of arrests bore a constant relation to the number of bales of cotton annually consumed.

The earliest, simplest, and least successful form of this rebellion was through crime. The working man lived in poverty and need, seeing that others were better off than he was. It wasn’t clear to him why he, who contributed more to society than the wealthy idle, should be the one to face these struggles. His need overcame his ingrained respect for the sanctity of property, and he resorted to stealing. We have observed how crime rose with the growth of manufacturing; how the yearly number of arrests consistently correlated with the amount of cotton bales consumed each year.

p. 214The workers soon realised that crime did not help matters.  The criminal could protest against the existing order of society only singly, as one individual; the whole might of society was brought to bear upon each criminal, and crushed him with its immense superiority.  Besides, theft was the most primitive form of protest, and for this reason, if for no other, it never became the universal expression of the public opinion of the working-men, however much they might approve of it in silence.  As a class, they first manifested opposition to the bourgeoisie when they resisted the introduction of machinery at the very beginning of the industrial period.  The first inventors, Arkwright and others, were persecuted in this way and their machines destroyed.  Later, there took place a number of revolts against machinery, in which the occurrences were almost precisely the same as those of the printers’ disturbances in Bohemia in 1844; factories were demolished and machinery destroyed.

p. 214The workers quickly realized that crime wasn't a solution. A criminal could only challenge the existing social order as an individual; the full power of society came down hard on each criminal, overwhelming them with its vast superiority. Moreover, theft was the most basic form of protest, and for this reason alone, it never became the widespread way working-class people expressed their opinions, no matter how much they silently supported it. As a group, they first showed their resistance to the bourgeoisie when they stood against the introduction of machinery at the start of the industrial era. The early inventors, like Arkwright and others, faced persecution, and their machines were destroyed. Later on, there were several revolts against machinery, closely resembling the printer disturbances in Bohemia in 1844; factories were torn down, and equipment was wrecked.

This form of opposition also was isolated, restricted to certain localities, and directed against one feature only of our present social arrangements.  When the momentary end was attained, the whole weight of social power fell upon the unprotected evil-doers and punished them to its heart’s content, while the machinery was introduced none the less.  A new form of opposition had to be found.

This type of opposition was also isolated, limited to specific areas, and focused on just one aspect of our current social structure. Once the immediate goal was achieved, all the weight of social power came down on the defenseless wrongdoers and punished them thoroughly, while the system was implemented regardless. A new form of opposition needed to be developed.

At this point help came in the shape of a law enacted by the old, unreformed, oligarchic-Tory parliament, a law which never could have passed the House of Commons later, when the Reform Bill had legally sanctioned the distinction between bourgeoisie and proletariat, and made the bourgeoisie the ruling class.  This was enacted in 1824, and repealed all laws by which coalitions between working-men for labour purposes had hitherto been forbidden.  The working-men obtained a right previously restricted to the aristocracy and bourgeoisie, the right of free association.  Secret coalitions had, it is true, previously existed, but could never achieve great results.  In Glasgow, as Symonds {214} relates, a general strike of weavers had taken place in 1812, which was brought about by p. 215a secret association.  It was repeated in 1822, and on this occasion vitriol was thrown into the faces of the two working-men who would not join the association, and were therefore regarded by the members as traitors to their class.  Both the assaulted lost the use of their eyes in consequence of the injury.  So, too, in 1818, the association of Scottish miners was powerful enough to carry on a general strike.  These associations required their members to take an oath of fidelity and secrecy, had regular lists, treasurers, bookkeepers, and local branches.  But the secrecy with which everything was conducted crippled their growth.  When, on the other hand, the working-man received in 1824 the right of free association, these combinations were very soon spread over all England and attained great power.  In all branches of industry Trades Unions were formed with the outspoken intention of protecting the single working-man against the tyranny and neglect of the bourgeoisie.  Their objects were to deal, en masse, as a power, with the employers; to regulate the rate of wages according to the profit of the latter, to raise it when opportunity offered, and to keep it uniform in each trade throughout the country.  Hence they tried to settle with the capitalists a scale of wages to be universally adhered to, and ordered out on strike the employees of such individuals as refused to accept the scale.  They aimed further to keep up the demand for labour by limiting the number of apprentices, and so to keep wages high; to counteract, as far as possible, the indirect wages reductions which the manufacturers brought about by means of new tools and machinery; and finally, to assist unemployed working-men financially.  This they do either directly or by means of a card to legitimate the bearer as a “society man,” and with which the working-man wanders from place to place, supported by his fellow-workers, and instructed as to the best opportunity for finding employment.  This is tramping, and the wanderer a tramp.  To attain these ends, a President and Secretary are engaged at a salary (since it is to be expected that no manufacturer will employ such persons), and a committee collects the weekly contributions and watches over their expenditure for the purposes of the association.  When it proved possible p. 216and advantageous, the various trades of single districts united in a federation and held delegate conventions at set times.  The attempt has been made in single cases to unite the workers of one branch over all England in one great Union; and several times (in 1830 for the first time) to form one universal trades association for the whole United Kingdom, with a separate organisation for each trade.  These associations, however, never held together long, and were seldom realised even for the moment, since an exceptionally universal excitement is necessary to make such a federation possible and effective.

At this point, help came in the form of a law passed by the old, unreformed, oligarchic-Tory parliament, a law that couldn't have passed in later years when the Reform Bill had legally recognized the distinction between the bourgeoisie and the proletariat, elevating the bourgeoisie to the ruling class. This law was enacted in 1824 and repealed all restrictions that had previously banned coalitions among working men for labor purposes. Working men gained a right that had been limited to the aristocracy and bourgeoisie: the right to free association. While secret coalitions had existed before, they never achieved significant results. In Glasgow, as Symonds {214} recounts, there was a general strike of weavers in 1812, organized by a secret association. This was repeated in 1822, when vitriol was thrown in the faces of two working men who refused to join the association, leading the group to see them as traitors to their class. Both of the assaulted lost their sight as a result. Similarly, in 1818, the association of Scottish miners was strong enough to carry out a general strike. These associations required members to take oaths of loyalty and secrecy, maintained regular lists, had treasurers, bookkeepers, and local branches. However, the secrecy surrounding their operations hindered their growth. When working men received the right to free association in 1824, these organizations quickly spread across England and gained significant power. In all sectors of industry, trade unions were formed explicitly to protect individual workers from the tyranny and neglect of the bourgeoisie. Their goals were to negotiate collectively as a powerful group with employers, to adjust wage rates based on their profits, to raise wages whenever possible, and to maintain uniform wages within each trade nationwide. Therefore, they sought to establish a wage scale that capitalists would universally follow and organized strikes against those who refused to accept the scale. They also aimed to keep demand for labor high by limiting the number of apprentices, thus helping to maintain high wages; to counteract the indirect wage reductions brought about by manufacturers through new tools and machinery; and finally, to provide financial assistance to unemployed working men. They achieved this either directly or by issuing a card that recognized the bearer as a “society man,” allowing him to travel from place to place, supported by fellow workers, and guided on the best opportunities for finding employment. This is known as tramping, and the traveler is a tramp. To achieve these goals, a President and Secretary were hired for a salary (since it was expected that no manufacturer would employ such individuals), and a committee collected weekly contributions and monitored their spending for the association's purposes. When it was feasible and beneficial, various trades from individual districts united in a federation and held delegate conventions at regular intervals. Attempts have been made in specific cases to unite workers in a single branch across all of England into one large Union, and several times (initially in 1830) to form a universal trade association for the entire United Kingdom, with separate organizations for each trade. However, these associations rarely lasted long and were seldom realized even momentarily, as an exceptionally widespread enthusiasm is needed to make such a federation feasible and effective.

The means usually employed by these Unions for attaining their ends are the following: If one or more employers refuse to pay the wage specified by the Union, a deputation is sent or a petition forwarded (the working-men, you see, know how to recognise the absolute power of the lord of the factory in his little State); if this proves unavailing, the Union commands the employees to stop work, and all hands go home.  This strike is either partial when one or several, or general when all employers in the trade refuse to regulate wages according to the proposals of the Union.  So far go the lawful means of the Union, assuming the strike to take effect after the expiration of the legal notice, which is not always the case.  But these lawful means are very weak when there are workers outside the Union, or when members separate from it for the sake of the momentary advantage offered by the bourgeoisie.  Especially in the case of partial strikes can the manufacturer readily secure recruits from these black sheep (who are known as knobsticks), and render fruitless the efforts of the united workers.  Knobsticks are usually threatened, insulted, beaten, or otherwise maltreated by the members of the Union; intimidated, in short, in every way.  Prosecution follows, and as the law-abiding bourgeoisie has the power in its own hands, the force of the Union is broken almost every time by the first unlawful act, the first judicial procedure against its members.

The methods typically used by these unions to achieve their goals are as follows: If one or more employers refuse to pay the wage set by the union, a delegation is sent or a petition is submitted (the workers understand the total authority of the factory owner in his small domain); if this doesn’t work, the union instructs the employees to stop working, and everyone goes home. This strike is either partial when one or a few employers are involved, or general when all employers in the industry refuse to adjust wages according to the union's proposals. So far, these are the legal means of the union, assuming the strike occurs after the required legal notice, which is not always the case. However, these legal means are very weak when there are workers outside the union, or when members leave for the temporary benefits offered by the capitalists. Particularly in cases of partial strikes, the manufacturer can easily find replacements from these outliers (known as knobsticks), undermining the efforts of the united workers. Knobsticks are usually threatened, insulted, beaten, or otherwise mistreated by union members; they are intimidated in every possible way. Legal action follows, and since the law-abiding capitalists have power in their hands, the strength of the union is often broken by the first unlawful act or the first legal action against its members.

The history of these Unions is a long series of defeats of the working-men, interrupted by a few isolated victories.  All these efforts naturally cannot alter the economic law according to which p. 217wages are determined by the relation between supply and demand in the labour market.  Hence the Unions remain powerless against all great forces which influence this relation.  In a commercial crisis the Union itself must reduce wages or dissolve wholly; and in a time of considerable increase in the demand for labour, it cannot fix the rate of wages higher than would be reached spontaneously by the competition of the capitalists among themselves.  But in dealing with minor, single influences they are powerful.  If the employer had no concentrated, collective opposition to expect, he would in his own interest gradually reduce wages to a lower and lower point; indeed, the battle of competition which he has to wage against his fellow-manufacturers would force him to do so, and wages would soon reach the minimum.  But this competition of the manufacturers among themselves is, under average conditions, somewhat restricted by the opposition of the working-men.

The history of these Unions is filled with many defeats for the working class, with only a few isolated victories. These efforts can't change the economic principle that wages are determined by the balance between supply and demand in the labor market. As a result, the Unions are powerless against the big forces that affect this balance. During a commercial crisis, the Union itself must cut wages or completely dissolve; and during a significant increase in labor demand, it can't set wages higher than what would naturally be achieved through competition among capitalists. However, when it comes to smaller, individual influences, they are effective. If the employer didn't expect any organized opposition, he would gradually lower wages to an even lower level; in fact, the competition he faces from other manufacturers would compel him to do so, and wages would quickly drop to the minimum. But this competition among manufacturers is, under normal conditions, somewhat limited by the resistance from the working class.

Every manufacturer knows that the consequence of a reduction not justified by conditions to which his competitors also are subjected, would be a strike, which would most certainly injure him, because his capital would be idle as long as the strike lasted, and his machinery would be rusting, whereas it is very doubtful whether he could, in such a case, enforce his reduction.  Then he has the certainty that if he should succeed, his competitors would follow him, reducing the price of the goods so produced, and thus depriving him of the benefit of his policy.  Then, too, the Unions often bring about a more rapid increase of wages after a crisis than would otherwise follow.  For the manufacturer’s interest is to delay raising wages until forced by competition, but now the working-men demand an increased wage as soon as the market improves, and they can carry their point by reason of the smaller supply of workers at his command under such circumstances.  But, for resistance to more considerable forces which influence the labour market, the Unions are powerless.  In such cases hunger gradually drives the strikers to resume work on any terms, and when once a few have begun; the force of the Union is broken, because these few knobsticks, with the reserve supplies of goods in the market, enable the bourgeoisie to overcome p. 218the worst effects of the interruption of business.  The funds of the Union are soon exhausted by the great numbers requiring relief, the credit which the shopkeepers give at high interest is withdrawn after a time, and want compels the working-man to place himself once more under the yoke of the bourgeoisie.  But strikes end disastrously for the workers mostly, because the manufacturers, in their own interest (which has, be it said, become their interest only through the resistance of the workers), are obliged to avoid all useless reductions, while the workers feel in every reduction imposed by the state of trade a deterioration of their condition, against which they must defend themselves as far as in them lies.

Every manufacturer knows that reducing prices without a valid reason, especially if competitors are also facing the same challenges, would lead to a strike, which would definitely hurt him. His capital would sit idle for the duration of the strike, and his machinery would start to rust, while it’s uncertain whether he could actually enforce such a price cut. If he did manage to lower prices, he could be sure that his competitors would follow suit, leading to a drop in the price of the goods produced and eliminating any advantage he might have gained. Additionally, unions often push for faster wage increases after an economic downturn than would normally happen. Manufacturers prefer to wait to raise wages until they are forced by competition, but now workers are asking for higher pay as soon as the market improves, and they can win that fight due to the reduced number of available workers in that situation. However, unions are powerless against major forces that affect the labor market. In these cases, hunger eventually drives strikers to return to work under any terms they can get, and once a few workers go back, the strength of the union is weakened. These few workers, along with the stockpiles of goods in the market, help businesses weather the worst effects of the disruption. The union's funds quickly run out due to the large number of members needing support, and the credit that shopkeepers provide at high interest rates dries up after a while. Desperation forces workers to submit to the demands of business owners again. Strikes often end poorly for the workers because manufacturers, acting in their own interest (which has only come about because of workers' resistance), have to avoid any unnecessary price cuts. On the other hand, workers feel that any reduction caused by market conditions worsens their situation, and they must defend themselves as best as they can.

It will be asked, “Why, then, do the workers strike in such cases, when the uselessness of such measures is so evident?”  Simply because they must protest against every reduction, even if dictated by necessity; because they feel bound to proclaim that they, as human beings, shall not be made to bow to social circumstances, but social conditions ought to yield to them as human beings; because silence on their part would be a recognition of these social conditions, an admission of the right of the bourgeoisie to exploit the workers in good times and let them starve in bad ones.  Against this the working-men must rebel so long as they have not lost all human feeling, and that they protest in this way and no other, comes of their being practical English people, who express themselves in action, and do not, like German theorists, go to sleep as soon as their protest is properly registered and placed ad acta, there to sleep as quietly as the protesters themselves.  The active resistance of the English working-men has its effect in holding the money greed of the bourgeoisie within certain limits, and keeping alive the opposition of the workers to the social and political omnipotence of the bourgeoisie, while it compels the admission that something more is needed than Trades Unions and strikes to break the power of the ruling class.  But what gives these Unions and the strikes arising from them their real importance is this, that they are the first attempt of the workers to abolish competition.  They imply the recognition of the fact that the supremacy of the bourgeoisie is based wholly upon the p. 219competition of the workers among themselves; i.e., upon their want of cohesion.  And precisely because the Unions direct themselves against the vital nerve of the present social order, however one-sidedly, in however narrow a way, are they so dangerous to this social order.  The working-men cannot attack the bourgeoisie, and with it the whole existing order of society, at any sorer point than this.  If the competition of the workers among themselves is destroyed, if all determine not to be further exploited by the bourgeoisie, the rule of property is at an end.  Wages depend upon the relation of demand to supply, upon the accidental state of the labour market, simply because the workers have hitherto been content to be treated as chattels, to be bought and sold.  The moment the workers resolve to be bought and sold no longer, when in the determination of the value of labour, they take the part of men possessed of a will as well as of working-power, at that moment the whole Political Economy of to-day is at an end.

It will be asked, “Why do the workers strike in these situations when it’s so clear that these actions are ineffective?” Simply because they must stand up against every reduction, even if it’s necessary; because they feel obligated to assert that they, as human beings, will not submit to social conditions, but rather social conditions should yield to them as human beings; because remaining silent would mean acknowledging these social conditions and admitting that the bourgeoisie have the right to exploit workers during good times and let them suffer during bad times. The working men must resist this as long as they haven’t lost all human compassion, and their choice to protest in this manner, rather than any other, reflects their practical English nature, where they express themselves through action, unlike German theorists who lose interest as soon as their protests are officially noted and filed away, sinking into silence just like the protesters themselves. The active resistance of English workers helps to keep the financial greed of the bourgeoisie in check and sustain the workers' opposition to the social and political dominance of the bourgeoisie, while also highlighting that something more than Trade Unions and strikes is needed to challenge the power of the ruling class. Yet, the real significance of these Unions and the strikes that emerge from them lies in the fact that they are the first efforts by the workers to eliminate competition. They acknowledge that the dominance of the bourgeoisie is entirely based on the p. 219competition among workers; in other words, on their lack of unity. And precisely because the Unions are targeting the critical nerve of the current social system, even if in a one-sided and limited way, they pose a significant threat to this social order. The workers cannot hit the bourgeoisie, and by extension the entire existing social structure, at a more vulnerable point than this. If the competition among workers is eliminated, if everyone agrees not to be exploited by the bourgeoisie any longer, the rule of property is finished. Wages depend on the balance of demand and supply, on the random state of the labor market, simply because workers have so far accepted being treated as commodities, to be bought and sold. The moment workers decide they will no longer be bought and sold, when in determining the value of labor they act as individuals with both will and working power, at that moment the entire Political Economy of today ceases to exist.

The laws determining the rate of wages would, indeed, come into force again in the long run, if the working-men did not go beyond this step of abolishing competition among themselves.  But they must go beyond that unless they are prepared to recede again and to allow competition among themselves to reappear.  Thus once advanced so far, necessity compels them to go farther; to abolish not only one kind of competition, but competition itself altogether, and that they will do.

The laws that determine wage rates will eventually kick in again if the workers don’t take the next step of eliminating competition among themselves. But they need to go further unless they want to go back and let competition among themselves start up again. So, having moved this far, necessity pushes them to go further; to get rid of not just one type of competition, but competition altogether, and that’s exactly what they will do.

The workers are coming to perceive more clearly with every day how competition affects them; they see far more clearly than the bourgeois that competition of the capitalists among themselves presses upon the workers too, by bringing on commercial crises, and that this kind of competition; too, must be abolished.  They will soon learn how they have to go about it.

The workers are increasingly realizing every day how competition impacts them; they understand much better than the bourgeois that the competition among capitalists also affects the workers by triggering economic crises, and that this type of competition must be eliminated as well. They will soon figure out how to make that happen.

That these Unions contribute greatly to nourish the bitter hatred of the workers against the property-holding class need hardly be said.  From them proceed, therefore, with or without the connivance of the leading members, in times of unusual excitement, individual actions which can be explained only by hatred wrought to the pitch of despair, by a wild passion overwhelming p. 220all restraints.  Of this sort are the attacks with vitriol mentioned in the foregoing pages, and a series of others, of which I shall cite several.  In 1831, during a violent labour movement, young Ashton, a manufacturer in Hyde, near Manchester, was shot one evening when crossing a field, and no trace of the assassin discovered.  There is no doubt that this was a deed of vengeance of the working-men.  Incendiarisms and attempted explosions are very common.  On Friday, September 29th, 1843, an attempt was made to blow up the saw-works of Padgin, in Howard Street, Sheffield.  A closed iron tube filled with powder was the means employed, and the damage was considerable.  On the following day, a similar attempt was made in Ibbetson’s knife and file works at Shales Moor, near Sheffield.  Mr. Ibbetson had made himself obnoxious by an active participation in bourgeois movements, by low wages, the exclusive employment of knobsticks, and the exploitation of the Poor Law for his own benefit.  He had reported, during the crisis of 1842, such operatives as refused to accept reduced wages, as persons who could find work but would not take it, and were, therefore, not deserving of relief, so compelling the acceptance of a reduction.  Considerable damage was inflicted by the explosion, and all the working-men who came to view it regretted only “that the whole concern was not blown into the air.”  On Friday, October 6th, 1844, an attempt to set fire to the factory of Ainsworth and Crompton, at Bolton, did no damage; it was the third or fourth attempt in the same factory within a very short time.  In the meeting of the Town Council of Sheffield, on Wednesday, January 10th, 1844, the Commissioner of Police exhibited a cast-iron machine, made for the express purpose of producing an explosion, and found filled with four pounds of powder, and a fuse which had been lighted but had not taken effect, in the works of Mr. Kitchen, Earl Street, Sheffield.  On Sunday, January 20th, 1844, an explosion caused by a package of powder took place in the sawmill of Bently & White, at Bury, in Lancashire, and produced considerable damage.  On Thursday, February 1st, 1844, the Soho Wheel Works, in Sheffield, were set on fire and burnt up.

It's clear that these unions really fuel the intense resentment workers feel toward the property-owning class. As a result, during times of heightened emotions, whether or not their leaders are aware, individual actions emerge that can only be understood as hatred pushed to the point of despair, with a wild passion that overcomes all restraints. This includes the vitriol attacks mentioned previously, along with a number of other incidents that I will highlight. In 1831, during a significant labor movement, young Ashton, a manufacturer in Hyde, near Manchester, was shot one evening while crossing a field, and no evidence of the shooter was ever found. There's no doubt that this was an act of revenge by the workers. Arson and attempts at explosions are quite frequent. On Friday, September 29th, 1843, there was an attempt to blow up the saw-works of Padgin on Howard Street, Sheffield. A closed iron tube filled with gunpowder was used, causing considerable damage. The next day, a similar attempt was made at Ibbetson’s knife and file works at Shales Moor, near Sheffield. Mr. Ibbetson had made himself unpopular through his active involvement in capitalist movements, by paying low wages, exclusively hiring knobsticks, and exploiting the Poor Law for his gain. He had reported workers during the 1842 crisis who refused to accept reduced wages as those who could find work but refused to take it, and thus unworthy of assistance, effectively forcing them to accept lower pay. The explosion caused significant damage, and all the workers who came to look at it expressed regret that "the whole place was not blown to bits." On Friday, October 6th, 1844, an attempt to set fire to the factory of Ainsworth and Crompton in Bolton caused no damage; this was the third or fourth attempt at this location in a short period. In the Sheffield Town Council meeting on Wednesday, January 10th, 1844, the Commissioner of Police displayed a cast-iron device made specifically to cause an explosion, which was found filled with four pounds of gunpowder and a fuse that had been lit but failed to ignite at Mr. Kitchen's works on Earl Street in Sheffield. On Sunday, January 20th, 1844, an explosion from a package of gunpowder occurred at the sawmill of Bently & White in Bury, Lancashire, causing significant damage. On Thursday, February 1st, 1844, the Soho Wheel Works in Sheffield were set on fire and completely destroyed.

p. 221Here are six such cases in four months, all of which have their sole origin in the embitterment of the working-men against the employers.  What sort of a social state it must be in which such things are possible I need hardly say.  These facts are proof enough that in England, even in good business years, such as 1843, the social war is avowed and openly carried on, and still the English bourgeoisie does not stop to reflect!  But the case which speaks most loudly is that of the Glasgow Thugs, {221a} which came up before the Assizes from the 3rd to the 11th of January, 1838.  It appears from the proceedings that the Cotton-Spinners’ Union, which existed here from the year 1816, possessed rare organisation and power.  The members were bound by an oath to adhere to the decision of the majority, and had during every turnout a secret committee which was unknown to the mass of the members, and controlled the funds of the Union absolutely.  This committee fixed a price upon the heads of knobsticks and obnoxious manufacturers and upon incendiarisms in mills.  A mill was thus set on fire in which female knobsticks were employed in spinning in the place of men; a Mrs. M’Pherson, mother of one of these girls, was murdered, and both murderers sent to America at the expense of the association.  As early as 1820, a knobstick named M’Quarry was shot at and wounded, for which deed the doer received twenty pounds from the Union, but was discovered and transported for life.  Finally, in 1837, in May, disturbances occurred in consequence of a turnout in the Oatbank and Mile End factories, in which perhaps a dozen knobsticks were maltreated.  In July, of the same year, the disturbances still continued, and a certain Smith, a knobstick, was so maltreated that he died.  The committee was now arrested, an investigation begun, and the leading members found guilty of participation in conspiracies, maltreatment of knobsticks, and incendiarism in the mill of James and Francis Wood, and they were transported for seven years.  What do our good Germans say to this story? {221b}

p. 221Here are six cases in just four months, all stemming from the resentment of workers towards their employers. I don’t need to explain what kind of society allows such things. These facts clearly show that in England, even during prosperous years like 1843, the social conflict is open and acknowledged, yet the English bourgeoisie still doesn’t stop to think! But the most striking case is that of the Glasgow Thugs, {221a} which was brought before the Assizes from January 3rd to January 11th, 1838. The proceedings reveal that the Cotton-Spinners' Union, established in 1816, was exceptionally organized and powerful. Members swore an oath to follow the majority’s decisions, and during every strike, there was a secret committee that operated independently from the general members and had complete control over the Union's funds. This committee put bounties on the heads of scabs and detested factory owners, as well as on acts of arson in mills. One mill was set on fire where women were replacing men in the spinning process; a Mrs. M’Pherson, mother of one of these girls, was murdered, and both killers were sent to America at the Union's expense. As early as 1820, a scab named M’Quarry was shot and injured, for which the perpetrator received twenty pounds from the Union but ended up being caught and sentenced to life transportation. In May 1837, riots broke out due to a strike at the Oatbank and Mile End factories, where about a dozen scabs were assaulted. By July of that year, the violence persisted, and a scab named Smith was so badly beaten that he died. The committee was arrested, an investigation initiated, and key members were found guilty of plotting, assaulting scabs, and committing arson at the mill of James and Francis Wood, resulting in their transportation for seven years. What do our good Germans think of this story? {221b}

p. 222The property-holding class, and especially the manufacturing portion of it which comes into direct contact with the working-men, declaims with the greatest violence against these Unions, and is constantly trying to prove their uselessness to the working-men upon grounds which are economically perfectly correct, but for that very reason partially mistaken, and for the working-man’s understanding totally without effect.  The very zeal of the bourgeoisie shows that it is not disinterested in the matter; and apart from the indirect loss involved in a turnout, the state of the case is such that whatever goes into the pockets of the manufacturers comes of necessity out of those of the worker.  So that even if the working-men did not know that the Unions hold the emulation of their masters in the reduction of wages, at least in a measure, in check, they would still stand by the Unions, simply to the injury of their enemies, the manufacturers.  In war the injury of one party is the benefit of the other, and since the working-men are on a war-footing towards their employers, they do merely what the great potentates do when they get into a quarrel.  Beyond all other bourgeois is our friend Dr. Ure, the most furious enemy of the Unions.  He foams with indignation at the “secret tribunals” of the cotton-spinners, the most powerful section of the workers, tribunals which boast their ability to paralyse every disobedient manufacturer, {222a} “and so bring ruin on the man who had given them profitable employment for many a year.”  He speaks of a time {222b} “when the inventive head and the sustaining heart of trade were held in bondage by the unruly lower members.”  A pity that the English working-men will not p. 223let themselves be pacified so easily with thy fable as the Roman Plebs, thou modern Menenius Agrippa!  Finally, he relates the following: At one time the coarse mule-spinners had misused their power beyond all endurance.  High wages, instead of awakening thankfulness towards the manufacturers and leading to intellectual improvement (in harmless study of sciences useful to the bourgeoisie, of course), in many cases produced pride and supplied funds for supporting rebellious spirits in strikes, with which a number of manufacturers were visited one after the other in a purely arbitrary manner.  During an unhappy disturbance of this sort in Hyde, Dukinfield, and the surrounding neighbourhood, the manufacturers of the district, anxious lest they should be driven from the market by the French, Belgians, and Americans, addressed themselves to the machine-works of Sharp, Roberts & Co., and requested Mr. Sharp to turn his inventive mind to the construction of an automatic mule in order “to emancipate the trade from galling slavery and impending ruin.” {223a}

p. 222The property-owning class, especially the manufacturing segment that interacts directly with workers, vehemently opposes these Unions and constantly tries to prove their uselessness to workers based on economically valid arguments that, for that very reason, are somewhat misguided and completely ineffective for the workers’ understanding. The intense opposition from the bourgeoisie shows that they have a vested interest in this issue; and aside from the indirect losses that come from strikes, the reality is that whatever benefits manufacturers receive inevitably comes at the expense of the workers. So, even if workers weren't aware that the Unions keep their bosses' attempts to cut wages in check, they would still support the Unions just to undermine their enemies, the manufacturers. In a conflict, what harms one side benefits the other, and since workers are in a conflict with their employers, they are acting much like the powerful leaders do when they quarrel. Among all the bourgeois, our friend Dr. Ure is the fiercest opponent of the Unions. He rages against the “secret tribunals” of the cotton-spinners, the most influential group of workers, which claim they can paralyze any defiant manufacturer, {222a} “and thus ruin the person who had provided them with profitable work for many years.” He speaks of a time {222b} “when the innovative thinkers and the driving force of trade were held captive by the unruly lower ranks.” It’s unfortunate that English workers won’t be easily appeased by your story like the Roman Plebs, you modern Menenius Agrippa! Finally, he recounts this: At one point, the rough mule-spinners had abused their power beyond all tolerance. High wages, instead of fostering gratitude towards the manufacturers and leading to intellectual growth (in harmless studies beneficial to the bourgeoisie, of course), in many instances fostered arrogance and funded rebellious actions during strikes that targeted several manufacturers in a wholly arbitrary fashion. During an unfortunate disturbance of this kind in Hyde, Dukinfield, and the nearby area, local manufacturers, fearing they’d be driven out of the market by the French, Belgians, and Americans, reached out to the machine works of Sharp, Roberts & Co., and asked Mr. Sharp to use his inventive skills to create an automatic mule to “free the trade from oppressive slavery and looming disaster.” {223a}

“He produced in the course of a few months a machine apparently instinct with the thought, feeling, and tact of the experienced workman—which even in its infancy displayed a new principle of regulation, ready in its mature state to fulfil the functions of a finished spinner.  Thus the Iron Man, as the operatives fitly call it, sprung out of the hands of our modern Prometheus at the bidding of Minerva—a creation destined to restore order among the industrious classes, and to confirm to Great Britain the empire of art.  The news of this Herculean prodigy spread dismay through the Union, and even long before it left its cradle, so to speak, it strangled the Hydra of misrule.” {223b}

“He created a machine in just a few months that seemed to have the thought, feeling, and skill of a seasoned worker—showing even in its early stages a new way to operate, ready in its full form to perform the tasks of a capable spinner. Thus, the Iron Man, as the workers aptly named it, emerged from the hands of our modern Prometheus at Minerva's command—a creation meant to bring order to the working class and ensure that Great Britain maintains its artistic dominance. The news of this incredible achievement spread fear throughout the Union, and even before it was fully developed, it crushed the chaos of mismanagement.” {223b}

Ure proves further that the invention of the machine, with which four and five colours are printed at once, was a result of the disturbances among the calico printers; that the refractoriness of the yarn-dressers in the power-loom weaving mills gave rise to a new and perfected machine for warp-dressing, and mentions several other such cases.  A few pages earlier this same Ure gives p. 224himself a great deal of trouble to prove in detail that machinery is beneficial to the workers!  But Ure is not the only one; in the Factory Report, Mr. Ashworth, the manufacturer, and many another, lose no opportunity to express their wrath against the Unions.  These wise bourgeois, like certain governments, trace every movement which they do not understand, to the influence of ill-intentioned agitators, demagogues, traitors, spouting idiots, and ill-balanced youth.  They declare that the paid agents of the Unions are interested in the agitation because they live upon it, as though the necessity for this payment were not forced upon them by the bourgeois, who will give such men no employment!

Ure further demonstrates that the invention of the machine which prints four and five colors at once came about due to the disruptions among calico printers; that the stubbornness of yarn-dressers in power-loom weaving mills led to a new and improved machine for warp-dressing, and he cites several other examples. A few pages earlier, this same Ure goes to great lengths to show in detail that machinery benefits workers! But Ure isn’t the only one; in the Factory Report, Mr. Ashworth, the manufacturer, and many others take every chance they get to express their anger towards the Unions. These so-called wise bourgeois, like certain governments, attribute every movement they don’t understand to the influence of malicious agitators, demagogues, traitors, blabbering fools, and unstable youth. They claim that the paid agents of the Unions are only interested in stirring up trouble because they profit from it, as if this need for payment wasn’t forced upon them by the bourgeois, who refuse to provide such men with any employment!

The incredible frequency of these strikes proves best of all to what extent the social war has broken out all over England.  No week passes, scarcely a day, indeed, in which there is not a strike in some direction, now against a reduction, then against a refusal to raise the rate of wages, again by reason of the employment of knobsticks or the continuance of abuses, sometimes against new machinery, or for a hundred other reasons.  These strikes, at first skirmishes, sometimes result in weighty struggles; they decide nothing, it is true, but they are the strongest proof that the decisive battle between bourgeoisie and proletariat is approaching.  They are the military school of the working-men in which they prepare themselves for the great struggle which cannot be avoided; they are the pronunciamentos of single branches of industry that these too have joined the labour movement.  And when one examines a year’s file of the Northern Star, the only sheet which reports all the movements of the proletariat, one finds that all the proletarians of the towns and of country manufacture have united in associations, and have protested from time to time, by means of a general strike, against the supremacy of the bourgeoisie.  And as schools of war, the Unions are unexcelled.  In them is developed the peculiar courage of the English.  It is said on the Continent that the English, and especially the working-men, are cowardly, that they cannot carry out a revolution because, unlike the French, they do not riot at intervals, because they apparently accept the bourgeois régime so quietly.  This is a p. 225complete mistake.  The English working-men are second to none in courage; they are quite as restless as the French, but they fight differently.  The French, who are by nature political, struggle against social evils with political weapons; the English, for whom politics exist only as a matter of interest, solely in the interest of bourgeois society, fight, not against the Government, but directly against the bourgeoisie; and for the time, this can be done only in a peaceful manner.  Stagnation in business, and the want consequent upon it, engendered the revolt at Lyons, in 1834, in favour of the Republic: in 1842, at Manchester, a similar cause gave rise to a universal turnout for the Charter and higher wages.  That courage is required for a turnout, often indeed much loftier courage, much bolder, firmer determination than for an insurrection, is self-evident.  It is, in truth, no trifle for a working-man who knows want from experience, to face it with wife and children, to endure hunger and wretchedness for months together, and stand firm and unshaken through it all.  What is death, what the galleys which await the French revolutionist, in comparison with gradual starvation, with the daily sight of a starving family, with the certainty of future revenge on the part of the bourgeoisie, all of which the English working-man chooses in preference to subjection under the yoke of the property-holding class?  We shall meet later an example of this obstinate, unconquerable courage of men who surrender to force only when all resistance would be aimless and unmeaning.  And precisely in this quiet perseverance, in this lasting determination which undergoes a hundred tests every day, the English working-man develops that side of his character which commands most respect.  People who endure so much to bend one single bourgeois will be able to break the power of the whole bourgeoisie.

The sheer number of these strikes shows just how widespread the social conflict has become across England. Hardly a week goes by, sometimes not even a day, without a strike happening somewhere, whether it's against wage cuts, demands for higher pay, issues with unfair employment practices, resistance to new machinery, or for a hundred other reasons. Initially, these strikes may seem like minor disputes, but they can turn into significant battles; they may not lead to definitive outcomes, but they serve as strong evidence that a major showdown between the middle class and the working class is looming. They act as the training ground for workers, preparing them for the inevitable larger conflict ahead, signaling that various sectors are also joining the labor movement. If you look through a year's worth of the Northern Star, the only publication that covers all the working-class movements, you can see that workers in towns and rural areas have come together in associations and have protested at times through general strikes against the dominance of the middle class. The Unions, serving as schools of resistance, are unparalleled. Here, the unique bravery of the English is cultivated. It's often said on the Continent that the English, especially the working class, are cowardly and unable to conduct a revolution because, unlike the French, they don't riot regularly and seem to accept the middle-class system so quietly. This is a complete misunderstanding. The English working class has no less courage; they are as restless as the French but fight in a different way. The French, who are inherently political, confront social issues with political tools, while the English see politics only as a concern for the middle class. They fight not against the government, but directly against the bourgeoisie, and for now, this can only be done peacefully. Economic stagnation and the resulting hardship sparked the revolt in Lyons in 1834 for the Republic, and in 1842, a similar situation in Manchester led to a widespread movement for the Charter and better wages. It’s clear that organizing a strike requires a significant amount of courage, often a much higher degree of bravery and steadfastness than a rebellion. It is no small feat for a worker, who knows hardship firsthand, to face it with their family, endure hunger and misery for months, and remain resolute throughout. What is death or the prison sentences faced by French revolutionaries compared to the slow agony of starvation, the daily suffering of a hungry family, and the certainty of revenge from the middle class—pain that the English worker endures willingly over submitting to the oppressive class of property owners? Later, we will see examples of this stubborn, unyielding courage in workers who only surrender to force when further resistance would be pointless and meaningless. It’s in this quiet determination, this unwavering resolve that is tested time and again, where the English worker shows a side of their character that earns the most respect. Those who endure so much to challenge even one bourgeois will ultimately be able to dismantle the power of the entire bourgeoisie.

But apart from that, the English working-man has proved his courage often enough.  That the turnout of 1842 had no further results came from the fact that the men were in part forced into it by the bourgeoisie, in part neither clear nor united as to its object.  But aside from this, they have shown their courage often enough when the matter in question was a specific social one.  p. 226Not to mention the Welsh insurrection of 1839, a complete battle was waged in Manchester in May, 1843, during my residence there.  Pauling & Henfrey, a brick firm, had increased the size of the bricks without raising wages, and sold the bricks, of course, at a higher price.  The workers, to whom higher wages were refused, struck work, and the Brickmakers’ Union declared war upon the firm.  The firm, meanwhile, succeeded with great difficulty in securing hands from the neighbourhood, and among the knobsticks, against whom in the beginning intimidation was used, the proprietors set twelve men to guard the yard, all ex-soldiers and policemen, armed with guns.  When intimidation proved unavailing, the brick-yard, which lay scarcely a hundred paces from an infantry barracks, was stormed at ten o’clock one night by a crowd of brickmakers, who advanced in military order, the first ranks armed with guns.  They forced their way in, fired upon the watchmen as soon as they saw them, stamped out the wet bricks spread out to dry, tore down the piled-up rows of those already dry, demolished everything which came in their way, pressed into a building, where they destroyed the furniture and maltreated the wife of the overlooker who was living there.  The watchmen, meanwhile, had placed themselves behind a hedge, whence they could fire safely and without interruption.  The assailants stood before a burning brick-kiln, which threw a bright light upon them, so that every ball of their enemies struck home, while every one of their own shots missed its mark.  Nevertheless, the firing lasted half-an-hour, until the ammunition was exhausted, and the object of the visit—the demolition of all the destructible objects in the yard—was attained.  Then the military approached, and the brickmakers withdrew to Eccles, three miles from Manchester.  A short time before reaching Eccles they held roll-call, and each man was called according to his number in the section when they separated, only to fall the more certainly into the hands of the police, who were approaching from all sides.  The number of the wounded must have been very considerable, but those only could be counted who were arrested.  One of these had received three bullets (in the thigh, the calf, and the shoulder), and had p. 227travelled in spite of them more than four miles on foot.  These people have proved that they, too, possess revolutionary courage, and do not shun a rain of bullets.  And when an unarmed multitude, without a precise aim common to them all, are held in check in a shut-off market-place, whose outlets are guarded by a couple of policemen and dragoons, as happened in 1842, this by no means proves a want of courage.  On the contrary, the multitude would have stirred quite as little if the servants of public (i.e., of the bourgeois) order had not been present.  Where the working-people have a specific end in view, they show courage enough; as, for instance, in the attack upon Birley’s mill, which had later to be protected by artillery.

But aside from that, the English working man has shown his courage often enough. The lack of results from the turnout in 1842 was due to the fact that some of the men were partly pushed into it by the bourgeoisie, and partly because they were neither clear nor united about its purpose. That being said, they have demonstrated their bravery repeatedly when the issue at hand was a specific social one. Not to mention the Welsh insurrection of 1839, a full-blown battle took place in Manchester in May 1843, while I was living there. Pauling & Henfrey, a brick company, had increased the size of the bricks without raising wages, and of course, sold the bricks at a higher price. The workers, who were refused higher wages, went on strike, and the Brickmakers’ Union declared war on the company. Meanwhile, the company struggled to find workers from the area, and among the strikebreakers, who were initially intimidated, the owners assigned twelve men to guard the yard, all ex-soldiers and policemen, armed with guns. When intimidation didn’t work, the brick yard, which was just a hundred paces from an infantry barracks, was stormed at ten o’clock one night by a group of brickmakers, advancing in military formation, the front ranks armed with guns. They forced their way in, firing at the watchmen as soon as they spotted them, smashed the wet bricks spread out to dry, tore down the stacks of dried bricks, destroyed everything in their path, and broke into a building where they wrecked the furniture and assaulted the wife of the overseer who lived there. Meanwhile, the watchmen had taken up position behind a hedge, from where they could shoot safely and without interruption. The attackers stood before a burning brick kiln, which illuminated them brightly, making it easy for their enemies to hit their targets, while their own shots mostly missed. Nonetheless, the gunfire lasted half an hour until they ran out of ammunition, and they achieved their main goal—the destruction of everything in the yard they could break. Then the military arrived, and the brickmakers retreated to Eccles, three miles from Manchester. Just before reaching Eccles, they called roll, checking each man against his number in the section when they separated, which only made it easier for the police, who were closing in from all sides. The number of injured must have been quite high, but they could only count those who were arrested. One of them had been shot three times (in the thigh, the calf, and the shoulder), and had walked more than four miles on foot despite his injuries. These people have shown that they too have revolutionary courage and aren’t afraid of a hail of bullets. And when an unarmed crowd, without a clear shared aim, is held back in a contained marketplace, with exits guarded by a few policemen and dragoons, as happened in 1842, it doesn’t indicate a lack of courage. On the contrary, the crowd would have remained just as inactive if the agents of public (i.e., bourgeois) order hadn’t been there. Where the working class has a specific goal in mind, they display plenty of courage, as seen in the attack on Birley’s mill, which later required protection by artillery.

In this connection, a word or two as to the respect for the law in England.  True, the law is sacred to the bourgeois, for it is his own composition, enacted with his consent, and for his benefit and protection.  He knows that, even if an individual law should injure him, the whole fabric protects his interests; and more than all, the sanctity of the law, the sacredness of order as established by the active will of one part of society, and the passive acceptance of the other, is the strongest support of his social position.  Because the English bourgeois finds himself reproduced in his law, as he does in his God, the policeman’s truncheon which, in a certain measure, is his own club, has for him a wonderfully soothing power.  But for the working-man quite otherwise!  The working-man knows too well, has learned from too oft-repeated experience, that the law is a rod which the bourgeois has prepared for him; and when he is not compelled to do so, he never appeals to the law.  It is ridiculous to assert that the English working-man fears the police, when every week in Manchester policemen are beaten, and last year an attempt was made to storm a station-house secured by iron doors and shutters.  The power of the police in the turnout of 1842 lay, as I have already said, in the want of a clearly defined object on the part of the working-men themselves.

In this regard, let's talk about the respect for the law in England. Sure, the law is sacred to the middle class because it's their own creation, made with their approval, and designed for their benefit and protection. They understand that even if a specific law might hurt them, the overall system safeguards their interests; and above all, the sanctity of the law, the sacredness of the order agreed upon by one part of society while the other passively accepts it, is the strongest support of their social standing. Because the English middle class sees themselves reflected in their laws, just as they do in their God, the policeman’s baton—which, in a sense, is their own weapon—has a remarkably calming effect on them. But it’s a completely different story for the working class! The working man knows all too well, having learned from frequent experiences, that the law is a tool that the bourgeoisie has fashioned to control him, and when he doesn’t have to, he rarely turns to the law for help. It’s absurd to say that the English working man fears the police, especially when police officers get attacked weekly in Manchester, and just last year, there was an attempt to storm a police station secured with iron doors and shutters. The power of the police during the events of 1842, as I've mentioned before, stemmed from the lack of a clearly defined objective on the part of the workers themselves.

Since the working-men do not respect the law, but simply submit to its power when they cannot change it, it is most natural that p. 228they should at least propose alterations in it, that they should wish to put a proletarian law in the place of the legal fabric of the bourgeoisie.  This proposed law is the People’s Charter, which in form is purely political, and demands a democratic basis for the House of Commons.  Chartism is the compact form of their opposition to the bourgeoisie.  In the Unions and turnouts opposition always remained isolated: it was single working-men or sections who fought a single bourgeois.  If the fight became general, this was scarcely by the intention of the working-men; or, when it did happen intentionally, Chartism was at the bottom of it.  But in Chartism it is the whole working class which arises against the bourgeoisie, and attacks, first of all, the political power, the legislative rampart with which the bourgeoisie has surrounded itself.  Chartism has proceeded from the Democratic party which arose between 1780 and 1790 with and in the proletariat, gained strength during the French Revolution, and came forth after the peace as the Radical party.  It had its headquarters then in Birmingham and Manchester, and later in London; extorted the Reform Bill from the Oligarchs of the old Parliament by a union with the Liberal bourgeoisie, and has steadily consolidated itself, since then, as a more and more pronounced working-men’s party in opposition to the bourgeoisie In 1835 a committee of the General Working-men’s Association of London, with William Lovett at its head, drew up the People’s Charter, whose six points are as follows: (1) Universal suffrage for every man who is of age, sane and unconvicted of crime; (2) Annual Parliaments; (3) Payment of members of Parliament, to enable poor men to stand for election; (4) Voting by ballot to prevent bribery and intimidation by the bourgeoisie; (5) Equal electoral districts to secure equal representation; and (6) Abolition of the even now merely nominal property qualification of £300 in land for candidates in order to make every voter eligible.  These six points, which are all limited to the reconstitution of the House of Commons, harmless as they seem, are sufficient to overthrow the whole English Constitution, Queen and Lords included.  The so-called monarchical and aristocratic elements of the Constitution p. 229can maintain themselves only because the bourgeoisie has an interest in the continuance of their sham existence; and more than a sham existence neither possesses to-day.  But as soon as real public opinion in its totality backs the House of Commons, as soon as the House of Commons incorporates the will, not of the bourgeoisie alone, but of the whole nation, it will absorb the whole power so completely that the last halo must fall from the head of the monarch and the aristocracy.  The English working-man respects neither Lords nor Queen.  The bourgeois, while in reality allowing them but little influence, yet offers to them personally a sham worship.  The English Chartist is politically a republican, though he rarely or never mentions the word, while he sympathises with the republican parties of all countries, and calls himself in preference a democrat.  But he is more than a mere republican, his democracy is not simply political.

Since the working class doesn't respect the law but just accepts its power when they can't change it, it's only natural that p. 228 they would want to propose changes to it, seeking to replace the legal structure of the bourgeoisie with a proletarian law. This proposed law is the People’s Charter, which is primarily political in nature and calls for a democratic foundation for the House of Commons. Chartism is their unified stance against the bourgeoisie. In the unions and protests, opposition often remained fragmented: it was individual workers or groups fighting against a single bourgeois. If the conflict became widespread, it was rarely by the workers’ intentions; or when it did occur purposely, Chartism was the driving force behind it. However, in Chartism, the entire working class rises against the bourgeoisie, targeting primarily the political power, the legislative barrier that the bourgeoisie has built around itself. Chartism originated from the Democratic party that emerged between 1780 and 1790 alongside the proletariat, gained momentum during the French Revolution, and re-emerged after the peace as the Radical party. It had its main centers of activity in Birmingham and Manchester, and later in London; it pressured the Oligarchs of the old Parliament into passing the Reform Bill through an alliance with the Liberal bourgeoisie, and has since strengthened itself as an increasingly defined working-class party opposed to the bourgeoisie. In 1835, a committee from the General Working-men’s Association of London, led by William Lovett, drafted the People’s Charter, which includes six key points: (1) Universal suffrage for every adult man who is sane and not convicted of a crime; (2) Annual Parliaments; (3) Payment for Members of Parliament to allow poor individuals to run for election; (4) Voting by ballot to prevent bribery and intimidation by the bourgeoisie; (5) Equal electoral districts to ensure fair representation; and (6) The removal of the nominal property requirement of £300 in land for candidates, making every voter eligible. These six points, which are all focused on restructuring the House of Commons, seem harmless but are enough to dismantle the entire English Constitution, including the Queen and the Lords. The so-called monarchical and aristocratic elements of the Constitution can only persist because the bourgeoisie has a vested interest in maintaining their facade; and today, they have little more than that. But once genuine public opinion fully supports the House of Commons, and the House of Commons represents the will of not just the bourgeoisie but the entire nation, it will hold so much power that the last remnants of authority must fall from the monarch and aristocracy. The English working class has no respect for either the Lords or the Queen. Although the bourgeoisie gives them minimal actual influence, they still perform a pretense of respect. The English Chartist is politically a republican, though he rarely mentions the term, while he supports republican movements globally and prefers to identify as a democrat. Yet he is more than just a republican; his version of democracy goes beyond mere politics.

Chartism was from the beginning in 1835 chiefly a movement among the working-men, though not yet sharply separated from the bourgeoisie.  The Radicalism of the workers went hand in hand with the Radicalism of the bourgeoisie; the Charter was the shibboleth of both.  They held their National Convention every year in common, seeming to be one party.  The lower middle-class was just then in a very bellicose and violent state of mind in consequence of the disappointment over the Reform Bill and of the bad business years of 1837-1839, and viewed the boisterous Chartist agitation with a very favourable eye.  Of the vehemence of this agitation no one in Germany has any idea.  The people were called upon to arm themselves, were frequently urged to revolt; pikes were got ready, as in the French Revolution, and in 1838, one Stephens, a Methodist parson, said to the assembled working-people of Manchester:

Chartism began in 1835 primarily as a movement among the working class, although it hadn't yet completely split from the middle class. The Radicalism of the workers was closely aligned with that of the bourgeoisie; the Charter was a common rallying point for both groups. They held their National Convention together every year, appearing to be one unified party. At that time, the lower middle class was in a very combative and aggressive mood due to disappointment with the Reform Bill and the tough economic conditions of 1837-1839, which led them to view the intense Chartist movement very positively. No one in Germany has any idea of the intensity of this movement. People were encouraged to arm themselves and often urged to revolt; pikes were prepared, just like during the French Revolution, and in 1838, a Methodist minister named Stephens addressed the gathered workers in Manchester:

“You have no need to fear the power of Government, the soldiers, bayonets, and cannon that are at the disposal of your oppressors; you have a weapon that is far mightier than all these, a weapon against which bayonets and cannon are powerless, and a child of ten years can wield it.  You have only to take a couple of matches and a bundle of straw dipped in pitch, and I will see p. 230what the Government and its hundreds of thousands of soldiers will do against this one weapon if it is used boldly.”

“You don’t have to be afraid of the Government's power — the soldiers, bayonets, and cannons that your oppressors possess. You have a weapon that’s far more powerful than any of that, one that even a ten-year-old can handle. All you need is a few matches and a bundle of straw soaked in pitch, and I’ll show you how the Government and its hundreds of thousands of soldiers will react to this one weapon if you use it boldly.”

As early as that year the peculiarly social character of the working-men’s Chartism manifested itself.  The same Stephens said, in a meeting of 200,000 men on Kersall Moor, the Mons Sacer of Manchester:

As early as that year, the uniquely social aspect of the working-class Chartism showed itself. The same Stephens said at a gathering of 200,000 people on Kersall Moor, the Mons Sacer of Manchester:

“Chartism, my friends, is no political movement, where the main point is your getting the ballot.  Chartism is a knife and fork question: the Charter means a good house, good food and drink, prosperity, and short working-hours.”

“Chartism, my friends, isn't just a political movement aiming for the vote. Chartism is about essential needs: the Charter stands for having a decent home, good food and drink, financial security, and shorter working hours.”

The movements against the new Poor Law and for the Ten Hours’ Bill were already in the closest relation to Chartism.  In all the meetings of that time the Tory Oastler was active, and hundreds of petitions for improvements of the social condition of the workers were circulated along with the national petition for the People’s Charter adopted in Birmingham.  In 1839 the agitation continued as vigorously as ever, and when it began to relax somewhat at the end of the year, Bussey, Taylor, and Frost hastened to call forth uprisings simultaneously in the North of England, in Yorkshire, and Wales.  Frost’s plan being betrayed, he was obliged to open hostilities prematurely.  Those in the North heard of the failure of his attempt in time to withdraw.  Two months later, in January, 1840, several so-called spy outbreaks took place in Sheffield and Bradford, in Yorkshire, and the excitement gradually subsided.  Meanwhile the bourgeoisie turned its attention to more practical projects, more profitable for itself, namely the Corn Laws.  The Anti-Corn Law Association was formed in Manchester, and the consequence was a relaxation of the tie between the Radical bourgeoisie and the proletariat.  The working-men soon perceived that for them the abolition of the Corn Laws could be of little use, while very advantageous to the bourgeoisie; and they could therefore not be won for the project.

The movements against the new Poor Law and in support of the Ten Hours’ Bill were closely tied to Chartism. During that time, Tory Oastler was active in all the meetings, and hundreds of petitions aimed at improving workers' social conditions were circulated alongside the national petition for the People’s Charter, which was adopted in Birmingham. In 1839, the push for change was as strong as ever, but when it started to ease a bit towards the end of the year, Bussey, Taylor, and Frost quickly called for uprisings in the North of England, Yorkshire, and Wales. Since Frost’s plan was leaked, he had to start the protests early. Those in the North learned about his failed attempt in time to pull back. Two months later, in January 1840, several so-called spy outbreaks occurred in Sheffield and Bradford, Yorkshire, and the excitement gradually faded. Meanwhile, the bourgeoisie turned its focus to more practical projects that benefited them more, specifically the Corn Laws. The Anti-Corn Law Association was formed in Manchester, which resulted in a weakening of the bond between the Radical bourgeoisie and the proletariat. The working men soon realized that abolishing the Corn Laws wouldn’t help them much, while it would be very beneficial for the bourgeoisie, so they couldn’t be swayed to support the initiative.

The crisis of 1842 came on.  Agitation was once more as p. 231vigorous as in 1839.  But this time the rich manufacturing bourgeoisie, which was suffering severely under this particular crisis, took part in it.  The Anti-Corn Law League, as it was now called, assumed a decidedly revolutionary tone.  Its journals and agitators used undisguisedly revolutionary language, one very good reason for which was the fact that the Conservative party had been in power since 1841.  As the Chartists had previously done, these bourgeois leaders called upon the people to rebel; and the working-men who had most to suffer from the crisis were not inactive, as the year’s national petition for the charter with its three and a half million signatures proves.  In short, if the two Radical parties had been somewhat estranged, they allied themselves once more.  At a meeting of Liberals and Chartists held in Manchester, February 15th, 1842, a petition urging the repeal of the Corn Laws and the adoption of the Charter was drawn up.  The next day it was adopted by both parties.  The spring and summer passed amidst violent agitation and increasing distress.  The bourgeoisie was determined to carry the repeal of the Corn Laws with the help of the crisis, the want which it entailed, and the general excitement.  At this time, the Conservatives being in power, the Liberal bourgeoisie half abandoned their law-abiding habits; they wished to bring about a revolution with the help of the workers.  The working-men were to take the chestnuts from the fire to save the bourgeoisie from burning their own fingers.  The old idea of a “holy month,” a general strike, broached in 1839 by the Chartists, was revived.  This time, however, it was not the working-men who wished to quit work, but the manufacturers who wished to close their mills and send the operatives into the country parishes upon the property of the aristocracy, thus forcing the Tory Parliament and the Tory Ministry to repeal the Corn Laws.  A revolt would naturally have followed, but the bourgeoisie stood safely in the background and could await the result without compromising itself if the worst came to the worst.  At the end of July business began to improve; it was high time.  In order not to lose the opportunity, three firms in Staleybridge reduced wages in spite of p. 232the improvement. {232}  Whether they did so of their own motion or in agreement with other manufacturers, especially those of the League, I do not know.  Two withdrew after a time, but the third, William Bailey & Brothers, stood firm, and told the objecting operatives that “if this did not please them, they had better go and play a bit.”  This contemptuous answer the hands received with cheers.  They left the mill, paraded through the town, and called upon all their fellows to quit work.  In a few hours every mill stood idle, and the operatives marched to Mottram Moor to hold a meeting.  This was on August 5th.  August 8th they proceeded to Ashton and Hyde five thousand strong, closed all the mills and coal-pits, and held meetings, in which, however, the question discussed was not, as the bourgeoisie had hoped, the repeal of the Corn Laws, but, “a fair day’s wages for a fair day’s work.”  August 9th they proceeded to Manchester, unresisted by the authorities (all Liberals), and closed the mills; on the 11th they were in Stockport, where they met with the first resistance as they were storming the workhouse, the favourite child of the bourgeoisie.  On the same day there was a general strike and disturbance in Bolton, to which the authorities here, too, made no resistance.  Soon the uprising spread throughout the whole manufacturing district, and all employments, except harvesting and the production of food, came to a standstill.  But the rebellious operatives were quiet.  They were driven into this revolt without wishing it.  The manufacturers, with the single exception of the Tory Birley, in Manchester, had, contrary to their custom, not opposed it.  The thing had begun without the working-men’s having any distinct end in view, for which reason they were all united in the determination not to be shot at for the benefit of the Corn Law repealing bourgeoisie.  For the rest, some wanted to carry the Charter, others who thought this premature wished merely to secure the wages rate of 1840.  On this point the whole insurrection was wrecked.  If it had been from the beginning an intentional, determined working-men’s insurrection, it would surely have carried p. 233its point; but these crowds who had been driven into the streets by their masters, against their own will, and with no definite purpose, could do nothing.  Meanwhile the bourgeoisie, which had not moved a finger to carry the alliance of February 10th into effect, soon perceived that the working-men did not propose to become its tools, and that the illogical manner in which it had abandoned its law-abiding standpoint threatened danger.  It therefore resumed its law-abiding attitude, and placed itself upon the side of Government as against the working-men.

The crisis of 1842 hit hard. Agitation was once again as intense as in 1839. But this time, the wealthy manufacturing class, which was severely affected by this crisis, got involved. The Anti-Corn Law League, as it was now known, took on a distinctly revolutionary tone. Its publications and activists used open revolutionary language, mainly because the Conservative party had been in power since 1841. Like the Chartists before them, these bourgeois leaders urged the people to rise up, and the working-class men who were suffering the most from the crisis were not idle, as shown by the year’s national petition for the charter, which gathered three and a half million signatures. In short, even though the two Radical parties had been somewhat divided, they united again. At a meeting of Liberals and Chartists in Manchester on February 15th, 1842, a petition was created calling for the repeal of the Corn Laws and the adoption of the Charter. The following day, both parties approved it. Spring and summer were filled with intense agitation and growing distress. The bourgeoisie was determined to push for the repeal of the Corn Laws by leveraging the crisis, the resulting need, and the overall excitement. At that time, with the Conservatives in power, the Liberal bourgeoisie somewhat abandoned their law-abiding ways; they wanted to instigate a revolution with the support of the workers. The working-class was to retrieve the benefits while saving the bourgeoisie from getting burned. The old idea of a “holy month,” a general strike suggested by the Chartists in 1839, was revived. However, this time, it wasn’t the workers who wanted to stop working, but the manufacturers who wished to shut down their mills and send employees into the rural areas owned by the aristocracy, thereby forcing the Tory Parliament and the Tory government to repeal the Corn Laws. A rebellion would obviously follow, but the bourgeoisie remained safely in the background, able to wait and see the outcome without putting themselves at risk if things turned sour. By the end of July, business started to improve; it was well overdue. To seize the opportunity, three companies in Staleybridge cut wages despite the improvement. Whether they acted independently or in concert with other manufacturers, especially those in the League, I’m not sure. Two eventually backed down, but the third, William Bailey & Brothers, held firm and told the protesting workers that “if this doesn’t please you, you might as well go and have some fun.” The workers received this dismissive response with cheers. They left the mill, marched through town, and called on all their coworkers to strike. In a few hours, every mill was shut down, and the workers marched to Mottram Moor to hold a meeting. This took place on August 5th. On August 8th, they moved to Ashton and Hyde with five thousand participants, closed all the mills and coal pits, and held meetings where the discussion wasn’t, as the bourgeois had hoped, about repealing the Corn Laws, but rather about “fair pay for a fair day's work.” On August 9th, they went to Manchester, unopposed by the authorities (who were all Liberals), and shut down the mills; on the 11th, they were in Stockport where they faced their first resistance while attempting to storm the workhouse, a beloved establishment of the bourgeoisie. That same day, there was a general strike and unrest in Bolton, where the authorities also did not resist. Soon, the uprising spread across the entire manufacturing region, and all jobs, except for harvest work and food production, came to a halt. However, the rebellious workers were calm. They were driven into this revolt against their wishes. The manufacturers, with one exception of the Tory Birley in Manchester, unusually did not oppose them. The movement had begun without the workers having a clear goal in mind, which is why they all agreed on not being shot at for the benefit of the bourgeoisie who wanted to repeal the Corn Laws. For the rest, some aimed to pass the Charter, while others deemed that goal too ambitious and only wanted to maintain the wage rates of 1840. This lack of consensus ultimately doomed the entire uprising. Had it started out as a deliberate, determined effort by the workers, it would have surely made its point; but the crowds who were pushed into the streets against their will and without a clear purpose could do nothing. Meanwhile, the bourgeoisie, which had done nothing to follow through with the alliance from February 10th, quickly realized that the workers had no intention of being used as their pawns, and that their inconsistent abandonment of law-abiding principles posed a threat. They consequently returned to a law-abiding stance and aligned themselves with the government against the workers.

It swore in trusty retainers as special constables (the German merchants in Manchester took part in this ceremony, and marched in an entirely superfluous manner through the city with their cigars in their mouths and thick truncheons in their hands).  It gave the command to fire upon the crowd in Preston, so that the unintentional revolt of the people stood all at once face to face, not only with the whole military power of the Government, but with the whole property-holding class as well.  The working-men, who had no especial aim, separated gradually, and the insurrection came to an end without evil results.  Later, the bourgeoisie was guilty of one shameful act after another, tried to whitewash itself by expressing a horror of popular violence by no means consistent with its own revolutionary language of the spring; laid the blame of insurrection upon Chartist instigators, whereas it had itself done more than all of them together to bring about the uprising; and resumed its old attitude of sanctifying the name of the law with a shamelessness perfectly unequalled.  The Chartists, who were all but innocent of bringing about this uprising, who simply did what the bourgeoisie meant to do when they made the most of their opportunity, were prosecuted and convicted, while the bourgeoisie escaped without loss, and had, besides, sold off its old stock of goods with advantage during the pause in work.

It swore in loyal supporters as special constables (the German merchants in Manchester participated in this ceremony and walked through the city in a completely unnecessary way with cigars in their mouths and heavy batons in hand). It ordered the troops to fire on the crowd in Preston, so the unintended revolt of the people suddenly faced not only the entire military power of the Government but also the entire property-owning class. The working men, who had no specific goal, gradually dispersed, and the uprising ended without any significant consequences. Later, the bourgeoisie committed one disgraceful act after another, trying to clear its name by expressing horror over popular violence that was completely inconsistent with its own revolutionary rhetoric from the spring; it blamed the insurrection on Chartist instigators, even though it had done more than all of them combined to trigger the uprising; and it returned to its old stance of sanctifying the law with an unparalleled shamelessness. The Chartists, who were nearly innocent of causing this uprising, simply acted on what the bourgeoisie intended to do when they seized the opportunity, were prosecuted and convicted, while the bourgeoisie escaped unscathed and, in addition, managed to sell off its old stock of goods profitably during the work stoppage.

The fruit of the uprising was the decisive separation of the proletariat from the bourgeoisie.  The Chartists had not hitherto concealed their determination to carry the Charter at all costs, even that of a revolution; the bourgeoisie, which now perceived, all at once, the danger with which any violent change threatened p. 234its position, refused to hear anything further of physical force, and proposed to attain its end by moral force, as though this were anything else than the direct or indirect threat of physical force.  This was one point of dissension, though even this was removed later by the assertion of the Chartists (who are at least as worthy of being believed as the bourgeoisie) that they, too, refrained from appealing to physical force.  The second point of dissension and the main one, which brought Chartism to light in its purity, was the repeal of the Corn Laws.  In this the bourgeoisie was directly interested, the proletariat not.  The Chartists therefore divided into two parties whose political programmes agreed literally, but which were nevertheless thoroughly different and incapable of union.  At the Birmingham National Convention, in January, 1843, Sturge, the representative of the Radical bourgeoisie, proposed that the name of the Charter be omitted from the rules of the Chartist Association, nominally because this name had become connected with recollections of violence during the insurrection, a connection, by the way, which had existed for years, and against which Mr. Sturge had hitherto advanced no objection.  The working-men refused to drop the name, and when Mr. Sturge was outvoted, that worthy Quaker suddenly became loyal, betook himself out of the hall, and founded a “Complete Suffrage Association” within the Radical bourgeoisie.  So repugnant had these recollections become to the Jacobinical bourgeoisie, that he altered even the name Universal Suffrage into the ridiculous title, Complete Suffrage.  The working-men laughed at him and quietly went their way.

The outcome of the uprising was the clear split between the working class and the middle class. The Chartists had always made it clear that they were determined to get the Charter by any means necessary, even through revolution. The bourgeoisie suddenly recognized the threat that any violent change posed to their position, so they rejected the idea of using physical force and instead suggested achieving their goals through moral persuasion, as if that wasn't just a direct or indirect threat of physical force. This created one point of disagreement, but it was eventually set aside when the Chartists (who are just as credible as the bourgeoisie) claimed that they, too, would avoid using physical force. The second and main point of disagreement, which highlighted Chartism in its true form, was the repeal of the Corn Laws. The bourgeoisie had a direct stake in this issue, while the proletariat did not. Consequently, the Chartists split into two factions with political platforms that were practically identical but fundamentally different and unable to unite. At the Birmingham National Convention in January 1843, Sturge, who represented the radical bourgeoisie, suggested that the name of the Charter be removed from the rules of the Chartist Association, supposedly because the name had become linked to memories of violence during the uprising—a link that had existed for years and against which Sturge had never protested before. The working men refused to drop the name, and when Sturge was outvoted, the well-meaning Quaker promptly withdrew from the hall and started a "Complete Suffrage Association" within the radical bourgeoisie. The memories had become so distasteful to the Jacobin bourgeoisie that he even changed the name Universal Suffrage to the absurd title Complete Suffrage. The working men laughed at him and went about their business.

From this moment Chartism was purely a working-man’s cause freed from all bourgeois elements.  The “Complete” journals, the Weekly Dispatch, Weekly Chronicle, Examiner, etc., fell gradually into the sleepy tone of the other Liberal sheets, espoused the cause of Free Trade, attacked the Ten Hours’ Bill and all exclusively working-men’s demands, and let their Radicalism as a whole fall rather into the background.  The Radical bourgeoisie joined hands with the Liberals against the working-men in every collision, and in general made the Corn Law question, which for the English is the Free Trade question, their main business.  They thereby p. 235fell under the dominion of the Liberal bourgeoisie, and now play a most pitiful rôle.

From this point on, Chartism became completely a working-class movement, free from any middle-class influence. The “Complete” journals, like the Weekly Dispatch, Weekly Chronicle, Examiner, and others, gradually adopted the laid-back tone of other Liberal publications, supported Free Trade, opposed the Ten Hours’ Bill and all exclusively working-class demands, and allowed their overall Radicalism to fade into the background. The Radical bourgeoisie teamed up with the Liberals against the working class in every conflict and mainly focused on the Corn Law issue, which for the English is the Free Trade issue. In doing so, they fell under the control of the Liberal bourgeoisie and now play a very sad role.

The Chartist working-men, on the contrary, espoused with redoubled zeal all the struggles of the proletariat against the bourgeoisie.  Free competition has caused the workers suffering enough to be hated by them; its apostles, the bourgeoisie, are their declared enemies.  The working-man has only disadvantages to await from the complete freedom of competition.  The demands hitherto made by him, the Ten Hours’ Bill, protection of the workers against the capitalist, good wages, a guaranteed position, repeal of the new Poor Law, all of the things which belong to Chartism quite as essentially as the “Six Points,” are directly opposed to free competition and Free Trade.  No wonder, then, that the working-men will not hear of Free Trade and the repeal of the Corn Laws (a fact incomprehensible to the whole English bourgeoisie), and while at least wholly indifferent to the Corn Law question, are most deeply embittered against its advocates.  This question is precisely the point at which the proletariat separates from the bourgeoisie, Chartism from Radicalism; and the bourgeois understanding cannot comprehend this, because it cannot comprehend the proletariat.

The Chartist workers, on the other hand, embraced with even greater passion all the struggles of the working class against the upper class. Free competition has caused the workers enough pain for them to despise it; its promoters, the upper class, are their stated enemies. The working man has nothing but disadvantages to expect from complete freedom of competition. The demands he has made, like the Ten Hours' Bill, protection for workers against capitalists, fair wages, job security, and the repeal of the new Poor Law, are just as essential to Chartism as the "Six Points" and directly oppose free competition and Free Trade. It's no surprise that the workers refuse to accept Free Trade and the repeal of the Corn Laws (something completely baffling to the entire English upper class), and while they are mostly indifferent to the Corn Law issue, they are very resentful toward its supporters. This issue is exactly where the working class parts ways with the upper class, where Chartism diverges from Radicalism; and the upper-class perspective cannot grasp this because it fails to understand the working class.

Therein lies the difference between Chartist democracy and all previous political bourgeois democracy.  Chartism is of an essentially social nature, a class movement.  The “Six Points” which for the Radical bourgeois are the beginning and end of the matter, which are meant, at the utmost, to call forth certain further reforms of the Constitution, are for the proletarian a mere means to further ends.  “Political power our means, social happiness our end,” is now the clearly formulated war-cry of the Chartists.  The “knife and fork question” of the preacher Stephens was a truth for a part of the Chartists only, in 1838, it is a truth for all of them in 1845.  There is no longer a mere politician among the Chartists, and even though their Socialism is very little developed, though their chief remedy for poverty has hitherto consisted in the land-allotment system, which was superseded {235} p. 236by the introduction of manufacture, though their chief practical propositions are apparently of a reactionary nature, yet these very measures involve the alternative that they must either succumb to the power of competition once more and restore the old state of things, or they must themselves entirely overcome competition and abolish it.  On the other hand, the present indefinite state of Chartism, the separation from the purely political party, involves that precisely the characteristic feature, its social aspect, will have to be further developed.  The approach to Socialism cannot fail, especially when the next crisis directs the working-men by force of sheer want to social instead of political remedies.  And a crisis must follow the present active state of industry and commerce in 1847 at the latest, and probably in 1846; one, too, which will far exceed in extent and violence all former crises.  The working-men will carry their Charter, naturally; but meanwhile they will learn to see clearly with regard to many points which they can make by means of it and of which they now know very little.

Here is the difference between Chartist democracy and all previous forms of bourgeois political democracy. Chartism is fundamentally a social movement, a class struggle. The “Six Points” that are the beginning and end for the Radical bourgeois, meant to initiate some further reforms to the Constitution, are for the working class merely a means to achieve greater goals. “Political power is our means, social happiness is our end” is now the clear rallying cry of the Chartists. The “knife and fork question” raised by preacher Stephens was a truth for only a part of the Chartists in 1838, but by 1845, it is a truth for all of them. There is no longer just a mere politician among the Chartists, and even though their form of Socialism is not fully developed, and their main solution for poverty has so far been the land-allotment system—now replaced by manufacturing—though their main practical proposals seem to be reactionary, these same measures imply they must either succumb to competition again and revert to the old ways, or they must fully overcome and eliminate competition. On the other hand, the current unclear state of Chartism, along with the split from purely political movements, means that its defining characteristic—its social aspect—will need to be further developed. The move towards Socialism is inevitable, especially when the next crisis pushes working-class people, driven by sheer necessity, towards social solutions instead of political ones. And a crisis is bound to follow the current active industrial and commercial state, by 1847 at the latest, and probably as early as 1846; a crisis that will be larger and more violent than any previous ones. The working class will, of course, push for their Charter, but in the meantime, they will start to understand many issues they can address through it, many of which they are still largely unaware.

Meanwhile the socialist agitation also goes forward.  English Socialism comes under our consideration so far only as it affects the working-class.  The English Socialists demand the gradual introduction of possession in common in home colonies embracing two to three thousand persons who shall carry on both agriculture and manufacture and enjoy equal rights and equal education.  They demand greater facility of obtaining divorce, the establishment of a rational government, with complete freedom of conscience and the abolition of punishment, the same to be replaced by a rational treatment of the offender.  These are their practical measures, their theoretical principles do not concern us here.  English Socialism arose with Owen, a manufacturer, and proceeds therefore with great consideration toward the bourgeoisie and great injustice toward the proletariat in its methods, although it culminates in demanding the abolition of the class antagonism between bourgeoisie and proletariat.

Meanwhile, the socialist movement continues to develop. English Socialism is considered here mainly in relation to its impact on the working class. The English Socialists advocate for the gradual establishment of communal living in home colonies with two to three thousand people, who will engage in both agriculture and manufacturing while enjoying equal rights and equal education. They call for easier access to divorce, the creation of a rational government, complete freedom of conscience, and the elimination of punitive measures, to be replaced by a more thoughtful approach to dealing with offenders. These are their concrete proposals; their theoretical beliefs are not our focus here. English Socialism originated with Owen, a manufacturer, and thus approaches the bourgeoisie with much care while doing a disservice to the proletariat through its methods, even though it ultimately aims to eliminate the class conflict between the bourgeoisie and the proletariat.

The Socialists are thoroughly tame and peaceable, accept our existing order, bad as it is, so far as to reject all other methods but that of winning public opinion.  Yet they are so dogmatic that p. 237success by this method is for them, and for their principles as at present formulated, utterly hopeless.  While bemoaning the demoralisation of the lower classes, they are blind to the element of progress in this dissolution of the old social order, and refuse to acknowledge that the corruption wrought by private interests and hypocrisy in the property-holding class is much greater.  They acknowledge no historic development, and wish to place the nation in a state of Communism at once, overnight, not by the unavoidable march of its political development up to the point at which this transition becomes both possible and necessary.  They understand, it is true, why the working-man is resentful against the bourgeois, but regard as unfruitful this class hatred, which is, after all, the only moral incentive by which the worker can be brought nearer the goal.  They preach instead, a philanthropy and universal love far more unfruitful for the present state of England.  They acknowledge only a psychological development, a development of man in the abstract, out of all relation to the Past, whereas the whole world rests upon that Past, the individual man included.  Hence they are too abstract, too metaphysical, and accomplish little.  They are recruited in part from the working-class, of which they have enlisted but a very small fraction representing, however, its most educated and solid elements.  In its present form, Socialism can never become the common creed of the working-class; it must condescend to return for a moment to the Chartist standpoint.  But the true proletarian Socialism having passed through Chartism, purified of its bourgeois elements, assuming the form which it has already reached in the minds of many Socialists and Chartist leaders (who are nearly all Socialists), must, within a short time, play a weighty part in the history of the development of the English people.  English Socialism, the basis of which is much more ample than that of the French, is behind it in theoretical development, will have to recede for a moment to the French standpoint in order to proceed beyond it later.  Meanwhile the French, too, will develop farther.  English Socialism affords the most pronounced expression of the prevailing absence of religion among the working-men, an expression so p. 238pronounced indeed that the mass of the working-men, being unconsciously and merely practically irreligious, often draw back before it.  But here, too, necessity will force the working-men to abandon the remnants of a belief which, as they will more and more clearly perceive, serves only to make them weak and resigned to their fate, obedient and faithful to the vampire property-holding class.

The Socialists are quite tame and peaceful, accepting our current system, no matter how flawed it is, and they only pursue winning over public opinion. However, they are so rigid in their beliefs that success through this method seems completely unattainable for them and for their principles as they are currently defined. While they lament the decline of the lower classes, they fail to see the progress that comes from the breakdown of the old social order and refuse to recognize that the corruption caused by self-interest and hypocrisy in the property-owning class is far more significant. They don’t acknowledge any historical development and want to establish Communism overnight, ignoring the necessary progress of political development that would make this transition both possible and essential. They understand, to some extent, why workers feel anger toward the bourgeois, but they think this class resentment is unproductive, even though it’s the only moral motivation that could bring workers closer to their goal. Instead, they promote a philanthropy and universal love that is less impactful for the current state of England. They recognize only a psychological development, a progression of humanity that is completely detached from the past, while the entire world, including individual lives, is built upon that past. Because of this, they are too theoretical and abstract, resulting in little achievement. They draw some of their members from the working class, but only a small portion represents its most educated and solid elements. In its current form, Socialism will never become the widespread belief of the working class; it needs to temporarily return to the Chartist perspective. However, true proletarian Socialism, having evolved from Chartism and purged of its bourgeois elements, taking the shape that many Socialists and Chartist leaders (most of whom are also Socialists) have already envisioned, will soon play a significant role in the development of the English people. English Socialism, which has a much broader foundation than its French counterpart, is lagging in theoretical development and will need to step back to the French perspective momentarily to move beyond it later. Meanwhile, the French will also continue to advance. English Socialism represents a clear manifestation of the general lack of religion among the working class, so pronounced that many working people, who are unconsciously and practically irreligious, often shy away from it. However, necessity will eventually compel the working class to let go of the remnants of a belief that, as they will increasingly recognize, only serves to make them weak and resigned to their circumstances, obedient and loyal to the oppressive property-owning class.

Hence it is evident that the working-men’s movement is divided into two sections, the Chartists and the Socialists.  The Chartists are theoretically the more backward, the less developed, but they are genuine proletarians all over, the representatives of their class.  The Socialists are more far-seeing, propose practical remedies against distress, but, proceeding originally from the bourgeoisie, are for this reason unable to amalgamate completely with the working-class.  The union of Socialism with Chartism, the reproduction of French Communism in an English manner, will be the next step, and has already begun.  Then only, when this has been achieved, will the working-class be the true intellectual leader of England.  Meanwhile, political and social development will proceed, and will foster this new party, this new departure of Chartism.

It's clear that the labor movement is split into two groups: the Chartists and the Socialists. The Chartists are theoretically less advanced and more traditional, but they genuinely represent their working-class roots. The Socialists, on the other hand, have a broader vision and suggest practical solutions to issues, but since they originally emerged from the middle class, they struggle to fully connect with the working class. The merging of Socialism with Chartism, creating a version of French Communism adapted to England, will be the next step and is already in progress. Only when this happens will the working class truly become the intellectual leaders of England. In the meantime, political and social progress will continue, nurturing this new party and this new direction for Chartism.

These different sections of working-men, often united, often separated, Trades Unionists, Chartists, and Socialists, have founded on their own hook numbers of schools and reading-rooms for the advancement of education.  Every Socialist, and almost every Chartist institution, has such a place, and so too have many trades.  Here the children receive a purely proletarian education, free from all the influences of the bourgeoisie; and, in the reading-rooms, proletarian journals and books alone, or almost alone, are to be found.  These arrangements are very dangerous for the bourgeoisie, which has succeeded in withdrawing several such institutes, “Mechanics’ Institutes,” from proletarian influences, and making them organs for the dissemination of the sciences useful to the bourgeoisie.  Here the natural sciences are now taught, which may draw the working-men away from the opposition to the bourgeoisie, and perhaps place in their hands the means of p. 239making inventions which bring in money for the bourgeoisie; while for the working-man the acquaintance with the natural sciences is utterly useless now when it too often happens that he never gets the slightest glimpse of Nature in his large town with his long working-hours.  Here Political Economy is preached, whose idol is free competition, and whose sum and substance for the working-man is this, that he cannot do anything more rational than resign himself to starvation.  Here all education is tame, flabby, subservient to the ruling politics and religion, so that for the working-man it is merely a constant sermon upon quiet obedience, passivity, and resignation to his fate.

These different groups of workers, sometimes united and sometimes divided—Trade Unionists, Chartists, and Socialists—have set up a lot of their own schools and reading rooms to promote education. Every Socialist group and nearly every Chartist organization has such a place, as do many trades. Here, kids get a purely working-class education, free from any bourgeois influences; and in the reading rooms, you’ll mostly find working-class magazines and books. These setups are really threatening to the bourgeoisie, which has managed to take several of these institutes, known as “Mechanics’ Institutes,” away from working-class influences and turn them into platforms for spreading knowledge that benefits the bourgeoisie. Here, natural sciences are taught, which could distract workers from opposing the bourgeoisie and might even give them the tools to create inventions that line the bourgeois pockets; yet for the worker, knowing natural sciences is completely useless now, especially when he rarely even sees nature in his busy city life filled with long hours. Here, Political Economy is preached, with free competition as its idol, reducing the working-man’s choice to accepting starvation as the most rational option. In these spaces, all education is bland, weak, and submissive to the dominant politics and religion, turning it into just a constant lecture on quiet obedience, passivity, and resignation to fate.

The mass of working-men naturally have nothing to do with these institutes, and betake themselves to the proletarian reading-rooms and to the discussion of matters which directly concern their own interests, whereupon the self-sufficient bourgeoisie says its Dixi et Salvavi, and turns with contempt from a class which “prefers the angry ranting of ill-meaning demagogues to the advantages of solid education.”  That, however, the working-men appreciate solid education when they can get it unmixed with the interested cant of the bourgeoisie, the frequent lectures upon scientific, æsthetic, and economic subjects prove which are delivered especially in the Socialist institutes, and very well attended.  I have often heard working-men, whose fustian jackets scarcely held together, speak upon geological, astronomical, and other subjects, with more knowledge than most “cultivated” bourgeois in Germany possess.  And in how great a measure the English proletariat has succeeded in attaining independent education is shown especially by the fact that the epoch-making products of modern philosophical, political, and poetical literature are read by working-men almost exclusively.  The bourgeois, enslaved by social conditions and the prejudices involved in them, trembles, blesses, and crosses himself before everything which really paves the way for progress; the proletarian has open eyes for it, and studies it with pleasure and success.  In this respect the Socialists, especially, have done wonders for the education of the proletariat.  They have translated the French materialists, p. 240Helvetius, Holbach, Diderot, etc., and disseminated them, with the best English works, in cheap editions.  Strauss’ “Life of Jesus” and Proudhon’s “Property” also circulate among the working-men only.  Shelley, the genius, the prophet, Shelley, and Byron, with his glowing sensuality and his bitter satire upon our existing society, find most of their readers in the proletariat; the bourgeoisie owns only castrated editions, family editions, cut down in accordance with the hypocritical morality of to-day.  The two great practical philosophers of latest date, Bentham and Godwin, are, especially the latter, almost exclusively the property of the proletariat; for though Bentham has a school within the Radical bourgeoisie, it is only the proletariat and the Socialists who have succeeded in developing his teachings a step forward.  The proletariat has formed upon this basis a literature, which consists chiefly of journals and pamphlets, and is far in advance of the whole bourgeois literature in intrinsic worth.  On this point more later.

The majority of working-class people naturally avoid these institutions and instead flock to the proletarian reading rooms and discussions about issues that directly impact their own interests. The self-satisfied bourgeoisie then says its Dixi et Salvavi and looks down with disdain on a class that "chooses the angry rants of deceitful demagogues over the benefits of solid education." However, the working-class does value solid education when it's free from the biased nonsense of the bourgeoisie, as shown by the frequent lectures on scientific, aesthetic, and economic topics, particularly in the Socialist institutes, which are well attended. I've often heard working-class men, whose threadbare jackets barely held together, discuss geological, astronomical, and other subjects with more expertise than most "cultivated" bourgeois in Germany possess. The extent to which the English working-class has achieved independent education is especially evident in the fact that modern philosophical, political, and literary works are almost exclusively read by them. The bourgeoisie, trapped by social conditions and their related prejudices, quakes and makes the sign of the cross before anything that genuinely fosters progress; meanwhile, the proletariat recognizes it and studies it with enthusiasm and success. In this regard, Socialists have done remarkable work for the education of the working-class. They have translated the French materialists—Helvetius, Holbach, Diderot, etc.—and spread their works alongside the best English texts in affordable editions. Strauss’ “Life of Jesus” and Proudhon’s “Property” are primarily circulated among working-class people. Shelley, the genius and prophet, along with Byron, who expresses fiery sensuality and bitter satire towards our current society, find most of their readership in the proletariat; the bourgeoisie only possesses sanitized editions altered to fit today's hypocritical morals. The two most notable practical philosophers recently, Bentham and Godwin, especially the latter, are almost exclusively the domain of the working class; even though Bentham has followers among the Radical bourgeoisie, it's the proletariat and Socialists who've successfully advanced his teachings. The proletariat has created a literature based on this, consisting mainly of journals and pamphlets, which is far superior in intrinsic value to the entire body of bourgeois literature. More on this later.

One more point remains to be noticed.  The factory operatives, and especially those of the cotton district, form the nucleus of the labour movement.  Lancashire, and especially Manchester, is the seat of the most powerful Unions, the central point of Chartism, the place which numbers most Socialists.  The more the factory system has taken possession of a branch of industry, the more the working-men employed in it participate in the labour movement; the sharper the opposition between working-men and capitalists, the clearer the proletarian consciousness in the working-men.  The small masters of Birmingham, though they suffer from the crises, still stand upon an unhappy middle ground between proletarian Chartism and shopkeepers’ Radicalism.  But, in general, all the workers employed in manufacture are won for one form or the other of resistance to capital and bourgeoisie; and all are united upon this point, that they, as working-men, a title of which they are proud, and which is the usual form of address in Chartist meetings, form a separate class, with separate interests and principles, with a separate way of looking at things in contrast with that of all property owners; and that in this class reposes the strength and the capacity of development of the nation.

One more point needs to be highlighted. The factory workers, especially in the cotton area, are at the core of the labor movement. Lancashire, particularly Manchester, is home to the most powerful unions, the heart of Chartism, and the place with the highest number of socialists. The more the factory system dominates an industry, the more the workers in that industry get involved in the labor movement; the greater the divide between workers and capitalists, the clearer the workers' awareness of their own class identity becomes. The small business owners in Birmingham, despite facing downturns, remain caught in an unfortunate middle ground between proletarian Chartism and shopkeepers’ radicalism. However, in general, all workers involved in manufacturing are drawn to some form of resistance against capital and the bourgeoisie; they all agree that as working men— a title they take pride in and which is commonly used in Chartist meetings— they form a distinct class, with its own interests and principles, and a unique perspective that contrasts with that of property owners; and within this class lies the strength and potential for the nation's development.

p. 241THE MINING PROLETARIAT.

The production of raw materials and fuel for a manufacture so colossal as that of England requires a considerable number of workers.  But of all the materials needed for its industries (except wool, which belongs to the agricultural districts), England produces only the minerals: the metals and the coal.  While Cornwall possesses rich copper, tin, zinc, and lead mines, Staffordshire, Wales, and other districts yield great quantities of iron, and almost the whole North and West of England, central Scotland, and certain districts of Ireland, produce a superabundance of coal. {241}

The production of raw materials and fuel for a massive industry like England's requires a significant number of workers. However, apart from wool, which comes from the agricultural areas, England mainly produces minerals: metals and coal. Cornwall has rich mines for copper, tin, zinc, and lead, while Staffordshire, Wales, and other regions supply large amounts of iron. Almost the entire North and West of England, central Scotland, and some areas of Ireland produce an excess of coal. {241}

In the Cornish mines about 19,000 men, and 11,000 women and children are employed, in part above and in part below ground.  Within the mines below ground, men and boys above twelve years old are employed almost exclusively.  The condition p. 242of these workers seems, according to the Children’s Employment Commission’s Reports, to be comparatively endurable, materially, and the English often enough boast of their strong, bold miners, who follow the veins of mineral below the bottom of the very sea.  But in the matter of the health of these workers, this same Children’s Employment Commission’s Report judges differently.  It shows in Dr. Barham’s intelligent report how the inhalation of an atmosphere containing little oxygen, and mixed with dust and the smoke of blasting powder, such as prevails in the mines, seriously affects the lungs, disturbs the action of the heart, and diminishes the activity of the digestive organs; that wearing toil, and especially the climbing up and down of ladders, upon which even vigorous young men have to spend in some mines more than an hour a day, and which precedes and follows daily work, contributes greatly to the development of these evils, so that men who begin this work in early youth are far from reaching the stature of women who work above ground; that many die young of galloping consumption, and most miners at middle age of slow consumption, that they age prematurely and become unfit for work between the thirty-fifth and forty-fifth years, that many are attacked by acute inflammations of the respiratory organs when exposed to the sudden change from the warm air of the shaft (after climbing the ladder in profuse perspiration), to the cold wind above ground, and that these acute inflammations are very frequently fatal.  Work above ground, breaking and sorting the ore, is done by girls and children, and is described as very wholesome, being done in the open air.

In the Cornish mines, around 19,000 men and 11,000 women and children work, both above and below ground. Down in the mines, men and boys over twelve are mostly employed. According to the Children’s Employment Commission’s Reports, the working conditions for these workers seem manageable in some ways, and the English often take pride in their strong miners, who pursue mineral veins beneath the seabed. However, when it comes to the health of these workers, the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report presents a different picture. Dr. Barham’s insightful report reveals that breathing air with low oxygen levels, mixed with dust and blasting powder smoke, severely impacts the lungs, disrupts heart function, and reduces digestive efficiency. The exhausting work, especially climbing ladders—which even healthy young men spend over an hour a day on in some mines—greatly contributes to these health issues. As a result, men who start this work as young as possible often do not reach the same height as women who work above ground. Many miners die young from rapid tuberculosis, and most face chronic consumption by middle age. They tend to age prematurely, rendering them unfit for work between thirty-five and forty-five years old. Many also suffer from acute respiratory infections when they quickly transition from the warm air of the mine shaft to the cold wind above ground, often while drenched in sweat, and these infections can be fatal. Meanwhile, work above ground—like breaking and sorting ore—is carried out by girls and children, and it is considered pretty healthy since it takes place outdoors.

In the North of England, on the borders of Northumberland and Durham, are the extensive lead mines of Alston Moor.  The reports from this district {242} agree almost wholly with those from Cornwall.  Here, too, there are complaints of want of oxygen, excessive dust, powder smoke, carbonic acid gas, and sulphur, in the atmosphere of the workings.  In consequence, the miners here, as in Cornwall, are small of stature, and nearly all suffer p. 243from the thirtieth year throughout life from chest affections, which end, especially when this work is persisted in, as is almost always the case, in consumption, so greatly shortening the average of life of these people.  If the miners of this district are somewhat longer lived than those of Cornwall, this is the case, because they do not enter the mines before reaching the nineteenth year, while in Cornwall, as we have seen, this work is begun in the twelfth year.  Nevertheless, the majority die here, too, between forty and fifty years of age, according to medical testimony.  Of 79 miners, whose death was entered upon the public register of the district, and who attained an average of 45 years, 37 had died of consumption and 6 of asthma.  In the surrounding districts, Allendale, Stanhope, and Middleton, the average length of life was 49, 48, and 47 years respectively, and the deaths from chest affections composed 48, 54, and 56 per cent. of the whole number.  Let us compare these figures with the so-called Swedish tables, detailed tables of mortality embracing all the inhabitants of Sweden, and recognised in England as the most correct standard hitherto attainable for the average length of life of the British working-class.  According to them, male persons who survive the nineteenth year attain an average of 57½ years; but, according to this, the North of England miners are robbed by their work of an average of ten years of life.  Yet the Swedish tables are accepted as the standard of longevity of the workers, and present, therefore, the average chances of life as affected by the unfavourable conditions in which the proletariat lives, a standard of longevity less than the normal one.  In this district we find again the lodging-houses and sleeping-places with which we have already become acquainted in the towns, and in quite as filthy, disgusting, and overcrowded a state as there.  Commissioner Mitchell visited one such sleeping barrack, 18 feet long, 13 feet wide, and arranged for the reception of 42 men and 14 boys, or 56 persons altogether, one-half of whom slept above the other in berths as on shipboard.  There was no opening for the escape of the foul air; and, although no one had slept in this pen for three nights preceding the visit, the smell and the atmosphere were such that Commissioner Mitchell p. 244could not endure it a moment.  What must it be through a hot summer night, with fifty-six occupants?  And this is not the steerage of an American slave ship, it is the dwelling of free-born Britons!

In the North of England, along the borders of Northumberland and Durham, are the large lead mines of Alston Moor. The reports from this area {242} mostly align with those from Cornwall. Here, too, there are complaints about a lack of oxygen, excessive dust, gunpowder smoke, carbon dioxide, and sulfur in the air of the mines. As a result, the miners here, like those in Cornwall, tend to be shorter in height, and nearly all face chest problems starting from their thirtieth year throughout their lives, which often leads to consumption when they continue this work, as is nearly always the case, significantly shortening their life expectancy. While miners in this area might live slightly longer than those in Cornwall, this is because they don’t start working in the mines until they are nineteen, whereas in Cornwall, this work begins at twelve. Still, the majority die here as well, between forty and fifty years old, according to medical reports. Out of 79 miners whose deaths were recorded in the local register, with an average age of 45, 37 died of consumption and 6 from asthma. In nearby areas like Allendale, Stanhope, and Middleton, the average lifespan was 49, 48, and 47 years respectively, with deaths from chest issues making up 48, 54, and 56 percent of the total. Let’s compare these numbers with what are known as the Swedish tables, which provide detailed mortality statistics for all residents of Sweden and are recognized in England as the most accurate standard available for the average lifespan of the British working class. According to these tables, men who survive past nineteen live an average of 57½ years; however, for North of England miners, their work cuts an average of ten years off their lifespan. Nonetheless, the Swedish tables are accepted as the standard for longevity among the workers, reflecting the average life expectancy affected by the harsh conditions in which the working class lives—a longevity standard that is lower than the norm. In this area, we again find the lodging houses and sleeping quarters we’ve encountered in the towns, in equally filthy, disgusting, and overcrowded conditions. Commissioner Mitchell visited one such sleeping barrack that was 18 feet long and 13 feet wide, meant to accommodate 42 men and 14 boys, or a total of 56 people, half of whom slept above the others in bunks like on a ship. There was no ventilation for the stale air, and although no one had slept there for three nights before the visit, the odor and atmosphere were so unbearable that Commissioner Mitchell p. 244couldn't stand it for even a moment. Imagine how it would be on a hot summer night with fifty-six people inside! And this is not the cargo hold of an American slave ship; it is the home of free-born Britons!

Let us turn now to the most important branch of British mining, the iron and coal mines, which the Children’s Employment Commission treats in common, and with all the detail which the importance of the subject demands.  Nearly the whole of the first part of this report is devoted to the condition of the workers employed in these mines.  After the detailed description which I have furnished of the state of the industrial workers, I shall, however, be able to be as brief in dealing with this subject as the scope of the present work requires.

Let’s now focus on the most significant part of British mining: the iron and coal mines, which the Children’s Employment Commission discusses together, with all the detail that the topic deserves. Almost the entire first part of this report is dedicated to the conditions of the workers in these mines. After the thorough overview I’ve provided about the state of industrial workers, I’ll be able to be brief on this topic as the purpose of this work requires.

In the coal and iron mines which are worked in pretty much the same way, children of four, five, and seven years are employed.  They are set to transporting the ore or coal loosened by the miner from its place to the horse-path or the main shaft, and to opening and shutting the doors (which separate the divisions of the mine and regulate its ventilation) for the passage of workers and material.  For watching the doors the smallest children are usually employed, who thus pass twelve hours daily, in the dark, alone, sitting usually in damp passages without even having work enough to save them from the stupefying, brutalising tedium of doing nothing.  The transport of coal and iron-stone, on the other hand, is very hard labour, the stuff being shoved in large tubs, without wheels, over the uneven floor of the mine; often over moist clay, or through water, and frequently up steep inclines and through paths so low-roofed that the workers are forced to creep on hands and knees.  For this more wearing labour, therefore, older children and half-grown girls are employed.  One man or two boys per tub are employed, according to circumstances; and, if two boys, one pushes and the other pulls.  The loosening of the ore or coal, which is done by men or strong youths of sixteen years or more, is also very weary work.  The usual working-day is eleven to twelve hours, often longer; in Scotland it reaches fourteen hours, and double time is frequent, when all the employees p. 245are at work below ground twenty-four, and even thirty-six hours at a stretch.  Set times for meals are almost unknown, so that these people eat when hunger and time permit.

In the coal and iron mines, which operate in pretty much the same way, children as young as four, five, and seven are employed. They are tasked with carrying the ore or coal loosened by miners from its location to the horse-path or main shaft, and with opening and closing the doors that separate different sections of the mine and manage ventilation for workers and materials. The smallest children usually watch the doors, spending twelve hours a day in the dark, often sitting alone in damp passageways without enough work to keep them from the numbing, brutal boredom of doing nothing. On the other hand, transporting coal and iron ore is very labor-intensive, as the material is shoved in large tubs without wheels over the uneven mine floor; often over wet clay, through water, and frequently up steep slopes and through areas so low that workers have to crawl on their hands and knees. Therefore, for this more strenuous work, older children and adolescent girls are employed. Depending on the situation, one man or two boys are assigned per tub; if there are two boys, one pushes while the other pulls. The task of loosening the ore or coal, undertaken by men or strong young workers aged sixteen or older, is also very tiring. The typical workday lasts eleven to twelve hours, often longer; in Scotland, it can go up to fourteen hours, and overtime is common, with workers often spending twenty-four or even thirty-six hours underground continuously. Scheduled meal times are nearly nonexistent, so these individuals eat when their hunger and the timing allow.

The standard of living of the miners is in general described as fairly good and their wages high in comparison with those of the agricultural labourers surrounding them (who, however, live at starvation rates), except in certain parts of Scotland and in the Irish mines, where great misery prevails.  We shall have occasion to return later to this statement, which, by the way, is merely relative, implying comparison to the poorest class in all England.  Meanwhile, we shall consider the evils which arise from the present method of mining, and the reader may judge whether any pay in money can indemnify the miner for such suffering.

The standard of living for miners is generally considered to be pretty good, and their wages are high compared to the agricultural workers around them (who, by the way, struggle to get by). However, there are certain areas in Scotland and the Irish mines where severe poverty is common. We'll revisit this topic later, which is worth noting as it’s merely a comparison to the poorest class in all of England. In the meantime, let’s look at the issues that come from the current mining practices, and readers can decide if any amount of money can really make up for the suffering miners endure.

The children and young people who are employed in transporting coal and iron-stone all complain of being over-tired.  Even in the most recklessly conducted industrial establishments there is no such universal and exaggerated overwork.  The whole report proves this, with a number of examples on every page.  It is constantly happening that children throw themselves down on the stone hearth or the floor as soon as they reach home, fall asleep at once without being able to take a bite of food, and have to be washed and put to bed while asleep; it even happens that they lie down on the way home, and are found by their parents late at night asleep on the road.  It seems to be a universal practice among these children to spend Sunday in bed to recover in some degree from the over-exertion of the week.  Church and school are visited by but few, and even of these the teachers complain of their great sleepiness and the want of all eagerness to learn.  The same thing is true of the elder girls and women.  They are overworked in the most brutal manner.  This weariness, which is almost always carried to a most painful pitch, cannot fail to affect the constitution.  The first result of such over-exertion is the diversion of vitality to the one-sided development of the muscles, so that those especially of the arms, legs, and back, of the shoulders and chest, which are chiefly called into activity in pushing and pulling, attain an uncommonly vigorous p. 246development, while all the rest of the body suffers and is atrophied from want of nourishment.  More than all else the stature suffers, being stunted and retarded; nearly all miners are short, except those of Leicestershire and Warwickshire, who work under exceptionally favourable conditions.  Further, among boys as well as girls, puberty is retarded, among the former often until the eighteenth year; indeed, a nineteen years old boy appeared before Commissioner Symonds, showing no evidence beyond that of the teeth, that he was more than eleven or twelve years old.  This prolongation of the period of childhood is at bottom nothing more than a sign of checked development, which does not fail to bear fruit in later years.  Distortions of the legs, knees bent inwards and feet bent outwards, deformities of the spinal column and other malformations, appear the more readily in constitutions thus weakened, in consequence of the almost universally constrained position during work; and they are so frequent that in Yorkshire and Lancashire, as in Northumberland and Durham, the assertion is made by many witnesses, not only by physicians, that a miner may be recognised by his shape among a hundred other persons.  The women seem to suffer especially from this work, and are seldom, if ever, as straight as other women.  There is testimony here, too, to the fact that deformities of the pelvis and consequent difficult, even fatal, childbearing arise from the work of women in the mines.  But apart from these local deformities, the coal miners suffer from a number of special affections easily explained by the nature of the work.  Diseases of the digestive organs are first in order; want of appetite, pains in the stomach, nausea, and vomiting, are most frequent, with violent thirst, which can be quenched only with the dirty, lukewarm water of the mine; the digestion is checked and all the other affections are thus invited.  Diseases of the heart, especially hypertrophy, inflammation of the heart and pericardium, contraction of the auriculo-ventricular communications and the entrance of the aorta are also mentioned repeatedly as diseases of the miners, and are readily explained by overwork; and the same is true of the almost universal rupture which is a direct consequence of protracted over-exertion.  In part p. 247from the same cause and in part from the bad, dust-filled atmosphere mixed with carbonic acid and hydrocarbon gas, which might so readily be avoided, there arise numerous painful and dangerous affections of the lungs, especially asthma, which in some districts appears in the fortieth, in others in the thirtieth year in most of the miners, and makes them unfit for work in a short time.  Among those employed in wet workings the oppression in the chest naturally appears much earlier; in some districts of Scotland between the twentieth and thirtieth years, during which time the affected lungs are especially susceptible to inflammations and diseases of a feverish nature.  The peculiar disease of workers of this sort is “black spittle,” which arises from the saturation of the whole lung with coal particles, and manifests itself in general debility, headache, oppression of the chest, and thick, black mucous expectoration.  In some districts this disease appears in a mild form; in others, on the contrary, it is wholly incurable, especially in Scotland.  Here, besides the symptoms just mentioned, which appear in an intensified form, short, wheezing, breathing, rapid pulse (exceeding 100 per minute), and abrupt coughing, with increasing leanness and debility, speedily make the patient unfit for work.  Every case of this disease ends fatally.  Dr. Mackellar, in Pencaitland, East Lothian, testified that in all the coal mines which are properly ventilated this disease is unknown, while it frequently happens that miners who go from well to ill-ventilated mines are seized by it.  The profit-greed of mine owners which prevents the use of ventilators is therefore responsible for the fact that this working-men’s disease exists at all.  Rheumatism, too, is, with the exception of the Warwick and Leicestershire workers, a universal disease of the coal miners, and arises especially from the frequently damp working-places.  The consequence of all these diseases is that, in all districts without exception, the coal miners age early and become unfit for work soon after the fortieth year, though this is different in different places.  A coal miner who can follow his calling after the 45th or 50th year is a very great rarity indeed.  It is universally recognised that such workers enter upon old age at forty.  This applies to those who loosen the coal from p. 248the bed; the loaders, who have constantly to lift heavy blocks of coal into the tubs, age with the twenty-eighth or thirtieth year, so that it is proverbial in the coal mining districts that the loaders are old before they are young.  That this premature old age is followed by the early death of the colliers is a matter of course, and a man who reaches sixty is a great exception among them.  Even in South Staffordshire, where the mines are comparatively wholesome, few men reach their fifty-first year.  Along with this early superannuation of the workers we naturally find, just as in the case of the mills, frequent lack of employment of the elder men, who are often supported by very young children.  If we sum up briefly the results of the work in coal mines, we find, as Dr. Southwood Smith, one of the commissioners, does, that through prolonged childhood on the one hand and premature age on the other, that period of life in which the human being is in full possession of his powers, the period of manhood, is greatly shortened, while the length of life in general is below the average.  This, too, on the debit side of the bourgeoisie’s reckoning!

The children and young people working to transport coal and ironstone all express feelings of exhaustion. Even in the most poorly managed factories, there is no widespread overwork like this. The entire report confirms this with numerous examples on every page. It frequently happens that children collapse on the stone hearth or floor as soon as they get home, falling asleep instantly without having a bite to eat, and they have to be washed and put to bed while still asleep; sometimes, they even lie down on the way home and are found by their parents late at night asleep on the road. It seems to be a common practice among these children to spend Sundays in bed to recover somewhat from the exhaustion of the week. Only a few visit church or school, and even those students are reported by teachers to be very sleepy and lacking any eagerness to learn. The same is true for the older girls and women; they are cruelly overworked. This fatigue, often reaching painful levels, inevitably affects their health. The first result of such overexertion is a shift of energy towards the uneven development of certain muscles, particularly those in the arms, legs, back, shoulders, and chest, which are mainly involved in pushing and pulling, leading to unusually strong development in these areas while the rest of the body suffers and weakens from lack of nourishment. Additionally, their overall height is negatively impacted, resulting in stunted growth; nearly all miners are short, except for those in Leicestershire and Warwickshire, who work under especially favorable conditions. Furthermore, both boys and girls experience delayed puberty; boys often do not reach maturity until the age of eighteen; in fact, a nineteen-year-old boy was seen by Commissioner Symonds and showed no signs of being older than eleven or twelve, except for his teeth. This extended childhood is, at its core, simply a sign of hindered development, which leads to issues later in life. Deformities like bowed legs, inward-bent knees, outward-bent feet, spinal deformities, and other malformations are more likely to occur in weakened bodies due to the nearly constant forced positions during work; these deformities are so common that many witnesses, including physicians, claim a miner can be recognized by his shape among a hundred other people in Yorkshire, Lancashire, Northumberland, and Durham. Women seem to suffer particularly from this work, often not being as straight as other women. There is also evidence that pelvic deformities and the resulting complications in childbirth can result from women's work in the mines. Beyond these local deformities, coal miners suffer from numerous specific health issues easily linked to their work conditions. Digestive system diseases top the list; symptoms like loss of appetite, stomach pain, nausea, and vomiting are common, along with extreme thirst that can only be quenched with dirty, lukewarm water from the mine; digestion is impaired, inviting further problems. Heart diseases, especially hypertrophy, inflammation of the heart and pericardium, and narrowing of the connections between the heart chambers and the entrance to the aorta, occur frequently among miners and can be directly attributed to overwork; the same goes for the almost universal hernias caused by prolonged physical strain. Additionally, due in part to this and in part to the contaminated, dust-filled atmosphere combined with carbon dioxide and hydrocarbon gas, miners face various painful and dangerous respiratory issues, particularly asthma, which appears by the fortieth year in some regions, and by the thirtieth year in others, quickly rendering many miners unfit to work. Among those working in wet conditions, chest pains arise much earlier, often between the ages of twenty and thirty, during which time the afflicted lungs are especially prone to inflammation and fever-related illnesses. A particularly concerning condition among these workers is “black spit,” which results from the lungs being saturated with coal particles, leading to general weakness, headaches, chest tightness, and thick, black mucus coughed up. In some areas, this disease manifests mildly; in others, it is entirely incurable, especially in Scotland. There, in addition to the aforementioned symptoms which intensify, shortness of breath, rapid heartbeat (over 100 beats per minute), and severe coughing, combined with increasing weakness, quickly render the patient unable to work. Every case of this disease results in death. Dr. Mackellar in Pencaitland, East Lothian, testified that in all well-ventilated coal mines, this disease is virtually non-existent, while it often strikes miners transitioning from well-ventilated to poorly ventilated mines. Thus, the profit-driven mindset of mine owners, which prevents the installation of ventilation systems, is responsible for the existence of this miners' ailment. Rheumatism is also, except among workers in Warwick and Leicestershire, a widespread illness among coal miners, primarily due to the often damp working environments. The combined effects of these diseases lead to early aging and an inability to work soon after turning forty, though this varies by region. A coal miner still working past age 45 or 50 is exceedingly rare. It is widely accepted that these workers enter old age by the time they hit forty. This also applies to those who extract coal from the ground; loaders, who must lift heavy blocks of coal into tubs, typically age by twenty-eight or thirty, leading to the saying in mining communities that loaders are old before they're young. It is unsurprising that this premature aging leads to early deaths among miners, and reaching the age of sixty is a considerable rarity for them. Even in South Staffordshire, where the mines are relatively healthier, few men live to see their fifty-first year. Alongside this early retirement of workers, as seen in the mills, there is a frequent lack of employment for older men, who often have to rely on very young children for support. If we briefly summarize the outcomes of working in coal mines, we see, as Dr. Southwood Smith, one of the commissioners notes, that due to prolonged childhood on one end and premature aging on the other, the vital phase of life when a person is at their strongest and most capable—the prime of life—is significantly shortened, while overall life expectancy remains below average. This too is a cost to the bourgeoisie's bottom line!

All this deals only with the average of the English coal mines.  But there are many in which the state of things is much worse, those, namely, in which thin seams of coal are worked.  The coal would be too expensive if a part of the adjacent sand and clay were removed; so the mine owners permit only the seams to be worked; whereby the passages which elsewhere are four or five feet high and more are here kept so low that to stand upright in them is not to be thought of.  The working-man lies on his side and loosens the coal with his pick; resting upon his elbow as a pivot, whence follow inflammations of the joint, and in cases where he is forced to kneel, of the knee also.  The women and children who have to transport the coal crawl upon their hands and knees, fastened to the tub by a harness and chain (which frequently passes between the legs), while a man behind pushes with hands and head.  The pushing with the head engenders local irritations, painful swellings, and ulcers.  In many cases, too, the shafts are wet, so that these workers have to crawl through dirty or salt water several inches deep, being thus exposed to a special irritation of the skin.  p. 249It can be readily imagined how greatly the diseases already peculiar to the miners are fostered by this especially frightful, slavish toil.

All this concerns just the average situation in English coal mines. However, there are many where conditions are much worse, particularly in mines that work thin layers of coal. The coal becomes too expensive to extract if part of the surrounding sand and clay is removed, so mine owners only allow the seams to be worked. As a result, the passages that are typically four or five feet high and more elsewhere are kept so low here that standing upright is impossible. The workers lie on their sides to break loose the coal with their picks, pivoting on their elbows, which leads to joint inflammation, and if they have to kneel, it affects their knees as well. The women and children who transport the coal crawl on their hands and knees, harnessed to a tub with a chain that often goes between their legs, while a man behind pushes with his hands and head. Using the head to push causes local irritations, painful swellings, and ulcers. In many cases, the shafts are wet, so these workers have to crawl through dirty or salty water a few inches deep, exposing their skin to further irritation. p. 249 It's easy to imagine how much the already common illnesses among miners are worsened by this particularly horrific, dehumanizing labor.

But these are not all the evils which descend upon the head of the coal miner.  In the whole British Empire there is no occupation in which a man may meet his end in so many diverse ways as in this one.  The coal mine is the scene of a multitude of the most terrifying calamities, and these come directly from the selfishness of the bourgeoisie.  The hydrocarbon gas which develops so freely in these mines, forms, when combined with atmospheric air, an explosive which takes fire upon coming into contact with a flame, and kills every one within its reach.  Such explosions take place, in one mine or another, nearly every day; on September 28th, 1844, one killed 96 men in Haswell Colliery, Durham.  The carbonic acid gas, which also develops in great quantities, accumulates in the deeper parts of the mine, frequently reaching the height of a man, and suffocates every one who gets into it.  The doors which separate the sections of the mines are meant to prevent the propagation of explosions and the movement of the gases; but since they are entrusted to small children, who often fall asleep or neglect them, this means of prevention is illusory.  A proper ventilation of the mines by means of fresh air-shafts could almost entirely remove the injurious effects of both these gases.  But for this purpose the bourgeoisie has no money to spare, preferring to command the working-men to use the Davy lamp, which is wholly useless because of its dull light, and is, therefore, usually replaced by a candle.  If an explosion occurs, the recklessness of the miner is blamed, though the bourgeois might have made the explosion well-nigh impossible by supplying good ventilation.  Further, every few days the roof of a working falls in, and buries or mangles the workers employed in it.  It is the interest of the bourgeois to have the seams worked out as completely as possible, and hence the accidents of this sort.  Then, too, the ropes by which the men descend into the mines are often rotten, and break, so that the unfortunates fall, and are crushed.  All these accidents, and I have no room for special cases, carry off p. 250yearly, according to the Mining Journal, some fourteen hundred human beings.  The Manchester Guardian reports at least two or three accidents every week for Lancashire alone.  In nearly all mining districts the people composing the coroner’s juries are, in almost all cases, dependent upon the mine owners, and where this is not the case, immemorial custom insures that the verdict shall be: “Accidental Death.”  Besides, the jury takes very little interest in the state of the mine, because it does not understand anything about the matter.  But the Children’s Employment Commission does not hesitate to make the mine owners directly responsible for the greater number of these cases.

But these are not the only problems facing coal miners. In the entire British Empire, there’s no job where a worker meets his end in so many different ways as in this one. The coal mine is filled with terrifying disasters that arise directly from the selfishness of the wealthy. The hydrocarbon gas that builds up in these mines creates an explosive mix with air that ignites on contact with a flame, killing everyone in its vicinity. Explosions like this happen nearly every day in one mine or another; for instance, on September 28th, 1844, one explosion killed 96 men in Haswell Colliery, Durham. Carbonic acid gas, which also forms in large amounts, accumulates in the deeper parts of the mine, sometimes reaching head-height and suffocating anyone who enters it. The doors separating the sections of the mines are supposed to stop explosions and gas from spreading, but since they are often left to small children, who might fall asleep or forget about them, this safety measure is ineffective. Properly ventilating the mines with fresh air shafts could greatly lessen the harmful effects of these gases. However, the wealthy have no funds to spare for this, opting instead to force miners to use the Davy lamp, which has a poor light and is often replaced by candles. When an explosion occurs, the miner’s recklessness is blamed, even though the wealthy could have made such explosions nearly impossible with good ventilation. Additionally, every few days, the roof of a working area collapses, burying or injuring the workers inside. It benefits the wealthy to exhaust the seams of coal as much as possible, leading to these types of accidents. The ropes that miners use to descend into the mines are often worn out and break, causing unfortunate falls and injuries. All of these accidents claim approximately fourteen hundred lives each year, according to the Mining Journal. The Manchester Guardian reports at least two or three accidents every week just in Lancashire. In most mining areas, the juries in coroner’s inquests are often reliant on mine owners, and where that isn’t the case, long-standing custom ensures the verdict is “Accidental Death.” Furthermore, the jury shows little interest in the conditions of the mine because they don’t understand it well. However, the Children’s Employment Commission doesn’t hesitate to hold mine owners directly accountable for most of these incidents.

As to the education and morals of the mining population, they are, according to the Children’s Employment Commission, pretty good in Cornwall, and excellent in Alston Moor; in the coal districts, in general, they are, on the contrary, reported as on an excessively low plane.  The workers live in the country in neglected regions, and if they do their weary work, no human being outside the police force troubles himself about them.  Hence, and from the tender age at which children are put to work, it follows that their mental education is wholly neglected.  The day schools are not within their reach, the evening and Sunday schools mere shams, the teachers worthless.  Hence, few can read and still fewer write.  The only point upon which their eyes are as yet open is the fact that their wages are far too low for their hateful and dangerous work.  To church they go seldom or never; all the clergy complain of their irreligion as beyond comparison.  As a matter of fact, their ignorance of religious and of secular things, alike, is such that the ignorance of the factory operatives, shown in numerous examples in the foregoing pages, is trifling in comparison with it.  The categories of religion are known to them only from the terms of their oaths.  Their morality is destroyed by their work itself.  That the overwork of all miners must engender drunkenness is self-evident.  As to their sexual relations, men, women, and children work in the mines, in many cases, wholly naked, and in most cases, nearly so, by reason of the prevailing heat, and the consequences in the dark, lonely mines may p. 251be imagined.  The number of illegitimate children is here disproportionately large, and indicates what goes on among the half-savage population below ground; but proves too, that the illegitimate intercourse of the sexes has not here, as in the great cities, sunk to the level of prostitution.  The labour of women entails the same consequences as in the factories, dissolves the family, and makes the mother totally incapable of household work.

Regarding the education and morals of the mining community, they are, according to the Children’s Employment Commission, pretty good in Cornwall and excellent in Alston Moor; however, in the coal districts overall, they are reported to be at a very low level. The workers live in rural, neglected areas, and if they do their exhausting jobs, no one outside of the police cares about them. Consequently, combined with the young age at which children are put to work, their mental education is completely neglected. Day schools are out of reach for them, evening and Sunday schools are just a facade, and the teachers are ineffective. As a result, few can read and even fewer can write. The only thing they seem to realize is that their wages are far too low for their grueling and dangerous work. They rarely or never go to church; all the clergy complain about their lack of faith, which is beyond compare. In fact, their ignorance of both religious and secular matters is so severe that it makes the ignorance of factory workers, highlighted in various examples earlier, seem trivial in comparison. They only know about religious concepts from the terminology of their oaths. Their morality is eroded by their work itself. It is clear that the overwork of all miners leads to excessive drinking. Concerning their sexual relations, men, women, and children often work in the mines largely naked, and usually nearly so, due to the heat; the consequences in the dark, isolating mines can be imagined. The number of illegitimate children here is disproportionately high, indicating what occurs among the semi-savage population underground; but it also shows that the unauthorized relationships between sexes have not sunk to the level of prostitution as they have in the large cities. The work of women brings about the same results as in factories, disrupting families and rendering mothers entirely incapable of managing household duties.

When the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report was laid before Parliament, Lord Ashley hastened to bring in a bill wholly forbidding the work of women in the mines, and greatly limiting that of children.  The bill was adopted, but has remained a dead letter in most districts, because no mine inspectors were appointed to watch over its being carried into effect.  The evasion of the law is very easy in the country districts in which the mines are situated; and no one need be surprised that the Miners’ Union laid before the Home Secretary an official notice, last year, that in the Duke of Hamilton’s coal mines in Scotland, more than sixty women were at work; or that the Manchester Guardian reported that a girl perished in an explosion in a mine near Wigan, and no one troubled himself further about the fact that an infringement of the law was thus revealed.  In single cases the employment of women may have been discontinued, but in general the old state of things remains as before.

When the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report was presented to Parliament, Lord Ashley quickly introduced a bill completely banning women from working in mines and significantly limiting child labor. The bill was passed, but it has mostly been ignored in many areas because no mine inspectors were appointed to ensure it was enforced. It’s very easy to get around the law in the rural areas where the mines are located, so it’s not surprising that last year, the Miners’ Union informed the Home Secretary that over sixty women were working in the Duke of Hamilton’s coal mines in Scotland. Additionally, the Manchester Guardian reported that a girl died in a mine explosion near Wigan, and no one paid attention to the fact that this was a violation of the law. In some cases, the employment of women may have stopped, but overall, things have remained the same as before.

These are, however, not all the afflictions known to the coal miners.  The bourgeoisie, not content with ruining the health of these people, keeping them in danger of sudden loss of life, robbing them of all opportunity for education, plunders them in other directions in the most shameless manner.  The truck system is here the rule, not the exception, and is carried on in the most direct and undisguised manner.  The cottage system, likewise, is universal, and here almost a necessity; but it is used here, too, for the better plundering of the workers.  To these means of oppression must be added all sorts of direct cheating.  While coal is sold by weight, the worker’s wages are reckoned chiefly by measure; and when his tub is not perfectly full he receives no pay whatever, while he gets not a farthing for over-measure.  If p. 252there is more than a specified quantity of dust in the tub, a matter which depends much less upon the miner than upon the nature of the seam, he not only loses his whole wage but is fined besides.  The fine system in general is so highly perfected in the coal mines, that a poor devil who has worked the whole week and comes for his wages, sometimes learns from the overseer, who fine at discretion and without summoning the workers, that he not only has no wages but must pay so and so much in fines extra!  The overseer has, in general, absolute power over wages; he notes the work done, and can please himself as to what he pays the worker, who is forced to take his word.  In some mines, where the pay is according to weight, false decimal scales are used, whose weights are not subject to the inspection of the authorities; in one coal mine there was actually a regulation that any workman who intended to complain of the falseness of the scales must give notice to the overseer three weeks in advance!  In many districts, especially in the North of England, it is customary to engage the workers by the year; they pledge themselves to work for no other employer during that time, but the mine owner by no means pledges himself to give them work, so that they are often without it for months together, and if they seek elsewhere, they are sent to the treadmill for six weeks for breach of contract.  In other contracts, work to the amount of 26s. every 14 days, is promised the miners, but not furnished, in others still, the employers advance the miners small sums to be worked out afterwards, thus binding the debtors to themselves.  In the North, the custom is general of keeping the payment of wages one week behindhand, chaining the miners in this way to their work.  And to complete the slavery of these enthralled workers, nearly all the Justices of the Peace in the coal districts are mine owners themselves, or relatives or friends of mine owners, and possess almost unlimited power in these poor, uncivilised regions where there are few newspapers, these few in the service of the ruling class, and but little other agitation.  It is almost beyond conception how these poor coal miners have been plundered and tyrannised over by Justices of the Peace acting as judges in their own cause.

However, these are not the only problems coal miners face. The wealthy class, not satisfied with damaging these people's health, putting them at risk of sudden death, and taking away their chance for education, exploits them in even more blatant ways. The truck system is the norm here, not the exception, and it operates in an obvious and straightforward manner. The cottage system is also widespread and practically essential; however, it's used mainly to further exploit the workers. Additionally, all kinds of direct cheating are involved. While coal is sold by weight, workers' wages are mostly calculated by volume; if their tub isn't completely full, they receive no pay at all, and they don’t earn anything for overfilling. If there’s more dust in the tub than allowed, which is influenced much more by the seam’s nature than by the miner, they not only lose their entire wage but also face fines. The fine system is so well-established in coal mines that a worker who has labored all week may find out upon arriving for his wages that not only does he have no pay, but he also owes additional fines—all decided by the overseer without needing to notify the workers. The overseer has practically complete control over wages; he tracks the work done and can decide how much to pay the worker, who has no choice but to accept his word. In some mines where pay is based on weight, false decimal scales are used, which authorities don’t inspect; in one mine, there was even a rule that any worker wishing to complain about the scales had to notify the overseer three weeks ahead! In many regions, especially in northern England, it's common for workers to be hired for the year; they agree not to work for anyone else during that time, but the mine owner isn't obligated to provide them with work, leaving them without pay for months at a time, and if they look for other jobs, they face six weeks of hard labor for breaking their contract. In other agreements, miners are promised to be paid 26 shillings every two weeks, but often this isn’t fulfilled. In some cases, employers lend small sums to miners that they are expected to repay through their work, effectively trapping them in debt. In the North, it’s common for wages to be paid a week late, which further ties the miners to their jobs. To finalize the enslavement of these oppressed workers, nearly all Justices of the Peace in coal regions are mine owners or related to mine owners and have almost unchecked authority in these impoverished, uncivilized areas where few newspapers exist—most of which serve the interests of the elites—and little other activism occurs. It's hard to imagine just how much these poor coal miners have been exploited and oppressed by Justices of the Peace who act as judges in their own cases.

p. 253So it went on for a long time.  The workers did not know any better than that they were there for the purpose of being swindled out of their very lives.  But gradually, even among them, and especially in the factory districts, where contact with the more intelligent operatives could not fail of its effect, there arose a spirit of opposition to the shameless oppression of the “coal kings.”  The men began to form Unions and strike from time to time.  In civilised districts they joined the Chartists body and soul.  The great coal district of the North of England, shut off from all industrial intercourse, remained backward until, after many efforts, partly of the Chartists and partly of the more intelligent miners themselves, a general spirit of opposition arose in 1843.  Such a movement seized the workers of Northumberland and Durham that they placed themselves at the forefront of a general Union of coal miners throughout the kingdom, and appointed W. P. Roberts, a Chartist solicitor, of Bristol, their “Attorney General,” he having distinguished himself in earlier Chartist trials.  The Union soon spread over a great majority of the districts; agents were appointed in all directions, who held meetings everywhere and secured new members; at the first conference of delegates, in Manchester, in 1844, there were 60,000 members represented, and at Glasgow, six months later, at the second conference, 100,000.  Here all the affairs of the coal miners were discussed and decisions as to the greater strikes arrived at.  Several journals were founded, especially the Miners’ Advocate, at Newcastle-upon-Tyne, for defending the rights of the miners.  On March 31st, 1844, the contracts of all the miners of Northumberland and Durham expired.  Roberts was empowered to draw up a new agreement, in which the men demanded: (1) Payment by weight instead of measure; (2) Determination of weight by means of ordinary scales subject to the public inspectors; (3) Half-yearly renewal of contracts; (4) Abolition of the fines system and payment according to work actually done; (5) The employers to guarantee to miners in their exclusive service at least four days’ work per week, or wages for the same.  This agreement was submitted to the “coal kings,” and a deputation appointed to negotiate with p. 254them; they answered, however, that for them the Union did not exist, that they had to deal with single workmen only, and should never recognise the Union.  They also submitted an agreement of their own which ignored all the foregoing points, and was, naturally, refused by the miners.  War was thus declared.  On March 31st, 1844, 40,000 miners laid down their picks, and every mine in the county stood empty.  The funds of the Union were so considerable that for several months a weekly contribution of 2s. 6d. could be assured to each family.  While the miners were thus putting the patience of their masters to the test, Roberts organised with incomparable perseverance both strike and agitation, arranged for the holding of meetings, traversed England from one end to the other, preached peaceful and legal agitation, and carried on a crusade against the despotic Justices of the Peace and truck masters, such as had never been known in England.  This he had begun at the beginning of the year.  Wherever a miner had been condemned by a Justice of the Peace, he obtained a habeas corpus from the Court of Queen’s bench, brought his client to London, and always secured an acquittal.  Thus, January 13th, Judge Williams of Queen’s bench acquitted three miners condemned by the Justices of the Peace of Bilston, South Staffordshire; the offence of these people was that they refused to work in a place which threatened to cave in, and had actually caved in before their return!  On an earlier occasion, Judge Patteson had acquitted six working-men, so that the name Roberts began to be a terror to the mine owners.  In Preston four of his clients were in jail.  In the first week of January he proceeded thither to investigate the case on the spot, but found, when he arrived, the condemned all released before the expiration of the sentence.  In Manchester there were seven in jail; Roberts obtained a habeas corpus and acquittal for all from Judge Wightman.  In Prescott nine coal miners were in jail, accused of creating a disturbance in St. Helen’s, South Lancashire, and awaiting trial; when Roberts arrived upon the spot, they were released at once.  All this took place in the first half of February.  In April, Roberts released a miner from jail in Derby, four in Wakefield, p. 255and four in Leicester.  So it went on for a time until these Dogberries came to have some respect for the miners.  The truck system shared the same fate.  One after another Roberts brought the disreputable mine owners before the courts, and compelled the reluctant Justices of the Peace to condemn them; such dread of this “lightning” “Attorney General” who seemed to be everywhere at once spread among them, that at Belper, for instance, upon Roberts’ arrival, a truck firm published the following notice:

p. 253So it went on for a long time. The workers had no idea they were there just to be robbed of their very lives. But gradually, even among them, especially in the factory areas where they interacted with more educated workers, a spirit of resistance to the shameless oppression of the “coal kings” emerged. The men began to form Unions and occasionally go on strike. In more progressive areas, they fully embraced the Chartist movement. The major coal region of Northern England, cut off from all industrial connections, remained behind until, after many efforts from the Chartists and the more informed miners, a general opposition began in 1843. The movement spread to the workers in Northumberland and Durham, who took the lead in forming a national Union of coal miners and appointed W. P. Roberts, a Chartist lawyer from Bristol, as their “Attorney General,” having distinguished himself in previous Chartist trials. The Union quickly expanded across a large portion of the regions; representatives were appointed everywhere to hold meetings and recruit new members; at the first conference of delegates in Manchester in 1844, 60,000 members were represented, and at Glasgow, six months later, at the second conference, 100,000. Here, all the matters concerning coal miners were discussed, and decisions regarding the larger strikes were made. Several newspapers were launched, particularly the Miners’ Advocate, in Newcastle-upon-Tyne, to defend the miners' rights. On March 31st, 1844, the contracts for all miners in Northumberland and Durham came to an end. Roberts was authorized to draft a new agreement, in which the men demanded: (1) Payment by weight instead of volume; (2) Weight measured with standard scales checked by public inspectors; (3) Contracts renewed every six months; (4) No fines and payment based on actual work done; (5) Employers to guarantee miners in their exclusive service at least four days of work per week, or pay for those days. This agreement was presented to the “coal kings,” and a delegation was selected to negotiate with p. 254them; however, they responded that, as far as they were concerned, the Union didn’t exist, that they would only deal with individual workers, and that they would never recognize the Union. They also proposed their own agreement, which ignored all the points made by the miners, and was, naturally, rejected. Thus, war was declared. On March 31st, 1844, 40,000 miners stopped working, and every mine in the county sat empty. The Union’s funds were substantial enough to ensure that for several months, each family received a weekly contribution of 2s. 6d. While the miners tested their masters’ patience, Roberts tirelessly organized strikes and protests, arranged meetings, traveled all over England, advocated for peaceful and lawful action, and campaigned against the oppressive Justices of the Peace and truck masters in a way that had never been seen in England before. He began this at the start of the year. Wherever a miner had been sentenced by a Justice of the Peace, he obtained a habeas corpus from the Court of Queen’s Bench, brought his client to London, and always secured an acquittal. For example, on January 13th, Judge Williams of Queen’s Bench acquitted three miners convicted by the Justices of the Peace from Bilston, South Staffordshire; these miners had refused to work in a mine that was at risk of collapsing, and had actually collapsed before they returned! Previously, Judge Patteson had acquitted six laborers, causing the name Roberts to become a nightmare for mine owners. In Preston, four of his clients were in jail. During the first week of January, he went there to investigate, only to find that all the condemned had been released before serving their sentences. In Manchester, there were seven in jail; Roberts obtained a habeas corpus and acquittal for all from Judge Wightman. In Prescott, nine coal miners were incarcerated, accused of causing a disturbance in St. Helen’s, South Lancashire, and awaiting trial; when Roberts arrived, they were released immediately. All this happened in early February. In April, Roberts got a miner released from jail in Derby, four in Wakefield, p. 255and four in Leicester. This continued for a while until these petty officials started to respect the miners. The truck system met the same fate. One by one, Roberts brought the unscrupulous mine owners to court, compelling the hesitant Justices of the Peace to condemn them; such fear of this “lightning” “Attorney General,” who seemed to be everywhere at once, spread among them that at Belper, for example, upon Roberts’ arrival, a truck company issued the following notice:

“NOTICE!”

“NOTICE!”

pentrich coal mine.

pentrich coal mine.

“The Messrs. Haslam think it necessary, in order to prevent all mistakes, to announce that all persons employed in their colliery will receive their wages wholly in cash, and may expend them when and as they choose to do.  If they purchase goods in the shops of Messrs. Haslam they will receive them as heretofore at wholesale prices, but they are not expected to make their purchases there, and work and wages will be continued as usual whether purchases are made in these shops or elsewhere.”

“The Haslam brothers want to make it clear that to avoid any confusion, all workers at their coal mine will be paid fully in cash, and they can use it however they wish. If they choose to buy from the Haslam stores, they will still receive wholesale prices as before, but shopping there is not mandatory. Work and pay will continue as usual, regardless of whether they shop at these stores or elsewhere.”

This triumph aroused the greatest jubilation throughout the English working-class, and brought the Union a mass of new members.  Meanwhile the strike in the North was proceeding.  Not a hand stirred, and Newcastle, the chief coal port, was so stripped of its commodity that coal had to be brought from the Scotch coast, in spite of the proverb.  At first, while the Union’s funds held out, all went well, but towards summer the struggle became much more painful for the miners.  The greatest want prevailed among them; they had no money, for the contributions of the workers of all branches of industry in England availed little among the vast number of strikers, who were forced to borrow from the small shopkeepers at a heavy loss.  The whole press, with the single exception of the few proletarian journals, was against them; the bourgeois, even the few among them who might have had enough sense of justice to support the miners, learnt from the corrupt Liberal and Conservative sheets only lies about p. 256them.  A deputation of twelve miners who went to London received a sum from the proletariat there, but this, too, availed little among the mass who needed support.  Yet, in spite of all this, the miners remained steadfast, and what is even more significant, were quiet and peaceable in the face of all the hostilities and provocation of the mine owners and their faithful servants.  No act of revenge was carried out, not a renegade was maltreated, not one single theft committed.  Thus the strike had continued well on towards four months, and the mine owners still had no prospect of getting the upper hand.  One way was, however, still open to them.  They remembered the cottage system; it occurred to them that the houses of the rebellious spirits were their property.  In July, notice to quit was served the workers, and, in a week, the whole forty thousand were put out of doors.  This measure was carried out with revolting cruelty.  The sick, the feeble, old men and little children, even women in childbirth, were mercilessly turned from their beds and cast into the roadside ditches.  One agent dragged by the hair from her bed, and into the street, a woman in the pangs of childbirth.  Soldiers and police in crowds were present, ready to fire at the first symptom of resistance, on the slightest hint of the Justices of the Peace, who had brought about the whole brutal procedure.  This, too, the working-men endured without resistance.  The hope had been that the men would use violence; they were spurred on with all force to infringements of the laws, to furnish an excuse for making an end of the strike by the intervention of the military.  The homeless miners, remembering the warnings of their Attorney General, remained unmoved, set up their household goods upon the moors or the harvested fields, and held out.  Some, who had no other place, encamped on the roadsides and in ditches, others upon land belonging to other people, whereupon they were prosecuted, and, having caused “damage of the value of a halfpenny,” were fined a pound, and, being unable to pay it, worked it out on the treadmill.  Thus they lived eight weeks and more of the wet fag-end of last summer under the open sky with their families, with no further shelter for themselves and their little ones than the calico curtains p. 257of their beds; with no other help than the scanty allowances of their Union and the fast shrinking credit with the small dealers.  Hereupon Lord Londonderry, who owns considerable mines in Durham, threatened the small tradesmen in “his” town of Seaham with his most high displeasure if they should continue to give credit to “his” rebellious workers.  This “noble” lord made himself the first clown of the turnout in consequence of the ridiculous, pompous, ungrammatical ukases addressed to the workers, which he published from time to time, with no other result than the merriment of the nation.  When none of their efforts produced any effect, the mine owners imported, at great expense, hands from Ireland and such remote parts of Wales as have as yet no labour movement.  And when the competition of workers against workers was thus restored, the strength of the strikers collapsed.  The mine owners obliged them to renounce the Union, abandon Roberts, and accept the conditions laid down by the employers.  Thus ended at the close of September the great five months’ battle of the coal miners against the mine owners, a battle fought on the part of the oppressed with an endurance, courage, intelligence, and coolness which demands the highest admiration.  What a degree of true human culture, of enthusiasm and strength of character, such a battle implies on the part of men who, as we have seen in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report, were described as late as 1840, as being thoroughly brutal and wanting in moral sense!  But how hard, too, must have been the pressure which brought these forty thousand colliers to rise as one man and to fight out the battle like an army not only well-disciplined but enthusiastic, an army possessed of one single determination, with the greatest coolness and composure, to a point beyond which further resistance would have been madness.  And what a battle!  Not against visible, mortal enemies, but against hunger, want, misery, and homelessness, against their own passions provoked to madness by the brutality of wealth.  If they had revolted with violence, they, the unarmed and defenceless, would have been shot down, and a day or two would have decided the victory of the owners.  This law-abiding reserve was no fear of the constable’s p. 258staff, it was the result of deliberation, the best proof of the intelligence and self-control of the working-men.

This victory sparked immense joy throughout the English working class and brought the Union a large number of new members. Meanwhile, the strike in the North was ongoing. Not a single person worked, and Newcastle, the main coal port, was so depleted that coal had to be transported from the Scottish coast, despite the saying. At first, as long as the Union's funds lasted, everything was fine, but as summer approached, the struggle became much tougher for the miners. They faced severe shortages; they had no money because the contributions from workers in all industries across England were insufficient to support the vast number of strikers, who had to borrow from local shopkeepers at great loss. The entire press, except for a few working-class publications, was against them; even the bourgeois, including the few who might have had enough sense of justice to support the miners, learned only lies about them from the corrupt Liberal and Conservative newspapers. A group of twelve miners sent to London received some funds from the working class there, but this, too, barely helped the many who were in need of support. Yet, despite all this, the miners remained resolute and, more importantly, were calm and peaceful in the face of all the hostility and provocation from the mine owners and their loyal workers. No acts of revenge were executed, no traitors were mistreated, and not a single theft occurred. The strike had lasted well over four months, and the mine owners still had no prospect of regaining control. However, one option remained open to them. They recalled the cottage system; it struck them that the homes of the rebellious workers were their property. In July, eviction notices were served to the workers, and within a week, all forty thousand were thrown out. This measure was implemented with shocking cruelty. The sick, the weak, the elderly, and even pregnant women were ruthlessly forced from their beds and thrown into ditches by the roadside. One agent dragged a woman in labor from her bed and into the street. Soldiers and police were present in large numbers, ready to shoot at the slightest hint of resistance, at the faintest suggestion from the Justices of the Peace, who were responsible for the entire brutal operation. The workers endured this without fighting back. The hope had been that the miners would resort to violence; they were pushed hard to break the law to give an excuse to end the strike through military intervention. The homeless miners, keeping in mind the warnings from their Attorney General, remained steadfast, set up their belongings on the moors or in the harvested fields, and held out. Some, with nowhere else to go, camped by the roadside and in ditches, while others set up on land belonging to others, resulting in their prosecution. Having caused "damage of the value of a halfpenny," they were fined a pound and, unable to pay, had to work it off on the treadmill. So they lived for over eight weeks during the rainy, miserable end of last summer under the open sky with their families, with only flimsy calico curtains from their beds for shelter; with no help other than the meager allowances from their Union and dwindling credit from local merchants. Lord Londonderry, who owned significant mines in Durham, threatened local tradesmen in "his" town of Seaham with severe consequences if they continued to offer credit to "his" rebellious workers. This "noble" lord became the first fool in this situation due to the ridiculous, pompous, and ungrammatical decrees he issued to the workers, which only amused the nation. When none of their efforts worked, the mine owners, at great expense, brought in workers from Ireland and remote parts of Wales that had no established labor movement. As competition among workers resumed, the strength of the strikers crumbled. The mine owners forced them to abandon the Union, give up on Roberts, and accept the conditions set by the employers. This marked the end of the intense five-month struggle of the coal miners against the mine owners, a battle fought by the oppressed with a level of endurance, courage, intelligence, and calmness that deserves the utmost admiration. What an incredible display of true human culture, enthusiasm, and character this struggle showed from men who, as we noted in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report as late as 1840, were described as completely brutal and devoid of moral sense! But how intense must the pressure have been that pushed these forty thousand miners to unite and fight like a well-disciplined and enthusiastic army, determined to resist until the point where further resistance would have been folly. And what a battle it was! Not against visible, tangible enemies, but against hunger, deprivation, misery, and homelessness, against their own passions incited to madness by the brutality of wealth. If they had revolted violently, they—unarmed and defenseless—would have been shot down, and a day or two would have sealed the owners' victory. This adherence to the law was not due to a fear of the police’s staff; it was the result of careful consideration, the greatest proof of the intelligence and self-control of the working men.

Thus were the working-men forced once more, in spite of their unexampled endurance, to succumb to the might of capital.  But the fight had not been in vain.  First of all, this nineteen weeks’ strike had torn the miners of the North of England forever from the intellectual death in which they had hitherto lain; they have left their sleep, are alert to defend their interests, and have entered the movement of civilisation, and especially the movement of the workers.  The strike, which first brought to light the whole cruelty of the owners, has established the opposition of the workers here, forever, and made at least two-thirds of them Chartists; and the acquisition of thirty thousand such determined, experienced men is certainly of great value to the Chartists.  Then, too, the endurance and law-abiding which characterised the whole strike, coupled with the active agitation which accompanied it, has fixed public attention upon the miners.  On the occasion of the debate upon the export duty on coal, Thomas Duncombe, the only decidedly Chartist member of the House of Commons, brought up the condition of the coal miners, had their petition read, and by his speech forced the bourgeois journals to publish, at least in their reports of Parliamentary proceedings, a correct statement of the case.  Immediately after the strike, occurred the explosion at Haswell; Roberts went to London, demanded an audience with Peel, insisted as representative of the miners upon a thorough investigation of the case, and succeeded in having the first geological and chemical notabilities of England, Professors Lyell and Faraday, commissioned to visit the spot.  As several other explosions followed in quick succession, and Roberts again laid the details before the Prime Minister, the latter promised to propose the necessary measures for the protection of the workers, if possible, in the next session of Parliament, i.e., the present one of 1845.  All this would not have been accomplished if these workers had not, by means of the strike, proved themselves freedom-loving men worthy of all respect, and if they had not engaged Roberts as their counsel.

Thus, the workers were forced once again, despite their incredible endurance, to give in to the power of capital. But their struggle wasn’t in vain. This nineteen-week strike has permanently awakened the miners of Northern England from their previous state of intellectual stagnation; they have risen from their slumber, are now vigilant about defending their interests, and have become part of the broader movement for progress and, especially, the workers' movement. The strike, which exposed the owners' cruelty, has established a lasting opposition among the workers and has turned at least two-thirds of them into Chartists. The addition of thirty thousand such determined and experienced individuals is undoubtedly a significant gain for the Chartists. Furthermore, the resilience and law-abiding nature that characterized the entire strike, along with the active mobilization during it, have drawn public attention to the miners. During the debate on the coal export duty, Thomas Duncombe, the only openly Chartist member of Parliament, highlighted the condition of coal miners, had their petition read, and through his speech compelled the mainstream media to report, at least in their coverage of Parliamentary proceedings, an accurate depiction of the situation. Shortly after the strike, there was an explosion at Haswell; Roberts went to London, requested a meeting with Peel, and, as the miners’ representative, insisted on a thorough investigation, successfully getting the leading geological and chemical experts in England, Professors Lyell and Faraday, to visit the site. As several more explosions occurred in quick succession, Roberts presented the details to the Prime Minister again, who promised to propose necessary protections for the workers in the next session of Parliament, that is, the current one of 1845. None of this would have been achieved if these workers hadn't, through the strike, demonstrated that they were freedom-loving individuals deserving of respect, and if they hadn't engaged Roberts as their advocate.

p. 259Scarcely had it become known that the coal miners of the North had been forced to renounce the Union and discharge Roberts, when the miners of Lancashire formed a Union of some ten thousand men, and guaranteed their Attorney General a salary of £1200 a year.  In the autumn of last year they collected more than £700, rather more than £200 of which they expended upon salaries and judicial expenses, and the rest chiefly in support of men out of work, either through want of employment or through dissensions with their employers.  Thus the working-men are constantly coming to see more clearly that, united, they too are a respectable power, and can, in the last extremity, defy even the might of the bourgeoisie.  And this insight, the gain of all labour movements, has been won for all the miners of England by the Union and the strike of 1844.  In a very short time the difference of intelligence and energy which now exists in favour of the factory operatives will have vanished, and the miners of the kingdom will be able to stand abreast of them in every respect.  Thus one piece of standing ground after another is undermined beneath the feet of the bourgeoisie; and how long will it be before their whole social and political edifice collapses with the basis upon which it rests? {259}

p. 259As soon as it became known that the coal miners in the North had been forced to leave the Union and let go of Roberts, the miners in Lancashire formed a Union of about ten thousand members and promised their Attorney General a salary of £1200 a year. Last autumn, they raised over £700, with more than £200 of that spent on salaries and legal expenses, and the rest mainly used to support workers who were out of a job, either due to lack of work or conflicts with their employers. This shows that working men are increasingly realizing that, united, they are a significant force and can ultimately stand up to the power of the bourgeoisie. This understanding, a benefit of all labor movements, has been achieved for all the miners in England through the Union and the strike of 1844. In no time, the current gap in intelligence and energy that favors factory workers will close, and miners across the country will be able to stand equal with them in every way. With each piece of ground they gain, the bourgeoisie's foundation is eroded; how long will it be before their entire social and political structure collapses along with the support it relies on? {259}

But the bourgeoisie will not take warning.  The resistance of the miners does but embitter it the more.  Instead of appreciating this forward step in the general movement of the workers, the property-holding class saw in it only a source of rage against a class of people who are fools enough to declare themselves no longer submissive to the treatment they had hitherto received.  It saw in the just demands of the non-possessing workers only impertinent discontent, mad rebellion against “Divine and human order;” and, in the best case, a success (to be resisted by the bourgeoisie with all its might) won by “ill-intentioned demagogues who live by agitation and are too lazy to work.”  It sought, of course, without success, to represent to the workers that Roberts and the Union’s agents whom the Union very naturally had to p. 260pay, were insolent swindlers, who drew the last farthing from the working-men’s pockets.  When such insanity prevails in the property-holding class, when it is so blinded by its momentary profit that it no longer has eyes for the most conspicuous signs of the times, surely all hope of a peaceful solution of the social question for England must be abandoned.  The only possible solution is a violent revolution, which cannot fail to take place.

But the middle class won’t take the hint. The miners' resistance just makes them angrier. Instead of recognizing this as a positive step in the workers' movement, the property-owning class only sees it as a reason to be furious at a group of people who are foolish enough to refuse the treatment they’ve been enduring. They viewed the fair demands of the workers without resources as nothing more than rude dissatisfaction, crazy rebellion against “Divine and human order;” and, at best, a victory (that the middle class will fight against with all their might) achieved by “malicious troublemakers who thrive on agitation and are too lazy to work.” They tried, but failed, to convince the workers that Roberts and the Union’s agents, whom the Union rightfully had to pay, were dishonest con artists taking every last cent from the workers. When such madness takes hold in the property-owning class, when they are so blinded by short-term gains that they can’t see the most obvious signs of the times, it’s clear that any hope for a peaceful solution to the social issues in England must be given up. The only possible outcome is a violent revolution, which is bound to happen.

p. 261THE AGRICULTURAL PROLETARIAT.

We have seen in the introduction how, simultaneously with the small bourgeoisie and the modest independence of the former workers, the small peasantry also was ruined when the former Union of industrial and agricultural work was dissolved, the abandoned fields thrown together into large farms, and the small peasants superseded by the overwhelming competition of the large farmers.  Instead of being landowners or leaseholders, as they had been hitherto, they were now obliged to hire themselves as labourers to the large farmers or the landlords.  For a time this position was endurable, though a deterioration in comparison with their former one.  The extension of industry kept pace with the increase of population until the progress of manufacture began to assume a slower pace, and the perpetual improvement of machinery made it impossible for manufacture to absorb the whole surplus of the agricultural population.  From this time forward, the distress which had hitherto existed only in the manufacturing districts, and then only at times, appeared in the agricultural districts too.  The twenty-five years’ struggle with France came to an end at about the same time; the diminished production at the various seats of the wars, the shutting off of imports, and the necessity of providing for the British army in Spain, had given English agriculture an artificial prosperity, and had besides withdrawn to the army vast numbers of workers from their ordinary occupations.  This check upon the import trade, the opportunity for exportation, and the military demand for workers, now suddenly came to an end; and the necessary consequence was what the English call agricultural distress.  The farmers had to sell their corn at low prices, and could, therefore, pay only low wages.  In 1815, in order to keep up prices, the Corn Laws were passed, prohibiting p. 262the importation of corn so long as the price of wheat continued less than 80 shillings per quarter.  These naturally ineffective laws were several times modified, but did not succeed in ameliorating the distress in the agricultural districts.  All that they did was to change the disease, which, under free competition from abroad, would have assumed an acute form, culminating in a series of crises, into a chronic one which bore heavily but uniformly upon the farm labourers.

We’ve seen in the introduction how, at the same time as the small business owners and the limited independence of the former workers, the small peasantry was also devastated when the former union of industrial and agricultural work broke apart. The neglected fields were consolidated into large farms, and the small farmers were outpaced by the fierce competition from the large farmers. Instead of being landowners or leaseholders, as they had been before, they were now forced to work as laborers for the large farmers or landlords. For a while, this situation was manageable, although it was worse than their previous circumstances. The growth of industry kept up with the rising population until manufacturing progress started to slow down, and the continuous improvement of machinery made it impossible for manufacturing to absorb all the surplus agricultural labor. From that point on, the struggles that had only existed in the industrial areas, and then only sporadically, appeared in agricultural areas as well. The twenty-five-year conflict with France ended around the same time; the reduced production from the various war zones, the halt of imports, and the need to support the British army in Spain had given English agriculture an artificial boom. Furthermore, many workers were taken from their usual jobs to serve in the army. This pause in the import trade, the opportunity for exports, and the military demand for labor came to a sudden stop; the inevitable outcome was what the English call agricultural distress. Farmers had to sell their grain at low prices, which meant they could only offer low wages. In 1815, to stabilize prices, the Corn Laws were enacted, banning the import of grain as long as wheat prices remained below 80 shillings per quarter. These laws, which were largely ineffective, were modified several times but failed to alleviate the distress in the agricultural regions. All they did was transform the problem, which, under free competition from abroad, would have manifested as a severe crisis, into a chronic one that weighed heavily but consistently on the farm laborers.

For a time after the rise of the agricultural proletariat, the patriarchal relation between master and man, which was being destroyed for manufacture, developed here the same relation of the farmer to his hands which still exists almost everywhere in Germany.  So long as this lasted, the poverty of the farm hands was less conspicuous; they shared the fate of the farmer, and were discharged only in cases of the direst necessity.  But now all this is changed.  The farm hands have become day labourers almost everywhere, are employed only when needed by the farmers, and, therefore, often have no work for weeks together, especially in winter.  In the patriarchal time, the hands and their families lived on the farm, and their children grew up there, the farmer trying to find occupation on the spot for the oncoming generation; day labourers, then, were the exception, not the rule.  Thus there was, on every farm, a larger number of hands than were strictly necessary.  It became, therefore, the interest of the farmers to dissolve this relation, drive the farm hand from the farm, and transform him into a day labourer.  This took place pretty generally towards the year 1830, and the consequence was that the hitherto latent over-population was set free, the rate of wages forced down, and the poor-rate enormously increased.  From this time the agricultural districts became the headquarters of permanent, as the manufacturing districts had long been of periodic, pauperism; and the modification of the Poor Law was the first measure which the State was obliged to apply to the daily increasing impoverishment of the country parishes.  Moreover, the constant extension of farming on a large scale, the introduction of threshing and other machines, and the employment of women and p. 263children (which is now so general that its effects have recently been investigated by a special official commission), threw a large number of men out of employment.  It is manifest, therefore, that here, too, the system of industrial production has made its entrance, by means of farming on a large scale, by the abolition of the patriarchal relation, which is of the greatest importance just here, by the introduction of machinery, steam, and the labour of women and children.  In so doing, it has swept the last and most stationary portion of working humanity into the revolutionary movement.  But the longer agriculture had remained stationary, the heavier now became the burden upon the worker, the more violently broke forth the results of the disorganisation of the old social fabric.  The “over-population” came to light all at once, and could not, as in the manufacturing districts, be absorbed by the needs of an increasing production.  New factories could always be built, if there were consumers for their products, but new land could not be created.  The cultivation of waste common land was too daring a speculation for the bad times following the conclusion of peace.  The necessary consequence was that the competition of the workers among each other reached the highest point of intensity, and wages fell to the minimum.  So long as the old Poor Law existed, the workers received relief from the rates; wages naturally fell still lower, because the farmers forced the largest possible number of labourers to claim relief.  The higher poor-rate, necessitated by the surplus population, was only increased by this measure, and the new Poor Law, of which we shall have more to say later, was now enacted as a remedy.  But this did not improve matters.  Wages did not rise, the surplus population could not be got rid of, and the cruelty of the new law did but serve to embitter the people to the utmost.  Even the poor-rate, which diminished at first after the passage of the new law, attained its old height after a few years.  Its only effect was that whereas previously three to four million half paupers had existed, a million of total paupers now appeared, and the rest, still half paupers, merely went without relief.  The poverty in the agricultural districts has increased every year.  The people p. 264live in the greatest want, whole families must struggle along with 6, 7, or 8 shillings a week, and at times have nothing.  Let us hear a description of this population given by a Liberal member of Parliament as early as 1830. {264}

For a while after the rise of the agricultural working class, the traditional relationship between master and worker, which was breaking down for manufacturing, developed into the same relationship of farmers to their laborers that still exists in much of Germany today. As long as this persisted, the poverty of farm workers was less visible; they shared the farmer's fate and were let go only in the most extreme circumstances. But now everything has changed. Farm workers have become day laborers almost everywhere, employed only when farmers need them, meaning they can go weeks without work, especially in winter. During the patriarchal era, the workers and their families lived on the farm, and their children grew up there, with farmers trying to provide jobs for the next generation; day laborers were the exception, not the norm. Consequently, there were more workers on each farm than strictly necessary. It became in the farmers' interest to end this relationship, push farm workers off the land, and turn them into day laborers. This began to happen widely around the year 1830, and the result was that the previously hidden overpopulation was unleashed, wages were driven down, and the welfare burden increased dramatically. From this point on, agricultural districts became centers of permanent poverty, just as manufacturing areas had long been centers of periodic poverty; modifying the Poor Law was the first action the State had to take in response to the growing impoverishment of rural communities. Furthermore, the constant growth of large-scale farming, the introduction of threshing machines and other technology, and the employment of women and children (now so common that its effects have been recently studied by an official commission) displaced many men from their jobs. It's clear that, here too, the industrial production system has taken root, through large-scale farming, the breakdown of traditional relationships, and the introduction of machinery, steam power, and women's and children's labor. In doing so, it drew in the last stable segment of the working population into the revolutionary movement. However, the longer agriculture stayed the same, the heavier the burden on workers became, and the more dramatically the consequences of the disruption of the old social order emerged. The “over-population” became apparent all at once and couldn't be absorbed by the demands of increasing production as it could in the manufacturing districts. New factories could always be built if there were consumers, but new land couldn’t be created. The cultivation of untapped common land was too risky given the hard times that followed the end of the war. This inevitably led to intense competition among workers, driving wages down to the lowest levels. As long as the old Poor Law was in place, workers received aid from the welfare system; wages fell even lower because farmers pushed as many workers as possible to claim assistance. The higher welfare burden caused by the surplus population only increased this trend, and the new Poor Law, which we will discuss more later, was introduced as a solution. But this didn’t fix the problems. Wages didn’t increase, the surplus population didn’t disappear, and the harshness of the new law only further fueled the people's resentment. Even though the poor-rate initially fell after the new law was enacted, it returned to its previous level within a few years. The only change was that instead of three to four million people being partially dependent on assistance, a million total paupers emerged, while the others, still partially dependent, just went without help. Poverty in the agricultural districts has grown each year. People live in extreme hardship, entire families struggling to get by on just 6, 7, or 8 shillings a week, sometimes having nothing at all. Let's hear a description of this population from a Liberal member of Parliament as early as 1830. {264}

“An English agricultural labourer and an English pauper, these words are synonymous.  His father was a pauper and his mother’s milk contained no nourishment.  From his earliest childhood he had bad food, and only half enough to still his hunger, and even yet he undergoes the pangs of unsatisfied hunger almost all the time that he is not asleep.  He is half clad, and has not more fire than barely suffices to cook his scanty meal.  And so cold and damp are always at home with him, and leave him only in fine weather.  He is married, but he knows nothing of the joys of the husband and father.  His wife and children, hungry, rarely warm, often ill and helpless, always careworn and hopeless like himself, are naturally grasping, selfish, and troublesome, and so, to use his own expression, he hates the sight of them, and enters his cot only because it offers him a trifle more shelter from rain and wind than a hedge.  He must support his family, though he cannot do so, whence come beggary, deceit of all sorts, ending in fully developed craftiness.  If he were so inclined, he yet has not the courage which makes of the more energetic of his class wholesale poachers and smugglers.  But he pilfers when occasion offers, and teaches his children to lie and steal.  His abject and submissive demeanour towards his wealthy neighbours shows that they treat him roughly and with suspicion; hence he fears and hates them, but he never will injure them by force.  He is depraved through and through, too far gone to possess even the strength of despair.  His wretched existence is brief, rheumatism and asthma bring him to the workhouse, where he will draw his last breath without a single pleasant recollection, and will make room for another luckless wretch to live and die as he has done.”

An English farmworker and an English beggar are basically the same. His father was a beggar, and his mother’s milk was worthless. From a young age, he had terrible food, barely enough to fill his stomach, and even now he feels hungry almost all the time when he’s not asleep. He’s barely dressed and has just enough fire to cook his tiny meal. Cold and dampness are always with him, leaving only when the weather is nice. He’s married but knows nothing of the joys of being a husband and father. His wife and kids, hungry, often cold, frequently sick and helpless, always worn out and hopeless like him, are naturally grasping, selfish, and a source of trouble, so, in his own words, he hates to see them, and he only goes into their small home because it gives him a bit more shelter from the rain and wind than a hedge would. He has to provide for his family, even though he can’t, leading to begging and various forms of deception, which ultimately makes him clever. Even if he wanted to, he doesn’t have the courage that drives the more determined people in his situation to become poachers and smugglers. But he steals when he can and teaches his kids to lie and steal too. His submissive behavior towards his wealthy neighbors shows that they treat him harshly and are suspicious of him; therefore, he fears and hates them, but he wouldn’t physically hurt them. He is completely broken, too far gone to even have the strength to feel despair. His miserable life is short; rheumatism and asthma send him to the workhouse, where he will take his last breath without a single happy memory, making way for another unfortunate person to live and die like he has.

Our author adds that besides this class of agricultural labourers, there is still another, somewhat more energetic and better endowed physically, mentally, and morally; those, namely, who live as p. 265wretchedly, but were not born to this condition.  These he represents as better in their family life, but smugglers and poachers who get into frequent bloody conflicts with the gamekeepers and revenue officers of the coast, become more embittered against society during the prison life which they often undergo, and so stand abreast of the first class in their hatred of the property-holders.  “And,” he says, in closing, “this whole class is called, by courtesy, the bold peasantry of England.”

Our author notes that in addition to this group of agricultural workers, there is another group that is somewhat more energetic and better physically, mentally, and morally equipped; specifically, those who live just as poorly but were not born into this situation. He describes them as having better family lives, yet they are smugglers and poachers who frequently find themselves in violent confrontations with the gamekeepers and revenue officers on the coast. Their experiences in prison often make them more resentful of society, placing them on equal footing with the first group in their disdain for property owners. “And,” he concludes, “this entire group is referred to, as a courtesy, as the bold peasantry of England.”

Down to the present time, this description applies to the greater portion of the agricultural labourers of England.  In June, 1844, the Times sent a correspondent into the agricultural districts to report upon the condition of this class, and the report which he furnished agreed wholly with the foregoing.  In certain districts wages were not more than six shillings a week; not more, that is, that in many districts in Germany, while the prices of all the necessaries of life are at least twice as high.  What sort of life these people lead may be imagined; their food scanty and bad, their clothing ragged, their dwellings cramped and desolate, small, wretched huts, with no comforts whatsoever; and, for young people, lodging-houses, where men and women are scarcely separated, and illegitimate intercourse thus provoked.  One or two days without work in the course of a month must inevitably plunge such people into the direst want.  Moreover, they cannot combine to raise wages, because they are scattered, and if one alone refuses to work for low wages, there are dozens out of work, or supported by the rates, who are thankful for the most trifling offer, while to him who declines work, every other form of relief than the hated workhouse is refused by the Poor Law guardians as to a lazy vagabond; for the guardians are the very farmers from whom or from whose neighbours and acquaintances alone he can get work.  And not from one or two special districts of England do such reports come.  On the contrary, the distress is general, equally great in the North and South, the East and West.  The condition of the labourers in Suffolk and Norfolk corresponds with that of Devonshire, Hampshire, and Sussex.  Wages are as low in Dorsetshire and Oxfordshire as in Kent and Surrey, Buckinghamshire and Cambridgeshire.

Up to today, this description still applies to most agricultural workers in England. In June 1844, the Times sent a reporter to the farming regions to assess the situation of this group, and the findings matched the previous descriptions perfectly. In some areas, wages were only six shillings a week, which is not much more than in many parts of Germany, yet the cost of basic necessities is at least double. One can imagine the kind of life these people have; their food is limited and poor, their clothes are worn, their homes are cramped and miserable—small, bleak huts with no comforts at all. For young people, there are boarding houses where men and women are barely separated, fostering inappropriate relationships. A couple of days without work during the month can push these individuals into severe poverty. Furthermore, they can’t organize to demand higher wages because they are spread out, and if one person refuses low pay, dozens of unemployed or those relying on local assistance are grateful for even the smallest offer. For anyone who turns down work, any form of help other than the dreaded workhouse is denied by the Poor Law guardians, who view them as lazy vagabonds; the guardians are often farmers themselves, the only ones who could offer them work. And these reports aren’t just coming from a couple of specific areas in England; the suffering is widespread, equally severe in the North and South, as well as the East and West. The situation for workers in Suffolk and Norfolk is similar to that in Devonshire, Hampshire, and Sussex. Wages in Dorsetshire and Oxfordshire are as low as in Kent and Surrey, Buckinghamshire and Cambridgeshire.

p. 266One especially barbaric cruelty against the working-class is embodied in the Game Laws, which are more stringent than in any other country, while the game is plentiful beyond all conception.  The English peasant who, according to the old English custom and tradition, sees in poaching only a natural and noble expression of courage and daring, is stimulated still further by the contrast between his own poverty and the car tel est notre plaisir of the lord, who preserves thousands of hares and game birds for his private enjoyment.  The labourer lays snares, or shoots here and there a piece of game.  It does not injure the landlord as a matter of fact, for he has a vast superfluity, and it brings the poacher a meal for himself and his starving family.  But if he is caught he goes to jail, and for a second offence receives at the least seven years’ transportation.  From the severity of these laws arise the frequent bloody conflicts with the gamekeepers, which lead to a number of murders every year Hence the post of gamekeeper is not only dangerous, but of ill-repute and despised.  Last year, in two cases, gamekeepers shot themselves rather than continue their work.  Such is the moderate price at which the landed aristocracy purchases the noble sport of shooting; but what does it matter to the lords of the soil?  Whether one or two more or less of the “surplus” live or die matters nothing, and even if in consequence of the Game Laws half the surplus population could be put out of the way, it would be all the better for the other half—according to the philanthropy of the English landlords.

p. 266One particularly brutal form of cruelty against the working class is seen in the Game Laws, which are stricter than anywhere else, even though game is wildly abundant. The English peasant, following old customs and traditions, views poaching as a natural and brave act. This perspective is fueled even more by the stark contrast between his own poverty and the lavish lifestyle of the lord, who keeps thousands of hares and game birds for his personal pleasure. The laborer sets traps or occasionally hunts a piece of game. This doesn't actually harm the landlord, who has plenty to spare, and it provides a meal for the poacher and his starving family. But if caught, the poacher faces jail time, and for a second offense, he could be sentenced to at least seven years of exile. The harshness of these laws leads to frequent violent clashes with gamekeepers, resulting in several murders each year. As a result, being a gamekeeper is not only dangerous but also looked down upon. Last year, in two cases, gamekeepers chose to take their own lives rather than continue in their roles. This is the grim price that the landed aristocracy pays for their so-called sport of shooting; yet, to the landowners, it hardly makes a difference. Whether one or two more of the “surplus” live or die is insignificant, and according to the landlords' twisted sense of philanthropy, even if the Game Laws were to eliminate half of the surplus population, that would simply benefit the other half.

Although the conditions of life in the country, the isolated dwellings, the stability of the surroundings and occupations, and consequently of the thoughts, are decidedly unfavourable to all development, yet poverty and want bear their fruits even here.  The manufacturing and mining proletariat emerged early from the first stage of resistance to our social order, the direct rebellion of the individual by the perpetration of crime; but the peasants are still in this stage at the present time.  Their favourite method of social warfare is incendiarism.  In the winter which followed the Revolution of July, in 1830-31, these incendiarisms first became p. 267general.  Disturbances had taken place, and the whole region of Sussex and the adjacent counties has been brought into a state of excitement in October, in consequence of an increase of the coastguard (which made smuggling much more difficult and “ruined the coast”—in the words of a farmer), changes in the Poor Law, low wages, and the introduction of machinery.  In the winter the farmers’ hay and corn-stacks were burnt in the fields, and the very barns and stables under their windows.  Nearly every night a couple of such fires blazed up, and spread terror among the farmers and landlords.  The offenders were rarely discovered, and the workers attributed the incendiarism to a mythical person whom they named “Swing.”  Men puzzled their brains to discover who this Swing could be and whence this rage among the poor of the country districts.  Of the great motive power, Want, Oppression, only a single person here and there thought, and certainly no one in the agricultural districts.  Since that year the incendiarisms have been repeated every winter, with each recurring unemployed season of the agricultural labourers.  In the winter of 1843-44, they were once more extraordinarily frequent.  There lies before me a series of numbers of the Northern Star of that time, each one of which contains a report of several incendiarisms, stating in each case its authority.  The numbers wanting in the following list I have not at hand; but they, too, doubtless contain a number of cases.  Moreover, such a sheet cannot possibly ascertain all the cases which occur.  November 25th, 1843, two cases; several earlier ones are discussed.  December 16th, in Bedfordshire, general excitement for a fortnight past in consequence of frequent incendiarisms, of which several take place every night.  Two great farmhouses burnt down within the last few days; in Cambridgeshire four great farmhouses, Hertfordshire one, and besides these, fifteen other incendiarisms in different districts.  December 30th, in Norfolk one, Suffolk two, Essex two, Cheshire one, Lancashire one, Derby, Lincoln, and the South twelve.  January 6th, 1844, in all ten.  January 13th, seven.  January 20th, four incendiarisms.  From this time forward, three or four incendiarisms per week are reported, and not as formerly until the p. 268spring only, but far into July and August.  And that crimes of this sort are expected to increase in the approaching hard season of 1844-45, the English papers already indicate.

Even though life in the countryside, with its isolated homes, stable surroundings and routines, and consequently its unchanging thoughts, is not very conducive to development, poverty and need still manage to produce results even here. The manufacturing and mining working class moved on from their initial resistance to our social order, which took the form of individual crimes; however, the peasants are still stuck in this stage today. Their preferred method of social protest is arson. During the winter after the July Revolution in 1830-31, these acts of arson became widespread. There were disturbances, and the entire region of Sussex and neighboring counties were thrown into a state of turmoil in October due to an increase in the coastguard, which made smuggling much harder and "ruined the coast," according to a farmer, changes to the Poor Law, low wages, and the introduction of machinery. In the winter, farmers saw their hay and corn stacks burning in the fields, as well as their barns and stables right outside their windows. Almost every night, a couple of these fires erupted, spreading fear among farmers and landowners. The culprits were rarely caught, and the workers attributed the arson to a legendary figure they called "Swing." People strained to figure out who this Swing could be and why there was such rage among the poor in rural areas. Only a few people considered the real driving forces: want and oppression, and certainly no one in the agricultural areas did. Since that year, these acts of arson have occurred every winter with each wave of unemployment among agricultural workers. During the winter of 1843-44, they were exceptionally frequent again. I have a series of issues of the Northern Star from that time, each reporting several incidents of arson, listing their sources. The issues missing from the following list are not available to me, but they likely contain additional cases. Moreover, a publication like that can't possibly cover all the incidents that happen. On November 25, 1843, there were two cases; several earlier incidents are mentioned. By December 16, there was widespread anxiety in Bedfordshire for the past two weeks due to frequent arson, with several incidents happening every night. Two large farmhouses were burned down in the past few days; in Cambridgeshire, four large farmhouses; in Hertfordshire, one; and in addition to these, fifteen other incidents in various areas. On December 30, one in Norfolk, two in Suffolk, two in Essex, one in Cheshire, one in Lancashire, and twelve in Derby, Lincoln, and the South. On January 6, 1844, there were ten in total. On January 13, seven. On January 20, four arson cases. From that point onward, three or four incidents of arson per week are reported, not just in spring as before, but continuing deep into July and August. English newspapers are already suggesting that such crimes are likely to increase in the upcoming harsh season of 1844-45.

What do my readers think of such a state of things in the quiet, idyllic country districts of England?  Is this social war, or is it not?  Is it a natural state of things which can last?  Yet here the landlords and farmers are as dull and stupefied, as blind to everything which does not directly put money into their pockets, as the manufacturers and the bourgeoisie in general in the manufacturing districts.  If the latter promise their employees salvation through the repeal of the Corn Laws, the landlords and a great part of the farmers promise theirs Heaven upon earth from the maintenance of the same laws.  But in neither case do the property-holders succeed in winning the workers to the support of their pet hobby.  Like the operatives, the agricultural labourers are thoroughly indifferent to the repeal or non-repeal of the Corn Laws.  Yet the question is an important one for both.  That is to say—by the repeal of the Corn Laws, free competition, the present social economy is carried to its extreme point; all further development within the present order comes to an end, and the only possible step farther is a radical transformation of the social order. {268}  For the agricultural labourers the question has, further, the following important bearing: Free importation of corn involves (how, I cannot explain here) the emancipation of the farmers from the landlords, their transformation into Liberals.  Towards this consummation the Anti-Corn Law League has already largely contributed, and this is its only real service.  When the farmers become Liberals, i.e., conscious bourgeois, the agricultural labourers will inevitably become Chartists and Socialists; the first change involves the second.  And that a new movement is already beginning among the agricultural labourers is proved by a meeting which Earl Radnor, a Liberal landlord, caused to be held in October, 1844, near Highworth, where his p. 269estates lie, to pass resolutions against the Corn Laws.  At this meeting, the labourers, perfectly indifferent as to these laws, demanded something wholly different, namely small holdings, at low rent, for themselves, telling Earl Radnor all sorts of bitter truths to his face.  Thus the movement of the working-class is finding its way into the remote, stationary, mentally dead agricultural districts; and, thanks to the general distress, will soon be as firmly rooted and energetic as in the manufacturing districts. {269}  As to the religious state of the agricultural labourers, they are, it is true, more pious than the manufacturing operatives; but they, too, are greatly at odds with the Church—for in these districts members of the Established Church almost exclusively are to be found.  A correspondent of the Morning Chronicle, who, over the signature, “One who has whistled at the plough,” reports his tour through the agricultural districts, relates, among other things, the following conversation with some labourers after service: “I asked one of these people whether the preacher of the day was their own clergyman.  “Yes, blast him!  He is our own parson, and begs the whole time.  He’s been always a-begging as long as I’ve known him.”  (The sermon had been upon a mission to the heathen.)  “And as long as I’ve known him too,” added another; “and I never knew a parson but what was begging for this or the other.”  “Yes,” said a woman, who had just come out of the church, “and look how wages are going down, and see the rich vagabonds with whom the parsons eat and drink and hunt.  So help me God, we are more fit to starve in the workhouse than pay the parsons as go among the heathen.”  “And why,” said another, “don’t they send the parsons as drones every day in Salisbury Cathedral, for nobody but the bare stones?  Why don’t they go among the heathen?”  “They don’t go,” said the old man whom I had first asked, “because they are rich, they have all the land they need, they want the money in order to get rid of the poor parsons.  I know what they want.  I know them too long for that.”  “But, good friends,” I asked, “you surely do not always p. 270come out of the church with such bitter feelings towards the preacher?  Why do you go at all?”  “What for do we go?” said the woman.  “We must, if we do not want to lose everything, work and all, we must.”  I learned later that they had certain little privileges of fire-wood and potato land (which they paid for!) on condition of going to church.”  After describing their poverty and ignorance, the correspondent closes by saying: “And now I boldly assert that the condition of these people, their poverty, their hatred of the church, their external submission and inward bitterness against the ecclesiastical dignitaries, is the rule among the country parishes of England, and its opposite is the exception.”

What do my readers think about the current situation in the peaceful, picturesque rural areas of England? Is this a social conflict or not? Is it a natural state that can continue? Yet here, the landlords and farmers are as dull and oblivious, as blind to anything that doesn’t directly put money in their pockets, as the manufacturers and the bourgeoisie in the industrial areas. While the latter promise their workers salvation through the repeal of the Corn Laws, the landlords and many farmers promise theirs a paradise on earth from maintaining the same laws. However, in neither case do property owners manage to get the workers on their side for their favorite cause. Like the factory workers, the agricultural laborers are completely indifferent to the repeal or non-repeal of the Corn Laws. But this issue is significant for both. In other words, the repeal of the Corn Laws, and the introduction of free competition, pushes the current social economy to its limits; all further development within the present system comes to a halt, and the only next step forward is a radical transformation of the social order. {268} For agricultural laborers, the question also has the following important implication: Free importation of grain means (how, I can’t explain here) the farmers’ liberation from the landlords, leading them to become Liberals. The Anti-Corn Law League has already made significant contributions towards this goal, and this is its only real benefit. When the farmers become Liberals, meaning conscious members of the bourgeoisie, the agricultural laborers will inevitably become Chartists and Socialists; the first change leads directly to the second. That a new movement is already emerging among the agricultural laborers is evident from a meeting that Earl Radnor, a Liberal landlord, organized in October 1844, near Highworth, where his p. 269estates are located, to pass resolutions against the Corn Laws. At this meeting, the laborers, completely indifferent to these laws, demanded something entirely different—namely, small plots of land at low rent for themselves, telling Earl Radnor all sorts of harsh truths to his face. Thus, the working-class movement is making its way into the remote, stagnant, mentally dormant agricultural regions; and, thanks to the widespread hardship, it will soon be just as firmly established and vigorous as in the industrial areas. {269} Concerning the religious beliefs of agricultural laborers, they are indeed more devout than the industrial workers; however, they are also quite at odds with the Church—since members of the Established Church are almost exclusively found in these areas. A correspondent of the Morning Chronicle, who writes under the pseudonym “One who has whistled at the plough,” reports his travels through the rural districts and recounts, among other things, the following conversation with some laborers after service: “I asked one of these people if the preacher of the day was their own clergyman. ‘Yes, damn him! He is our own parson, and begs all the time. He’s been begging since I’ve known him.’” (The sermon was about a mission to the heathen.) “And he’s been begging as long as I’ve known him too,” another added; “and I’ve never known a parson who wasn’t begging for this or that.” “Yes,” said a woman who had just come out of the church, “and look how wages are going down, and see the rich scoundrels with whom the parsons eat, drink, and hunt. So help me God, we’d be better off starving in the workhouse than paying the parsons who go among the heathens.” “And why,” asked another, “don’t they send the parsons, like drones, every day in Salisbury Cathedral, for no audience but the bare stones? Why don’t they go among the heathens?” “They don’t go,” said the old man I’d first asked, “because they’re wealthy, they own all the land they need, they want the money to get rid of the poor parsons. I know what they want. I’ve known them long enough for that.” “But, my friends,” I asked, “you surely don’t always come out of the church feeling this bitter towards the preacher? Why do you even go?” “What are we supposed to do?” said the woman. “We have to if we don’t want to lose everything, our jobs and all; we have to.” I later learned that they had certain small privileges for firewood and potato land (which they paid for!) on the condition of going to church. After detailing their poverty and ignorance, the correspondent concludes by saying: “And now I boldly assert that the condition of these people, their poverty, their hatred of the church, their outward submission, and their inner bitterness against the church authorities is the norm among the rural parishes of England, while its opposite is the exception.”

If the peasantry of England shows the consequences which a numerous agricultural proletariat in connection with large farming involves for the country districts, Wales illustrates the ruin of the small holders.  If the English country parishes reproduce the antagonism between capitalist and proletarian, the state of the Welsh peasantry corresponds to the progressive ruin of the small bourgeoisie in the towns.  In Wales are to be found, almost exclusively, small holders, who cannot with like profit sell their products as cheaply as the larger, more favourably situated English farmers, with whom, however, they are obliged to compete.  Moreover, in some places the quality of the land admits of the raising of live stock only, which is but slightly profitable.  Then, too, these Welsh farmers, by reason of their separate nationality, which they retain pertinaciously, are much more stationary than the English farmers.  But the competition among themselves and with their English neighbours (and the increased mortgages upon their land consequent upon this) has reduced them to such a state that they can scarcely live at all; and because they have not recognised the true cause of their wretched condition, they attribute it to all sorts of small causes, such as high tolls, etc, which do check the development of agriculture and commerce, but are taken into account as standing charges by every one who takes a holding, and are therefore really ultimately paid by the landlord.  Here, too, the new Poor Law is cordially hated by the tenants, who hover in perpetual danger of coming under its p. 271sway.  In 1843, the famous “Rebecca” disturbances broke out among the Welsh peasantry; the men dressed in women’s clothing, blackened their faces, and fell in armed crowds upon the toll-gates, destroyed them amidst great rejoicing and firing of guns, demolished the toll-keepers’ houses, wrote threatening letters in the name of the imaginary “Rebecca,” and once went so far as to storm the workhouse of Carmarthen.  Later, when the militia was called out and the police strengthened, the peasants drew them off with wonderful skill upon false scents, demolished toll-gates at one point while the militia, lured by false signal bugles, was marching in some opposite direction; and betook themselves finally, when the police was too thoroughly reinforced, to single incendiarisms and attempts at murder.  As usual, these greater crimes were the end of the movement.  Many withdrew from disapproval, others from fear, and peace was restored of itself.  The Government appointed a commission to investigate the affair and its causes, and there was an end of the matter.  The poverty of the peasantry continues, however, and will one day, since it cannot under existing circumstances grow less, but must go on intensifying, produce more serious manifestations than these humorous Rebecca masquerades.

If the farmers in England show the impact of a large agricultural workforce tied to big farms on rural areas, Wales reflects the downfall of small-scale farmers. While the English rural communities highlight the conflict between capitalists and workers, the situation of the Welsh farmers mirrors the gradual decline of the small business class in the cities. In Wales, you mostly find small farmers who can’t compete by selling their products as cheaply as larger, better-situated English farmers, even though they have to compete against them. Additionally, in some areas, the land is only suitable for raising livestock, which isn't very profitable. Also, these Welsh farmers, due to their strong sense of separate identity, are much more settled than English farmers. However, competition among themselves and with their English neighbors (along with the growing mortgages on their land as a result) has put them in such a dire situation that they can barely survive; and because they haven’t recognized the real cause of their poor condition, they blame it on various minor issues, like high tolls, which do hinder agricultural and commercial development but are ultimately just standard costs that everyone paying rent considers and are, in fact, paid by the landlord in the end. Here too, the new Poor Law is deeply disliked by the tenants, who live in constant fear of falling under its strict control. In 1843, the well-known “Rebecca” disturbances erupted among the Welsh farmers; the men dressed in women's clothes, blackened their faces, and gathered in armed groups at the toll gates, destroying them with great celebration and gunfire, wrecking the toll keepers' houses, writing threatening letters in the name of the fictitious “Rebecca,” and even going so far as to storm the workhouse in Carmarthen. Later, when the militia was called out and the police were reinforced, the farmers skillfully misled them with false trails, destroying toll gates at one point while the militia, fooled by decoy bugle signals, marched in the opposite direction; and ultimately, when the police were too heavily reinforced, they resorted to isolated acts of arson and attempted murder. As is often the case, these more serious crimes marked the end of the movement. Many withdrew out of disapproval, others out of fear, and peace was restored on its own. The Government set up a commission to investigate the incident and its causes, and that was the end of it. However, the poverty of the farmers persists, and one day, since conditions aren’t likely to improve but will only worsen, it will lead to more serious outbursts than these comedic Rebecca antics.

If England illustrates the results of the system of farming on a large scale and Wales on a small one, Ireland exhibits the consequences of overdividing the soil.  The great mass of the population of Ireland consists of small tenants who occupy a sorry hut without partitions, and a potato patch just large enough to supply them most scantily with potatoes through the winter.  In consequence of the great competition which prevails among these small tenants, the rent has reached an unheard-of height, double, treble, and quadruple that paid in England.  For every agricultural labourer seeks to become a tenant-farmer, and though the division of land has gone so far, there still remain numbers of labourers in competition for plots.  Although in Great Britain 32,000,000 acres of land are cultivated, and in Ireland but 14,000,000; although Great Britain produces agricultural products to the value of £150,000,000, and Ireland of but £36,000,000, p. 272there are in Ireland 75,000 agricultural proletarians more than in the neighbouring island. {272a}  How great the competition for land in Ireland must be is evident from this extraordinary disproportion, especially when one reflects that the labourers in Great Britain are living in the utmost distress.  The consequence of this competition is that it is impossible for the tenants to live much better than the labourers, by reason of the high rents paid.  The Irish people is thus held in crushing poverty, from which it cannot free itself under our present social conditions.  These people live in the most wretched clay huts, scarcely good enough for cattle-pens, have scant food all winter long, or, as the report above quoted expresses it, they have potatoes half enough thirty weeks in the year, and the rest of the year nothing.  When the time comes in the spring at which this provision reaches its end, or can no longer be used because of its sprouting, wife and children go forth to beg and tramp the country with their kettle in their hands.  Meanwhile the husband, after planting potatoes for the next year, goes in search of work either in Ireland or England, and returns at the potato harvest to his family.  This is the condition in which nine-tenths of the Irish country folks live.  They are poor as church mice, wear the most wretched rags, and stand upon the lowest plane of intelligence possible in a half-civilised country.  According to the report quoted, there are, in a population of 8½ millions, 585,000 heads of families in a state of total destitution; and according to other authorities, cited by Sheriff Alison, {272b} there are in Ireland 2,300,000 persons who could not live without public or private assistance—or 27 per cent. of the whole population paupers!

If England shows the outcomes of large-scale farming and Wales of small-scale farming, Ireland demonstrates the effects of overly dividing the land. The majority of Ireland's population consists of small tenants living in miserable huts without real separation and a tiny potato patch just big enough to barely provide them with potatoes throughout the winter. Due to intense competition among these tenants, rents have skyrocketed to unprecedented levels, double, triple, and quadruple what is paid in England. Every agricultural laborer aspires to be a tenant-farmer, and even though land division has gone very far, there are still many laborers competing for small plots. While Great Britain has 32,000,000 acres of cultivated land, Ireland has only 14,000,000; Great Britain produces agricultural goods worth £150,000,000, while Ireland produces only £36,000,000, p. 272yet Ireland has 75,000 more agricultural workers than the neighboring island. {272a}  The great competition for land in Ireland is clear from this striking imbalance, especially when considering that the laborers in Great Britain live in extreme hardship. As a result of this competition, tenants find it nearly impossible to live significantly better than the laborers due to high rents. The Irish population remains trapped in severe poverty, unable to escape under current social conditions. They live in miserable clay huts, barely suitable for housing animals, have very little food during the winter, or, as the previously mentioned report states, they have just enough potatoes for half the year, and nothing for the rest. When spring arrives and their food supply runs out or becomes unusable because it sprouts, wives and children go out to beg, traveling the countryside with a kettle in hand. Meanwhile, the husband plants potatoes for the next year and looks for work either in Ireland or England, returning to his family at harvest time. This is the reality for nine-tenths of Ireland's rural population. They are as poor as can be, wear tattered rags, and have very limited education in a semi-civilized country. According to the report cited, in a population of 8.5 million, there are 585,000 families in complete destitution; and according to other sources mentioned by Sheriff Alison, {272b}in Ireland, there are 2,300,000 people who cannot survive without public or private assistance—or 27 percent of the entire population are paupers!

The cause of this poverty lies in the existing social conditions, especially in competition here found in the form of the subdivision of the soil.  Much effort has been spent in finding other causes.  It has been asserted that the relation of the tenant to the landlord who lets his estate in large lots to tenants, who again have their sub-tenants, and sub-sub-tenants, in turn, so that often ten middlemen p. 273come between the landlord and the actual cultivator—it has been asserted that the shameful law which gives the landlord the right of expropriating the cultivator who may have paid his rent duly, if the first tenant fails to pay the landlord, that this law is to blame for all this poverty.  But all this determines only the form in which the poverty manifests itself.  Make the small tenant a landowner himself and what follows?  The majority could not live upon their holdings even if they had no rent to pay, and any slight improvement which might take place would be lost again in a few years in consequence of the rapid increase of population.  The children would then live to grow up under the improved conditions who now die in consequence of poverty in early childhood.  From another side comes the assertion that the shameless oppression inflicted by the English is the cause of the trouble.  It is the cause of the somewhat earlier appearance of this poverty, but not of the poverty itself.  Or the blame is laid on the Protestant Church forced upon a Catholic nation; but divide among the Irish what the Church takes from them, and it does not reach six shillings a head.  Besides, tithes are a tax upon landed property, not upon the tenant, though he may nominally pay them; now, since the Commutation Bill of 1838, the landlord pays the tithes directly and reckons so much higher rent, so that the tenant is none the better off.  And in the same way a hundred other causes of this poverty are brought forward, all proving as little as these.  This poverty is the result of our social conditions; apart from these, causes may be found for the manner in which it manifests itself, but not for the fact of its existence.  That poverty manifests itself in Ireland thus and not otherwise, is owing to the character of the people, and to their historical development.  The Irish are a people related in their whole character to the Latin nations, to the French, and especially to the Italians.  The bad features of their character we have already had depicted by Carlyle.  Let us now hear an Irishman, who at least comes nearer to the truth than Carlyle, with his prejudice in favour of the Teutonic character: {273}

The cause of this poverty lies in the current social conditions, particularly in the competition created by the division of land. A lot of effort has gone into finding other reasons. It has been claimed that the relationship between the tenant and the landlord, who rents out large plots to tenants—who in turn have their sub-tenants and sub-sub-tenants, sometimes leading to ten middlemen p. 273 standing between the landlord and the actual cultivator—means that the disgraceful law allowing the landlord to evict the cultivator (who may have paid rent on time) if the first tenant doesn’t pay the landlord is to blame for all this poverty. But that's just describing how poverty shows up. If we made the small tenant a landowner, what would happen? Most couldn’t survive on their land even without rent, and any slight improvements would quickly be undone by the rapid population growth. The kids who now die young due to poverty would grow up in better conditions. On another note, some say that the ruthless oppression from the English is the source of the issue. It contributes to the earlier onset of poverty, but not the poverty itself. Others blame the Protestant Church imposed on a Catholic nation; however, if you divide what the Church takes from the Irish, it amounts to less than six shillings each. Plus, tithes are a tax on land ownership, not on the tenant, even if he pays them nominally; since the Commutation Bill of 1838, the landlord pays the tithes directly and just charges a higher rent, leaving the tenant no better off. Similarly, many other reasons for poverty are proposed, but they prove just as insufficient as these. This poverty results from our social conditions; while we can pinpoint reasons for how it appears, we can't deny its existence. How poverty manifests in Ireland, rather than elsewhere, is due to the character of the people and their historical development. The Irish are closely related in their character to the Latin nations, the French, and especially the Italians. The negative traits of their character have already been described by Carlyle. Let's now hear from an Irishman, who at least has a perspective closer to the truth than Carlyle, with his bias towards the Teutonic character: {273}

p. 274“They are restless, yet indolent, clever and indiscreet, stormy, impatient, and improvident; brave by instinct, generous without much reflection, quick to revenge and forgive insults, to make and to renounce friendships, gifted with genius prodigally, sparingly with judgment.”

p. 274“They are both restless and lazy, intelligent yet careless, moody, impatient, and reckless; naturally brave, generous without much consideration, quick to seek revenge and forgive slights, to form and end friendships, gifted with plenty of talent, but lacking good judgment.”

With the Irish, feeling and passion predominate; reason must bow before them.  Their sensuous, excitable nature prevents reflection and quiet, persevering activity from reaching development—such a nation is utterly unfit for manufacture as now conducted.  Hence they held fast to agriculture, and remained upon the lowest plane even of that.  With the small subdivisions of land, which were not here artificially created, as in France and on the Rhine, by the division of great estates, but have existed from time immemorial, an improvement of the soil by the investment of capital was not to be thought of; and it would, according to Alison, require 120 million pounds sterling to bring the soil up to the not very high state of fertility already attained in England.  The English immigration, which might have raised the standard of Irish civilisation, has contented itself with the most brutal plundering of the Irish people; and while the Irish, by their immigration into England, have furnished England a leaven which will produce its own results in the future, they have little for which to be thankful to the English immigration.

With the Irish, emotions and passion take the lead; reason must step aside for them. Their sensitive, excitable nature prevents deep thought and steady, consistent effort from developing—such a nation is completely unfit for manufacturing as it currently exists. As a result, they clung to agriculture and remained at a very low level, even within that field. The small plots of land, which weren’t created artificially like in France and along the Rhine by dividing large estates, have existed since ancient times, making any investment to improve the soil unrealistic; according to Alison, it would take 120 million pounds sterling to bring the soil to the not-so-high level of fertility already achieved in England. The English immigration, which could have raised the standard of Irish civilization, has only engaged in brutal exploitation of the Irish people; while the Irish, by moving to England, have contributed a mix that will lead to future changes there, they have little to be grateful for in return from English immigration.

The attempts of the Irish to save themselves from their present ruin, on the one hand, take the form of crimes.  These are the order of the day in the agricultural districts, and are nearly always directed against the most immediate enemies, the landlord’s agents, or their obedient servants, the Protestant intruders, whose large farms are made up of the potato patches of hundreds of ejected families.  Such crimes are especially frequent in the South and West.  On the other hand, the Irish hope for relief by means of the agitation for the repeal of the Legislative Union with England.  From all the foregoing, it is clear that the uneducated Irish must see in the English their worst enemies; and their first hope of improvement in the conquest of national independence.  But quite as clear is it, too, that Irish distress cannot be removed by p. 275any Act of Repeal.  Such an Act would, however, at once lay bare the fact that the cause of Irish misery, which now seems to come from abroad, is really to be found at home.  Meanwhile, it is an open question whether the accomplishment of repeal will be necessary to make this clear to the Irish.  Hitherto, neither Chartism nor Socialism has had marked success in Ireland.

The Irish are trying to escape their current devastation, and one response has been resorting to crime. This is common in rural areas, often aimed at their most immediate oppressors: the landlord's agents or the Protestant intruders, who have taken over the farms that once belonged to families who were evicted. These crimes are especially prevalent in the South and West. On the flip side, the Irish are seeking relief through the push to repeal the Legislative Union with England. From all this, it’s clear that uneducated Irish people see the English as their biggest enemies, with their primary hope for improvement lying in achieving national independence. However, it’s equally evident that simply repealing the Act won’t fix the core issue of Irish suffering. Such a repeal would reveal that the root of their misery, which seems to come from abroad, is actually found at home. For now, it's uncertain if achieving repeal will be necessary to help the Irish realize this. Up to now, neither Chartism nor Socialism has made a significant impact in Ireland.

I close my observations upon Ireland at this point the more readily, as the Repeal Agitation of 1843 and O’Connell’s trial have been the means of making the Irish distress more and more known in Germany.

I wrap up my thoughts on Ireland here, especially since the Repeal Agitation of 1843 and O’Connell’s trial have helped to raise awareness of the suffering in Ireland in Germany.

We have now followed the proletariat of the British Islands through all branches of its activity, and found it everywhere living in want and misery under totally inhuman conditions.  We have seen discontent arise with the rise of the proletariat, grow, develop, and organise; we have seen open bloodless and bloody battles of the proletariat against the bourgeoisie.  We have investigated the principles according to which the fate, the hopes, and fears of the proletariat are determined, and we have found that there is no prospect of improvement in their condition.

We have now tracked the working class of the British Islands through all areas of their lives and found them living in poverty and suffering under completely inhumane conditions. We have observed discontent swell as the working class has grown, developed, and organized; we have witnessed both peaceful and violent battles between the working class and the bourgeoisie. We have examined the principles that shape the fate, hopes, and fears of the working class, and we have discovered that there is no hope for improvement in their situation.

We have had an opportunity, here and there, of observing the conduct of the bourgeoisie towards the proletariat, and we have found that it considers only itself, has only its own advantage in view.  However, in order not to be unjust, let us investigate its mode of action somewhat more exactly.

We’ve had a chance, here and there, to observe how the bourgeoisie treats the proletariat, and we’ve found that it only looks out for itself, focusing solely on its own interests. However, to be fair, let’s take a closer look at how it operates.

p. 276THE ATTITUDE OF THE BOURGEOISIE TOWARDS THE PROLETARIAT.

In speaking of the bourgeoisie I include the so-called aristocracy, for this is a privileged class, an aristocracy, only in contrast with the bourgeoisie, not in contrast with the proletariat.  The proletarian sees in both only the property-holder—i.e., the bourgeois.  Before the privilege of property all other privileges vanish.  The sole difference is this, that the bourgeois proper stands in active relations with the manufacturing, and, in a measure, with the mining proletarians, and, as farmer, with the agricultural labourers, whereas the so-called aristocrat comes into contact with the agricultural labourer only.

When I talk about the bourgeoisie, I also mean the so-called aristocracy, because this is a privileged class—an aristocracy—only when compared to the bourgeoisie, not to the proletariat. The proletarian sees both groups simply as property owners—that is, the bourgeois. In the face of property privileges, all other privileges disappear. The only difference is that the true bourgeois actively interacts with the manufacturing proletarians and, to some extent, with the mining proletarians, and as a farmer, with agricultural laborers, while the so-called aristocrat only comes into contact with agricultural laborers.

I have never seen a class so deeply demoralised, so incurably debased by selfishness, so corroded within, so incapable of progress, as the English bourgeoisie; and I mean by this, especially the bourgeoisie proper, particularly the Liberal, Corn Law repealing bourgeoisie.  For it nothing exists in this world, except for the sake of money, itself not excluded.  It knows no bliss save that of rapid gain, no pain save that of losing gold. {276}  In the presence of this avarice and lust of gain, it is not possible for a single human sentiment or opinion to remain untainted.  True, these English bourgeois are good husbands and family men, and have all sorts of other private virtues, and appear, in ordinary intercourse, as decent and respectable as all other bourgeois; even in business they are better to deal with than the Germans; they do not higgle and haggle so much as our own pettifogging merchants; but how does this help matters?  Ultimately it is self-interest, and especially money gain, which alone determines them.  I once went into Manchester with such a bourgeois, and spoke to him of the bad, unwholesome method of building, the frightful p. 277condition of the working-people’s quarters, and asserted that I had never seen so ill-built a city.  The man listened quietly to the end, and said at the corner where we parted: “And yet there is a great deal of money made here; good morning, sir.”  It is utterly indifferent to the English bourgeois whether his working-men starve or not, if only he makes money.  All the conditions of life are measured by money, and what brings no money is nonsense, unpractical, idealistic bosh.  Hence, Political Economy, the Science of Wealth, is the favourite study of these bartering Jews.  Every one of them is a Political Economist.  The relation of the manufacturer to his operatives has nothing human in it; it is purely economic.  The manufacturer is Capital, the operative Labour.  And if the operative will not be forced into this abstraction, if he insists that he is not Labour, but a man, who possesses, among other things, the attribute of labour force, if he takes it into his head that he need not allow himself to be sold and bought in the market, as the commodity “Labour,” the bourgeois reason comes to a standstill.  He cannot comprehend that he holds any other relation to the operatives than that of purchase and sale; he sees in them not human beings, but hands, as he constantly calls them to their faces; he insists, as Carlyle says, that “Cash Payment is the only nexus between man and man.”  Even the relation between himself and his wife is, in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred, mere “Cash Payment.”  Money determines the worth of the man; he is “worth ten thousand pounds.”  He who has money is of “the better sort of people,” is “influential,” and what he does counts for something in his social circle.  The huckstering spirit penetrates the whole language, all relations are expressed in business terms, in economic categories.  Supply and demand are the formulas according to which the logic of the English bourgeois judges all human life.  Hence free competition in every respect, hence the régime of laissez-faire, laissez-aller in government, in medicine, in education, and soon to be in religion, too, as the State Church collapses more and more.  Free competition will suffer no limitation, no State supervision; the whole State is but a burden to it.  It would reach its highest p. 278perfection in a wholly ungoverned anarchic society, where each might exploit the other to his heart’s content.  Since, however, the bourgeoisie cannot dispense with government, but must have it to hold the equally indispensable proletariat in check, it turns the power of government against the proletariat and keeps out of its way as far as possible.

I’ve never seen a group so completely demoralized, so inherently debased by selfishness, so internally corroded, and so incapable of progress as the English bourgeoisie; and I specifically mean the bourgeoisie itself, particularly the Liberal, Corn Law-repealing bourgeoisie. For them, nothing exists in this world except for the sake of money, which is included. They know no joy other than quick profits, and no suffering other than losing money. {276} In the face of this greed and thirst for profit, it's impossible for any human sentiment or opinion to remain untouched. Sure, these English bourgeois are good husbands and family men, have all kinds of other personal virtues, and appear, in everyday interactions, as decent and respectable as any other bourgeois; even in business, they are easier to deal with than the Germans; they don't haggle and bargain as much as our own petty merchants; but how does that really change things? Ultimately, it is self-interest, especially the pursuit of money, that drives them. I once went to Manchester with one of these bourgeois and talked to him about the poor, unhealthy building practices, the terrible conditions in working-class neighborhoods, and claimed that I had never seen a city so poorly built. The man listened quietly until I finished, then said at the corner where we parted, "And yet there’s a lot of money to be made here; good morning, sir." The English bourgeois is completely indifferent to whether his workers starve or not, as long as he makes money. All life’s conditions are measured by money, and what doesn’t generate money is nonsense, impractical, idealistic nonsense. Therefore, Political Economy, the Science of Wealth, is the favorite subject of these bargaining merchants. Every one of them is a Political Economist. The relationship between the manufacturer and his workers is devoid of any humanity; it’s purely economic. The manufacturer represents Capital, and the worker represents Labor. And if the worker refuses to be reduced to this abstraction, if he insists that he is not just Labor, but a person who possesses, among other things, the ability to work, if he thinks he shouldn’t allow himself to be bought and sold in the market as the commodity “Labor,” the bourgeois mindset falters. He can't understand that he has any relationship with his workers other than that of buyer and seller; he views them not as people, but as hands, which he often calls them to their faces; he insists, as Carlyle says, that “Cash Payment is the only connection between man and man.” Even the relationship between him and his wife is, in ninety-nine out of a hundred cases, simply “Cash Payment.” Money determines a person's worth; he is “worth ten thousand pounds.” Those with money are seen as “the better sort of people,” are “influential,” and what they do matters in their social circle. The haggling spirit saturates the entire language; all relationships are described in business terms, in economic categories. Supply and demand are the rules that govern how the English bourgeois evaluates all of human life. Therefore, there is free competition in every aspect, hence the régime of laissez-faire, laissez-aller in government, medicine, education, and soon religion, too, as the State Church continues to weaken. Free competition will not tolerate any restrictions, no government oversight; the state is merely a burden to it. It would achieve its greatest perfection in a completely ungoverned anarchic society, where everyone could exploit each other without restraint. However, since the bourgeoisie cannot function without government, as they need it to keep the equally necessary proletariat in check, they turn governmental power against the proletariat and try to avoid it as much as possible.

Let no one believe, however, that the “cultivated” Englishman openly brags with his egotism.  On the contrary, he conceals it under the vilest hypocrisy.  What?  The wealthy English fail to remember the poor?  They who have founded philanthropic institutions, such as no other country can boast of!  Philanthropic institutions forsooth!  As though you rendered the proletarians a service in first sucking out their very life-blood and then practising your self-complacent, Pharisaic philanthropy upon them, placing yourselves before the world as mighty benefactors of humanity when you give back to the plundered victims the hundredth part of what belongs to them!  Charity which degrades him who gives more than him who takes; charity which treads the downtrodden still deeper in the dust, which demands that the degraded, the pariah cast out by society, shall first surrender the last that remains to him, his very claim to manhood, shall first beg for mercy before your mercy deigns to press, in the shape of an alms, the brand of degradation upon his brow.  But let us hear the English bourgeoisie’s own words.  It is not yet a year since I read in the Manchester Guardian the following letter to the editor, which was published without comment as a perfectly natural, reasonable thing:

Let’s not kid ourselves, though; the “cultured” Englishman doesn’t openly boast about his ego. Instead, he hides it behind the worst kind of hypocrisy. What? The wealthy English forget about the poor? Those who have founded charitable organizations that no other country can claim! Charitable organizations, really! As if you’re doing the working class a favor after you’ve drained their very life force and then flaunt your self-satisfied, self-righteous charity, presenting yourselves to the world as great benefactors of humanity when you only give back a tiny fraction of what rightfully belongs to them! Charity that belittles the giver more than the receiver; charity that pushes the downtrodden even further into the dirt, expecting the marginalized, the outcast from society, to first give up everything he has left, even his dignity, and to beg for mercy before your pity finally decides to show up in the form of a donation, marking him with shame. But let’s listen to the English middle class’s own words. It was less than a year ago that I read a letter to the editor in the Manchester Guardian, published without comment as if it were a perfectly natural, reasonable thing:

Mr. Editor,—For some time past our main streets are haunted by swarms of beggars, who try to awaken the pity of the passers-by in a most shameless and annoying manner, by exposing their tattered clothing, sickly aspect, and disgusting wounds and deformities.  I should think that when one not only pays the poor-rate, but also contributes largely to the charitable institutions, one had done enough to earn a right to be spared such disagreeable and impertinent molestations.  And why else do we pay such high rates for the maintenance of the municipal police, p. 279if they do not even protect us so far as to make it possible to go to or out of town in peace?  I hope the publication of these lines in your widely-circulated paper may induce the authorities to remove this nuisance; and I remain,—Your obedient servant,

Mr. Editor,—For some time now, our main streets have been taken over by groups of beggars who shamelessly and annoyingly try to gain sympathy from passersby by displaying their tattered clothes, sickly appearances, and unsettling wounds and deformities. I believe that when someone not only pays taxes for the welfare of the poor but also generously donates to charities, they’ve done enough to deserve to be free from such unpleasant and rude harassment. And why do we pay such high taxes for the maintenance of the municipal police, p. 279if they can’t even ensure our safety to travel in or out of town peacefully? I hope that sharing these thoughts in your widely-read paper will encourage the authorities to tackle this issue; and I remain,—Your obedient servant,

A Lady.”

A Lady.”

There you have it!  The English bourgeoisie is charitable out of self-interest; it gives nothing outright, but regards its gifts as a business matter, makes a bargain with the poor, saying: “If I spend this much upon benevolent institutions, I thereby purchase the right not to be troubled any further, and you are bound thereby to stay in your dusky holes and not to irritate my tender nerves by exposing your misery.  You shall despair as before, but you shall despair unseen, this I require, this I purchase with my subscription of twenty pounds for the infirmary!”  It is infamous, this charity of a Christian bourgeois!  And so writes “A Lady;” she does well to sign herself such, well that she has lost the courage to call herself a woman!  But if the “Ladies” are such as this, what must the “Gentlemen” be?  It will be said that this is a single case; but no, the foregoing letter expresses the temper of the great majority of the English bourgeoisie, or the editor would not have accepted it, and some reply would have been made to it, which I watched for in vain in the succeeding numbers.  And as to the efficiency of this philanthropy, Canon Parkinson himself says that the poor are relieved much more by the poor than by the bourgeoisie; and such relief given by an honest proletarian who knows himself what it is to be hungry, for whom sharing his scanty meal is really a sacrifice, but a sacrifice borne with pleasure, such help has a wholly different ring to it from the carelessly-tossed alms of the luxurious bourgeois.

There you have it! The English middle class is charitable out of self-interest; it doesn’t give anything directly, but treats its donations as a business deal, saying: “If I spend this much on charitable organizations, I buy the right not to be bothered anymore, and you are expected to stay in your dark corners and not annoy me by showing your suffering. You can despair as usual, but you must do it out of sight; this I demand, this I get with my twenty-pound subscription for the hospital!” It’s disgraceful, this charity of a Christian middle class! And so writes “A Lady;” she’s right to sign herself that way, so much so that she’s lost the courage to call herself a woman! But if the “Ladies” are like this, what must the “Gentlemen” be? It will be argued that this is just one case; but no, the letter above reflects the attitude of the vast majority of the English middle class, or the editor wouldn’t have published it, and there would have been some response, which I waited for in vain in the following issues. And regarding the effectiveness of this philanthropy, Canon Parkinson himself says that the poor help each other far more than the middle class does; and the support given by an honest worker who knows what it’s like to be hungry, for whom sharing his small meal is truly a sacrifice, but a sacrifice he makes gladly, this help feels entirely different from the casually thrown money of the wealthy middle class.

In other respects, too, the bourgeoisie assumes a hypocritical, boundless philanthropy, but only when its own interests require it; as in its Politics and Political Economy.  It has been at work now well on towards five years to prove to the working-men that it strives to abolish the Corn Laws solely in their interest.  But the long and short of the matter is this: the Corn Laws keep the price of bread higher than in other countries, and thus p. 280raise wages, but these high wages render difficult competition of the manufacturers against other nations in which bread, and consequently wages, are cheaper.  The Corn Laws being repealed, the price of bread falls, and wages gradually approach those of other European countries, as must be clear to every one from our previous exposition of the principles according to which wages are determined.  The manufacturer can compete more readily, the demand for English goods increases, and, with it, the demand for labour.  In consequence of this increased demand wages would actually rise somewhat, and the unemployed workers be re-employed; but for how long?  The “surplus population” of England, and especially of Ireland, is sufficient to supply English manufacture with the necessary operatives, even if it were doubled; and, in a few years, the small advantage of the repeal of the Corn Laws would be balanced, a new crisis would follow, and we should be back at the point from which we started, while the first stimulus to manufacture would have increased population meanwhile.  All this the proletarians understand very well, and have told the manufacturers to their faces; but, in spite of that, the manufacturers have in view solely the immediate advantage which the Corn Laws would bring them.  They are too narrow-minded to see that, even for themselves, no permanent advantage can arise from this measure, because their competition with each other would soon force the profit of the individual back to its old level; and thus they continue to shriek to the working-men that it is purely for the sake of the starving millions that the rich members of the Liberal party pour hundreds and thousands of pounds into the treasury of the Anti-Corn Law League, while every one knows that they are only sending the butter after the cheese, that they calculate upon earning it all back in the first ten years after the repeal of the Corn Laws.  But the workers are no longer to be misled by the bourgeoisie, especially since the insurrection of 1842.  They demand of every one who presents himself as interested in their welfare, that he should declare himself in favour of the People’s Charter as proof of the sincerity of his professions, and in so doing, they protest against p. 281all outside help, for the Charter is a demand for the power to help themselves.  Whoever declines so to declare himself they pronounce their enemy, and are perfectly right in so doing, whether he be a declared foe or a false friend Besides, the Anti-Corn Law League has used the most despicable falsehoods and tricks to win the support of the workers.  It has tried to prove to them that the money price of labour is in inverse proportion to the price of corn; that wages are high when grain is cheap, and vice versa, an assertion which it pretends to prove with the most ridiculous arguments, and one which is, in itself, more ridiculous than any other that has proceeded from the mouth of an Economist.  When this failed to help matters, the workers were promised bliss supreme in consequence of the increased demand in the labour market; indeed, men went so far as to carry through the streets two models of loaves of bread, on one of which, by far the larger, was written: “American Eightpenny Loaf, Wages Four Shillings per Day,” and upon the much smaller one: “English Eightpenny Loaf, Wages Two Shillings a Day.”  But the workers have not allowed themselves to be misled.  They know their lords and masters too well.

In other ways, the bourgeoisie also displays a hypocritical and boundless philanthropy, but only when it suits their own interests, as seen in their Politics and Political Economy. They have been working for nearly five years to convince the working class that they are trying to abolish the Corn Laws solely for their benefit. But the reality is this: the Corn Laws keep the price of bread higher than in other countries, which raises wages, but these higher wages make it harder for manufacturers to compete with nations where bread and, therefore, wages are cheaper. If the Corn Laws were repealed, the price of bread would drop, and wages would gradually align with those in other European countries, as should be clear from our earlier discussion on how wages are determined. Manufacturers could compete more easily, demand for English goods would rise, and so would the demand for labor. As a result, wages would actually increase a bit, and the unemployed would find work again; but for how long? The “surplus population” of England, especially in Ireland, is large enough to provide the necessary workers for English manufacturing, even if it doubled. Within a few years, the slight benefit of repealing the Corn Laws would be offset, a new crisis would emerge, and we would return to where we started, while the initial boost to manufacturing would have increased the population in the meantime. The proletarians understand this very well and have confronted the manufacturers directly; yet, the manufacturers are only focused on the immediate benefits they would gain from the Corn Laws. They are too shortsighted to recognize that, even for themselves, no lasting advantage can arise from this move, as their competition with each other would eventually drive profits back to their old levels. Still, they insist to the working class that it is purely for the sake of the starving millions that wealthy members of the Liberal party contribute hundreds of thousands of pounds to the treasury of the Anti-Corn Law League, while everyone knows they are just planning to recoup their costs in the first ten years after the repeal of the Corn Laws. But the workers are no longer fooled by the bourgeoisie, especially after the uprising of 1842. They demand that anyone claiming to care about their welfare must declare their support for the People’s Charter as proof of their sincerity, and in doing so, they reject all external assistance, as the Charter represents a demand for the power to help themselves. Anyone who refuses to make such a declaration is labeled as their enemy, which is completely justified, whether they are a declared opponent or a false ally. Furthermore, the Anti-Corn Law League has used the most contemptible lies and tricks to win over the workers. They have attempted to convince them that the monetary value of labor is inversely related to the price of corn; that wages are high when grain is cheap, and vice versa, a claim they pretend to support with absurd arguments, which in itself is more ridiculous than anything ever said by an Economist. When this tactic failed, workers were promised incredible happiness due to increased demand in the labor market; indeed, some even paraded two models of loaves of bread through the streets, one much larger than the other, with the larger labeled: “American Eightpenny Loaf, Wages Four Shillings per Day,” and the smaller saying: “English Eightpenny Loaf, Wages Two Shillings a Day.” But the workers have seen through these tricks. They know their lords and masters all too well.

But rightly to measure the hypocrisy of these promises, the practice of the bourgeoisie must be taken into account.  We have seen in the course of our report how the bourgeoisie exploits the proletariat in every conceivable way for its own benefit!  We have, however, hitherto seen only how the single bourgeois maltreats the proletariat upon his own account.  Let us turn now to the manner in which the bourgeoisie as a party, as the power of the State, conducts itself towards the proletariat.  Laws are necessary only because there are persons in existence who own nothing; and although this is directly expressed in but few laws, as, for instance, those against vagabonds and tramps, in which the proletariat as such is outlawed, yet enmity to the proletariat is so emphatically the basis of the law that the judges, and especially the Justices of the Peace, who are bourgeois themselves, and with whom the proletariat comes most in contact, find this meaning in the laws without further consideration.  If a rich man p. 282is brought up, or rather summoned, to appear before the court, the judge regrets that he is obliged to impose so much trouble, treats the matter as favourably as possible, and, if he is forced to condemn the accused, does so with extreme regret, etc. etc., and the end of it all is a miserable fine, which the bourgeois throws upon the table with contempt and then departs.  But if a poor devil gets into such a position as involves appearing before the Justice of the Peace—he has almost always spent the night in the station-house with a crowd of his peers—he is regarded from the beginning as guilty; his defence is set aside with a contemptuous “Oh! we know the excuse,” and a fine imposed which he cannot pay and must work out with several months on the treadmill.  And if nothing can be proved against him, he is sent to the treadmill, none the less, “as a rogue and a vagabond.”  The partisanship of the Justices of the Peace, especially in the country, surpasses all description, and it is so much the order of the day that all cases which are not too utterly flagrant are quietly reported by the newspapers, without comment.  Nor is anything else to be expected.  For on the one hand, these Dogberries do merely construe the law according to the intent of the farmers, and, on the other, they are themselves bourgeois, who see the foundation of all true order in the interests of their class.  And the conduct of the police corresponds to that of the Justices of the Peace.  The bourgeois may do what he will and the police remain ever polite, adhering strictly to the law, but the proletarian is roughly, brutally treated; his poverty both casts the suspicion of every sort of crime upon him and cuts him off from legal redress against any caprice of the administrators of the law; for him, therefore, the protecting forms of the law do not exist, the police force their way into his house without further ceremony, arrest and abuse him; and only when a working-men’s association, such as the miners, engages a Roberts, does it become evident how little the protective side of the law exists for the working-men, how frequently he has to bear all the burdens of the law without enjoying its benefits.

But to accurately gauge the hypocrisy of these promises, we need to consider how the bourgeoisie actually behaves. Throughout our report, we’ve seen how the bourgeoisie exploits the working class in every way possible for its own gain! Thus far, we've mostly looked at how individual bourgeois individuals mistreat the working class for their own reasons. Now let's examine how the bourgeoisie, as a group and as the governing body, treats the proletariat. Laws exist mainly because there are people who own nothing; and while this is directly stated in only a few laws—such as those against vagrants and beggars, which outright outlaw the working class—hostility toward the working class is fundamentally woven into the law. Judges, especially the Justices of the Peace who are from the bourgeoisie and interact most with the working class, recognize this bias without much thought. When a rich person is called to court, the judge feels sorry for the inconvenience, tries to handle the case as leniently as possible, and if forced to convict, does so with great regret, resulting in a petty fine that the bourgeois can toss onto the table with disdain before leaving. However, if a poor person finds themselves in a similar situation—having likely spent the night in a holding cell with others in his position—they are assumed guilty from the start; their defense is dismissed with a scoff of “Oh! We’ve heard that excuse,” and the fine they receive is something they can’t afford, leading to months of hard labor on the treadmill. Even if there’s no evidence against them, they’re still sent to the treadmill, branded as a “rogue and vagabond.” The bias of the Justices of the Peace, especially in rural areas, is beyond description, and it’s so common that many cases, unless overtly shocking, are quietly reported in the news without commentary. This is to be expected. On one hand, these officials interpret the law according to the wishes of the landowners, while on the other, they themselves are bourgeois who believe that true order is grounded in the interests of their class. The actions of the police mirror those of the Justices of the Peace. The bourgeois can act freely and the police will always be polite, strictly following the law, while the working class faces rough and harsh treatment; their poverty subjects them to suspicion of all sorts of crimes and limits their ability to seek justice against the whims of those in charge of law enforcement. To them, the protective aspects of the law are non-existent; the police can barge into their homes without a thought, arrest, and mistreat them. Only when a workers’ union, like the miners, hires someone like Roberts does it become clear how little the protective aspect of the law serves working people, as they often bear the brunt of legal obligations without benefiting from the law itself.

Down to the present hour, the property-holding class in Parliament p. 283still struggles against the better feelings of those not yet fallen a prey to egotism, and seeks to subjugate the proletariat still further.  One piece of common land after another is appropriated and placed under cultivation, a process by which the general cultivation is furthered, but the proletariat greatly injured.  Where there were still commons, the poor could pasture an ass, a pig, or geese, the children and young people had a place where they could play and live out of doors; but this is gradually coming to an end.  The earnings of the worker are less, and the young people, deprived of their playground, go to the beer-shops.  A mass of acts for enclosing and cultivating commons is passed at every session of Parliament.  When the Government determined during the session of 1844 to force the all monopolising railways to make travelling possible for the workers by means of charges proportionate to their means, a penny a mile, and proposed therefore to introduce such a third class train upon every railway daily, the “Reverend Father in God,” the Bishop of London, proposed that Sunday, the only day upon which working-men in work can travel, be exempted from this rule, and travelling thus be left open to the rich and shut off from the poor.  This proposition was, however, too direct, too undisguised to pass through Parliament, and was dropped.  I have no room to enumerate the many concealed attacks of even one single session upon the proletariat.  One from the session of 1844 must suffice.  An obscure member of Parliament, a Mr. Miles, proposed a bill regulating the relation of master and servant which seemed comparatively unobjectionable.  The Government became interested in the bill, and it was referred to a committee.  Meanwhile the strike among the miners in the North broke out, and Roberts made his triumphal passage through England with his acquitted working-men.  When the bill was reported by the committee, it was discovered that certain most despotic provisions had been interpolated in it, especially one conferring upon the employer the power to bring before any Justice of the Peace every working-man who had contracted verbally or in writing to do any work whatsoever, in case of refusal to work or other misbehaviour, and have him condemned p. 284to prison with hard labour for two months, upon the oath of the employer or his agent or overlooker, i.e., upon the oath of the accuser.  This bill aroused the working-men to the utmost fury, the more so as the Ten Hours’ Bill was before Parliament at the same time, and had called forth a considerable agitation.  Hundreds of meetings were held, hundreds of working-men’s petitions forwarded to London to Thomas Duncombe, the representative of the interests of the proletariat.  This man was, except Ferrand, the representative of “Young England,” the only vigorous opponent of the bill; but when the other Radicals saw that the people were declaring against it, one after the other crept forward and took his place by Duncombe’s side; and as the Liberal bourgeoisie had not the courage to defend the bill in the face of the excitement among the working-men, it was ignominiously lost.

Up to now, the property-owning class in Parliament still fights against the better instincts of those who haven't yet succumbed to selfishness and tries to further oppress the working class. One piece of common land after another is taken and cultivated, which helps overall agriculture but severely harms the working class. Where there were still commons, the poor could keep a donkey, a pig, or geese; children and young people had a place to play and enjoy the outdoors, but this is slowly coming to an end. Workers' earnings are declining, and young people, lacking a place to play, go to the pubs instead. Every session of Parliament passes a series of acts to enclose and cultivate commons. When the Government decided during the session of 1844 to force the monopolizing railways to make travel affordable for workers at a penny a mile and proposed to introduce a third class train on every railway daily, the "Reverend Father in God," the Bishop of London, suggested that Sundays, the only day when working men could travel, be exempt from this rule, effectively making travel accessible only to the rich while locking out the poor. However, this proposal was too blatant to get through Parliament and was dropped. I don't have space to list the many hidden attacks on the working class from even one session. One from the session of 1844 will have to suffice. An obscure member of Parliament, Mr. Miles, proposed a bill concerning the relationship between employer and employee that seemed relatively harmless. The Government showed interest in the bill, and it was sent to a committee. Meanwhile, a miners' strike broke out in the North, and Roberts made his triumphant journey through England with his acquitted workers. When the committee reported on the bill, it was found that some extremely oppressive provisions had been added, particularly one giving employers the power to bring any worker who had verbally or in writing agreed to do any work before any Justice of the Peace if they refused to work or misbehaved, and have them sentenced to two months of hard labor based solely on the employer's or their agent’s or supervisor’s word, i.e., based on the accuser's oath. This bill infuriated the workers even more, especially since the Ten Hours’ Bill was also in Parliament and had sparked considerable agitation. Hundreds of meetings were held, and numerous petitions from working men were sent to London to Thomas Duncombe, who represented the interests of the working class. Besides Ferrand, Duncombe was the only strong opponent of the bill representing "Young England." However, when other Radicals noticed that people were rising against the bill, they quickly joined Duncombe's side; and since the Liberal bourgeoisie lacked the courage to defend the bill amid the workers' outrage, it was shamefully defeated.

Meanwhile the most open declaration of war of the bourgeoisie upon the proletariat is Malthus’ Law of Population and the New Poor Law framed in accordance with it.  We have already alluded several times to the theory of Malthus.  We may sum up its final result in these few words, that the earth is perennially over-populated, whence poverty, misery, distress, and immorality must prevail; that it is the lot, the eternal destiny of mankind, to exist in too great numbers, and therefore in diverse classes, of which some are rich, educated, and moral, and others more or less poor, distressed, ignorant, and immoral.  Hence it follows in practice, and Malthus himself drew this conclusion, that charities and poor-rates are, properly speaking, nonsense, since they serve only to maintain, and stimulate the increase of, the surplus population whose competition crushes down wages for the employed; that the employment of the poor by the Poor Law Guardians is equally unreasonable, since only a fixed quantity of the products of labour can be consumed, and for every unemployed labourer thus furnished employment, another hitherto employed must be driven into enforced idleness, whence private undertakings suffer at cost of Poor Law industry; that, in other words, the whole problem is not how to support the surplus population, but how to restrain it p. 285as far as possible.  Malthus declares in plain English that the right to live, a right previously asserted in favour of every man in the world, is nonsense.  He quotes the words of a poet, that the poor man comes to the feast of Nature and finds no cover laid for him, and adds that “she bids him begone,” for he did not before his birth ask of society whether or not he is welcome.  This is now the pet theory of all genuine English bourgeois, and very naturally, since it is the most specious excuse for them, and has, moreover, a good deal of truth in it under existing conditions.  If, then, the problem is not to make the “surplus population” useful, to transform it into available population, but merely to let it starve to death in the least objectionable way and to prevent its having too many children, this, of course, is simple enough, provided the surplus population perceives its own superfluousness and takes kindly to starvation.  There is, however, in spite of the violent exertions of the humane bourgeoisie, no immediate prospect of its succeeding in bringing about such a disposition among the workers.  The workers have taken it into their heads that they, with their busy hands, are the necessary, and the rich capitalists, who do nothing, the surplus population.

Meanwhile, the clearest declaration of war by the bourgeoisie against the proletariat is Malthus’ Law of Population and the New Poor Law based on it. We've mentioned Malthus' theory several times before. In short, it concludes that the earth is always overpopulated, leading to poverty, misery, distress, and immorality. It suggests that humanity's fate is to exist in large numbers, resulting in different classes: some being rich, educated, and moral, while others are poor, distressed, ignorant, and immoral. Consequently, Malthus himself concluded that charities and poor rates are essentially useless, as they only sustain and encourage the growth of surplus population, which drives down wages for those who are employed. He argued that employing the poor through the Poor Law Guardians is equally unreasonable, since only a limited amount of labor products can be consumed, meaning for every unemployed laborer given a job, another already employed person must be pushed into forced idleness, harming private enterprises for the sake of Poor Law industry. In other words, the main issue isn't how to support the surplus population but how to limit it as much as possible. Malthus bluntly states that the right to live, previously claimed for every person, is nonsense. He cites a poet's observation that the poor man comes to nature's feast only to find no place set for him and adds that “she bids him begone,” as he never asked society before his birth if he was welcome. This is now the favored theory among true English bourgeois, which makes sense as it serves as a convenient excuse for them and has some truth under current conditions. If the problem is not to make the “surplus population” useful or transform it into an available workforce but merely to let it die off in the least objectionable manner and prevent them from having too many children, that's fairly straightforward, as long as the surplus population understands its own redundancy and accepts starvation. However, despite the best efforts of well-meaning bourgeois, there’s no immediate sign of success in making such a mindset take hold among the workers. The workers have convinced themselves that their hard work makes them essential, while the wealthy capitalists, who do nothing, are the true surplus population.

Since, however, the rich hold all the power, the proletarians must submit, if they will not good-temperedly perceive it for themselves, to have the law actually declare them superfluous.  This has been done by the New Poor Law.  The Old Poor Law which rested upon the Act of 1601 (the 43rd of Elizabeth), naïvely started from the notion that it is the duty of the parish to provide for the maintenance of the poor.  Whoever had no work received relief, and the poor man regarded the parish as pledged to protect him from starvation.  He demanded his weekly relief as his right, not as a favour, and this became, at last, too much for the bourgeoisie.  In 1833, when the bourgeoisie had just come into power through the Reform Bill, and pauperism in the country districts had just reached its full development, the bourgeoisie began the reform of the Poor Law according to its own point of view.  A commission was appointed, which investigated the administration of the Poor Laws, and revealed a multitude of abuses.  It was discovered that p. 286the whole working-class in the country was pauperised and more or less dependent upon the rates, from which they received relief when wages were low; it was found that this system by which the unemployed were maintained, the ill-paid and the parents of large families relieved, fathers of illegitimate children required to pay alimony, and poverty, in general, recognised as needing protection, it was found that this system was ruining the nation, was—

Since the rich hold all the power, the working class must accept the reality, unless they choose to recognize it themselves, that the law actually defines them as unnecessary. This has been established by the New Poor Law. The Old Poor Law, based on the Act of 1601 (the 43rd of Elizabeth), simply assumed that it was the parish's duty to support the poor. Those without work received assistance, and the impoverished viewed the parish as responsible for shielding them from starvation. They saw their weekly aid as a right, not as a favor, which eventually became too much for the bourgeoisie. In 1833, just after the bourgeoisie gained power through the Reform Bill and as poverty in rural areas reached its peak, they began to reform the Poor Law to reflect their own interests. A commission was formed to investigate the administration of the Poor Laws, uncovering numerous abuses. It was revealed that the entire working class in the countryside had become dependent on welfare, receiving aid when wages were low; it became evident that this system, which supported the unemployed, the underpaid, and large families, made fathers of illegitimate children pay child support, and generally recognized poverty as needing protection, was damaging the nation.

“A check upon industry, a reward for improvident marriage, a stimulus to increased population, and a means of counterbalancing the effect of an increased population upon wages; a national provision for discouraging the honest and industrious, and protecting the lazy, vicious, and improvident; calculated to destroy the bonds of family life, hinder systematically the accumulation of capital, scatter that which is already accumulated, and ruin the taxpayers.  Moreover, in the provision of aliment, it sets a premium upon illegitimate children.”

“A limit on work, a reward for careless marriages, a push for a growing population, and a method to balance the effects of a larger population on wages; a national system that dissuades hardworking and honest individuals while backing the lazy, immoral, and irresponsible; intended to weaken family bonds, systematically hinder capital growth, redistribute what has already been saved, and put a strain on taxpayers. Additionally, by offering food assistance, it encourages having children outside of marriage.”

(Words of the Report of the Poor Law Commissioners.) {286}  This description of the action of the Old Poor Law is certainly correct; relief fosters laziness and increase of “surplus population.”  Under present social conditions it is perfectly clear that the poor man is compelled to be an egotist, and when he can choose, living equally well in either case, he prefers doing nothing to working.  But what follows therefrom?  That our present social conditions are good for nothing, and not as the Malthusian Commissioners conclude, that poverty is a crime, and, as such, to be visited with heinous penalties which may serve as a warning to others.

(Words of the Report of the Poor Law Commissioners.) {286} This description of how the Old Poor Law operates is definitely accurate; assistance promotes laziness and an increase in “surplus population.” Given the current social circumstances, it's clear that a poor person has to become self-centered, and when faced with a choice, living equally well in either situation, they prefer to do nothing rather than work. But what does this lead to? It shows that our current social conditions are worthless, and contrary to what the Malthusian Commissioners conclude, that poverty is a crime that should be punished harshly as a deterrent for others.

But these wise Malthusians were so thoroughly convinced of the infallibility of their theory that they did not for one moment hesitate to cast the poor into the Procrustean bed of their economic notions and treat them with the most revolting cruelty.  Convinced with Malthus and the rest of the adherents of free competition that it is best to let each one take care of himself, they would have preferred to abolish the Poor Laws altogether.  Since, however, they had neither the courage nor the authority to p. 287do this, they proposed a Poor Law constructed as far as possible in harmony with the doctrine of Malthus, which is yet more barbarous than that of laissez-faire, because it interferes actively in cases in which the latter is passive.  We have seen how Malthus characterises poverty, or rather the want of employment, as a crime under the title “superfluity,” and recommends for it punishment by starvation.  The commissioners were not quite so barbarous; death outright by starvation was something too terrible even for a Poor Law Commissioner.  “Good,” said they, “we grant you poor a right to exist, but only to exist; the right to multiply you have not, nor the right to exist as befits human beings.  You are a pest, and if we cannot get rid of you as we do of other pests, you shall feel, at least, that you are a pest, and you shall at least be held in check, kept from bringing into the world other “surplus,” either directly or through inducing in others laziness and want of employment.  Live you shall, but live as an awful warning to all those who might have inducements to become “superfluous.”

But these Malthusian thinkers were so convinced of the certainty of their theory that they didn’t hesitate for a moment to impose their harsh economic views on the poor and treat them with the utmost cruelty. Believing alongside Malthus and other proponents of free competition that it’s best for everyone to fend for themselves, they would have preferred to completely eliminate the Poor Laws. However, lacking the courage and authority to do this, they suggested a Poor Law designed to align as closely as possible with Malthus's doctrine, which is even more brutal than laissez-faire, because it actively intervenes where the latter is passive. We have seen how Malthus defines poverty, or rather lack of employment, as a crime under the term “superfluity” and advocates for punishment through starvation. The commissioners were not quite that brutal; outright death by starvation was too horrific even for a Poor Law Commissioner. “Fine,” they said, “we grant you poor people the right to exist, but only to exist; you don’t have the right to multiply or to live like human beings. You are a nuisance, and if we can’t get rid of you like we do other nuisances, you will at least feel that you are a nuisance, and you will be kept in check, prevented from bringing more ‘surplus’ into the world, either directly or by encouraging laziness and lack of work in others. You will live, but you will live as a dreadful warning to those who might be tempted to become ‘superfluous.’”

They accordingly brought in the New Poor Law, which was passed by Parliament in 1834, and continues in force down to the present day.  All relief in money and provisions was abolished; the only relief allowed was admission to the workhouses immediately built.  The regulations for these workhouses, or, as the people call them, Poor Law Bastilles, is such as to frighten away every one who has the slightest prospect of life without this form of public charity.  To make sure that relief be applied for only in the most extreme cases and after every other effort had failed, the workhouse has been made the most repulsive residence which the refined ingenuity of a Malthusian can invent.  The food is worse than that of the most ill-paid working-man while employed, and the work harder, or they might prefer the workhouse to their wretched existence outside.  Meat, especially fresh meat, is rarely furnished, chiefly potatoes, the worst possible bread and oatmeal porridge, little or no beer.  The food of criminal prisoners is better, as a rule, so that the paupers frequently commit some offence for the purpose of getting into jail.  For the workhouse is p. 288a jail too; he who does not finish his task gets nothing to eat; he who wishes to go out must ask permission, which is granted or not, according to his behaviour or the inspector’s whim, tobacco is forbidden, also the receipt of gifts from relatives or friends outside the house; the paupers wear a workhouse uniform, and are handed over, helpless and without redress, to the caprice of the inspectors.  To prevent their labour from competing with that of outside concerns, they are set to rather useless tasks: the men break stones, “as much as a strong man can accomplish with effort in a day;” the women, children, and aged men pick oakum, for I know not what insignificant use.  To prevent the “superfluous” from multiplying, and “demoralised” parents from influencing their children, families are broken up, the husband is placed in one wing, the wife in another, the children in a third, and they are permitted to see one another only at stated times after long intervals, and then only when they have, in the opinion of the officials, behaved well.  And in order to shut off the external world from contamination by pauperism within these bastilles, the inmates are permitted to receive visits only with the consent of the officials, and in the reception-rooms; to communicate in general with the world outside only by leave and under supervision.

They introduced the New Poor Law, which Parliament passed in 1834 and is still in effect today. All financial aid and provision assistance were eliminated; the only help allowed was admission to the workhouses that were built right away. The rules for these workhouses, or what people call Poor Law Bastilles, are designed to scare away anyone who might think they can survive without this type of public assistance. To ensure that people only seek help in the most desperate situations and after all other options have failed, the workhouse has been made the most unpleasant place conceivable. The food is worse than what the lowest-paid workers have while employed, and the labor is harder, or else individuals might prefer the workhouse to their miserable lives outside. Fresh meat is almost never provided, with a diet mainly consisting of potatoes, the worst bread, and oatmeal porridge, and little to no beer. Generally, the food for criminal prisoners is better, leading paupers to sometimes commit small offenses just to get into jail. Because the workhouse is also like a jail; those who don’t complete their tasks get nothing to eat; anyone wanting to leave must ask for permission, which may be granted or denied based on their behavior or the inspector’s mood. Smoking is not allowed, nor is receiving gifts from friends or family outside; paupers wear workhouse uniforms and are entirely at the mercy of the inspectors. To prevent their work from competing with outside jobs, they are assigned mostly pointless tasks: men break stones, “as much as a strong man can do with effort in a day,” while women, children, and elderly men pick oakum for some unknown minor purpose. To stop the “unnecessary” from increasing and “demoralized” parents from influencing their children, families are separated; the husband is placed in one area, the wife in another, the children in a third, and they can only see each other at specific times after long intervals, and only if they have, in the officials’ view, behaved well. Additionally, to prevent the outside world from being contaminated by the poverty within these bastilles, inmates can receive visitors only with the officials' consent, and only in the designated rooms; communication with the outside world is only allowed with permission and under supervision.

Yet the food is supposed to be wholesome and the treatment humane with all this.  But the intent of the law is too loudly outspoken for this requirement to be in any wise fulfilled.  The Poor Law Commissioners and the whole English bourgeoisie deceive themselves if they believe the administration of the law possible without these results.  The treatment, which the letter of the law prescribes, is in direct contradiction of its spirit.  If the law in its essence proclaims the poor criminals, the workhouses prisons, their inmates beyond the pale of the law, beyond the pale of humanity, objects of disgust and repulsion, then all commands to the contrary are unavailing.  In practice, the spirit and not the letter of the law is followed in the treatment of the poor, as in the following few examples:

Yet the food is meant to be nutritious and the treatment humane with all of this. But the intention of the law is too clearly stated for this requirement to be met in any way. The Poor Law Commissioners and the entire English middle class are fooling themselves if they think the law can be administered without these outcomes. The treatment that the wording of the law dictates directly contradicts its intent. If the law essentially labels the poor as criminals, the workhouses as prisons, and their residents as outside the law and humanity, objects of disgust and disdain, then any orders to the contrary are pointless. In practice, it is the spirit, not the letter, of the law that guides how the poor are treated, as shown in the following examples:

“In the workhouse at Greenwich, in the summer of 1843, a boy p. 289five years old was punished by being shut into the dead-room, where he had to sleep upon the lids of the coffins.  In the workhouse at Herne, the same punishment was inflicted upon a little girl for wetting the bed at night, and this method of punishment seems to be a favourite one.  This workhouse, which stands in one of the most beautiful regions of Kent, is peculiar, in so far as its windows open only upon the court, and but two, newly introduced, afford the inmates a glimpse of the outer world.  The author who relates this in the Illuminated Magazine, closes his description with the words: “If God punished men for crimes as man punishes man for poverty, then woe to the sons of Adam!”

“In the workhouse in Greenwich, during the summer of 1843, a five-year-old boy was punished by being locked in the dead-room, where he had to sleep on the lids of the coffins. In the workhouse in Herne, the same punishment was given to a little girl for wetting the bed at night, and this method of punishment seems to be a common practice. This workhouse, located in one of the most beautiful areas of Kent, is unique in that its windows only open onto the courtyard, and only two new windows allow the residents a view of the outside world. The author who shares this in the Illuminated Magazine concludes his description with the words: “If God punished people for crimes the way humans punish each other for being poor, then woe to the descendants of Adam!”

In November, 1843, a man died at Leicester, who had been dismissed two days before from the workhouse at Coventry.  The details of the treatment of the poor in this institution are revolting.  The man, George Robson, had a wound upon the shoulder, the treatment of which was wholly neglected; he was set to work at the pump, using the sound arm; was given only the usual workhouse fare, which he was utterly unable to digest by reason of the unhealed wound and his general debility; he naturally grew weaker, and the more he complained, the more brutally he was treated.  When his wife tried to bring him her drop of beer, she was reprimanded, and forced to drink it herself in the presence of the female warder.  He became ill, but received no better treatment.  Finally, at his own request, and under the most insulting epithets, he was discharged, accompanied by his wife.  Two days later he died at Leicester, in consequence of the neglected wound and of the food given him, which was utterly indigestible for one in his condition, as the surgeon present at the inquest testified.  When he was discharged, there were handed to him letters containing money, which had been kept back six weeks, and opened, according to a rule of the establishment, by the inspector!  In Birmingham such scandalous occurrences took place, that finally, in 1843, an official was sent to investigate the case.  He found that four tramps had been shut up naked under a staircase in a black hole, eight to ten days, often deprived of food until noon, and that at the severest season of the year.  A p. 290little boy had been passed through all grades of punishment known to the institution; first locked up in a damp, vaulted, narrow, lumber-room; then in the dog-hole twice, the second time three days and three nights; then the same length of time in the old dog-hole, which was still worse; then the tramp-room, a stinking, disgustingly filthy hole, with wooden sleeping stalls, where the official, in the course of his inspection, found two other tattered boys, shrivelled with cold, who had been spending three days there.  In the dog-hole there were often seven, and in the tramp-room, twenty men huddled together.  Women, also, were placed in the dog-hole, because they refused to go to church; and one was shut four days into the tramp-room, with God knows what sort of company, and that while she was ill and receiving medicine!  Another woman was placed in the insane department for punishment, though she was perfectly sane.  In the workhouse at Bacton, in Suffolk, in January, 1844, a similar investigation revealed the fact that a feeble-minded woman was employed as nurse, and took care of the patients accordingly; while sufferers, who were often restless at night, or tried to get up, were tied fast with cords passed over the covering and under the bedstead, to save the nurses the trouble of sitting up at night.  One patient was found dead, bound in this way.  In the St. Pancras workhouse in London (where the cheap shirts already mentioned are made), an epileptic died of suffocation during an attack in bed, no one coming to his relief; in the same house, four to six, sometimes eight children, slept in one bed.  In Shoreditch workhouse a man was placed, together with a fever patient violently ill, in a bed teeming with vermin.  In Bethnal Green workhouse, London, a woman in the sixth month of pregnancy was shut up in the reception-room with her two-year-old child, from February 28th to March 20th, without being admitted into the workhouse itself, and without a trace of a bed or the means of satisfying the most natural wants.  Her husband, who was brought into the workhouse, begged to have his wife released from this imprisonment, whereupon he received twenty-four hours imprisonment, with bread and water, as the penalty of his insolence.  In the workhouse at Slough, near p. 291Windsor, a man lay dying in September, 1844.  His wife journeyed to him, arriving at midnight; and hastening to the workhouse, was refused admission.  She was not permitted to see her husband until the next morning, and then only in the presence of a female warder, who forced herself upon the wife at every succeeding visit, sending her away at the end of half-an-hour.  In the workhouse at Middleton, in Lancashire, twelve, and at times eighteen, paupers, of both sexes, slept in one room.  This institution is not embraced by the New Poor Law, but is administered under an old special act (Gilbert’s Act).  The inspector had instituted a brewery in the house for his own benefit.  In Stockport, July 31st, 1844, a man, seventy-two years old, was brought before the Justice of the Peace for refusing to break stones, and insisting that, by reason of his age and a stiff knee, he was unfit for his work.  In vain did he offer to undertake any work adapted to his physical strength; he was sentenced to two weeks upon the treadmill.  In the workhouse at Basford, an inspecting official found that the sheets had not been changed in thirteen weeks, shirts in four weeks, stockings in two to ten months, so that of forty-five boys but three had stockings, and all their shirts were in tatters.  The beds swarmed with vermin, and the tableware was washed in the slop-pails.  In the west of London workhouse, a porter who had infected four girls with syphilis was not discharged, and another who had concealed a deaf and dumb girl four days and nights in his bed was also retained.

In November 1843, a man died in Leicester who had been kicked out of a workhouse in Coventry just two days earlier. The treatment of the poor in this place is horrifying. The man, George Robson, had a shoulder wound that was completely ignored; he was put to work at the pump using his healthy arm. He was given the usual workhouse food, which he couldn't digest because of his untreated wound and overall weakness, causing him to grow even weaker. The more he complained, the more he was mistreated. When his wife tried to bring him some beer, she was scolded and had to drink it herself in front of the female guard. He became ill, but his treatment didn't improve. Finally, at his request and despite the degrading names he was called, he was discharged, along with his wife. Two days later, he died in Leicester due to his neglected wound and the indigestible food he had been given, as confirmed by the surgeon at the inquest. When he was discharged, he received letters with money that had been withheld for six weeks, which the inspector opened as per the establishment's rules! In Birmingham, such outrageous events occurred that an official was sent to investigate in 1843. He found that four homeless men had been locked up naked under a staircase in a dark cell for eight to ten days, often without food until noon, during the coldest part of the year. A little boy had gone through all forms of punishment known to the institution; first locked in a damp, narrow storage room, then in a tiny dog cell twice— the second time for three days and nights. After that, he spent the same amount of time in an even worse dog cell, then the tramp room, a filthy, stinking place with wooden beds. During this inspection, two other shivering boys were found there, having spent three days in that condition. In the dog cell, there were often seven men, and in the tramp room, twenty men crammed together. Women were also thrown into the dog cell for refusing to go to church; one woman was locked in the tramp room for four days with unknown company while she was ill and receiving medication! Another woman was put in the insane ward for punishment, even though she was completely sane. At the Bacton workhouse in Suffolk in January 1844, a similar investigation found that a mentally challenged woman was assigned as a nurse and took care of the patients as best as she could; restless patients who tried to get up at night were tied down to save the nurses from having to stay awake. One patient was found dead, bound in this way. In the St. Pancras workhouse in London (where those cheap shirts mentioned earlier are made), an epileptic man suffocated during a seizure in his bed, with no one coming to help him; in the same place, four to six, sometimes eight, children slept in one bed. In the Shoreditch workhouse, a man was placed in a bed crawling with lice next to a patient who was seriously ill with fever. In the Bethnal Green workhouse in London, a woman who was six months pregnant was kept in the reception area with her two-year-old child from February 28 to March 20, without being admitted to the workhouse and with no bed or means to meet her basic needs. When her husband, who was admitted into the workhouse, pleaded for his wife's release from this confinement, he was punished with twenty-four hours of bread and water for his insolence. In the workhouse at Slough near Windsor, a man was dying in September 1844. His wife came to see him, arriving at midnight, but when she rushed to the workhouse, she was denied entry. She wasn’t allowed to see her husband until the next morning and then only in front of a female guard, who stayed with her during each visit, forcing her to leave after half an hour. In the Middleton workhouse in Lancashire, twelve, sometimes eighteen, paupers of both sexes slept in one room. This institution wasn't covered by the New Poor Law but was run under an old special act (Gilbert’s Act). The inspector had set up a brewery in the house for his own profit. In Stockport, on July 31, 1844, a seventy-two-year-old man was brought before a Justice of the Peace for refusing to break stones, claiming that due to his age and a stiff knee, he was unfit for work. He unsuccessfully offered to do any task suitable for his physical condition; he was sentenced to two weeks on the treadmill. In the Basford workhouse, an inspecting official found that the sheets hadn’t been changed in thirteen weeks, shirts in four weeks, and stockings in two to ten months, leaving only three out of forty-five boys with stockings, and all their shirts in tatters. The beds were infested with vermin, and the dishes were washed in slop buckets. In the west London workhouse, a porter who infected four girls with syphilis wasn’t dismissed, and another who hid a deaf and mute girl in his bed for four days and nights was also retained.

As in life, so in death.  The poor are dumped into the earth like infected cattle.  The pauper burial-ground of St. Brides, London, is a bare morass, in use as a cemetery since the time of Charles II., and filled with heaps of bones; every Wednesday the paupers are thrown into a ditch fourteen feet deep; a curate rattles through the Litany at the top of his speed; the ditch is loosely covered in, to be re-opened the next Wednesday, and filled with corpses as long as one more can be forced in.  The putrefaction thus engendered contaminates the whole neighbourhood.  In Manchester, the pauper burial-ground lies opposite to the Old Town, along the Irk: this, too, is a rough, desolate place.  About p. 292two years ago a railroad was carried through it.  If it had been a respectable cemetery, how the bourgeoisie and the clergy would have shrieked over the desecration!  But it was a pauper burial-ground, the resting-place of the outcast and superfluous, so no one concerned himself about the matter.  It was not even thought worth while to convey the partially decayed bodies to the other side of the cemetery; they were heaped up just as it happened, and piles were driven into newly-made graves, so that the water oozed out of the swampy ground, pregnant with putrefying matter, and filled the neighbourhood with the most revolting and injurious gases.  The disgusting brutality which accompanied this work I cannot describe in further detail.

As in life, so in death. The poor are buried in the ground like sick cattle. The pauper burial ground at St. Brides, London, has been a cemetery since the time of Charles II and is filled with piles of bones; every Wednesday, the paupers are tossed into a ditch fourteen feet deep. A curate rushes through the Litany as fast as he can; the ditch is loosely covered, only to be reopened the following Wednesday and filled with more corpses as long as there's room for one more. The decay from this process contaminates the entire neighborhood. In Manchester, the pauper burial ground lies across from the Old Town, alongside the Irk: this place is also rough and desolate. About two years ago, a railroad was built through it. If it had been a proper cemetery, the middle class and the clergy would have cried out in outrage over the desecration! But since it was a pauper burial ground, the final resting place of the outcasts and the unwanted, no one cared. They didn’t even find it worthwhile to move the partially decayed bodies to the other side of the cemetery; they were just piled up however they ended up, and new graves were dug on top of them, causing the water to seep out of the swampy ground, filled with decaying matter, and filling the area with the most disgusting and harmful gases. I can’t go into more detail about the horrible brutality that accompanied this work.

Can any one wonder that the poor decline to accept public relief under these conditions?  That they starve rather than enter these bastilles?  I have the reports of five cases in which persons actually starving, when the guardians refused them outdoor relief, went back to their miserable homes and died of starvation rather than enter these hells.  Thus far have the Poor Law Commissioners attained their object.  At the same time, however, the workhouses have intensified, more than any other measure of the party in power, the hatred of the working-class against the property-holders, who very generally admire the New Poor Law.

Can anyone really be surprised that the poor refuse to accept public assistance under these conditions? That they would rather starve than enter these prisons? I have reports of five cases where people, actually starving, when the guardians denied them outdoor assistance, returned to their miserable homes and died of starvation instead of going into these hellish places. This is how far the Poor Law Commissioners have achieved their goal. However, the workhouses have, more than any other action by the ruling party, fueled the resentment of the working class toward the property owners, who generally support the New Poor Law.

From Newcastle to Dover, there is but one voice among the workers—the voice of hatred against the new law.  The bourgeoisie has formulated so clearly in this law its conception of its duties towards the proletariat, that it has been appreciated even by the dullest.  So frankly, so boldly had the conception never yet been formulated, that the non-possessing class exists solely for the purpose of being exploited, and of starving when the property-holders can no longer make use of it.  Hence it is that this new Poor Law has contributed so greatly to accelerate the labour movement, and especially to spread Chartism; and, as it is carried out most extensively in the country, it facilitates the development of the proletarian movement which is arising in the agricultural districts.  Let me add that a similar law in force in Ireland since 1838, affords a similar refuge for eighty thousand paupers.  Here, too, p. 293it has made itself disliked, and would have been intensely hated if it had attained anything like the same importance as in England.  But what difference does the ill-treatment of eighty thousand proletarians make in a country in which there are two and a half millions of them?  In Scotland there are, with local exceptions, no Poor Laws.

From Newcastle to Dover, there's a unified voice among the workers—the voice of anger against the new law. The bourgeoisie has clearly outlined in this law their view of their responsibilities toward the working class, to the point that even the least perceptive can understand it. This idea has never been articulated so openly and boldly before: that the working class exists solely to be exploited and to starve when the property owners no longer have use for them. As a result, this new Poor Law has significantly accelerated the labor movement, especially in spreading Chartism; and because it is implemented most widely in rural areas, it helps develop the growing movement of the working class in the agricultural regions. I should also mention that a similar law has been in place in Ireland since 1838, providing a similar safety net for eighty thousand poor individuals. Here, too, p. 293it has become unpopular, and would be strongly disliked if it held the same significance as it does in England. But what does the mistreatment of eighty thousand workers matter in a country where there are two and a half million of them? In Scotland, with some local exceptions, there are no Poor Laws.

I hope that after this picture of the New Poor Law and its results, no word which I have said of the English bourgeoisie will be thought too stern.  In this public measure, in which it acts in corpore as the ruling power, it formulates its real intentions, reveals the animus of those smaller transactions with the proletariat, of which the blame apparently attaches to individuals.  And that this measure did not originate with any one section of the bourgeoisie, but enjoys the approval of the whole class, is proved by the Parliamentary debates of 1844.  The Liberal party had enacted the New Poor Law; the Conservative party, with its Prime Minister Peel at the head, defends it, and only alters some petty-fogging trifles in the Poor Law Amendment Bill of 1844.  A Liberal majority carried the bill, a Conservative majority approved it, and the “Noble Lords” gave their consent each time.  Thus is the expulsion of the proletariat from State and society outspoken, thus is it publicly proclaimed that proletarians are not human beings, and do not deserve to be treated as such.  Let us leave it to the proletarians of the British Empire to re-conquer their human rights. {293}

I hope that after discussing the New Poor Law and its effects, nothing I’ve said about the English bourgeoisie will seem too harsh. In this public policy, where it acts in corpore as the ruling power, it lays bare its true intentions and exposes the underlying motives behind those smaller interactions with the working class, for which blame seems to fall on individuals. That this measure did not come from just one segment of the bourgeoisie, but has the support of the entire class, is shown by the Parliamentary debates of 1844. The Liberal party introduced the New Poor Law; the Conservative party, led by Prime Minister Peel, defends it, making only minor adjustments to the Poor Law Amendment Bill of 1844. A Liberal majority passed the bill, a Conservative majority endorsed it, and the “Noble Lords” consented each time. This boldly shows the exclusion of the working class from the state and society, making it clear that proletarians are not considered human and do not deserve to be treated as such. Let’s leave it to the working class of the British Empire to reclaim their human rights. {293}

p. 294Such is the state of the British working-class as I have come to know it in the course of twenty-one months, through the medium of my own eyes, and through official and other trustworthy reports.  And when I call this condition, as I have frequently enough done in the foregoing pages, an utterly unbearable one, I am not alone in so doing.  As early as 1833, Gaskell declared that he despaired of a peaceful issue, and that a revolution can hardly fail to follow.  In 1838, Carlyle explained Chartism and the revolutionary activity of the working-men as arising out of the misery in which they live, and only wondered that they have sat so quietly eight long years at the Barmecide feast, at which they have been regaled by the Liberal bourgeoisie with empty promises.  And in 1844 he declared that the work of organising labour must be begun at once “if Europe or at least England, is long to remain inhabitable.”  And the Times, the “first journal of Europe,” said in June, 1844: “War to palaces, peace unto cabins—that is a battle-cry of terror which may come to resound throughout our country.  Let the wealthy beware!”

p. 294 This is the situation of the British working class as I've come to understand it over the past twenty-one months, through my own observations and through official and other reliable reports. When I describe this condition, as I have often done in the previous pages, as completely intolerable, I’m not alone in that view. As early as 1833, Gaskell expressed his hopelessness for a peaceful resolution, suggesting that a revolution was almost inevitable. In 1838, Carlyle interpreted Chartism and the revolutionary actions of the working men as stemming from the suffering they endure, noting only his surprise that they had put up with eight long years at the Barmecide feast, where the Liberal bourgeoisie entertained them with empty promises. By 1844, he insisted that the effort to organize labor must start immediately “if Europe, or at least England, is to remain livable for long.” The Times, the “leading newspaper in Europe,” declared in June 1844: “War against the palaces, peace for the cabins—that is a battle cry of terror that may echo throughout our nation. The wealthy should take heed!”

* * * * *

Understood! Please provide the text you would like me to modernize.

Meanwhile, let us review once more the chances of the English bourgeoisie.  In the worst case, foreign manufacture, especially that of America, may succeed in withstanding English competition, even after the repeal of the Corn Laws, inevitable in the course of a few years.  German manufacture is now making great efforts, and that of America has developed with giant strides.  America, p. 295with its inexhaustible resources, with its unmeasured coal and iron fields, with its unexampled wealth of water-power and its navigable rivers, but especially with its energetic, active population, in comparison with which the English are phlegmatic dawdlers,—America has in less than ten years created a manufacture which already competes with England in the coarser cotton goods, has excluded the English from the markets of North and South America, and holds its own in China, side by side with England.  If any country is adapted to holding a monopoly of manufacture, it is America.  Should English manufacture be thus vanquished—and in the course of the next twenty years, if the present conditions remain unchanged, this is inevitable—the majority of the proletariat must become forever superfluous, and has no other choice than to starve or to rebel.  Does the English bourgeoisie reflect upon this contingency?  On the contrary; its favourite economist, M’Culloch, teaches from his student’s desk, that a country so young as America, which is not even properly populated, cannot carry on manufacture successfully or dream of competing with an old manufacturing country like England.  It were madness in the Americans to make the attempt, for they could only lose by it; better far for them to stick to their agriculture, and when they have brought their whole territory under the plough, a time may perhaps come for carrying on manufacture with a profit.  So says the wise economist, and the whole bourgeoisie worships him, while the Americans take possession of one market after another, while a daring American speculator recently even sent a shipment of American cotton goods to England, where they were sold for re-exportation!

Meanwhile, let's take another look at the prospects for the English bourgeoisie. In the worst-case scenario, foreign manufacturing, particularly from America, might manage to withstand English competition, even after the inevitable repeal of the Corn Laws in a few years. German manufacturing is currently making significant strides, and American production has grown rapidly. America, p. 295with its endless resources, vast coal and iron reserves, abundant water power, and navigable rivers, not to mention its dynamic and hardworking population—unlike the English, who are often lethargic—has established a manufacturing base in less than ten years that already competes with England in basic cotton goods. It has pushed the English out of markets in North and South America and is doing well in China, alongside England. If any country is suited for manufacturing dominance, it’s America. If English manufacturing is defeated—something that seems unavoidable within the next twenty years if conditions don’t change—the majority of the working class will become permanently unnecessary, facing the bleak choices of starvation or rebellion. Does the English bourgeoisie consider this possibility? Quite the opposite; their favorite economist, M’Culloch, insists from his academic podium that a country as young as America, which isn’t even fully populated, can’t successfully manufacture or hope to compete with an established manufacturing powerhouse like England. It would be madness for Americans to even try because they would only incur losses; it would be far better for them to focus on agriculture, and when they have cultivated their entire territory, perhaps then they will find profitable opportunities in manufacturing. So claims the wise economist, and the entire bourgeoisie idolizes him, all while Americans continue to seize one market after another, as a bold American speculator recently even shipped American cotton goods to England, where they were sold for re-export!

But assuming that England retained the monopoly of manufactures, that its factories perpetually multiply, what must be the result?  The commercial crises would continue, and grow more violent, more terrible, with the extension of industry and the multiplication of the proletariat.  The proletariat would increase in geometrical proportion, in consequence of the progressive ruin of the lower middle-class and the giant strides with which capital is concentrating itself in the hands of the few; and the proletariat p. 296would soon embrace the whole nation, with the exception of a few millionaires.  But in this development there comes a stage at which the proletariat perceives how easily the existing power may be overthrown, and then follows a revolution.

But if England kept its monopoly on manufacturing and its factories kept multiplying, what would happen? The commercial crises would continue and become more intense and more severe, with the expansion of industry and the growing number of the working class. The working class would increase rapidly due to the ongoing destruction of the lower middle class and the rapid concentration of wealth in the hands of a few; and soon, the working class would encompass the whole nation, except for a few millionaires. However, in this development, there comes a point when the working class realizes how easily the existing power can be overthrown, leading to a revolution.

Neither of these supposed conditions may, however, be expected to arise.  The commercial crises, the mightiest levers for all independent development of the proletariat, will probably shorten the process, acting in concert with foreign competition and the deepening ruin of the lower middle-class.  I think the people will not endure more than one more crisis.  The next one, in 1846 or 1847, will probably bring with it the repeal of the Corn Laws {296} and the enactment of the Charter.  What revolutionary movements the Charter may give rise to remains to be seen.  But, by the time of the next following crisis, which, according to the analogy of its predecessors, must break out in 1852 or 1853, unless delayed perhaps by the repeal of the Corn Laws or hastened by other influences, such as foreign competition—by the time this crisis arrives, the English people will have had enough of being plundered by the capitalists and left to starve when the capitalists no longer require their services.  If, up to that time, the English bourgeoisie does not pause to reflect—and to all appearance it certainly will not do so—a revolution will follow with which none hitherto known can be compared.  The proletarians, driven to despair, will seize the torch which Stephens has preached to them; the vengeance of the people will come down with a wrath of which the rage of 1793 gives no true idea.  The war of the poor against the rich will be the bloodiest ever waged.  Even the union of a part of the bourgeoisie with the proletariat, even a general reform of the bourgeoisie, would not help matters.  Besides, the change of heart of the bourgeoisie could only go as far as a lukewarm juste-milieu; the more determined, uniting with the workers, would only form a new Gironde, and succumb in the course of the mighty development.  The prejudices of a whole class cannot be laid aside like an old coat: least of all, those of the stable, narrow, selfish English bourgeoisie.  These are all inferences which may be drawn with p. 297the greatest certainty: conclusions, the premises for which are undeniable facts, partly of historical development, partly facts inherent in human nature.  Prophecy is nowhere so easy as in England, where all the component elements of society are clearly defined and sharply separated.  The revolution must come; it is already too late to bring about a peaceful solution; but it can be made more gentle than that prophesied in the foregoing pages.  This depends, however, more upon the development of the proletariat than upon that of the bourgeoisie.  In proportion, as the proletariat absorbs socialistic and communistic elements, will the revolution diminish in bloodshed, revenge, and savagery.  Communism stands, in principle, above the breach between bourgeoisie and proletariat, recognises only its historic significance for the present, but not its justification for the future: wishes, indeed, to bridge over this chasm, to do away with all class antagonisms.  Hence it recognises as justified, so long as the struggle exists, the exasperation of the proletariat towards its oppressors as a necessity, as the most important lever for a labour movement just beginning; but it goes beyond this exasperation, because Communism is a question of humanity and not of the workers alone.  Besides, it does not occur to any Communist to wish to revenge himself upon individuals, or to believe that, in general, the single bourgeois can act otherwise, under existing circumstances, than he does act.  English Socialism, i.e. Communism, rests directly upon the irresponsibility of the individual.  Thus the more the English workers absorb communistic ideas, the more superfluous becomes their present bitterness, which, should it continue so violent as at present, could accomplish nothing; and the more their action against the bourgeoisie will lose its savage cruelty.  If, indeed, it were possible to make the whole proletariat communistic before the war breaks out, the end would be very peaceful; but that is no longer possible, the time has gone by.  Meanwhile, I think that before the outbreak of open, declared war of the poor against the rich, there will be enough intelligent comprehension of the social question among the proletariat, to enable the communistic party, with the help of events, to conquer p. 298the brutal element of the revolution and prevent a “Ninth Thermidor.”  In any case, the experience of the French will not have been undergone in vain, and most of the Chartist leaders are, moreover, already Communists.  And as Communism stands above the strife between bourgeoisie and proletariat, it will be easier for the better elements of the bourgeoisie (which are, however, deplorably few, and can look for recruits only among the rising generation) to unite with it than with purely proletarian Chartism.

Neither of these supposed conditions should be expected to occur. The economic crises, the strongest catalysts for the independent development of the working class, will likely shorten the process, working together with foreign competition and the worsening situation of the lower middle class. I believe the public won’t tolerate more than one more crisis. The next one, in 1846 or 1847, will likely lead to the repeal of the Corn Laws {296} and the enactment of the Charter. What revolutionary movements the Charter may inspire remains to be seen. But by the time the next crisis hits, which, based on past patterns, is expected to happen in 1852 or 1853—unless delayed by the repeal of the Corn Laws or sped up by other factors like foreign competition—the English people will have had enough of being exploited by capitalists and left to suffer when their services are no longer needed. If, by then, the English bourgeoisie doesn't take a moment to reflect—and it seems unlikely that they will—a revolution will follow that will be unlike anything we’ve seen before. The working class, pushed to despair, will embrace the ideas that Stephens has preached to them; the people's anger will come down with a fury far beyond what we saw in 1793. The battle of the poor against the rich will be the bloodiest ever fought. Even a partnership between a portion of the bourgeoisie and the working class, or a general reform of the bourgeoisie, wouldn't change anything. Furthermore, any change of heart from the bourgeoisie would likely be mild; those who are more determined, teaming up with the workers, would only create a new Gironde and eventually be overwhelmed in the course of the significant developments. The biases of an entire class cannot be simply cast aside like an old coat, least of all those of the stable, narrow-minded, and selfish English bourgeoisie. These are all conclusions that can be drawn with the highest certainty: deductions based on undeniable facts, partly historical developments and partly intrinsic aspects of human nature. Prophecy is most straightforward in England, where all the components of society are clearly defined and distinctly separated. The revolution must happen; it’s already too late for a peaceful resolution; but it can be gentler than what has been predicted earlier. This, however, depends more on the development of the working class than that of the bourgeoisie. As the working class absorbs socialist and communist ideas, the revolution will lessen in terms of bloodshed, revenge, and brutality. Communism stands, in essence, above the divide between the bourgeoisie and the proletariat, recognizing only its historical relevance for now, not its justification for the future: it aims to close this gap and eliminate all class conflicts. Thus, it acknowledges the anger of the working class towards its oppressors as justified, as it is a necessary lever for a labor movement that is just getting started; however, it extends beyond this anger because Communism is a matter of humanity, not merely that of workers. Additionally, no Communist thinks to seek revenge on individuals or believes that an individual bourgeois can act differently under the current circumstances than they already do. English Socialism, i.e., Communism, is directly based on individual irresponsibility. So, the more English workers adopt communist ideas, the less relevant their current bitterness becomes, which, if it remains as intense as it is now, will achieve nothing; and the more their actions against the bourgeoisie will shed their cruel brutality. If it were possible to make the entire working class communist before the war starts, the outcome would be very peaceful; but that’s no longer a possibility, the time for that has passed. Meanwhile, I believe that before the open, declared war of the poor against the rich begins, there will be enough understanding of the social issue among the working class for the communist party, with the aid of events, to manage the brutal elements of the revolution and prevent a “Ninth Thermidor.” In any case, the experience of the French will not have been in vain, and most of the Chartist leaders are already Communists. And since Communism transcends the conflict between the bourgeoisie and the proletariat, it will be easier for the better elements of the bourgeoisie (which are unfortunately very few and can only recruit from the rising generation) to ally with it than with purely proletarian Chartism.

If these conclusions have not been sufficiently established in the course of the present work, there may be other opportunities for demonstrating that they are necessary consequences of the historical development of England.  But this I maintain, the war of the poor against the rich now carried on in detail and indirectly will become direct and universal.  It is too late for a peaceful solution.  The classes are divided more and more sharply, the spirit of resistance penetrates the workers, the bitterness intensifies, the guerilla skirmishes become concentrated in more important battles, and soon a slight impulse will suffice to set the avalanche in motion.  Then, indeed, will the war-cry resound through the land: “War to the palaces, peace to the cottages!”—but then it will be too late for the rich to beware.

If these conclusions have not been clearly established in this work, there may be other chances to show that they are necessary outcomes of England's historical development. But I argue that the struggle of the poor against the rich, which is currently happening in detail and indirectly, will soon become direct and widespread. It's too late for a peaceful resolution. The classes are growing increasingly divided, the spirit of resistance is spreading among the workers, bitterness is escalating, and small conflicts will coalesce into larger battles. Soon, just a small trigger will be enough to start the avalanche. Then, the cry will echo across the land: “War to the palaces, peace to the cottages!”—but by then, it will be too late for the rich to take precautions.

p. 299TRANSLATORS NOTE.

Being unable at this late day to obtain the original English, the translator has been compelled to re-translate from the German the passages quoted in the text from the following sources:—G. Alston, preacher of St. Philip’s, Bethnal Green.—D. W. P. Alison, F.R.S.E., “Observations on the Management of the Poor in Scotland,” 1840.—The Artisan, 1842, October number.—J. C. Symonds, “Arts and Artisans at Home and Abroad,” Edin., 1839.—Report of the Town Council of Leeds, published in Statistical Journal, vol. ii., p. 404.—Nassau W. Senior, “Letters on the Factory Act to the Rt. Hon. the President of the Board of Trade” (Chas. Poulett Thomson, Esq.), London, 1837.—Report of the Children’s Employment Commission.—Mr. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, “On the Present Condition of the Labouring Poor in Manchester,” 3rd Ed., 1841.—Factories’ Inquiries Commission’s Report.—E. G. Wakefield, M. P., “Swing Unmasked; or, The Cause of Rural Incendiarism,” London, 1831.—A Correspondent of the Morning Chronicle.—Anonymous pamphlet on “The State of Ireland,” London, 1807; 2nd Ed., 1821.—Report of the Poor Law Commissioners: Extracts from Information received by the Poor Law Commissioners.  Published by Authority, London, 1833.

Being unable to get the original English version at this late date, the translator has had to re-translate from the German the sections quoted in the text from the following sources:—G. Alston, preacher of St. Philip’s, Bethnal Green.—D. W. P. Alison, F.R.S.E., “Observations on the Management of the Poor in Scotland,” 1840.—The Artisan, October 1842 issue.—J. C. Symonds, “Arts and Artisans at Home and Abroad,” Edinburgh, 1839.—Report of the Town Council of Leeds, published in the Statistical Journal, vol. ii., p. 404.—Nassau W. Senior, “Letters on the Factory Act to the Rt. Hon. the President of the Board of Trade” (Chas. Poulett Thomson, Esq.), London, 1837.—Report of the Children’s Employment Commission.—Mr. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, “On the Present Condition of the Labouring Poor in Manchester,” 3rd Ed., 1841.—Factories’ Inquiries Commission’s Report.—E. G. Wakefield, M. P., “Swing Unmasked; or, The Cause of Rural Incendiarism,” London, 1831.—A Correspondent of the Morning Chronicle.—Anonymous pamphlet on “The State of Ireland,” London, 1807; 2nd Ed., 1821.—Report of the Poor Law Commissioners: Extracts from Information received by the Poor Law Commissioners. Published by Authority, London, 1833.

p. 300INDEX

Accidents, 109, 143, 150, 164, 165, 294.

Accidents, 109, 143, 150, 164, 165, 294.

Adulteration, 67, et seq.

Adulteration, 67, et seq.

Apprentices, 169, 191, 197, et seq. 209.

Apprentices, 169, 191, 197, and following. 209.

Charter, 225, et seq. 280, 296.

Charter, 225, and following. 280, 296.

Chartism, xiv., xix., 65, 123, 228, et seq. 275, 292.

Chartism, xiv., xix., 65, 123, 228, and following. 275, 292.

Chartists, 135, 176, 199, 231, et seq. 253, 258.

Chartists, 135, 176, 199, 231, et seq. 253, 258.

Corn Laws, 113, 261, 268, 279, 280, 294.
   League, 122, 231, 268, 280.
   Repeal of, vi., 17, 231, 232, 275.

Corn Laws, 113, 261, 268, 279, 280, 294.
League, 122, 231, 268, 280.
Repeal of, vi., 17, 231, 232, 275.

Cottage System, v., 182, 183, 251, 252, 256.

Cottage System, v., 182, 183, 251, 252, 256.

Crime—Form of Rebellion, 266, et seq. 274.
   Increase of, 130, et seq.
   Juvenile, 200, 204.
   Result of Overcrowding, 65, 120, 121.

Crime—Form of Rebellion, 266, et seq. 274.
Increase of, 130, et seq.
Juvenile, 200, 204.
Result of Overcrowding, 65, 120, 121.

Diseases, Engendered by Dwellings, 201, 202.
   Filth, 35, 40, 41, 64, 96, 97.
   Occupation, 162-3, 177-8, 191-2, 206.
   Overwork, 153, 155, et seq. 171, 245-6.
   Want, 30, 73, 88, 108, 199, 210-11.

Diseases Caused by Housing, 201, 202.
Filth, 35, 40, 41, 64, 96, 97.
Occupation, 162-3, 177-8, 191-2, 206.
Overwork, 153, 155, and others. 171, 245-6.
Need, 30, 73, 88, 108, 199, 210-11.

Education—Means of, 108, et seq. 195, 200, 201, 202, 238, 254.
   Want of, 90, 91, 126, 129, 148, 149.

Education—Means of, 108, et seq. 195, 200, 201, 202, 238, 254.
Want of, 90, 91, 126, 129, 148, 149.

Employment of Children,
   In Agriculture, 262, 263.
   In Factories, 141, et seq. 167, 171, et seq. 193.
   In House Industry, 191, et seq.
   In Mines, 241, 244, et seq.
   In the Night, 191, 207.

Employment of Children,
In Agriculture, 262, 263.
In Factories, 141, et seq. 167, 171, et seq. 193.
In House Industry, 191, et seq.
In Mines, 241, 244, et seq.
At Night, 191, 207.

Employment of Women,
   In Agriculture, 263.
   In Factories, 141, et seq. 160, et seq. 175, 192.
   In Mines, 241, 242, 248, 249.
   In Sewing, 209, et seq.

Employment of Women,
In Agriculture, 263.
In Factories, 141, et seq. 160, et seq. 175, 192.
In Mines, 241, 242, 248, 249.
In Sewing, 209, et seq.

Epidemics, vi., 37, 41, 61, 64, 98, 100, 110, 158.

Epidemics, vi., 37, 41, 61, 64, 98, 100, 110, 158.

Factory Acts, x., xi., 17, 134, 151, 168, 116, 176, 188.

Factory Acts, x., xi., 17, 134, 151, 168, 116, 176, 188.

Food—Adulteration of, 98.
   Insufficiency of, 32, 74, 101, 102, 193, 208.
   Quality of, 68, 71, 91, 140, 201.

Food—Adulteration of, 98.
Insufficiency of, 32, 74, 101, 102, 193, 208.
Quality of, 68, 71, 91, 140, 201.

Free Trade, vii., viii., et seq. 183, 234, 268.

Free Trade, vii., viii., et seq. 183, 234, 268.

Intemperance, 102, 127, 128.

Intemperance, 102, 127, 128.

Inventions.  1, 4, et seq. 42, 134, et seq. 223, 224.

Inventions. 1, 4, and more. 42, 134, and more. 223, 224.

Law—A Bourgeois Institution, 113, 130, 173, 176, 227, 281, 282, 288.
   New Poor, 174, 175, 230, 235, 262, et seq. 269, 284, et seq.
   Old Poor, 176, 284, 285.
   Of Wages, xi., 77, et seq. 219.

Law—A Middle-Class Institution, 113, 130, 173, 176, 227, 281, 282, 288.
New Poor, 174, 175, 230, 235, 262, et seq. 269, 284, et seq.
Old Poor, 176, 284, 285.
Of Wages, xi., 77, et seq. 219.

Mortality, 100, 101, 104, et seq. 143, 150, 243.

Mortality, 100, 101, 104, et seq. 143, 150, 243.

Parliament, 17, 96, 111, 214, 228, 251, 283, 287.

Parliament, 17, 96, 111, 214, 228, 251, 283, 287.

Philanthropy, 27, 28, 88, 173, 212, 278.

Philanthropy, 27, 28, 88, 173, 212, 278.

Police, 132, 221, 225, 226, 281, 282.

Police, 132, 221, 225, 226, 281, 282.

Reform Bill, ix., 17, 214, 229, 285.

Reform Bill, ix., 17, 214, 229, 285.

Reserve Army, 85, 90.

Reserve Army, 85, 90.

Schools—Day, 110, et seq. 173, 200, 207, 250.
   Night, 110, 250.
   Sunday, 111, 202, 250.

Schools—Day, 110, et seq. 173, 200, 207, 250.
Night, 110, 250.
Sunday, 111, 202, 250.

Socialism, vi., vii., xii., 122, 236, et seq. 275, 297.

Socialism, vi., vii., xii., 122, 236, et seq. 275, 297.

Starvation, 25, 29, 73, 76, 88, 117, 167, 189, 285.

Starvation, 25, 29, 73, 76, 88, 117, 167, 189, 285.

Strikes, ix., xiv., xv., 168, 215, 218, 223, 224, 231, 254, 256, 257.

Strikes, ix., xiv., xv., 168, 215, 218, 223, 224, 231, 254, 256, 257.

Suicide, 115, 116.

Suicide, 115, 116.

Surplus Population, 81, et seq. 139, 263, 266, 280, 287.

Surplus Population, 81, et seq. 139, 263, 266, 280, 287.

Ten Hours’ Bill, vii., 142, 172, 174, et seq. 230, 235, 284.

Ten Hours’ Bill, vii., 142, 172, 174, et seq. 230, 235, 284.

Truck System, vii., viii., 182-3, 185, 252, 253.

Truck System, vii., viii., 182-3, 185, 252, 253.

Ventilation of Dwellings, 36.
   Mines, 249.
   Towns, 27, 28, 36, 53, et seq. 63, 64, 96, et seq.
   Workrooms, 155, 156, 158.

Ventilation of Homes, 36.
   Mines, 249.
   Cities, 27, 28, 36, 53, et seq. 63, 64, 96, et seq.
   Workspaces, 155, 156, 158.

Workhouses, 287, et seq.

Workhouses, 287, and following.

Footnotes.

{7}  According to Porter’s Progress of the Nation, London, 1836, vol. i., 1838, vol. ii., 1843, vol. iii. (official data), and other sources chiefly official.

{7} According to Porter’s Progress of the Nation, London, 1836, vol. i., 1838, vol. ii., 1843, vol. iii. (official data), and other sources mainly from official records.

{20}  Compare on this point my “Outlines for a Critique of Political Economy” in the Deutsch-Französische Jahrbücher.

{20} Compare my “Outlines for a Critique of Political Economy” in the Deutsch-Französische Jahrbücher regarding this.

{23}  This applies to the time of sailing vessels.  The Thames now is a dreary collection of ugly steamers.—F. E.

{23} This applies to the era of sailing ships. The Thames now is a depressing mix of unattractive steamboats.—F. E.

{32}  Times, Oct. 12th, 1843.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Times, Oct. 12, 1843.

{33}  Quoted by Dr. W. P. Alison, F.R.S.E, Fellow and late President of the Royal College of Physicians, etc. etc.  “Observations on the Management of the Poor in Scotland and its Effects on the Health of Great Towns.”  Edinburgh, 1840.  The author is a religious Tory, brother of the historian, Archibald Alison.

{33} Quoted by Dr. W. P. Alison, F.R.S.E, Fellow and former President of the Royal College of Physicians, and others. “Observations on the Management of the Poor in Scotland and its Effects on the Health of Great Towns.” Edinburgh, 1840. The author is a religious Tory and the brother of the historian, Archibald Alison.

{35a}  “Report to the Home Secretary from the Poor-Law Commissioners on an Inquiry into the Sanitary Condition of the Labouring Classes in Great Britain with Appendix.”  Presented to both Houses of Parliament in July 1842, 3 vols.  Folio.

{35a} “Report to the Home Secretary from the Poor-Law Commissioners on an Inquiry into the Sanitary Condition of the Labouring Classes in Great Britain with Appendix.” Presented to both Houses of Parliament in July 1842, 3 vols. Folio.

{35b}  The Artisan, October, 1842.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Artisan, October 1842.

{38}  “Arts and Artisan at Home and Abroad,” by J. C. Symonds, Edinburgh, 1839.  The author, as it seems, himself a Scotchman, is a Liberal, and consequently fanatically opposed to every independent movement of working-men.  The passages here cited are to be found p. 116 et seq.

{38} “Arts and Artisan at Home and Abroad,” by J. C. Symonds, Edinburgh, 1839. The author, who appears to be a Scotsman, is a Liberal and, as a result, is strongly opposed to any independent movements by working men. The passages cited here can be found on p. 116 et seq.

{40a}  It must be borne in mind that these cellars are not mere storing-rooms for rubbish, but dwellings of human beings.

{40a} It's important to remember that these cellars aren't just storage spaces for junk; they're homes for real people.

{40b}  Compare Report of the Town Council in the Statistical Journal, vol. 2, p. 404.

{40b}  See the Report of the Town Council in the Statistical Journal, vol. 2, p. 404.

{49}  “The Moral and Physical Condition of the Working-Classes Employed in the Cotton Manufacture in Manchester.”  By James Ph. Kay, M.D.  2nd Ed. 1832.

{49} “The Moral and Physical Condition of the Working-Class in the Cotton Industry in Manchester.” By James Ph. Kay, M.D. 2nd Ed. 1832.

Dr. Kay confuses the working-class in general with the factory workers, otherwise an excellent pamphlet.

Dr. Kay mistakenly equates the working class as a whole with factory workers, otherwise it's an excellent pamphlet.

{55}  And yet an English Liberal wiseacre asserts, in the Report of the Children’s Employment Commission, that these courts are the masterpiece of municipal architecture, because, like a multitude of little parks, they improve ventilation, the circulation of air!  Certainly, if each court had two or four broad open entrances facing each other, through which the air could pour; but they never have two, rarely one, and usually only a narrow covered passage.

{55} And yet, a self-proclaimed expert from the English Liberal side claims in the Report of the Children’s Employment Commission that these courts are a prime example of municipal architecture because, like many small parks, they enhance ventilation and air circulation! Sure, if each court had two or four wide open entrances facing each other to let the air flow in; but they rarely have two, seldom one, and usually only a narrow covered passage.

{63}  Nassau W. Senior.  “Letters on the Factory Act to the Rt. Hon. the President of the Board of Trade” (Chas. Poulett Thompson, Esq.), London, 1837, p. 24.

{63}  Nassau W. Senior.  “Letters on the Factory Act to the Rt. Hon. the President of the Board of Trade” (Chas. Poulett Thompson, Esq.), London, 1837, p. 24.

{64}  Kay, loc. cit., p. 32.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kay, same source, p. 32.

{65}  P. Gaskell.  “The Manufacturing Population of England: its Moral, Social and Physical Condition, and the Changes which have arisen from the Use of Steam Machinery; with an Examination of Infant Labour.”  “Fiat Justitia,” 1833.—Depicting chiefly the state of the working-class in Lancashire.  The author is a Liberal, but wrote at a time when it was not a feature of Liberalism to chant the happiness of the workers.  He is therefore unprejudiced, and can afford to have eyes for the evils of the present state of things, and especially for the factory system.  On the other hand, he wrote before the Factories Enquiry Commission, and adopts from untrustworthy sources many assertions afterwards refuted by the Report of the Commission.  This work, although on the whole a valuable one, can therefore only be used with discretion, especially as the author, like Kay, confuses the whole working-class with the mill hands.  The history of the development of the proletariat contained in the introduction to the present work, is chiefly taken from this work of Gaskell’s.

{65} P. Gaskell. “The Manufacturing Population of England: its Moral, Social and Physical Condition, and the Changes that have come from the Use of Steam Machinery; with an Examination of Child Labor.” “Fiat Justitia,” 1833.—Focusing mainly on the situation of the working class in Lancashire. The author has a Liberal viewpoint but wrote at a time when it was not typical for Liberals to celebrate the happiness of workers. Therefore, he offers an unbiased perspective and is able to recognize the issues in the current circumstances, especially regarding the factory system. However, he wrote before the Factories Inquiry Commission and includes many claims from unreliable sources that were later disproven by the Commission's Report. This work, while generally valuable, should be approached cautiously, particularly since the author, like Kay, conflates the entire working class with those employed in the mills. The history of the development of the proletariat found in the introduction of this work is mainly derived from Gaskell’s book.

{67}  Thomas Carlyle.  “Chartism,” London, 1840, p. 28.

{67} Thomas Carlyle. “Chartism,” London, 1840, p. 28.

{80}  Adam Smith.  “Wealth of Nations” I., McCulloch’s edition in one volume, sect. 8, p. 36: “The wear and tear of a slave, it has been said, is at the expense of his master, but that of a free servant is at his own expense.  The wear and tear of the latter, however, is, in reality, as much at the expense of his master as that of the former.  The wages paid to journeymen and servants of every kind, must be such as may enable them, one with another, to continue the race of journeymen and servants, according as the increasing, diminishing, or stationary demand of the society may happen to require.  But though the wear and tear of a free servant be equally at the expense of his master, it generally costs him much less than that of a slave.  The fund for replacing or repairing, if I may say so, the wear and tear of the slave, is commonly managed by a negligent master or careless overseer.”

{80} Adam Smith. “Wealth of Nations” I., McCulloch’s edition in one volume, sect. 8, p. 36: “The wear and tear of a slave is covered by his master, while that of a free worker is his own responsibility. However, the wear and tear of the free worker ultimately costs the master just as much as that of the slave. The wages given to apprentices and workers need to be enough for them to keep the next generation of workers going, depending on whether society's demand is increasing, decreasing, or staying the same. But even though the wear and tear of a free worker is equally the master's cost, it usually ends up costing him much less than that of a slave. The resources for replacing or repairing, if I may put it that way, the wear and tear of the slave are often managed by a careless master or a negligent overseer.”

{87}  And it came in 1847.

It occurred in 1847.

{90a}  Archibald Alison.  “Principles of Population and their Connection with Human Happiness,” two vols., 1840.  This Alison is the historian of the French Revolution, and, like his brother, Dr. W. P. Alison, a religious Tory.

{90a}  Archibald Alison. “Principles of Population and their Connection with Human Happiness,” two vols., 1840. This Alison is the historian of the French Revolution, and, like his brother, Dr. W. P. Alison, he is a religious Tory.

{90b}  “Chartism,” pp. 28, 31, etc.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ "Chartism," pp. 28, 31, etc.

{95}  When as here and elsewhere I speak of society as a responsible whole, having rights and duties, I mean, of course, the ruling power of society, the class which at present holds social and political control, and bears, therefore, the responsibility for the condition of those to whom it grants no share in such control.  This ruling class in England, as in all other civilised countries, is the bourgeoisie.  But that this society, and especially the bourgeoisie, is charged with the duty of protecting every member of society, at least, in his life, to see to it, for example, that no one starves, I need not now prove to my German readers.  If I were writing for the English bourgeoisie, the case would be different.  (And so it is now in Germany.  Our German capitalists are fully up to the English level, in this respect at least, in the year of grace, 1886.)

{95} When I refer to society as a responsible whole with rights and duties, I'm talking about the ruling power of society, the class that currently holds social and political control, and therefore carries the responsibility for the wellbeing of those it excludes from that control. This ruling class in England, like in all other civilized countries, is the bourgeoisie. However, I shouldn't need to convince my German readers that this society, especially the bourgeoisie, has the obligation to protect every member of society, at least in terms of ensuring basic survival, like making sure no one goes hungry. If I were addressing the English bourgeoisie, that would be a different story. (And the same goes for Germany now. Our German capitalists have reached the English level in this regard, at least, by the year 1886.)

{100a}  Dr. Alison.  “Management of the Poor in Scotland.”

{100a}  Dr. Alison. “How to Handle Poverty in Scotland.”

{100b}  Alison.  “Principles of Population,” vol. ii.

{100b} Alison. “Principles of Population,” vol. ii.

{100c}  Dr. Alison in an article read before the British Association for the Advancement of Science.  October, 1844, in York.

{100c} Dr. Alison presented an article at the British Association for the Advancement of Science in October 1844, held in York.

{104}  “Manufacturing Population,” ch 8.

“Manufacturing Population,” ch 8.

{105a}  Report of Commission of Inquiry into the Employment of Children and Young Persons in Mines and Collieries and in the Trades and Manufactures in which numbers of them work together, not being included under the terms of the Factories’ Regulation Act.  First and Second Reports, Grainger’s Report.  Second Report usually cited as “Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.”  First Report, 1841; Second Report, 1843.

{105a}  Report of the Commission of Inquiry into the Employment of Children and Young People in Mines and Collieries and in the Trades and Industries where many of them work together, not covered by the Factories’ Regulation Act. First and Second Reports, Grainger’s Report. The Second Report is commonly referred to as the “Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.” First Report, 1841; Second Report, 1843.

{105b}  Fifth Annual Report of the Reg. Gen. of Births, Deaths, and Marriages.

{105b}  Fifth Annual Report of the Registrar General of Births, Deaths, and Marriages.

{106}  Dr. Cowen.  “Vital Statistics of Glasgow.”

{106} Dr. Cowen. “Vital Statistics of Glasgow.”

{107}  Report of Commission of Inquiry into the State of Large Towns and Populous Districts.  First Report, 1844.  Appendix.

{107}  Report of the Commission of Inquiry into the Condition of Large Towns and Populous Districts. First Report, 1844. Appendix.

{108a}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Reports, 3rd vol.  Report of Dr. Hawkins on Lancashire, in which Dr. Robertson is cited—the “Chief Authority for Statistics in Manchester.”

{108a} Factory Inquiry Commission Reports, Vol. 3 Dr. Hawkins' report on Lancashire, where Dr. Robertson is mentioned as the “Top Expert for Statistics in Manchester.”

{108b}  Quoted by Dr. Wade from the Report of the Parliamentary Factories’ Commission of 1832, in his “History of the Middle and Working-Classes.”  London, 1835, 3rd ed.

{108b} Quoted by Dr. Wade from the Report of the Parliamentary Factories’ Commission of 1832, in his “History of the Middle and Working-Classes.” London, 1835, 3rd ed.

{112a}  Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.  App. Part II. Q. 18, No. 216, 217, 226, 233, etc.  Horne.

{112a}  Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.  App. Part II. Q. 18, No. 216, 217, 226, 233, etc.  Horne.

{112b}  Ibid. evidence, p. 9, 39; 133.

{112b}  Ibid. evidence, p. 9, 39; 133.

{113a}  Ibid. p. 9, 36; 146.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 9, 36; 146.

{113b}  Ibid. p. 34; 158.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. p. 34; 158.

{113c}  Symonds’ Rep.  App. Part I., pp. E, 22, et seq.

{113c} Symonds’ Rep. App. Part I., pp. E, 22, et seq.

{115a}  “Arts and Artisans.”

“Arts and Crafts.”

{115b}  “Principles of Population,” vol. ii. pp. 136, 197.

{115b} “Principles of Population,” vol. ii. pp. 136, 197.

{116}   We shall see later how the rebellion of the working-class against the bourgeoisie in England is legalised by the right of coalition.

{116}   We will see later how the working-class rebellion against the bourgeoisie in England is legitimized by the right to unite.

{117a}  “Chartism,” p. 34, et seq.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  “Chartism,” p. 34, et seq.

{117b}  Ibid., p. 40.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., p. 40.

{119}  Shall I call bourgeois witnesses to bear testimony from me here, too?  I select one only, whom every one may read, namely, Adam Smith.  “Wealth of Nations” (McCulloch’s four volume edition), vol. iii., book 5, chap. 8, p. 297.

{119} Should I bring in middle-class witnesses to testify for me here as well? I’ll choose just one, someone everyone can check out, and that’s Adam Smith. “Wealth of Nations” (McCulloch’s four volume edition), vol. iii., book 5, chap. 8, p. 297.

{120}  “Principles of Population,” vol. ii., p. 76, et seq. p. 82, p. 135.

{120}  “Principles of Population,” vol. ii., p. 76, and following. p. 82, p. 135.

{122}  “Philosophy of Manufactures,” London, 1835, p. 406, et seq.  We shall have occasion to refer further to this reputable work.

{122} “Philosophy of Manufactures,” London, 1835, p. 406, et seq. We will refer to this respected work again.

{125}  “On the Present Condition of the Labouring Poor in Manchester,” etc.  By the Rev. Rd. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, 3d Ed., London and Manchester, 1841, Pamphlet.

{125} “On the Current Situation of the Working Poor in Manchester,” etc. By Rev. Rd. Parkinson, Canon of Manchester, 3rd Ed., London and Manchester, 1841, Pamphlet.

{131a}  “Manufacturing Population of England,” chap. 10.

{131a} “Manufacturing Population of England,” chapter 10.

{131b}  The total of population, about fifteen millions, divided by the number of convicted criminals (22,733).

{131b} The total population, around fifteen million, divided by the number of convicted criminals (22,733).

{134a}  “The Cotton Manufacture of Great Britain,” by Dr. A. Ure, 1836.

{134a} “The Cotton Manufacture of Great Britain,” by Dr. A. Ure, 1836.

{134b}  “History of the Cotton Manufacture of Great Britain,” by E. Baines, Esq.

{134b} “History of the Cotton Manufacture of Great Britain,” by E. Baines, Esq.

{135}  “Stubborn Facts from the Factories by a Manchester Operative.”  Published and dedicated to the working-classes, by Wm. Rashleigh, M.P., London, Ollivier, 1844, p. 28, et seq.

{135}  “Stubborn Facts from the Factories by a Manchester Worker.”  Published and dedicated to the working class by Wm. Rashleigh, M.P., London, Ollivier, 1844, p. 28, et seq.

{136}  Compare Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report.

{136}  Check out the Factory Inquiry Commission's Report.

{138}  L. Symonds, in “Arts and Artisans.”

{138} L. Symonds, in “Arts and Artisans.”

{140}  See Dr. Ure in the “Philosophy of Manufacture.”

{140} Check out Dr. Ure in the “Philosophy of Manufacture.”

{141}  Report of Factory Inspector, L. Homer, October, 1844: “The state of things in the matter of wages is greatly perverted in certain branches of cotton manufacture in Lancashire; there are hundreds of young men, between twenty and thirty, employed as piecers and otherwise, who do not get more than 8 or 9 shillings a week, while children under thirteen years, working under the same roof, earn 5 shillings, and young girls, from sixteen to twenty years, 10-12 shillings per week.”

{141}  Report of Factory Inspector, L. Homer, October, 1844: “The situation regarding wages in some areas of cotton manufacturing in Lancashire is really messed up; there are hundreds of young men, aged twenty to thirty, working as piecers and in other roles, who only earn 8 or 9 shillings a week, while children under thirteen, working in the same building, make 5 shillings, and young women, from sixteen to twenty years old, earn 10 to 12 shillings per week.”

{143a}  Report of Factories’ Inquiry Commission.  Testimony of Dr. Hawkins, p. 3.

{143a}  Report of Factories’ Inquiry Commission.  Testimony of Dr. Hawkins, p. 3.

{143b}  In 1843, among the accidents brought to the Infirmary in Manchester, one hundred and eighty-nine were from burning.

{143b} In 1843, at the Infirmary in Manchester, one hundred eighty-nine of the accidents treated were due to burns.

{144}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, Power’s Report on Leeds: passim Tufnell Report on Manchester, p. 17. etc.

{144} Factories Inquiry Commission’s Report, Power’s Report on Leeds: throughout Tufnell Report on Manchester, p. 17. etc.

{145}  This letter is re-translated from the German, no attempt being made to re-produce either the spelling or the original Yorkshire dialect.

{145} This letter has been re-translated from German, without trying to recreate the spelling or the original Yorkshire dialect.

{147a}  How numerous married women are in the factories is seen from information furnished by a manufacturer: In 412 factories in Lancashire, 10,721 of them were employed; of the husbands of these women, but 5,314 were also employed in the factories, 3,927 were otherwise employed, 821 were unemployed, and information was wanting as to 659; or two, if not three men for each factory, are supported by the work of their wives.

{147a}  The number of married women working in factories can be seen from data provided by a manufacturer: In 412 factories in Lancashire, 10,721 of them were employed. Among their husbands, only 5,314 also worked in the factories, 3,927 were employed elsewhere, 821 were unemployed, and there was no information about 659; which means that for every factory, there are typically two or even three men who are supported by the earnings of their wives.

{147b}  House of Commons, March 15th, 1844.

{147b}  House of Commons, March 15, 1844.

{147c}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, p. 4.

{147c} Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, p. 4.

{148a}  For further examples and information compare Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report.  Cowell Evidence, pp. 37, 38, 39, 72, 77, 59; Tufnell Evidence, pp. 9, 15, 45, 54, etc.

{148a} For more examples and information, check out the Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report. Cowell Evidence, pp. 37, 38, 39, 72, 77, 59; Tufnell Evidence, pp. 9, 15, 45, 54, etc.

{148b}  Cowell Evidence, pp. 35, 37, and elsewhere.

{148b}  Cowell Evidence, pp. 35, 37, and other places.

{148c}  Power Evidence, p. 8.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  Power Evidence, p. 8.

{149a}  Cowell Evidence, p. 57

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Cowell Evidence, p. 57

{149b}  Cowell Evidence, p. 82.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Cowell Evidence, p. 82.

{149c}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, p. 4, Hawkins.

{149c} Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, p. 4, Hawkins.

{151}  Stuart Evidence, p. 35.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stuart Evidence, p. 35.

{152a}  Tufnell Evidence, p. 91.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Tufnell Evidence, p. 91.

{152b}  Dr. Loudon Evidence, pp. 12, 13.

{152b}  Dr. Loudon Evidence, pp. 12, 13.

{153a}  Dr. Loudon Evidence, p. 16.

Dr. Loudon Evidence, p. 16.

{153b}  Drinkwater Evidence, pp. 72, 80, 146, 148, 150 (two brothers); 69 (two brothers); 155, and many others.

{153b}  Drinkwater Evidence, pp. 72, 80, 146, 148, 150 (two brothers); 69 (two brothers); 155, and many others.

Power Evidence, pp. 63, 66, 67 (two cases); 68 (three cases); 69 (two cases); in Leeds, pp. 29, 31, 40, 43, 53, et seq.

Power Evidence, pp. 63, 66, 67 (two cases); 68 (three cases); 69 (two cases); in Leeds, pp. 29, 31, 40, 43, 53, et seq.

Loudon Evidence, pp. 4, 7 (four cases); 8 (several cases), etc.

Loudon Evidence, pp. 4, 7 (four cases); 8 (several cases), etc.

Sir D. Barry Evidence, pp. 6, 8, 13, 21, 22, 44, 55 (three cases), etc.

Sir D. Barry Evidence, pp. 6, 8, 13, 21, 22, 44, 55 (three cases), etc.

Tufnell Evidence, pp. 5, 6, 16, etc.

Tufnell Evidence, pp. 5, 6, 16, etc.

{154a}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, 1836, Sir D. Barry Evidence, p. 21 (two cases).

{154a}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, 1836, Sir D. Barry Evidence, p. 21 (two cases).

{154b}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, 1836, Loudon Evidence, pp. 13, 16, etc.

{154b}  Factories’ Inquiry Commission’s Report, 1836, London Evidence, pp. 13, 16, etc.

{155}  In the spinning-room of a mill at Leeds, too, chairs had been introduced.  Drinkwater Evidence, p. 80.

{155} In the spinning room of a mill in Leeds, chairs were also added. Drinkwater Evidence, p. 80.

{156}  General report by Sir D. Barry.

{156}  General report by Sir D. Barry.

{157a}  Power Report, p. 74.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Power Report, p. 74.

{157b}  The surgeons in England are scientifically educated as well as the physicians, and have, in general, medical as well as surgical practice.  They are in general, for various reasons, preferred to the physicians.

{157b} Surgeons in England are professionally educated just like the doctors, and usually, they practice both medicine and surgery. For various reasons, they are often preferred over the doctors.

{159a}  This statement is not taken from the report.

{159a}  This statement isn't from the report.

{159b}  Tufnell, p. 59.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Tufnell, p. 59.

{160a}  Stuart Evidence, p. 101.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stuart Evidence, p. 101.

{160b}  Tufnell Evidence, pp. 3, 9, 15.

{160b} Tufnell Evidence, pp. 3, 9, 15.

{161}  Hawkins Report, p. 4; Evidence, p. 14, etc. etc.  Hawkins Evidence, pp. 11, 13.

{161}  Hawkins Report, p. 4; Evidence, p. 14, etc. etc.  Hawkins Evidence, pp. 11, 13.

{162a}  Cowell Evidence, p. 77.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Cowell Evidence, p. 77.

{162b}  Sir D. Barry Evidence, p. 44.

{162b} Sir D. Barry Evidence, p. 44.

{162c}  Cowell, p. 35.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Cowell, p. 35.

{163a}  Dr. Hawkins Evidence, p. 11; Dr. Loudon, p. 14, etc.; Sir D. Barry, p. 5, etc.

{163a} Dr. Hawkins Evidence, p. 11; Dr. Loudon, p. 14, etc.; Sir D. Barry, p. 5, etc.

{163b}  Compare Stuart, pp. 13, 70, 101; Mackintosh, p. 24, etc.; Power Report on Nottingham, on Leeds; Cowell, p. 33, etc.; Barry, p. 12; (five cases in one factory), pp. 17, 44, 52, 60, etc.; Loudon, p. 13.

{163b}  Check out Stuart, pp. 13, 70, 101; Mackintosh, p. 24, etc.; Power Report on Nottingham, on Leeds; Cowell, p. 33, etc.; Barry, p. 12; (five cases in one factory), pp. 17, 44, 52, 60, etc.; Loudon, p. 13.

{167a}  Stuart, p. 39.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stuart, p. 39.

{167b}  “Philosophy of Manufactures,” by Dr. Andrew Ure, p. 277, et seq.

{167b} “Philosophy of Manufactures,” by Dr. Andrew Ure, p. 277, and following.

{168a}  Ibid., 277.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., 277.

{168b}  Ibid., p. 298.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., p. 298.

{168c}  Ibid., p. 301.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  Same source., p. 301.

{169}  Dr. Andrew Ure.  “Philosophy of Manufactures,” pp. 405, 406, et seq.

{169}  Dr. Andrew Ure.  “Philosophy of Manufactures,” pp. 405, 406, et seq.

{174}  Afterwards Earl of Shaftesbury, died 1885.

{174} Afterward, the Earl of Shaftesbury passed away in 1885.

{176}  It is notorious that the House of Commons made itself ridiculous a second time in the same session in the same way on the Sugar Question, when it first voted against the ministry and then for it, after an application of the ministerial whip.

{176}  It's widely known that the House of Commons embarrassed itself again in this session over the Sugar Question, first voting against the government and then switching to support it after the minister used party discipline to sway the vote.

{178}  Let us hear another competent judge: “If we consider the example of the Irish in connection with the ceaseless toil of the cotton operative class, we shall wonder less at their terrible demoralisation.  Continuous exhausting toil, day after day, year after year, is not calculated to develop the intellectual and moral capabilities of the human being.  The wearisome routine of endless drudgery, in which the same mechanical process is ever repeated, is like the torture of Sisyphus; the burden of toil, like the rock, is ever falling back upon the worn-out drudge.  The mind attains neither knowledge nor the power of thought from the eternal employment of the same muscles.  The intellect dozes off in dull indolence, but the coarser part of our nature reaches a luxuriant development.  To condemn a human being to such work is to cultivate the animal quality in him.  He grows indifferent, he scorns the impulses and customs which distinguish his kind.  He neglects the conveniences and finer pleasures of life, lives in filthy poverty with scanty nourishment, and squanders the rest of his earnings in debauchery.”—Dr. J. Kay.

{178} Let’s listen to another knowledgeable expert: “If we look at the Irish alongside the relentless hard work of the cotton workers, we’ll understand better why they’re so demoralized. Continuous, exhausting labor, day in and day out, year after year, doesn’t help develop a person's intellectual and moral abilities. The boring routine of endless work, where the same mechanical actions are repeated again and again, is like the torture of Sisyphus; the weight of labor, like the rock, keeps rolling back onto the exhausted worker. The mind doesn’t gain knowledge or the ability to think from constantly using the same muscles. The intellect falls into dull laziness, while the more basic aspects of our nature thrive. To force someone into such work is to nurture their animal instincts. They become apathetic, disregarding the impulses and customs that set humanity apart. They overlook the comforts and finer pleasures of life, live in filthy poverty with little to eat, and waste the rest of their earnings on debauchery.”—Dr. J. Kay.

{179a}  Manchester Guardian, October 30th.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  Manchester Guardian, October 30.

{179b}  “Stubborn Facts,” p. 9 et seq.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  “Stubborn Facts,” p. 9 et seq.

{181a}  Drinkwater Evidence; p. 80.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__   Drinkwater Evidence; p. 80.

{181b}  “Stubborn Facts,” pp. 13-17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ “Stubborn Facts,” pp. 13-17.

{184}  Sun, a London daily; end of November, 1844.

{184}  Sun, a daily newspaper in London; late November, 1844.

{186}  I have neither time nor space to deal in detail with the replies of the manufacturers to the charges made against them for twelve years past.  These men will not learn because their supposed interest blinds them.  As, moreover, many of their objections have been met in the foregoing, the following is all that it is necessary for me to add:

{186} I don't have the time or space to go into detail about the manufacturers' responses to the accusations made against them over the past twelve years. These people won't learn because their perceived interests cloud their judgment. Since many of their objections have already been addressed, here's all I need to add:

You come to Manchester, you wish to make yourself acquainted with the state of affairs in England.  You naturally have good introductions to respectable people.  You drop a remark or two as to the condition of the workers.  You are made acquainted with a couple of the first Liberal manufacturers, Robert Hyde Greg, perhaps, Edmund Ashworth, Thomas Ashton, or others.  They are told of your wishes.  The manufacturer understands you, knows what he has to do.  He accompanies you to his factory in the country; Mr. Greg to Quarrybank in Cheshire, Mr. Ashworth to Turton near Bolton, Mr. Ashton to Hyde.  He leads you through a superb, admirably arranged building, perhaps supplied with ventilators, he calls your attention to the lofty, airy rooms, the fine machinery, here and there a healthy-looking operative.  He gives you an excellent lunch, and proposes to you to visit the operatives’ homes; he conducts you to the cottages, which look new, clean and neat, and goes with you into this one and that one, naturally only to overlookers, mechanics, etc., so that you may see “families who live wholly from the factory.”  Among other families you might find that only wife and children work, and the husband darns stockings.  The presence of the employer keeps you from asking indiscreet questions; you find every one well-paid, comfortable, comparatively healthy by reason of the country air; you begin to be converted from your exaggerated ideas of misery and starvation.  But, that the cottage system makes slaves of the operatives, that there may be a truck shop in the neighbourhood, that the people hate the manufacturer, this they do not point out to you, because he is present.  He has built a school, church, reading-room, etc.  That he uses the school to train children to subordination, that he tolerates in the reading-room such prints only as represent the interests of the bourgeoisie, that he dismisses his employees if they read Chartist or Socialist papers or books, this is all concealed from you.  You see an easy, patriarchal relation, you see the life of the overlookers, you see what the bourgeoisie promises the workers if they become its slaves, mentally and morally.  This “country manufacture” has always been what the employers like to show, because in it the disadvantages of the factory system, especially from the point of view of health, are, in part, done away with by the free air and surroundings, and because the patriarchal servitude of the workers can here be longest maintained.  Dr. Ure sings a dithyramb upon the theme.  But woe to the operatives to whom it occurs to think for themselves and become Chartists!  For them the paternal affection of the manufacturer comes to a sudden end.  Further, if you should wish to be accompanied through the working-people’s quarters of Manchester, if you should desire to see the development of the factory system in a factory town, you may wait long before these rich bourgeoisie will help you!  These gentlemen do not know in what condition their employees are nor what they want, and they dare not know things which would make them uneasy or even oblige them to act in opposition to their own interests.  But, fortunately, that is of no consequence: what the working-men have to carry out, they carry out for themselves.

You come to Manchester, wanting to understand the situation in England. You naturally have good connections with respectable people. You mention the condition of the workers a couple of times. You meet a few prominent Liberal manufacturers, like Robert Hyde Greg, maybe Edmund Ashworth, Thomas Ashton, or others. They hear about your interests. The manufacturer gets you and knows what to do. He takes you to his factory in the countryside; Mr. Greg to Quarrybank in Cheshire, Mr. Ashworth to Turton near Bolton, Mr. Ashton to Hyde. He shows you around an impressive, well-organized building, possibly equipped with ventilators, pointing out the spacious, airy rooms, the great machinery, and a few healthy-looking workers. He treats you to a nice lunch and suggests visiting the workers' homes; he leads you to cottages that look new, clean, and well-kept, taking you into some of them, primarily only to overlookers, mechanics, etc., so you can see “families who live entirely off the factory.” Among other families, you might find one where only the wife and kids work, while the husband patches up stockings. The presence of the employer keeps you from asking awkward questions; you see everyone well-paid, comfortable, and relatively healthy thanks to the fresh air; you start to change your exaggerated views on poverty and starvation. But they don’t mention that the cottage system makes slaves of the workers, that there could be a truck shop nearby, or that people dislike the manufacturer, since he is there. He has built a school, church, reading room, etc. That he uses the school to teach kids obedience, only allows in the reading room material that supports the interests of the bourgeoisie, and fires employees who read Chartist or Socialist literature, all of this is hidden from you. You see a comfortable, paternal relationship; you observe the life of the overseers; you see what the bourgeoisie promises the workers if they become its mental and moral slaves. This “country manufacture” is always what the employers prefer to showcase because the downsides of the factory system, especially regarding health, are partially mitigated by the fresh air and environment, and because the workers' patriarchal servitude can be preserved longer here. Dr. Ure praises this situation. But woe to the workers who think for themselves and decide to become Chartists! For them, the manufacturer’s fatherly affection quickly disappears. Additionally, if you wish to explore the working-class neighborhoods of Manchester, if you want to see how the factory system has developed in a factory town, you might wait a long time before these wealthy bourgeois will assist you! These gentlemen are unaware of their employees' conditions or their needs, and they avoid knowing things that would make them uncomfortable or force them to act against their own interests. But luckily, that doesn’t matter: whatever the working men need to achieve, they do for themselves.

{189}  Grainger Report.  Appendix, Part I., pp. 7, 15, et seq., 132-142.

{189}  Grainger Report.  Appendix, Part I., pp. 7, 15, and following., 132-142.

{192a}  Grainger’s whole Report.

Grainger’s complete Report.

{192b}  Grainger Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.

Grainger Children’s Employment Commission Report.

{193}  Burns, Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.

{193}  Burns, Report of the Children’s Employment Commission.

{194}  Leach.  “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” p. 47.

{194}  Leach. “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” p. 47.

{196}  Leach.  “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” p. 33.

{196} Leach. “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” p. 33.

{197}  Leach.  “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” p. 37-40.

{197} Leach. “Stubborn Facts from the Factories,” pp. 37-40.

{199}  Children’s Employment Commission’s Report.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Children’s Employment Commission Report.

{200a}  See p. 112.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See p. 112.

{200b}  Grainger Report and Evidence.

Grainger Report and Evidence.

{202}  Horne Report and Evidence.

Horne Report and Evidence.

{203}  Dr. Knight, Sheffield.

Dr. Knight, Sheffield.

{205}  Symonds Report and Evidence.

Symonds Report and Evidence.

{207}  Scriven Report and Evidence.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Scriven Report and Evidence.

{208}  Leifchild Report Append., Part II., p.  L 2, ss. 11,12; Franks Report Append., Part II., p. K 7, s. 48, Tancred Evid. Append., Part II., p.  I 76, etc.—Children’s Employment Commission’s Rep’t.

{208} Leifchild Report Appendix, Part II, p. L 2, ss. 11, 12; Franks Report Appendix, Part II, p. K 7, s. 48, Tancred Evidence Appendix, Part II, p. I 76, etc.—Children’s Employment Commission Report.

{210}  See Weekly Dispatch, March 16th, 1844.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Weekly Dispatch, March 16, 1844.

{211}  Thomas Hood, the most talented of all the English humorists now living, and, like all humorists, full of human feeling, but wanting in mental energy, published at the beginning of 1844 a beautiful poem, “The Song of the Shirt,” which drew sympathetic but unavailing tears from the eyes of the daughters of the bourgeoisie.  Originally published in Punch, it made the round of all the papers.  As discussions of the condition of the sewing-women filled all the papers at the time, special extracts are needless.

{211} Thomas Hood, one of the most talented English humorists alive today, and like all humorists, deeply in touch with human emotions but lacking mental energy, published a beautiful poem called “The Song of the Shirt” at the start of 1844. It brought sympathetic but useless tears from the daughters of the middle class. Originally published in Punch, it circulated through all the newspapers. Since discussions about the conditions of sewing women were everywhere in the papers at that time, specific excerpts are unnecessary.

{214}  “Arts and Artisans,” p. 137, et seq.

{214}  “Arts and Artisans,” p. 137, and following.

{221a}  So called from the East Indian tribe, whose only trade is the murder of all the strangers who fall into its hands.

{221a}  Named after the East Indian tribe, whose only trade is killing all the strangers who come into their possession.

{221b}  “What kind of wild justice must it be in the hearts of these men that prompts them, with cold deliberation, in conclave assembled, to doom their brother workman, as the deserter of his order and his order’s cause, to die a traitor’s and a deserter’s death, have him executed, in default of any public judge and hangman, then by a secret one; like your old Chivalry Fehmgericht and Secret Tribunal, suddenly revived in this strange guise; suddenly rising once more on the astonished eye, dressed not now in mail shirts, but in fustian jackets, meeting not in Westphalian forests, but in the paved Gallowgate of Glasgow!  Such a temper must be widespread virulent among the many when, even in its worst acme, it can take such form in the few.”—Carlyle.  “Chartism,” p. 40.

{221b} “What kind of wild justice must be in the hearts of these men that leads them, with cold calculation, gathered in a meeting, to condemn their fellow worker, as someone who has abandoned his union and its cause, to face a traitor’s and deserter’s death, having him executed without a public judge and executioner, instead by a secret one; like your old Chivalry Fehmgericht and Secret Tribunal, suddenly revived in this strange form; now appearing once more before our eyes, not dressed in armor, but in shabby jackets, meeting not in Westphalian forests, but on the paved Gallowgate of Glasgow! Such a mindset must be widely harmful among many when, even at its worst peak, it can manifest like this in the few.”—Carlyle. “Chartism,” p. 40.

{222a}  Dr. Ure, “Philosophy of Manufacture,” p. 282.

{222a} Dr. Ure, “Philosophy of Manufacture,” p. 282.

{222b}  Ibid., p. 282.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  Same source., p. 282.

{223a}  Dr. Ure, “Philosophy of Manufacture,” p. 367.

{223a}  Dr. Ure, “Philosophy of Manufacture,” p. 367.

{223b}  Ibid., p. 366, et seq.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid., p. 366, et seq.

{232}  Compare Report of Chambers of Commerce of Manchester and Leeds at the end of July and beginning of August.

{232} Check out the Report from the Chambers of Commerce of Manchester and Leeds from late July to early August.

{235}  See Introduction.

See Intro.

{241}  According to the census of 1841, the number of working-men employed in mines in Great Britain, without Ireland, was:

{241} According to the 1841 census, the number of working men employed in mines in Great Britain, excluding Ireland, was:

              Men over    Men under     Women over   Women under   Together
              20 years    20 years      20 years     20 Years
Coal mines    83,408      32,475        1,185        1,165         118,233
Copper mines   9,866       3,428          913        1,200          15,407
Lead mines     9,427       1,932           40           20          11,419
Iron mines     7,733       2,679          424           73          10,949
Tin mines      4,602       1,349           68           82           6,101
Various, the
mineral not
specified     24,162       6,591          472          491          31,616
Total        137,398      48,454        3,102        3,031         193,725

As the coal and iron mines are usually worked by the same people, a part of the miners attributed to the coal mines, and a very considerable part of those mentioned under the last heading, are to be attributed to the iron mines.

As the coal and iron mines are usually operated by the same workers, some of the miners counted in the coal mines, along with a significant portion of those listed under the previous heading, should be credited to the iron mines.

{242}  Also found in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report: Commissioner Mitchell’s Report.

{242}  Also found in the Children’s Employment Commission’s Report: Commissioner Mitchell’s Report.

{259}  The coal miners have at this moment, 1886, six of their body sitting in the House of Commons.

{259}  As of now, in 1886, there are six coal miners from their group sitting in the House of Commons.

{264}  E. G. Wakefield, M.P.  “Swing Unmasked; or, The Cause of Rural Incendiarism.”  London, 1831.  Pamphlet.  The foregoing extracts may be found pp. 9-13, the passages dealing in the original with the then still existing Old Poor Law being here omitted.

{264} E. G. Wakefield, M.P. "Swing Unmasked; or, The Cause of Rural Arson." London, 1831. Pamphlet. The passages above can be found on pages 9-13, with the sections discussing the Old Poor Law that was still in effect at the time omitted here.

{268}  This has been literally fulfilled.  After a period of unexampled extension of trade, Free Trade has landed England in a crisis, which began in 1878, and is still increasing in energy in 1886.

{268} This has been literally fulfilled. After an unprecedented period of trade expansion, Free Trade has put England in a crisis that started in 1878 and is still growing in intensity in 1886.

{269}  The agricultural labourers have now a Trade’s Union; their most energetic representative, Joseph Arch, was elected M.P. in 1885.

{269}  The farm workers now have a union; their most active representative, Joseph Arch, was elected as a Member of Parliament in 1885.

{272a}  Report of the Poor Law Commission upon Ireland.

{272a} Report from the Poor Law Commission on Ireland.

{272b}  “Principles of Population,” vol. ii.

“Principles of Population,” vol. 2.

{273}  “The State of Ireland.”  London, 1807; 2nd Ed., 1821.  Pamphlet.

{273} “The State of Ireland.” London, 1807; 2nd Ed., 1821. Pamphlet.

{276}  Carlyle gives in his “Past and Present” (London, 1843) a splendid description of the English bourgeoisie and its disgusting money greed.

{276} Carlyle provides a vivid description of the English middle class and their repulsive obsession with money in his “Past and Present” (London, 1843).

{286}  Extracts from Information received from the Poor Law Commissioners.  Published by authority.  London, 1833.

{286} Excerpts from information received from the Poor Law Commissioners. Published with permission. London, 1833.

{293}  To prevent misconstructions and consequent objections, I would observe that I have spoken of the bourgeoisie as a class, and that all such facts as refer to individuals serve merely as evidence of the way of thinking and acting of a class.  Hence I have not entered upon the distinctions between the divers sections, subdivisions and parties of the bourgeoisie, which have a mere historical and theoretical significance.  And I can, for the same reason, mention but casually the few members of the bourgeoisie who have shown themselves honourable exceptions.  These are, on the one hand, the pronounced Radicals, who are almost Chartists, such as a few members of the House of Commons, the manufacturers Hindly of Ashton, and Fielden of Todmordon (Lancashire), and, on the other hand, the philanthropic Tories, who have recently constituted themselves “Young England,” among whom are the members of Parliament, D’Israeli, Borthwick, Ferrand, Lord John Manners, etc.  Lord Ashley, too, is in sympathy with them.  The hope of Young England is a restoration of the old “Merry England” with its brilliant features and its romantic feudalism.  This object is of course unattainable and ridiculous, a satire upon all historic development; but the good intention, the courage to resist the existing state of things and prevalent prejudices, and to recognise the vileness of our present condition, is worth something anyhow.  Wholly isolated is the half-German Englishman, Thomas Carlyle, who, originally a Tory, goes beyond all those hitherto mentioned.  He has sounded the social disorder more deeply than any other English bourgeois, and demands the organisation of labour.

{293} To avoid misunderstandings and potential objections, I want to point out that I’ve talked about the bourgeoisie as a class, and any facts related to individuals are just evidence of the mindset and behavior of that class. Therefore, I haven’t gone into the differences among various sections, subdivisions, and factions of the bourgeoisie, which only have historical and theoretical relevance. For the same reason, I can only briefly mention the few members of the bourgeoisie who stand out as honorable exceptions. On one side, we have the committed Radicals, who are almost Chartists, like certain members of the House of Commons, manufacturers like Hindly from Ashton, and Fielden from Todmordon (Lancashire); and on the other side, there are the philanthropic Tories who recently formed “Young England,” which includes members of Parliament like D’Israeli, Borthwick, Ferrand, Lord John Manners, etc. Lord Ashley is also sympathetic to them. The hope for Young England is to bring back the old “Merry England” with its shining features and romantic feudalism. This goal is obviously unattainable and absurd, a satire on all historical progress; but the good intentions, the courage to stand against the current state of affairs and widespread prejudices, and the acknowledgment of the awfulness of our present condition do have some value. Completely on his own is the half-German Englishman, Thomas Carlyle, who, originally a Tory, goes further than anyone mentioned so far. He has explored social disorder more deeply than any other English bourgeois and calls for the organization of labor.

{296}  And it did.

And it happened.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!